Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Daemon of the World
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Complete Poetical Works of Percy Bysshe
  • Shelley Volume I, by Percy Bysshe Shelley
  • #4 in our series by Percy Bysshe Shelley
  • Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
  • copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing
  • this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook.
  • This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project
  • Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the
  • header without written permission.
  • Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the
  • eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is
  • important information about your specific rights and restrictions in
  • how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a
  • donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved.
  • **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
  • **eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
  • *****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****
  • Title: The Complete Poetical Works of Percy Bysshe Shelley Volume I
  • Author: Percy Bysshe Shelley
  • Edited by Thomas Hutchinson, M. A.
  • Release Date: December, 2003 [Etext #4797]
  • [This file was last updated on March 18, 2002]
  • Edition: 10
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG ETEXT THE COMPLETE POETICAL WORKS ***
  • Produced by Sue Asscher
  • THE COMPLETE
  • POETICAL WORKS
  • OF
  • PERCY BYSSHE SHELLEY
  • VOLUME 1
  • OXFORD EDITION.
  • INCLUDING MATERIALS NEVER BEFORE
  • PRINTED IN ANY EDITION OF THE POEMS.
  • EDITED WITH TEXTUAL NOTES
  • BY
  • THOMAS HUTCHINSON, M. A.
  • EDITOR OF THE OXFORD WORDSWORTH.
  • 1914.
  • PREFACE.
  • This edition of his "Poetical Works" contains all Shelley's
  • ascertained poems and fragments of verse that have hitherto appeared
  • in print. In preparing the volume I have worked as far as possible on
  • the principle of recognizing the editio princeps as the primary
  • textual authority. I have not been content to reprint Mrs. Shelley's
  • recension of 1839, or that of any subsequent editor of the "Poems".
  • The present text is the result of a fresh collation of the early
  • editions; and in every material instance of departure from the wording
  • of those originals the rejected reading has been subjoined in a
  • footnote. Again, wherever--as in the case of "Julian and
  • Maddalo"--there has appeared to be good reason for superseding the
  • authority of the editio princeps, the fact is announced, and the
  • substituted exemplar indicated, in the Prefatory Note. in the case of
  • a few pieces extant in two or more versions of debatable authority the
  • alternative text or texts will be found at the [end] of the [relevant
  • work]; but it may be said once for all that this does not pretend to
  • be a variorum edition, in the proper sense of the term--the textual
  • apparatus does not claim to be exhaustive. Thus I have not thought it
  • necessary to cumber the footnotes with every minute grammatical
  • correction introduced by Mrs. Shelley, apparently on her own
  • authority, into the texts of 1839; nor has it come within the scheme
  • of this edition to record every conjectural emendation adopted or
  • proposed by Rossetti and others in recent times. But it is hoped that,
  • up to and including the editions of 1839 at least, no important
  • variation of the text has been overlooked. Whenever a reading has been
  • adopted on manuscript authority, a reference to the particular source
  • has been added below.
  • I have been chary of gratuitous interference with the punctuation of
  • the manuscripts and early editions; in this direction, however, some
  • revision was indispensable. Even in his most carefully finished "fair
  • copy" Shelley under-punctuates (Thus in the exquisite autograph "Hunt
  • MS." of "Julian and Maddalo", Mr. Buxton Forman, the most conservative
  • of editors, finds it necessary to supplement Shelley's punctuation in
  • no fewer than ninety-four places.), and sometimes punctuates
  • capriciously. In the very act of transcribing his mind was apt to
  • stray from the work in hand to higher things; he would lose himself in
  • contemplating those airy abstractions and lofty visions of which alone
  • he greatly cared to sing, to the neglect and detriment of the merely
  • external and formal element of his song. Shelley recked little of the
  • jots and tittles of literary craftsmanship; he committed many a small
  • sin against the rules of grammar, and certainly paid but a halting
  • attention to the nice distinctions of punctuation. Thus in the early
  • editions a comma occasionally plays the part of a semicolon; colons
  • and semicolons seem to be employed interchangeably; a semicolon almost
  • invariably appears where nowadays we should employ the dash; and,
  • lastly, the dash itself becomes a point of all work, replacing
  • indifferently commas, colons, semicolons or periods. Inadequate and
  • sometimes haphazard as it is, however, Shelley's punctuation, so far
  • as it goes, is of great value as an index to his metrical, or at
  • times, it may be, to his rhetorical intention--for, in Shelley's
  • hands, punctuation serves rather to mark the rhythmical pause and
  • onflow of the verse, or to secure some declamatory effect, than to
  • indicate the structure or elucidate the sense. For this reason the
  • original pointing has been retained, save where it tends to obscure or
  • pervert the poet's meaning. Amongst the Editor's Notes at the end of
  • the Volume 3 the reader will find lists of the punctual variations in
  • the longer poems, by means of which the supplementary points now added
  • may be identified, and the original points, which in this edition have
  • been deleted or else replaced by others, ascertained, in the order of
  • their occurrence. In the use of capitals Shelley's practice has been
  • followed, while an attempt has been made to reduce the number of his
  • inconsistencies in this regard.
  • To have reproduced the spelling of the manuscripts would only have
  • served to divert attention from Shelley's poetry to my own ingenuity
  • in disgusting the reader according to the rules of editorial
  • punctilio. (I adapt a phrase or two from the preface to "The Revolt of
  • Islam".) Shelley was neither very accurate, nor always consistent, in
  • his spelling. He was, to say the truth, indifferent about all such
  • matters: indeed, to one absorbed in the spectacle of a world
  • travailing for lack of the gospel of "Political Justice", the study of
  • orthographical niceties must have seemed an occupation for Bedlamites.
  • Again--as a distinguished critic and editor of Shelley, Professor
  • Dowden, aptly observes in this connexion--'a great poet is not of an
  • age, but for all time.' Irregular or antiquated forms such as
  • 'recieve,' 'sacrifize,' 'tyger,' 'gulph,' 'desart,' 'falshood,' and
  • the like, can only serve to distract the reader's attention, and mar
  • his enjoyment of the verse. Accordingly Shelley's eccentricities in
  • this kind have been discarded, and his spelling reversed in accordance
  • with modern usage. All weak preterite-forms, whether indicatives or
  • participles, have been printed with "ed" rather than "t", participial
  • adjectives and substantives, such as 'past,' alone excepted. In the
  • case of 'leap,' which has two preterite-forms, both employed by
  • Shelley (See for an example of the longer form, the "Hymn to Mercury",
  • 18 5, where 'leaped' rhymes with 'heaped' (line 1). The shorter form,
  • rhyming to 'wept,' 'adapt,' etc., occurs more frequently.)--one with
  • the long vowel of the present-form, the other with a vowel-change (Of
  • course, wherever this vowel-shortening takes place, whether indicated
  • by a corresponding change in the spelling or not, "t", not "ed" is
  • properly used--'cleave,' 'cleft,'; 'deal,' 'dealt'; etc. The forms
  • discarded under the general rule laid down above are such as 'wrackt,'
  • 'prankt,' 'snatcht,' 'kist,' 'opprest,' etc.) like that of 'crept'
  • from 'creep'--I have not hesitated to print the longer form 'leaped,'
  • and the shorter (after Mr. Henry Sweet's example) 'lept,' in order
  • clearly to indicate the pronunciation intended by Shelley. In the
  • editions the two vowel-sounds are confounded under the one spelling,
  • 'leapt.' In a few cases Shelley's spelling, though unusual or
  • obsolete, has been retained. Thus in 'aethereal,' 'paean,' and one or
  • two more words the "ae" will be found, and 'airy' still appears as
  • 'aery'. Shelley seems to have uniformly written 'lightening': here the
  • word is so printed whenever it is employed as a trisyllable; elsewhere
  • the ordinary spelling has been adopted. (Not a little has been written
  • about 'uprest' ("Revolt of Islam", 3 21 5), which has been described
  • as a nonce-word deliberately coined by Shelley 'on no better warrant
  • than the exigency of the rhyme.' There can be little doubt that
  • 'uprest' is simply an overlooked misprint for 'uprist'--not by any
  • means a nonce-word, but a genuine English verbal substantive of
  • regular formation, familiar to many from its employment by Chaucer.
  • True, the corresponding rhyme-words in the passage above referred to
  • are 'nest,' 'possessed,' 'breast'; but a laxity such as
  • 'nest'--'uprist' is quite in Shelley's manner. Thus in this very poem
  • we find 'midst'--'shed'st' (6 16), 'mist'--'rest'--'blest' (5 58),
  • 'loveliest'--'mist'--kissed'--'dressed' (5 53). Shelley may have first
  • seen the word in "The Ancient Mariner"; but he employs it more
  • correctly than Coleridge, who seems to have mistaken it for a
  • preterite-form (='uprose') whereas in truth it serves either as the
  • third person singular of the present (='upriseth'), or, as here, for
  • the verbal substantive (='uprising').
  • The editor of Shelley to-day enters upon a goodly heritage, the
  • accumulated gains of a series of distinguished predecessors. Mrs.
  • Shelley's two editions of 1839 form the nucleus of the present volume,
  • and her notes are here reprinted in full; but the arrangement of the
  • poems differs to some extent from that followed by her--chiefly in
  • respect of "Queen Mab", which is here placed at the head of the
  • "Juvenilia", instead of at the forefront of the poems of Shelley's
  • maturity. In 1862 a slender volume of poems and fragments, entitled
  • "Relics of Shelley", was published by Dr. Richard Garnett, C.B.--a
  • precious sheaf gleaned from the manuscripts preserved at Boscombe
  • Manor. The "Relics" constitute a salvage second only in value to the
  • "Posthumous Poems" of 1824. To the growing mass of Shelley's verse yet
  • more material was added in 1870 by Mr. William Michael Rossetti, who
  • edited for Moxon the "Complete Poetical Works" published in that year.
  • To him we owe in particular a revised and greatly enlarged version of
  • the fragmentary drama of "Charles I". But though not seldom successful
  • in restoring the text, Mr. Rossetti pushed revision beyond the bounds
  • of prudence, freely correcting grammatical errors, rectifying small
  • inconsistencies in the sense, and too lightly adopting conjectural
  • emendations on the grounds of rhyme or metre. In the course of an
  • article published in the "Westminster Review" for July, 1870, Miss
  • Mathilde Blind, with the aid of material furnished by Dr. Garnett,
  • 'was enabled,' in the words of Mr. Buxton Forman, 'to supply
  • omissions, make authoritative emendations, and controvert erroneous
  • changes' in Mr. Rossetti's work; and in the more cautiously edited
  • text of his later edition, published by Moxon in 1878, may be traced
  • the influence of her strictures.
  • Six years later appeared a variorum edition in which for the first
  • time Shelley's text was edited with scientific exactness of method,
  • and with a due respect for the authority of the original editions. It
  • would be difficult indeed to over-estimate the gains which have
  • accrued to the lovers of Shelley from the strenuous labours of Mr.
  • Harry Buxton Forman, C.B. He too has enlarged the body of Shelley's
  • poetry (Mr. Forman's most notable addition is the second part of "The
  • Daemon of the World", which he printed privately in 1876, and included
  • in his Library Edition of the "Poetical Works" published in the same
  • year. See the "List of Editions", etc. at the end of Volume 3.); but,
  • important as his editions undoubtedly are, it may safely be affirmed
  • that his services in this direction constitute the least part of what
  • we owe him. He has vindicated the authenticity of the text in many
  • places, while in many others he has succeeded, with the aid of
  • manuscripts, in restoring it. His untiring industry in research, his
  • wide bibliographical knowledge and experience, above all, his
  • accuracy, as invariable as it is minute, have combined to make him, in
  • the words of Professor Dowden, 'our chief living authority on all that
  • relates to Shelley's writings.' His name stands securely linked for
  • all time to Shelley's by a long series of notable words, including
  • three successive editions (1876, 1882, 1892) of the Poems, an edition
  • of the Prose Remains, as well as many minor publications--a
  • Bibliography ("The Shelley Library", 1886)and several Facsimile
  • Reprints of the early issues, edited for the Shelley Society.
  • To Professor Dowden, whose authoritative Biography of the poet,
  • published in 1886, was followed in 1890 by an edition of the Poems
  • (Macmillans), is due the addition of several pieces belonging to the
  • juvenile period, incorporated by him in the pages of the "Life of
  • Shelley". Professor Dowden has also been enabled, with the aid of the
  • manuscripts placed in his hands, to correct the text of the
  • "Juvenilia" in many places. In 1893 Professor George E. Woodberry
  • edited a "Centenary Edition of the Complete Poetical Works", in which,
  • to quote his own words, an attempt is made 'to summarize the labours
  • of more than half a century on Shelley's text, and on his biography so
  • far as the biography is bound up with the text.' In this Centenary
  • edition the textual variations found in the Harvard College
  • manuscripts, as well as those in the manuscripts belonging to Mr.
  • Frederickson of Brooklyn, are fully recorded. Professor Woodberry's
  • text is conservative on the whole, but his revision of the punctuation
  • is drastic, and occasionally sacrifices melody to perspicuity.
  • In 1903 Mr. C.D. Locock published, in a quarto volume of seventy-five
  • pages, the fruits of a careful scrutiny of the Shelley manuscripts now
  • lodged in the Bodleian Library. Mr. Locock succeeded in recovering
  • several inedited fragments of verse and prose. Amongst the poems
  • chiefly concerned in the results of his "Examination" may be named
  • "Marenghi", "Prince Athanase", "The Witch of Atlas", "To Constantia",
  • the "Ode to Naples", and (last, not least) "Prometheus Unbound". Full
  • use has been made in this edition of Mr. Locock's collations, and the
  • fragments recovered and printed by him are included in the text.
  • Variants derived from the Bodleian manuscripts are marked "B." in the
  • footnotes.
  • On the state of the text generally, and the various quarters in which
  • it lies open to conjectural emendation, I cannot do better than quote
  • the following succinct and luminous account from a "Causerie" on the
  • Shelley manuscripts in the Bodleian Library, contributed by Dr.
  • Richard Garnett, C.B., to the columns of "The Speaker" of December 19,
  • 1903:--
  • 'From the textual point of view, Shelley's works may be divided into
  • three classes--those published in his lifetime under his own
  • direction; those also published in his lifetime, but in his absence
  • from the press; and those published after his death. The first class
  • includes "Queen Mab", "The Revolt of Islam", and "Alastor" with its
  • appendages, published in England before his final departure for the
  • continent; and "The Cenci" and "Adonais", printed under his own eye at
  • Leghorn and Pisa respectively. Except for some provoking but
  • corrigible misprints in "The Revolt of Islam" and one crucial passage
  • in "Alastor", these poems afford little material for conjectural
  • emendation; for the Alexandrines now and then left in the middle of
  • stanzas in "The Revolt of Islam" must remain untouched, as proceeding
  • not from the printer's carelessness but the author's. The second
  • class, poems printed during Shelley's lifetime, but not under his
  • immediate inspection, comprise "Prometheus Unbound" and "Rosalind and
  • Helen", together with the pieces which accompanied them,
  • "Epipsychidion", "Hellas", and "Swellfoot the Tyrant". The correction
  • of the most important of these, the "Prometheus", was the least
  • satisfactory. Shelley, though speaking plainly to the publisher,
  • rather hints than expresses his dissatisfaction when writing to
  • Gisborne, the corrector, but there is a pretty clear hint when on a
  • subsequent occasion he says to him, "I have received 'Hellas', which
  • is prettily printed, and with fewer mistakes than any poem I ever
  • published." This also was probably not without influence on his
  • determination to have "The Cenci" and "Adonais" printed in Italy...Of
  • the third class of Shelley's writings--those which were first
  • published after his death--sufficient facsimiles have been published
  • to prove that Trelawny's graphic description of the chaotic state of
  • most of them was really in no respect exaggerated...The difficulty is
  • much augmented by the fact that these pieces are rarely consecutive,
  • but literally disiecti membra poetae, scattered through various
  • notebooks in a way to require piecing together as well as deciphering.
  • The editors of the Posthumous Poems, moreover, though diligent
  • according to their light, were neither endowed with remarkable acumen
  • nor possessed of the wide knowledge requisite for the full
  • intelligence of so erudite a poet as Shelley, hence the perpetration
  • of numerous mistakes. Some few of the manuscripts, indeed, such as
  • those of "The Witch of Atlas", "Julian and Maddalo", and the "Lines at
  • Naples", were beautifully written out for the press in Shelley's best
  • hand, but their very value and beauty necessitated the ordeal of
  • transcription, with disastrous results in several instances. An entire
  • line dropped out of the "Lines at Naples", and although "Julian and
  • Maddalo" was extant in more than one very clear copy, the printed text
  • had several such sense-destroying errors as "least" for "lead".
  • 'The corrupt state of the text has stimulated the ingenuity of
  • numerous correctors, who have suggested many acute and convincing
  • emendations, and some very specious ones which sustained scrutiny has
  • proved untenable. It should be needless to remark that success has in
  • general been proportionate to the facilities of access to the
  • manuscripts, which have only of late become generally available. If
  • Shelley is less fortunate than most modern poets in the purity of his
  • text, he is more fortunate than many in the preservation of his
  • manuscripts. These have not, as regards a fair proportion, been
  • destroyed or dispersed at auctions, but were protected from either
  • fate by their very character as confused memoranda. As such they
  • remained in the possession of Shelley's widow, and passed from her to
  • her son and daughter-in-law. After Sir Percy Shelley's death, Lady
  • Shelley took the occasion of the erection of the monument to Shelley
  • at University College, Oxford, to present [certain of] the manuscripts
  • to the Bodleian Library, and verse and sculpture form an imperishable
  • memorial of his connection with the University where his residence was
  • so brief and troubled.' (Dr. Garnett proceeds:--'The most important of
  • the Bodleian manuscripts is that of "Prometheus Unbound", which, says
  • Mr. Locock, has the appearance of being an intermediate draft, and
  • also the first copy made. This should confer considerable authority on
  • its variations from the accepted text, as this appears to have been
  • printed from a copy not made by Shelley himself. "My 'Prometheus'," he
  • writes to Ollier on September 6, 1819, "is now being transcribed," an
  • expression which he would hardly have used if he had himself been the
  • copyist. He wished the proofs to be sent to him in Italy for
  • correction, but to this Ollier objected, and on May 14, 1820, Shelley
  • signifies his acquiescence, adding, however, "In this case I shall
  • repose trust in your care respecting the correction of the press; Mr.
  • Gisborne will revise it; he heard it recited, and will therefore more
  • readily seize any error." This confidence in the accuracy of
  • Gisborne's verbal memory is touching! From a letter to Gisborne on May
  • 26 following it appears that the offer to correct came from him, and
  • that Shelley sent him "two little papers of corrections and
  • additions," which were probably made use of, or the fact would have
  • been made known. In the case of additions this may satisfactorily
  • account for apparent omissions in the Bodleian manuscript. Gisborne,
  • after all, did not prove fully up to the mark. "It is to be
  • regretted," writes Shelley to Ollier on November 20, "that the errors
  • of the press are so numerous," adding, "I shall send you the list of
  • errata in a day or two." This was probably "the list of errata written
  • by Shelley himself," from which Mrs. Shelley corrected the edition of
  • 1839.')
  • In placing "Queen Mab" at the head of the "Juvenilia" I have followed
  • the arrangement adopted by Mr. Buxton Forman in his Library Edition of
  • 1876. I have excluded "The Wandering Jew", having failed to satisfy
  • myself of the sufficiency of the grounds on which, in certain
  • quarters, it is accepted as the work of Shelley. The shorter fragments
  • are printed, as in Professor Dowden's edition of 1890, along with the
  • miscellaneous poems of the years to which they severally belong, under
  • titles which are sometimes borrowed from Mr. Buxton Forman, sometimes
  • of my own choosing. I have added a few brief Editor's Notes, mainly on
  • textual questions, at the end of the book. Of the poverty of my work
  • in this direction I am painfully aware; but in the present edition the
  • ordinary reader will, it is hoped, find an authentic, complete, and
  • accurately printed text, and, if this be so, the principal end and aim
  • of the OXFORD SHELLEY will have been attained.
  • I desire cordially to acknowledge the courtesy of Mr. H. Buxton
  • Forman, C.B., by whose kind sanction the second part of "The Daemon
  • the World" appears in this volume. And I would fain express my deep
  • sense of obligation for manifold information and guidance, derived
  • from Mr. Buxton Forman's various editions, reprints and other
  • publications--especially from the monumental Library Edition of 1876.
  • Acknowledgements are also due to the poet's grandson, Charles E.J.
  • Esdaile, Esq., for permission to include the early poems first printed
  • in Professor Dowden's "Life of Shelley"; and to Mr. C.D. Locock, for
  • leave to make full use of the material contained in his interesting
  • and stimulating volume. To Dr. Richard Garnett, C.B., and to Professor
  • Dowden, cordial thanks are hereby tendered for good counsel cheerfully
  • bestowed. To two of the editors of the Shelley Society Reprints, Mr.
  • Thomas J. Wise and Mr. Robert A. Potts--both generously communicative
  • collectors--I am deeply indebted for the gift or loan of scarce
  • volumes, as well as for many kind offices in other ways. Lastly, to
  • the staff of the Oxford University Press my heartiest thanks are
  • owing, for their unremitting care in all that relates to the printing
  • and correcting of the sheets.
  • THOMAS HUTCHINSON.
  • December, 1904.
  • POSTSCRIPT.
  • In a valuable paper, 'Notes on Passages in Shelley,' contributed to
  • "The Modern Language Review" (October, 1905), Mr. A.C. Bradley
  • discussed, amongst other things, some fifty places in the text of
  • Shelley's verse, and indicated certain errors and omissions in this
  • edition. With the aid of these "Notes" the editor has now carefully
  • revised the text, and has in many places adopted the suggestions or
  • conclusions of their accomplished author.
  • June, 1913.
  • PREFACE BY MRS. SHELLEY
  • TO FIRST COLLECTED EDITION, 1839.
  • Obstacles have long existed to my presenting the public with a perfect
  • edition of Shelley's Poems. These being at last happily removed, I
  • hasten to fulfil an important duty,--that of giving the productions of
  • a sublime genius to the world, with all the correctness possible, and
  • of, at the same time, detailing the history of those productions, as
  • they sprang, living and warm, from his heart and brain. I abstain from
  • any remark on the occurrences of his private life, except inasmuch as
  • the passions which they engendered inspired his poetry. This is not
  • the time to relate the truth; and I should reject any colouring of the
  • truth. No account of these events has ever been given at all
  • approaching reality in their details, either as regards himself or
  • others; nor shall I further allude to them than to remark that the
  • errors of action committed by a man as noble and generous as Shelley,
  • may, as far as he only is concerned, be fearlessly avowed by those who
  • loved him, in the firm conviction that, were they judged impartially,
  • his character would stand in fairer and brighter light than that of
  • any contemporary. Whatever faults he had ought to find extenuation
  • among his fellows, since they prove him to be human; without them, the
  • exalted nature of his soul would have raised him into something
  • divine.
  • The qualities that struck any one newly introduced to Shelley
  • were,--First, a gentle and cordial goodness that animated his
  • intercourse with warm affection and helpful sympathy. The other, the
  • eagerness and ardour with which he was attached to the cause of human
  • happiness and improvement; and the fervent eloquence with which he
  • discussed such subjects. His conversation was marked by its happy
  • abundance, and the beautiful language in which he clothed his poetic
  • ideas and philosophical notions. To defecate life of its misery and
  • its evil was the ruling passion of his soul; he dedicated to it every
  • power of his mind, every pulsation of his heart. He looked on
  • political freedom as the direct agent to effect the happiness of
  • mankind; and thus any new-sprung hope of liberty inspired a joy and an
  • exultation more intense and wild than he could have felt for any
  • personal advantage. Those who have never experienced the workings of
  • passion on general and unselfish subjects cannot understand this; and
  • it must be difficult of comprehension to the younger generation rising
  • around, since they cannot remember the scorn and hatred with which the
  • partisans of reform were regarded some few years ago, nor the
  • persecutions to which they were exposed. He had been from youth the
  • victim of the state of feeling inspired by the reaction of the French
  • Revolution; and believing firmly in the justice and excellence of his
  • views, it cannot be wondered that a nature as sensitive, as impetuous,
  • and as generous as his, should put its whole force into the attempt to
  • alleviate for others the evils of those systems from which he had
  • himself suffered. Many advantages attended his birth; he spurned them
  • all when balanced with what he considered his duties. He was generous
  • to imprudence, devoted to heroism.
  • These characteristics breathe throughout his poetry. The struggle for
  • human weal; the resolution firm to martyrdom; the impetuous pursuit,
  • the glad triumph in good; the determination not to despair;--such were
  • the features that marked those of his works which he regarded with
  • most complacency, as sustained by a lofty subject and useful aim.
  • In addition to these, his poems may be divided into two classes,--the
  • purely imaginative, and those which sprang from the emotions of his
  • heart. Among the former may be classed the "Witch of Atlas",
  • "Adonais", and his latest composition, left imperfect, the "Triumph of
  • Life". In the first of these particularly he gave the reins to his
  • fancy, and luxuriated in every idea as it rose; in all there is that
  • sense of mystery which formed an essential portion of his perception
  • of life--a clinging to the subtler inner spirit, rather than to the
  • outward form--a curious and metaphysical anatomy of human passion and
  • perception.
  • The second class is, of course, the more popular, as appealing at once
  • to emotions common to us all; some of these rest on the passion of
  • love; others on grief and despondency; others on the sentiments
  • inspired by natural objects. Shelley's conception of love was exalted,
  • absorbing, allied to all that is purest and noblest in our nature, and
  • warmed by earnest passion; such it appears when he gave it a voice in
  • verse. Yet he was usually averse to expressing these feelings, except
  • when highly idealized; and many of his more beautiful effusions he had
  • cast aside unfinished, and they were never seen by me till after I had
  • lost him. Others, as for instance "Rosalind and Helen" and "Lines
  • written among the Euganean Hills", I found among his papers by chance;
  • and with some difficulty urged him to complete them. There are others,
  • such as the "Ode to the Skylark and The Cloud", which, in the opinion
  • of many critics, bear a purer poetical stamp than any other of his
  • productions. They were written as his mind prompted: listening to the
  • carolling of the bird, aloft in the azure sky of Italy; or marking the
  • cloud as it sped across the heavens, while he floated in his boat on
  • the Thames.
  • No poet was ever warmed by a more genuine and unforced inspiration.
  • His extreme sensibility gave the intensity of passion to his
  • intellectual pursuits; and rendered his mind keenly alive to every
  • perception of outward objects, as well as to his internal sensations.
  • Such a gift is, among the sad vicissitudes of human life, the
  • disappointments we meet, and the galling sense of our own mistakes and
  • errors, fraught with pain; to escape from such, he delivered up his
  • soul to poetry, and felt happy when he sheltered himself, from the
  • influence of human sympathies, in the wildest regions of fancy. His
  • imagination has been termed too brilliant, his thoughts too subtle. He
  • loved to idealize reality; and this is a taste shared by few. We are
  • willing to have our passing whims exalted into passions, for this
  • gratifies our vanity; but few of us understand or sympathize with the
  • endeavour to ally the love of abstract beauty, and adoration of
  • abstract good, the to agathon kai to kalon of the Socratic
  • philosophers, with our sympathies with our kind. In this, Shelley
  • resembled Plato; both taking more delight in the abstract and the
  • ideal than in the special and tangible. This did not result from
  • imitation; for it was not till Shelley resided in Italy that he made
  • Plato his study. He then translated his "Symposium" and his "Ion"; and
  • the English language boasts of no more brilliant composition than
  • Plato's Praise of Love translated by Shelley. To return to his own
  • poetry. The luxury of imagination, which sought nothing beyond itself
  • (as a child burdens itself with spring flowers, thinking of no use
  • beyond the enjoyment of gathering them), often showed itself in his
  • verses: they will be only appreciated by minds which have resemblance
  • to his own; and the mystic subtlety of many of his thoughts will share
  • the same fate. The metaphysical strain that characterizes much of what
  • he has written was, indeed, the portion of his works to which, apart
  • from those whose scope was to awaken mankind to aspirations for what
  • he considered the true and good, he was himself particularly attached.
  • There is much, however, that speaks to the many. When he would consent
  • to dismiss these huntings after the obscure (which, entwined with his
  • nature as they were, he did with difficulty), no poet ever expressed
  • in sweeter, more heart-reaching, or more passionate verse, the gentler
  • or more forcible emotions of the soul.
  • A wise friend once wrote to Shelley: 'You are still very young, and in
  • certain essential respects you do not yet sufficiently perceive that
  • you are so.' It is seldom that the young know what youth is, till they
  • have got beyond its period; and time was not given him to attain this
  • knowledge. It must be remembered that there is the stamp of such
  • inexperience on all he wrote; he had not completed his
  • nine-and-twentieth year when he died. The calm of middle life did not
  • add the seal of the virtues which adorn maturity to those generated by
  • the vehement spirit of youth. Through life also he was a martyr to
  • ill-health, and constant pain wound up his nerves to a pitch of
  • susceptibility that rendered his views of life different from those of
  • a man in the enjoyment of healthy sensations. Perfectly gentle and
  • forbearing in manner, he suffered a good deal of internal
  • irritability, or rather excitement, and his fortitude to bear was
  • almost always on the stretch; and thus, during a short life, he had
  • gone through more experience of sensation than many whose existence is
  • protracted. 'If I die to-morrow,' he said, on the eve of his
  • unanticipated death, 'I have lived to be older than my father.' The
  • weight of thought and feeling burdened him heavily; you read his
  • sufferings in his attenuated frame, while you perceived the mastery he
  • held over them in his animated countenance and brilliant eyes.
  • He died, and the world showed no outward sign. But his influence over
  • mankind, though slow in growth, is fast augmenting; and, in the
  • ameliorations that have taken place in the political state of his
  • country, we may trace in part the operation of his arduous struggles.
  • His spirit gathers peace in its new state from the sense that, though
  • late, his exertions were not made in vain, and in the progress of the
  • liberty he so fondly loved.
  • He died, and his place, among those who knew him intimately, has never
  • been filled up. He walked beside them like a spirit of good to comfort
  • and benefit--to enlighten the darkness of life with irradiations of
  • genius, to cheer it with his sympathy and love. Any one, once attached
  • to Shelley, must feel all other affections, however true and fond, as
  • wasted on barren soil in comparison. It is our best consolation to
  • know that such a pure-minded and exalted being was once among us, and
  • now exists where we hope one day to join him;--although the
  • intolerant, in their blindness, poured down anathemas, the Spirit of
  • Good, who can judge the heart, never rejected him.
  • In the notes appended to the poems I have endeavoured to narrate the
  • origin and history of each. The loss of nearly all letters and papers
  • which refer to his early life renders the execution more imperfect
  • than it would otherwise have been. I have, however, the liveliest
  • recollection of all that was done and said during the period of my
  • knowing him. Every impression is as clear as if stamped yesterday, and
  • I have no apprehension of any mistake in my statements as far as they
  • go. In other respects I am indeed incompetent: but I feel the
  • importance of the task, and regard it as my most sacred duty. I
  • endeavour to fulfil it in a manner he would himself approve; and hope,
  • in this publication, to lay the first stone of a monument due to
  • Shelley's genius, his sufferings, and his virtues:--
  • Se al seguir son tarda,
  • Forse avverra che 'l bel nome gentile
  • Consacrero con questa stanca penna.
  • POSTSCRIPT IN SECOND EDITION OF 1839.
  • In revising this new edition, and carefully consulting Shelley's
  • scattered and confused papers, I found a few fragments which had
  • hitherto escaped me, and was enabled to complete a few poems hitherto
  • left unfinished. What at one time escapes the searching eye, dimmed by
  • its own earnestness, becomes clear at a future period. By the aid of a
  • friend, I also present some poems complete and correct which hitherto
  • have been defaced by various mistakes and omissions. It was suggested
  • that the poem "To the Queen of my Heart" was falsely attributed to
  • Shelley. I certainly find no trace of it among his papers; and, as
  • those of his intimate friends whom I have consulted never heard of it,
  • I omit it.
  • Two poems are added of some length, "Swellfoot the Tyrant" and "Peter
  • Bell the Third". I have mentioned the circumstances under which they
  • were written in the notes; and need only add that they are conceived
  • in a very different spirit from Shelley's usual compositions. They are
  • specimens of the burlesque and fanciful; but, although they adopt a
  • familiar style and homely imagery, there shine through the radiance of
  • the poet's imagination the earnest views and opinions of the
  • politician and the moralist.
  • At my request the publisher has restored the omitted passages of
  • "Queen Mab". I now present this edition as a complete collection of my
  • husband's poetical works, and I do not foresee that I can hereafter
  • add to or take away a word or line.
  • Putney, November 6, 1839.
  • PREFACE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • TO THE VOLUME OF POSTHUMOUS POEMS PUBLISHED IN 1824.
  • In nobil sangue vita umile e queta,
  • Ed in alto intelletto un puro core
  • Frutto senile in sul giovenil fibre,
  • E in aspetto pensoso anima lieta.--PETRARCA.
  • It had been my wish, on presenting the public with the Posthumous
  • Poems of Mr. Shelley, to have accompanied them by a biographical
  • notice; as it appeared to me that at this moment a narration of the
  • events of my husband's life would come more gracefully from other
  • hands than mine, I applied to Mr. Leigh Hunt. The distinguished
  • friendship that Mr. Shelley felt for him, and the enthusiastic
  • affection with which Mr. Leigh Hunt clings to his friend's memory,
  • seemed to point him out as the person best calculated for such an
  • undertaking. His absence from this country, which prevented our mutual
  • explanation, has unfortunately rendered my scheme abortive. I do not
  • doubt but that on some other occasion he will pay this tribute to his
  • lost friend, and sincerely regret that the volume which I edit has not
  • been honoured by its insertion.
  • The comparative solitude in which Mr. Shelley lived was the occasion
  • that he was personally known to few; and his fearless enthusiasm in
  • the cause which he considered the most sacred upon earth, the
  • improvement of the moral and physical state of mankind, was the chief
  • reason why he, like other illustrious reformers, was pursued by hatred
  • and calumny. No man was ever more devoted than he to the endeavour of
  • making those around him happy; no man ever possessed friends more
  • unfeignedly attached to him. The ungrateful world did not feel his
  • loss, and the gap it made seemed to close as quickly over his memory
  • as the murderous sea above his living frame. Hereafter men will lament
  • that his transcendent powers of intellect were extinguished before
  • they had bestowed on them their choicest treasures. To his friends his
  • loss is irremediable: the wise, the brave, the gentle, is gone for
  • ever! He is to them as a bright vision, whose radiant track, left
  • behind in the memory, is worth all the realities that society can
  • afford. Before the critics contradict me, let them appeal to any one
  • who had ever known him. To see him was to love him: and his presence,
  • like Ithuriel's spear, was alone sufficient to disclose the falsehood
  • of the tale which his enemies whispered in the ear of the ignorant
  • world.
  • His life was spent in the contemplation of Nature, in arduous study,
  • or in acts of kindness and affection. He was an elegant scholar and a
  • profound metaphysician; without possessing much scientific knowledge,
  • he was unrivalled in the justness and extent of his observations on
  • natural objects; he knew every plant by its name, and was familiar
  • with the history and habits of every production of the earth; he could
  • interpret without a fault each appearance in the sky; and the varied
  • phenomena of heaven and earth filled him with deep emotion. He made
  • his study and reading-room of the shadowed copse, the stream, the
  • lake, and the waterfall. Ill health and continual pain preyed upon his
  • powers; and the solitude in which we lived, particularly on our first
  • arrival in Italy, although congenial to his feelings, must frequently
  • have weighed upon his spirits; those beautiful and affecting "Lines
  • written in Dejection near Naples" were composed at such an interval;
  • but, when in health, his spirits were buoyant and youthful to an
  • extraordinary degree.
  • Such was his love for Nature that every page of his poetry is
  • associated, in the minds of his friends, with the loveliest scenes of
  • the countries which he inhabited. In early life he visited the most
  • beautiful parts of this country and Ireland. Afterwards the Alps of
  • Switzerland became his inspirers. "Prometheus Unbound" was written
  • among the deserted and flower-grown ruins of Rome; and, when he made
  • his home under the Pisan hills, their roofless recesses harboured him
  • as he composed the "Witch of Atlas", "Adonais", and "Hellas". In the
  • wild but beautiful Bay of Spezzia, the winds and waves which he loved
  • became his playmates. His days were chiefly spent on the water; the
  • management of his boat, its alterations and improvements, were his
  • principal occupation. At night, when the unclouded moon shone on the
  • calm sea, he often went alone in his little shallop to the rocky caves
  • that bordered it, and, sitting beneath their shelter, wrote the
  • "Triumph of Life", the last of his productions. The beauty but
  • strangeness of this lonely place, the refined pleasure which he felt
  • in the companionship of a few selected friends, our entire
  • sequestration from the rest of the world, all contributed to render
  • this period of his life one of continued enjoyment. I am convinced
  • that the two months we passed there were the happiest which he had
  • ever known: his health even rapidly improved, and he was never better
  • than when I last saw him, full of spirits and joy, embark for Leghorn,
  • that he might there welcome Leigh Hunt to Italy. I was to have
  • accompanied him; but illness confined me to my room, and thus put the
  • seal on my misfortune. His vessel bore out of sight with a favourable
  • wind, and I remained awaiting his return by the breakers of that sea
  • which was about to engulf him.
  • He spent a week at Pisa, employed in kind offices toward his friend,
  • and enjoying with keen delight the renewal of their intercourse. He
  • then embarked with Mr. Williams, the chosen and beloved sharer of his
  • pleasures and of his fate, to return to us. We waited for them in
  • vain; the sea by its restless moaning seemed to desire to inform us of
  • what we would not learn:--but a veil may well be drawn over such
  • misery. The real anguish of those moments transcended all the fictions
  • that the most glowing imagination ever portrayed; our seclusion, the
  • savage nature of the inhabitants of the surrounding villages, and our
  • immediate vicinity to the troubled sea, combined to imbue with strange
  • horror our days of uncertainty. The truth was at last known,--a truth
  • that made our loved and lovely Italy appear a tomb, its sky a pall.
  • Every heart echoed the deep lament, and my only consolation was in the
  • praise and earnest love that each voice bestowed and each countenance
  • demonstrated for him we had lost,--not, I fondly hope, for ever; his
  • unearthly and elevated nature is a pledge of the continuation of his
  • being, although in an altered form. Rome received his ashes; they are
  • deposited beneath its weed-grown wall, and 'the world's sole monument'
  • is enriched by his remains.
  • I must add a few words concerning the contents of this volume. "Julian
  • and Maddalo", the "Witch of Atlas", and most of the "Translations",
  • were written some years ago; and, with the exception of the "Cyclops",
  • and the Scenes from the "Magico Prodigioso", may be considered as
  • having received the author's ultimate corrections. The "Triumph of
  • Life" was his last work, and was left in so unfinished a state that I
  • arranged it in its present form with great difficulty. All his poems
  • which were scattered in periodical works are collected in this volume,
  • and I have added a reprint of "Alastor, or the Spirit of Solitude":
  • the difficulty with which a copy can be obtained is the cause of its
  • republication. Many of the Miscellaneous Poems, written on the spur of
  • the occasion, and never retouched, I found among his manuscript books,
  • and have carefully copied. I have subjoined, whenever I have been
  • able, the date of their composition.
  • I do not know whether the critics will reprehend the insertion of some
  • of the most imperfect among them; but I frankly own that I have been
  • more actuated by the fear lest any monument of his genius should
  • escape me than the wish of presenting nothing but what was complete to
  • the fastidious reader. I feel secure that the lovers of Shelley's
  • poetry (who know how, more than any poet of the present day, every
  • line and word he wrote is instinct with peculiar beauty) will pardon
  • and thank me: I consecrate this volume to them.
  • The size of this collection has prevented the insertion of any prose
  • pieces. They will hereafter appear in a separate publication.
  • MARY W. SHELLEY.
  • London, June 1, 1824.
  • ***
  • CONTENTS.
  • EDITOR'S PREFACE.
  • MRS. SHELLEY'S PREFACE TO FIRST COLLECTED EDITION, 1839.
  • POSTSCRIPT IN SECOND EDITION OF 1839.
  • MRS. SHELLEY'S PREFACE TO "POSTHUMOUS POEMS", 1824.
  • THE DAEMON OF THE WORLD. A FRAGMENT.
  • PART 1.
  • PART 2.
  • ALASTOR; OR, THE SPIRiT OF SOLITUDE.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • THE REVOLT OF ISLAM. A POEM IN TWELVE CANTOS.
  • PREFACE.
  • DEDICATION: TO MARY -- --.
  • CANTO 1.
  • CANTO 2.
  • CANTO 3.
  • CANTO 4.
  • CANTO 5.
  • CANTO 6.
  • CANTO 7.
  • CANTO 8.
  • CANTO 9.
  • CANTO 10.
  • CANTO 11.
  • CANTO 12.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • PRINCE ATHANASE. A FRAGMENT.
  • ROSALIND AND HELEN. A MODERN ECLOGUE.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • JULIAN AND MADDALO. A CONVERSATION.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • PROMETHEUS UNBOUND. A LYRICAL DRAMA IN FOUR ACTS.
  • PREFACE.
  • ACT 1.
  • ACT 2.
  • ACT 3.
  • ACT 4.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • THE CENCI. A TRAGEDY IN FIVE ACTS.
  • DEDICATION, TO LEIGH HUNT, ESQUIRE.
  • PREFACE
  • ACT 1.
  • ACT 2.
  • ACT 3.
  • ACT 4.
  • ACT 5.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • THe MASK OF ANARCHY.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • PETER BELL THE THIRD.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • LETTER TO MARIA GISBORNE.
  • THE WITCH OF ATLAS.
  • TO MARY.
  • THE WITCH OF ATLAS.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • OEDIPUS TYRANNUS; OR, SWELLFOOT THE TYRANT. A TRAGEDY IN TWO ACTS.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • EPIPSYCHIDION.
  • FRAGMENTS CONNECTED WITH EPIPSYCHIDION.
  • ADONAIS. AN ELEGY ON THE DEATH OF JOHN KEATS.
  • PREFACE.
  • ADONAIS.
  • CANCELLED PASSAGES.
  • HELLAS. A LYRICAL DRAMA.
  • PREFACE.
  • PROLOGUE.
  • HELLAS.
  • SHELLEY'S NOTES.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • FRAGMENTS OF AN UNFINISHED DRAMA.
  • CHARLES THE FIRST.
  • THE TRIUMPH OF LIFE.
  • CANCELLED OPENING.
  • ***
  • THE DAEMON OF THE WORLD.
  • A FRAGMENT.
  • PART 1.
  • [Sections 1 and 2 of "Queen Mab" rehandled, and published by Shelley
  • in the "Alastor" volume, 1816. See "Bibliographical List", and the
  • Editor's Introductory Note to "Queen Mab".]
  • Nec tantum prodere vati,
  • Quantum scire licet. Venit aetas omnis in unam
  • Congeriem, miserumque premunt tot saecula pectus.
  • LUCAN, Phars. v. 176.
  • How wonderful is Death,
  • Death and his brother Sleep!
  • One pale as yonder wan and horned moon,
  • With lips of lurid blue,
  • The other glowing like the vital morn, _5
  • When throned on ocean's wave
  • It breathes over the world:
  • Yet both so passing strange and wonderful!
  • Hath then the iron-sceptred Skeleton,
  • Whose reign is in the tainted sepulchres, _10
  • To the hell dogs that couch beneath his throne
  • Cast that fair prey? Must that divinest form,
  • Which love and admiration cannot view
  • Without a beating heart, whose azure veins
  • Steal like dark streams along a field of snow, _15
  • Whose outline is as fair as marble clothed
  • In light of some sublimest mind, decay?
  • Nor putrefaction's breath
  • Leave aught of this pure spectacle
  • But loathsomeness and ruin?-- _20
  • Spare aught but a dark theme,
  • On which the lightest heart might moralize?
  • Or is it but that downy-winged slumbers
  • Have charmed their nurse coy Silence near her lids
  • To watch their own repose? _25
  • Will they, when morning's beam
  • Flows through those wells of light,
  • Seek far from noise and day some western cave,
  • Where woods and streams with soft and pausing winds
  • A lulling murmur weave?-- _30
  • Ianthe doth not sleep
  • The dreamless sleep of death:
  • Nor in her moonlight chamber silently
  • Doth Henry hear her regular pulses throb,
  • Or mark her delicate cheek _35
  • With interchange of hues mock the broad moon,
  • Outwatching weary night,
  • Without assured reward.
  • Her dewy eyes are closed;
  • On their translucent lids, whose texture fine _40
  • Scarce hides the dark blue orbs that burn below
  • With unapparent fire,
  • The baby Sleep is pillowed:
  • Her golden tresses shade
  • The bosom's stainless pride, _45
  • Twining like tendrils of the parasite
  • Around a marble column.
  • Hark! whence that rushing sound?
  • 'Tis like a wondrous strain that sweeps
  • Around a lonely ruin _50
  • When west winds sigh and evening waves respond
  • In whispers from the shore:
  • 'Tis wilder than the unmeasured notes
  • Which from the unseen lyres of dells and groves
  • The genii of the breezes sweep. _55
  • Floating on waves of music and of light,
  • The chariot of the Daemon of the World
  • Descends in silent power:
  • Its shape reposed within: slight as some cloud
  • That catches but the palest tinge of day _60
  • When evening yields to night,
  • Bright as that fibrous woof when stars indue
  • Its transitory robe.
  • Four shapeless shadows bright and beautiful
  • Draw that strange car of glory, reins of light _65
  • Check their unearthly speed; they stop and fold
  • Their wings of braided air:
  • The Daemon leaning from the ethereal car
  • Gazed on the slumbering maid.
  • Human eye hath ne'er beheld _70
  • A shape so wild, so bright, so beautiful,
  • As that which o'er the maiden's charmed sleep
  • Waving a starry wand,
  • Hung like a mist of light.
  • Such sounds as breathed around like odorous winds _75
  • Of wakening spring arose,
  • Filling the chamber and the moonlight sky.
  • Maiden, the world's supremest spirit
  • Beneath the shadow of her wings
  • Folds all thy memory doth inherit _80
  • From ruin of divinest things,
  • Feelings that lure thee to betray,
  • And light of thoughts that pass away.
  • For thou hast earned a mighty boon,
  • The truths which wisest poets see _85
  • Dimly, thy mind may make its own,
  • Rewarding its own majesty,
  • Entranced in some diviner mood
  • Of self-oblivious solitude.
  • Custom, and Faith, and Power thou spurnest; _90
  • From hate and awe thy heart is free;
  • Ardent and pure as day thou burnest,
  • For dark and cold mortality
  • A living light, to cheer it long,
  • The watch-fires of the world among. _95
  • Therefore from nature's inner shrine,
  • Where gods and fiends in worship bend,
  • Majestic spirit, be it thine
  • The flame to seize, the veil to rend,
  • Where the vast snake Eternity _100
  • In charmed sleep doth ever lie.
  • All that inspires thy voice of love,
  • Or speaks in thy unclosing eyes,
  • Or through thy frame doth burn or move,
  • Or think or feel, awake, arise! _105
  • Spirit, leave for mine and me
  • Earth's unsubstantial mimicry!
  • It ceased, and from the mute and moveless frame
  • A radiant spirit arose,
  • All beautiful in naked purity. _110
  • Robed in its human hues it did ascend,
  • Disparting as it went the silver clouds,
  • It moved towards the car, and took its seat
  • Beside the Daemon shape.
  • Obedient to the sweep of aery song, _115
  • The mighty ministers
  • Unfurled their prismy wings.
  • The magic car moved on;
  • The night was fair, innumerable stars
  • Studded heaven's dark blue vault; _120
  • The eastern wave grew pale
  • With the first smile of morn.
  • The magic car moved on.
  • From the swift sweep of wings
  • The atmosphere in flaming sparkles flew; _125
  • And where the burning wheels
  • Eddied above the mountain's loftiest peak
  • Was traced a line of lightning.
  • Now far above a rock the utmost verge
  • Of the wide earth it flew, _130
  • The rival of the Andes, whose dark brow
  • Frowned o'er the silver sea.
  • Far, far below the chariot's stormy path,
  • Calm as a slumbering babe,
  • Tremendous ocean lay. _135
  • Its broad and silent mirror gave to view
  • The pale and waning stars,
  • The chariot's fiery track,
  • And the grey light of morn
  • Tingeing those fleecy clouds _140
  • That cradled in their folds the infant dawn.
  • The chariot seemed to fly
  • Through the abyss of an immense concave,
  • Radiant with million constellations, tinged
  • With shades of infinite colour, _145
  • And semicircled with a belt
  • Flashing incessant meteors.
  • As they approached their goal,
  • The winged shadows seemed to gather speed.
  • The sea no longer was distinguished; earth _150
  • Appeared a vast and shadowy sphere, suspended
  • In the black concave of heaven
  • With the sun's cloudless orb,
  • Whose rays of rapid light
  • Parted around the chariot's swifter course, _155
  • And fell like ocean's feathery spray
  • Dashed from the boiling surge
  • Before a vessel's prow.
  • The magic car moved on.
  • Earth's distant orb appeared _160
  • The smallest light that twinkles in the heavens,
  • Whilst round the chariot's way
  • Innumerable systems widely rolled,
  • And countless spheres diffused
  • An ever varying glory. _165
  • It was a sight of wonder! Some were horned,
  • And like the moon's argentine crescent hung
  • In the dark dome of heaven; some did shed
  • A clear mild beam like Hesperus, while the sea
  • Yet glows with fading sunlight; others dashed _170
  • Athwart the night with trains of bickering fire,
  • Like sphered worlds to death and ruin driven;
  • Some shone like stars, and as the chariot passed
  • Bedimmed all other light.
  • Spirit of Nature! here _175
  • In this interminable wilderness
  • Of worlds, at whose involved immensity
  • Even soaring fancy staggers,
  • Here is thy fitting temple.
  • Yet not the lightest leaf _180
  • That quivers to the passing breeze
  • Is less instinct with thee,--
  • Yet not the meanest worm.
  • That lurks in graves and fattens on the dead,
  • Less shares thy eternal breath. _185
  • Spirit of Nature! thou
  • Imperishable as this glorious scene,
  • Here is thy fitting temple.
  • If solitude hath ever led thy steps
  • To the shore of the immeasurable sea, _190
  • And thou hast lingered there
  • Until the sun's broad orb
  • Seemed resting on the fiery line of ocean,
  • Thou must have marked the braided webs of gold
  • That without motion hang _195
  • Over the sinking sphere:
  • Thou must have marked the billowy mountain clouds,
  • Edged with intolerable radiancy,
  • Towering like rocks of jet
  • Above the burning deep: _200
  • And yet there is a moment
  • When the sun's highest point
  • Peers like a star o'er ocean's western edge,
  • When those far clouds of feathery purple gleam
  • Like fairy lands girt by some heavenly sea: _205
  • Then has thy rapt imagination soared
  • Where in the midst of all existing things
  • The temple of the mightiest Daemon stands.
  • Yet not the golden islands
  • That gleam amid yon flood of purple light, _210
  • Nor the feathery curtains
  • That canopy the sun's resplendent couch,
  • Nor the burnished ocean waves
  • Paving that gorgeous dome,
  • So fair, so wonderful a sight _215
  • As the eternal temple could afford.
  • The elements of all that human thought
  • Can frame of lovely or sublime, did join
  • To rear the fabric of the fane, nor aught
  • Of earth may image forth its majesty. _220
  • Yet likest evening's vault that faery hall,
  • As heaven low resting on the wave it spread
  • Its floors of flashing light,
  • Its vast and azure dome;
  • And on the verge of that obscure abyss _225
  • Where crystal battlements o'erhang the gulf
  • Of the dark world, ten thousand spheres diffuse
  • Their lustre through its adamantine gates.
  • The magic car no longer moved;
  • The Daemon and the Spirit _230
  • Entered the eternal gates.
  • Those clouds of aery gold
  • That slept in glittering billows
  • Beneath the azure canopy,
  • With the ethereal footsteps trembled not; _235
  • While slight and odorous mists
  • Floated to strains of thrilling melody
  • Through the vast columns and the pearly shrines.
  • The Daemon and the Spirit
  • Approached the overhanging battlement, _240
  • Below lay stretched the boundless universe!
  • There, far as the remotest line
  • That limits swift imagination's flight.
  • Unending orbs mingled in mazy motion,
  • Immutably fulfilling _245
  • Eternal Nature's law.
  • Above, below, around,
  • The circling systems formed
  • A wilderness of harmony.
  • Each with undeviating aim _250
  • In eloquent silence through the depths of space
  • Pursued its wondrous way.--
  • Awhile the Spirit paused in ecstasy.
  • Yet soon she saw, as the vast spheres swept by,
  • Strange things within their belted orbs appear. _255
  • Like animated frenzies, dimly moved
  • Shadows, and skeletons, and fiendly shapes,
  • Thronging round human graves, and o'er the dead
  • Sculpturing records for each memory
  • In verse, such as malignant gods pronounce, _260
  • Blasting the hopes of men, when heaven and hell
  • Confounded burst in ruin o'er the world:
  • And they did build vast trophies, instruments
  • Of murder, human bones, barbaric gold,
  • Skins torn from living men, and towers of skulls _265
  • With sightless holes gazing on blinder heaven,
  • Mitres, and crowns, and brazen chariots stained
  • With blood, and scrolls of mystic wickedness,
  • The sanguine codes of venerable crime.
  • The likeness of a throned king came by. _270
  • When these had passed, bearing upon his brow
  • A threefold crown; his countenance was calm.
  • His eye severe and cold; but his right hand
  • Was charged with bloody coin, and he did gnaw
  • By fits, with secret smiles, a human heart _275
  • Concealed beneath his robe; and motley shapes,
  • A multitudinous throng, around him knelt.
  • With bosoms bare, and bowed heads, and false looks
  • Of true submission, as the sphere rolled by.
  • Brooking no eye to witness their foul shame, _280
  • Which human hearts must feel, while human tongues
  • Tremble to speak, they did rage horribly,
  • Breathing in self-contempt fierce blasphemies
  • Against the Daemon of the World, and high
  • Hurling their armed hands where the pure Spirit, _285
  • Serene and inaccessibly secure,
  • Stood on an isolated pinnacle.
  • The flood of ages combating below,
  • The depth of the unbounded universe
  • Above, and all around _290
  • Necessity's unchanging harmony.
  • PART 2.
  • [Sections 8 and 9 of "Queen Mab" rehandled by Shelley. First printed
  • in 1876 by Mr. H. Buxton Forman, C.B., by whose kind permission it is
  • here reproduced. See Editor's Introductory Note to "Queen Mab".]
  • O happy Earth! reality of Heaven!
  • To which those restless powers that ceaselessly
  • Throng through the human universe aspire;
  • Thou consummation of all mortal hope! _295
  • Thou glorious prize of blindly-working will!
  • Whose rays, diffused throughout all space and time,
  • Verge to one point and blend for ever there:
  • Of purest spirits thou pure dwelling-place!
  • Where care and sorrow, impotence and crime, _300
  • Languor, disease, and ignorance dare not come:
  • O happy Earth, reality of Heaven!
  • Genius has seen thee in her passionate dreams,
  • And dim forebodings of thy loveliness,
  • Haunting the human heart, have there entwined _305
  • Those rooted hopes, that the proud Power of Evil
  • Shall not for ever on this fairest world
  • Shake pestilence and war, or that his slaves
  • With blasphemy for prayer, and human blood
  • For sacrifice, before his shrine for ever _310
  • In adoration bend, or Erebus
  • With all its banded fiends shall not uprise
  • To overwhelm in envy and revenge
  • The dauntless and the good, who dare to hurl
  • Defiance at his throne, girt tho' it be _315
  • With Death's omnipotence. Thou hast beheld
  • His empire, o'er the present and the past;
  • It was a desolate sight--now gaze on mine,
  • Futurity. Thou hoary giant Time,
  • Render thou up thy half-devoured babes,-- _320
  • And from the cradles of eternity,
  • Where millions lie lulled to their portioned sleep
  • By the deep murmuring stream of passing things,
  • Tear thou that gloomy shroud.--Spirit, behold
  • Thy glorious destiny!
  • The Spirit saw _325
  • The vast frame of the renovated world
  • Smile in the lap of Chaos, and the sense
  • Of hope thro' her fine texture did suffuse
  • Such varying glow, as summer evening casts
  • On undulating clouds and deepening lakes. _330
  • Like the vague sighings of a wind at even,
  • That wakes the wavelets of the slumbering sea
  • And dies on the creation of its breath,
  • And sinks and rises, fails and swells by fits,
  • Was the sweet stream of thought that with wild motion _335
  • Flowed o'er the Spirit's human sympathies.
  • The mighty tide of thought had paused awhile,
  • Which from the Daemon now like Ocean's stream
  • Again began to pour.--
  • To me is given
  • The wonders of the human world to keep- _340
  • Space, matter, time and mind--let the sight
  • Renew and strengthen all thy failing hope.
  • All things are recreated, and the flame
  • Of consentaneous love inspires all life:
  • The fertile bosom of the earth gives suck _345
  • To myriads, who still grow beneath her care,
  • Rewarding her with their pure perfectness:
  • The balmy breathings of the wind inhale
  • Her virtues, and diffuse them all abroad:
  • Health floats amid the gentle atmosphere, _350
  • Glows in the fruits, and mantles on the stream;
  • No storms deform the beaming brow of heaven,
  • Nor scatter in the freshness of its pride
  • The foliage of the undecaying trees;
  • But fruits are ever ripe, flowers ever fair, _355
  • And Autumn proudly bears her matron grace,
  • Kindling a flush on the fair cheek of Spring,
  • Whose virgin bloom beneath the ruddy fruit
  • Reflects its tint and blushes into love.
  • The habitable earth is full of bliss; _360
  • Those wastes of frozen billows that were hurled
  • By everlasting snow-storms round the poles,
  • Where matter dared not vegetate nor live,
  • But ceaseless frost round the vast solitude
  • Bound its broad zone of stillness, are unloosed; _365
  • And fragrant zephyrs there from spicy isles
  • Ruffle the placid ocean-deep, that rolls
  • Its broad, bright surges to the sloping sand,
  • Whose roar is wakened into echoings sweet
  • To murmur through the heaven-breathing groves _370
  • And melodise with man's blest nature there.
  • The vast tract of the parched and sandy waste
  • Now teems with countless rills and shady woods,
  • Corn-fields and pastures and white cottages;
  • And where the startled wilderness did hear _375
  • A savage conqueror stained in kindred blood,
  • Hymmng his victory, or the milder snake
  • Crushing the bones of some frail antelope
  • Within his brazen folds--the dewy lawn,
  • Offering sweet incense to the sunrise, smiles _380
  • To see a babe before his mother's door,
  • Share with the green and golden basilisk
  • That comes to lick his feet, his morning's meal.
  • Those trackless deeps, where many a weary sail
  • Has seen, above the illimitable plain, _385
  • Morning on night and night on morning rise,
  • Whilst still no land to greet the wanderer spread
  • Its shadowy mountains on the sunbright sea,
  • Where the loud roarings of the tempest-waves
  • So long have mingled with the gusty wind _390
  • In melancholy loneliness, and swept
  • The desert of those ocean solitudes,
  • But vocal to the sea-bird's harrowing shriek,
  • The bellowing monster, and the rushing storm,
  • Now to the sweet and many-mingling sounds _395
  • Of kindliest human impulses respond:
  • Those lonely realms bright garden-isles begem,
  • With lightsome clouds and shining seas between,
  • And fertile valleys resonant with bliss,
  • Whilst green woods overcanopy the wave, _400
  • Which like a toil-worn labourer leaps to shore,
  • To meet the kisses of the flowerets there.
  • Man chief perceives the change, his being notes
  • The gradual renovation, and defines
  • Each movement of its progress on his mind. _405
  • Man, where the gloom of the long polar night
  • Lowered o'er the snow-clad rocks and frozen soil,
  • Where scarce the hardiest herb that braves the frost
  • Basked in the moonlight's ineffectual glow,
  • Shrank with the plants, and darkened with the night; _410
  • Nor where the tropics bound the realms of day
  • With a broad belt of mingling cloud and flame,
  • Where blue mists through the unmoving atmosphere
  • Scattered the seeds of pestilence, and fed
  • Unnatural vegetation, where the land _415
  • Teemed with all earthquake, tempest and disease,
  • Was man a nobler being; slavery
  • Had crushed him to his country's blood-stained dust.
  • Even where the milder zone afforded man
  • A seeming shelter, yet contagion there, _420
  • Blighting his being with unnumbered ills,
  • Spread like a quenchless fire; nor truth availed
  • Till late to arrest its progress, or create
  • That peace which first in bloodless victory waved
  • Her snowy standard o'er this favoured clime: _425
  • There man was long the train-bearer of slaves,
  • The mimic of surrounding misery,
  • The jackal of ambition's lion-rage,
  • The bloodhound of religion's hungry zeal.
  • Here now the human being stands adorning _430
  • This loveliest earth with taintless body and mind;
  • Blest from his birth with all bland impulses,
  • Which gently in his noble bosom wake
  • All kindly passions and all pure desires.
  • Him, still from hope to hope the bliss pursuing, _435
  • Which from the exhaustless lore of human weal
  • Dawns on the virtuous mind, the thoughts that rise
  • In time-destroying infiniteness gift
  • With self-enshrined eternity, that mocks
  • The unprevailing hoariness of age, _440
  • And man, once fleeting o'er the transient scene
  • Swift as an unremembered vision, stands
  • Immortal upon earth: no longer now
  • He slays the beast that sports around his dwelling
  • And horribly devours its mangled flesh, _445
  • Or drinks its vital blood, which like a stream
  • Of poison thro' his fevered veins did flow
  • Feeding a plague that secretly consumed
  • His feeble frame, and kindling in his mind
  • Hatred, despair, and fear and vain belief, _450
  • The germs of misery, death, disease and crime.
  • No longer now the winged habitants,
  • That in the woods their sweet lives sing away,
  • Flee from the form of man; but gather round,
  • And prune their sunny feathers on the hands _455
  • Which little children stretch in friendly sport
  • Towards these dreadless partners of their play.
  • All things are void of terror: man has lost
  • His desolating privilege, and stands
  • An equal amidst equals: happiness _460
  • And science dawn though late upon the earth;
  • Peace cheers the mind, health renovates the frame;
  • Disease and pleasure cease to mingle here,
  • Reason and passion cease to combat there;
  • Whilst mind unfettered o'er the earth extends _465
  • Its all-subduing energies, and wields
  • The sceptre of a vast dominion there.
  • Mild is the slow necessity of death:
  • The tranquil spirit fails beneath its grasp,
  • Without a groan, almost without a fear, _470
  • Resigned in peace to the necessity,
  • Calm as a voyager to some distant land,
  • And full of wonder, full of hope as he.
  • The deadly germs of languor and disease
  • Waste in the human frame, and Nature gifts _475
  • With choicest boons her human worshippers.
  • How vigorous now the athletic form of age!
  • How clear its open and unwrinkled brow!
  • Where neither avarice, cunning, pride, or care,
  • Had stamped the seal of grey deformity _480
  • On all the mingling lineaments of time.
  • How lovely the intrepid front of youth!
  • How sweet the smiles of taintless infancy.
  • Within the massy prison's mouldering courts,
  • Fearless and free the ruddy children play, _485
  • Weaving gay chaplets for their innocent brows
  • With the green ivy and the red wall-flower,
  • That mock the dungeon's unavailing gloom;
  • The ponderous chains, and gratings of strong iron,
  • There rust amid the accumulated ruins _490
  • Now mingling slowly with their native earth:
  • There the broad beam of day, which feebly once
  • Lighted the cheek of lean captivity
  • With a pale and sickly glare, now freely shines
  • On the pure smiles of infant playfulness: _495
  • No more the shuddering voice of hoarse despair
  • Peals through the echoing vaults, but soothing notes
  • Of ivy-fingered winds and gladsome birds
  • And merriment are resonant around.
  • The fanes of Fear and Falsehood hear no more _500
  • The voice that once waked multitudes to war
  • Thundering thro' all their aisles: but now respond
  • To the death dirge of the melancholy wind:
  • It were a sight of awfulness to see
  • The works of faith and slavery, so vast, _505
  • So sumptuous, yet withal so perishing!
  • Even as the corpse that rests beneath their wall.
  • A thousand mourners deck the pomp of death
  • To-day, the breathing marble glows above
  • To decorate its memory, and tongues _510
  • Are busy of its life: to-morrow, worms
  • In silence and in darkness seize their prey.
  • These ruins soon leave not a wreck behind:
  • Their elements, wide-scattered o'er the globe,
  • To happier shapes are moulded, and become _515
  • Ministrant to all blissful impulses:
  • Thus human things are perfected, and earth,
  • Even as a child beneath its mother's love,
  • Is strengthened in all excellence, and grows
  • Fairer and nobler with each passing year. _520
  • Now Time his dusky pennons o'er the scene
  • Closes in steadfast darkness, and the past
  • Fades from our charmed sight. My task is done:
  • Thy lore is learned. Earth's wonders are thine own,
  • With all the fear and all the hope they bring. _525
  • My spells are past: the present now recurs.
  • Ah me! a pathless wilderness remains
  • Yet unsubdued by man's reclaiming hand.
  • Yet, human Spirit, bravely hold thy course,
  • Let virtue teach thee firmly to pursue _530
  • The gradual paths of an aspiring change:
  • For birth and life and death, and that strange state
  • Before the naked powers that thro' the world
  • Wander like winds have found a human home,
  • All tend to perfect happiness, and urge _535
  • The restless wheels of being on their way,
  • Whose flashing spokes, instinct with infinite life,
  • Bicker and burn to gain their destined goal:
  • For birth but wakes the universal mind
  • Whose mighty streams might else in silence flow _540
  • Thro' the vast world, to individual sense
  • Of outward shows, whose unexperienced shape
  • New modes of passion to its frame may lend;
  • Life is its state of action, and the store
  • Of all events is aggregated there _545
  • That variegate the eternal universe;
  • Death is a gate of dreariness and gloom,
  • That leads to azure isles and beaming skies
  • And happy regions of eternal hope.
  • Therefore, O Spirit! fearlessly bear on: _550
  • Though storms may break the primrose on its stalk,
  • Though frosts may blight the freshness of its bloom,
  • Yet spring's awakening breath will woo the earth,
  • To feed with kindliest dews its favourite flower,
  • That blooms in mossy banks and darksome glens, _555
  • Lighting the green wood with its sunny smile.
  • Fear not then, Spirit, death's disrobing hand,
  • So welcome when the tyrant is awake,
  • So welcome when the bigot's hell-torch flares;
  • 'Tis but the voyage of a darksome hour, _560
  • The transient gulf-dream of a startling sleep.
  • For what thou art shall perish utterly,
  • But what is thine may never cease to be;
  • Death is no foe to virtue: earth has seen
  • Love's brightest roses on the scaffold bloom, _565
  • Mingling with freedom's fadeless laurels there,
  • And presaging the truth of visioned bliss.
  • Are there not hopes within thee, which this scene
  • Of linked and gradual being has confirmed?
  • Hopes that not vainly thou, and living fires _570
  • Of mind as radiant and as pure as thou,
  • Have shone upon the paths of men--return,
  • Surpassing Spirit, to that world, where thou
  • Art destined an eternal war to wage
  • With tyranny and falsehood, and uproot _575
  • The germs of misery from the human heart.
  • Thine is the hand whose piety would soothe
  • The thorny pillow of unhappy crime,
  • Whose impotence an easy pardon gains,
  • Watching its wanderings as a friend's disease: _580
  • Thine is the brow whose mildness would defy
  • Its fiercest rage, and brave its sternest will,
  • When fenced by power and master of the world.
  • Thou art sincere and good; of resolute mind,
  • Free from heart-withering custom's cold control, _585
  • Of passion lofty, pure and unsubdued.
  • Earth's pride and meanness could not vanquish thee,
  • And therefore art thou worthy of the boon
  • Which thou hast now received: virtue shall keep
  • Thy footsteps in the path that thou hast trod, _590
  • And many days of beaming hope shall bless
  • Thy spotless life of sweet and sacred love.
  • Go, happy one, and give that bosom joy
  • Whose sleepless spirit waits to catch
  • Light, life and rapture from thy smile. _595
  • The Daemon called its winged ministers.
  • Speechless with bliss the Spirit mounts the car,
  • That rolled beside the crystal battlement,
  • Bending her beamy eyes in thankfulness.
  • The burning wheels inflame _600
  • The steep descent of Heaven's untrodden way.
  • Fast and far the chariot flew:
  • The mighty globes that rolled
  • Around the gate of the Eternal Fane
  • Lessened by slow degrees, and soon appeared _605
  • Such tiny twinklers as the planet orbs
  • That ministering on the solar power
  • With borrowed light pursued their narrower way.
  • Earth floated then below:
  • The chariot paused a moment; _610
  • The Spirit then descended:
  • And from the earth departing
  • The shadows with swift wings
  • Speeded like thought upon the light of Heaven.
  • The Body and the Soul united then, _615
  • A gentle start convulsed Ianthe's frame:
  • Her veiny eyelids quietly unclosed;
  • Moveless awhile the dark blue orbs remained:
  • She looked around in wonder and beheld
  • Henry, who kneeled in silence by her couch, _620
  • Watching her sleep with looks of speechless love,
  • And the bright beaming stars
  • That through the casement shone.
  • Notes:
  • _87 Regarding cj. A.C. Bradley.)
  • ***
  • ALASTOR: OR, THE SPIRIT OF SOLITUDE.
  • [Composed at Bishopsgate Heath, near Windsor Park, 1815 (autumn);
  • published, as the title-piece of a slender volume containing other
  • poems (see "Biographical List", by Baldwin, Cradock and Joy, London,
  • 1816 (March). Reprinted--the first edition being sold out--amongst the
  • "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Sources of the text are (1) the editio
  • princeps, 1816; (2) "Posthumous Poems", 1824; (3) "Poetical Works",
  • 1839, editions 1st and 2nd. For (2) and (3) Mrs. Shelley is
  • responsible.]
  • PREFACE.
  • The poem entitled "Alastor" may be considered as allegorical of one of
  • the most interesting situations of the human mind. It represents a
  • youth of uncorrupted feelings and adventurous genius led forth by an
  • imagination inflamed and purified through familiarity with all that is
  • excellent and majestic, to the contemplation of the universe. He
  • drinks deep of the fountains of knowledge, and is still insatiate. The
  • magnificence and beauty of the external world sinks profoundly into
  • the frame of his conceptions, and affords to their modifications at
  • variety not to be exhausted. so long as it is possible for his desires
  • to point towards objects thus infinite and unmeasured, he is joyous,
  • and tranquil, and self-possessed. But the period arrives when these
  • objects cease to suffice. His mind is at length suddenly awakened and
  • thirsts for intercourse with an intelligence similar to itself. He
  • images to himself the Being whom he loves. Conversant with
  • speculations of the sublimest and most perfect natures, the vision in
  • which he embodies his own imaginations unites all of wonderful, or
  • wise, or beautiful, which the poet, the philosopher, or the lover
  • could depicture. The intellectual faculties, the imagination, the
  • functions of sense, have their respective requisitions on the sympathy
  • of corresponding powers in other human beings. The Poet is represented
  • as uniting these requisitions, and attaching them to a single image.
  • He seeks in vain for a prototype of his conception. Blasted by his
  • disappointment, he descends to an untimely grave.
  • The picture is not barren of instruction to actual men. The Poet's
  • self-centred seclusion was avenged by the furies of an irresistible
  • passion pursuing him to speedy ruin. But that Power which strikes the
  • luminaries of the world with sudden darkness and extinction, by
  • awakening them to too exquisite a perception of its influences, dooms
  • to a slow and poisonous decay those manner spirits that dare to abjure
  • its dominion. Their destiny is more abject and inglorious as their
  • delinquency is more contemptible and pernicious. They who, deluded by
  • no generous error, instigated by no sacred thirst of doubtful
  • knowledge, duped by no illustrious superstition, loving nothing on
  • this earth, and cherishing no hopes beyond, yet keep aloof from
  • sympathies with their kind, rejoicing neither in human joy nor
  • mourning with human grief; these, and such as they, have their
  • apportioned curse. They languish, because none feel with them their
  • common nature. They are morally dead. They are neither friends, nor
  • lovers, nor fathers, nor citizens of the world, nor benefactors of
  • their country. Among those who attempt to exist without human
  • sympathy, the pure and tender-hearted perish through the intensity and
  • passion of their search after its communities, when the vacancy of
  • their spirit suddenly makes itself felt. All else, selfish, blind, and
  • torpid, are those unforeseeing multitudes who constitute, together
  • with their own, the lasting misery and loneliness of the world. Those
  • who love not their fellow-beings live unfruitful lives, and prepare
  • for their old age a miserable grave.
  • 'The good die first,
  • And those whose hearts are dry as summer dust,
  • Burn to the socket!'
  • December 14, 1815.
  • ALASTOR: OR, THE SPIRIT OF SOLITUDE.
  • Earth, Ocean, Air, beloved brotherhood!
  • If our great Mother has imbued my soul
  • With aught of natural piety to feel
  • Your love, and recompense the boon with mine;
  • If dewy morn, and odorous noon, and even, _5
  • With sunset and its gorgeous ministers,
  • And solemn midnight's tingling silentness;
  • If autumn's hollow sighs in the sere wood,
  • And winter robing with pure snow and crowns
  • Of starry ice the grey grass and bare boughs; _10
  • If spring's voluptuous pantings when she breathes
  • Her first sweet kisses, have been dear to me;
  • If no bright bird, insect, or gentle beast
  • I consciously have injured, but still loved
  • And cherished these my kindred; then forgive _15
  • This boast, beloved brethren, and withdraw
  • No portion of your wonted favour now!
  • Mother of this unfathomable world!
  • Favour my solemn song, for I have loved
  • Thee ever, and thee only; I have watched _20
  • Thy shadow, and the darkness of thy steps,
  • And my heart ever gazes on the depth
  • Of thy deep mysteries. I have made my bed
  • In charnels and on coffins, where black death
  • Keeps record of the trophies won from thee, _25
  • Hoping to still these obstinate questionings
  • Of thee and thine, by forcing some lone ghost,
  • Thy messenger, to render up the tale
  • Of what we are. In lone and silent hours,
  • When night makes a weird sound of its own stillness, _30
  • Like an inspired and desperate alchymist
  • Staking his very life on some dark hope,
  • Have I mixed awful talk and asking looks
  • With my most innocent love, until strange tears,
  • Uniting with those breathless kisses, made _35
  • Such magic as compels the charmed night
  • To render up thy charge:...and, though ne'er yet
  • Thou hast unveiled thy inmost sanctuary,
  • Enough from incommunicable dream,
  • And twilight phantasms, and deep noon-day thought, _40
  • Has shone within me, that serenely now
  • And moveless, as a long-forgotten lyre
  • Suspended in the solitary dome
  • Of some mysterious and deserted fane,
  • I wait thy breath, Great Parent, that my strain _45
  • May modulate with murmurs of the air,
  • And motions of the forests and the sea,
  • And voice of living beings, and woven hymns
  • Of night and day, and the deep heart of man.
  • There was a Poet whose untimely tomb _50
  • No human hands with pious reverence reared,
  • But the charmed eddies of autumnal winds
  • Built o'er his mouldering bones a pyramid
  • Of mouldering leaves in the waste wilderness:--
  • A lovely youth,--no mourning maiden decked _55
  • With weeping flowers, or votive cypress wreath,
  • The lone couch of his everlasting sleep:--
  • Gentle, and brave, and generous,--no lorn bard
  • Breathed o'er his dark fate one melodious sigh:
  • He lived, he died, he sung in solitude. _60
  • Strangers have wept to hear his passionate notes,
  • And virgins, as unknown he passed, have pined
  • And wasted for fond love of his wild eyes.
  • The fire of those soft orbs has ceased to burn,
  • And Silence, too enamoured of that voice, _65
  • Locks its mute music in her rugged cell.
  • By solemn vision, and bright silver dream
  • His infancy was nurtured. Every sight
  • And sound from the vast earth and ambient air,
  • Sent to his heart its choicest impulses. _70
  • The fountains of divine philosophy
  • Fled not his thirsting lips, and all of great,
  • Or good, or lovely, which the sacred past
  • In truth or fable consecrates, he felt
  • And knew. When early youth had passed, he left _75
  • His cold fireside and alienated home
  • To seek strange truths in undiscovered lands.
  • Many a wide waste and tangled wilderness
  • Has lured his fearless steps; and he has bought
  • With his sweet voice and eyes, from savage men, _80
  • His rest and food. Nature's most secret steps
  • He like her shadow has pursued, where'er
  • The red volcano overcanopies
  • Its fields of snow and pinnacles of ice
  • With burning smoke, or where bitumen lakes _85
  • On black bare pointed islets ever beat
  • With sluggish surge, or where the secret caves,
  • Rugged and dark, winding among the springs
  • Of fire and poison, inaccessible
  • To avarice or pride, their starry domes _90
  • Of diamond and of gold expand above
  • Numberless and immeasurable halls,
  • Frequent with crystal column, and clear shrines
  • Of pearl, and thrones radiant with chrysolite.
  • Nor had that scene of ampler majesty _95
  • Than gems or gold, the varying roof of heaven
  • And the green earth lost in his heart its claims
  • To love and wonder; he would linger long
  • In lonesome vales, making the wild his home,
  • Until the doves and squirrels would partake _100
  • From his innocuous hand his bloodless food,
  • Lured by the gentle meaning of his looks,
  • And the wild antelope, that starts whene'er
  • The dry leaf rustles in the brake, suspend
  • Her timid steps, to gaze upon a form
  • More graceful than her own. _105
  • His wandering step,
  • Obedient to high thoughts, has visited
  • The awful ruins of the days of old:
  • Athens, and Tyre, and Balbec, and the waste
  • Where stood Jerusalem, the fallen towers _110
  • Of Babylon, the eternal pyramids,
  • Memphis and Thebes, and whatsoe'er of strange,
  • Sculptured on alabaster obelisk,
  • Or jasper tomb, or mutilated sphynx,
  • Dark Aethiopia in her desert hills _115
  • Conceals. Among the ruined temples there,
  • Stupendous columns, and wild images
  • Of more than man, where marble daemons watch
  • The Zodiac's brazen mystery, and dead men
  • Hang their mute thoughts on the mute walls around, _120
  • He lingered, poring on memorials
  • Of the world's youth: through the long burning day
  • Gazed on those speechless shapes; nor, when the moon
  • Filled the mysterious halls with floating shades
  • Suspended he that task, but ever gazed _125
  • And gazed, till meaning on his vacant mind
  • Flashed like strong inspiration, and he saw
  • The thrilling secrets of the birth of time.
  • Meanwhile an Arab maiden brought his food,
  • Her daily portion, from her father's tent, _130
  • And spread her matting for his couch, and stole
  • From duties and repose to tend his steps,
  • Enamoured, yet not daring for deep awe
  • To speak her love:--and watched his nightly sleep,
  • Sleepless herself, to gaze upon his lips _135
  • Parted in slumber, whence the regular breath
  • Of innocent dreams arose; then, when red morn
  • Made paler the pale moon, to her cold home
  • Wildered, and wan, and panting, she returned.
  • The Poet, wandering on, through Arabie, _140
  • And Persia, and the wild Carmanian waste,
  • And o'er the aerial mountains which pour down
  • Indus and Oxus from their icy caves,
  • In joy and exultation held his way;
  • Till in the vale of Cashmire, far within _145
  • Its loneliest dell, where odorous plants entwine
  • Beneath the hollow rocks a natural bower,
  • Beside a sparkling rivulet he stretched
  • His languid limbs. A vision on his sleep
  • There came, a dream of hopes that never yet _150
  • Had flushed his cheek. He dreamed a veiled maid
  • Sate near him, talking in low solemn tones.
  • Her voice was like the voice of his own soul
  • Heard in the calm of thought; its music long,
  • Like woven sounds of streams and breezes, held _155
  • His inmost sense suspended in its web
  • Of many-coloured woof and shifting hues.
  • Knowledge and truth and virtue were her theme,
  • And lofty hopes of divine liberty,
  • Thoughts the most dear to him, and poesy, _160
  • Herself a poet. Soon the solemn mood
  • Of her pure mind kindled through all her frame
  • A permeating fire; wild numbers then
  • She raised, with voice stifled in tremulous sobs
  • Subdued by its own pathos; her fair hands _165
  • Were bare alone, sweeping from some strange harp
  • Strange symphony, and in their branching veins
  • The eloquent blood told an ineffable tale.
  • The beating of her heart was heard to fill
  • The pauses of her music, and her breath _170
  • Tumultuously accorded with those fits
  • Of intermitted song. Sudden she rose,
  • As if her heart impatiently endured
  • Its bursting burthen: at the sound he turned,
  • And saw by the warm light of their own life _175
  • Her glowing limbs beneath the sinuous veil
  • Of woven wind, her outspread arms now bare,
  • Her dark locks floating in the breath of night,
  • Her beamy bending eyes, her parted lips
  • Outstretched, and pale, and quivering eagerly. _180
  • His strong heart sunk and sickened with excess
  • Of love. He reared his shuddering limbs and quelled
  • His gasping breath, and spread his arms to meet
  • Her panting bosom:...she drew back a while,
  • Then, yielding to the irresistible joy, _185
  • With frantic gesture and short breathless cry
  • Folded his frame in her dissolving arms.
  • Now blackness veiled his dizzy eyes, and night
  • Involved and swallowed up the vision; sleep,
  • Like a dark flood suspended in its course, _190
  • Rolled back its impulse on his vacant brain.
  • Roused by the shock he started from his trance--
  • The cold white light of morning, the blue moon
  • Low in the west, the clear and garish hills,
  • The distinct valley and the vacant woods, _195
  • Spread round him where he stood. Whither have fled
  • The hues of heaven that canopied his bower
  • Of yesternight? The sounds that soothed his sleep,
  • The mystery and the majesty of Earth,
  • The joy, the exultation? His wan eyes _200
  • Gaze on the empty scene as vacantly
  • As ocean's moon looks on the moon in heaven.
  • The spirit of sweet human love has sent
  • A vision to the sleep of him who spurned
  • Her choicest gifts. He eagerly pursues _205
  • Beyond the realms of dream that fleeting shade;
  • He overleaps the bounds. Alas! Alas!
  • Were limbs, and breath, and being intertwined
  • Thus treacherously? Lost, lost, for ever lost
  • In the wide pathless desert of dim sleep, _210
  • That beautiful shape! Does the dark gate of death
  • Conduct to thy mysterious paradise,
  • O Sleep? Does the bright arch of rainbow clouds
  • And pendent mountains seen in the calm lake,
  • Lead only to a black and watery depth, _215
  • While death's blue vault, with loathliest vapours hung,
  • Where every shade which the foul grave exhales
  • Hides its dead eye from the detested day,
  • Conducts, O Sleep, to thy delightful realms?
  • This doubt with sudden tide flowed on his heart; _220
  • The insatiate hope which it awakened, stung
  • His brain even like despair.
  • While daylight held
  • The sky, the Poet kept mute conference
  • With his still soul. At night the passion came,
  • Like the fierce fiend of a distempered dream, _225
  • And shook him from his rest, and led him forth
  • Into the darkness.--As an eagle, grasped
  • In folds of the green serpent, feels her breast
  • Burn with the poison, and precipitates
  • Through night and day, tempest, and calm, and cloud, _230
  • Frantic with dizzying anguish, her blind flight
  • O'er the wide aery wilderness: thus driven
  • By the bright shadow of that lovely dream,
  • Beneath the cold glare of the desolate night,
  • Through tangled swamps and deep precipitous dells, _235
  • Startling with careless step the moonlight snake,
  • He fled. Red morning dawned upon his flight,
  • Shedding the mockery of its vital hues
  • Upon his cheek of death. He wandered on
  • Till vast Aornos seen from Petra's steep _240
  • Hung o'er the low horizon like a cloud;
  • Through Balk, and where the desolated tombs
  • Of Parthian kings scatter to every wind
  • Their wasting dust, wildly he wandered on,
  • Day after day a weary waste of hours, _245
  • Bearing within his life the brooding care
  • That ever fed on its decaying flame.
  • And now his limbs were lean; his scattered hair,
  • Sered by the autumn of strange suffering
  • Sung dirges in the wind; his listless hand _250
  • Hung like dead bone within its withered skin;
  • Life, and the lustre that consumed it, shone
  • As in a furnace burning secretly
  • From his dark eyes alone. The cottagers,
  • Who ministered with human charity _255
  • His human wants, beheld with wondering awe
  • Their fleeting visitant. The mountaineer,
  • Encountering on some dizzy precipice
  • That spectral form, deemed that the Spirit of wind
  • With lightning eyes, and eager breath, and feet _260
  • Disturbing not the drifted snow, had paused
  • In its career: the infant would conceal
  • His troubled visage in his mother's robe
  • In terror at the glare of those wild eyes,
  • To remember their strange light in many a dream _265
  • Of after-times; but youthful maidens, taught
  • By nature, would interpret half the woe
  • That wasted him, would call him with false names
  • Brother and friend, would press his pallid hand
  • At parting, and watch, dim through tears, the path _270
  • Of his departure from their father's door.
  • At length upon the lone Chorasmian shore
  • He paused, a wide and melancholy waste
  • Of putrid marshes. A strong impulse urged
  • His steps to the sea-shore. A swan was there, _275
  • Beside a sluggish stream among the reeds.
  • It rose as he approached, and, with strong wings
  • Scaling the upward sky, bent its bright course
  • High over the immeasurable main.
  • His eyes pursued its flight:--'Thou hast a home, _280
  • Beautiful bird; thou voyagest to thine home,
  • Where thy sweet mate will twine her downy neck
  • With thine, and welcome thy return with eyes
  • Bright in the lustre of their own fond joy.
  • And what am I that I should linger here, _285
  • With voice far sweeter than thy dying notes,
  • Spirit more vast than thine, frame more attuned
  • To beauty, wasting these surpassing powers
  • In the deaf air, to the blind earth, and heaven
  • That echoes not my thoughts?' A gloomy smile _290
  • Of desperate hope wrinkled his quivering lips.
  • For sleep, he knew, kept most relentlessly
  • Its precious charge, and silent death exposed,
  • Faithless perhaps as sleep, a shadowy lure,
  • With doubtful smile mocking its own strange charms. _295
  • Startled by his own thoughts he looked around.
  • There was no fair fiend near him, not a sight
  • Or sound of awe but in his own deep mind.
  • A little shallop floating near the shore
  • Caught the impatient wandering of his gaze. _300
  • It had been long abandoned, for its sides
  • Gaped wide with many a rift, and its frail joints
  • Swayed with the undulations of the tide.
  • A restless impulse urged him to embark
  • And meet lone Death on the drear ocean's waste; _305
  • For well he knew that mighty Shadow loves
  • The slimy caverns of the populous deep.
  • The day was fair and sunny; sea and sky
  • Drank its inspiring radiance, and the wind
  • Swept strongly from the shore, blackening the waves. _310
  • Following his eager soul, the wanderer
  • Leaped in the boat, he spread his cloak aloft
  • On the bare mast, and took his lonely seat,
  • And felt the boat speed o'er the tranquil sea
  • Like a torn cloud before the hurricane. _315
  • As one that in a silver vision floats
  • Obedient to the sweep of odorous winds
  • Upon resplendent clouds, so rapidly
  • Along the dark and ruffled waters fled
  • The straining boat.--A whirlwind swept it on, _320
  • With fierce gusts and precipitating force,
  • Through the white ridges of the chafed sea.
  • The waves arose. Higher and higher still
  • Their fierce necks writhed beneath the tempest's scourge
  • Like serpents struggling in a vulture's grasp. _325
  • Calm and rejoicing in the fearful war
  • Of wave ruining on wave, and blast on blast
  • Descending, and black flood on whirlpool driven
  • With dark obliterating course, he sate:
  • As if their genii were the ministers _330
  • Appointed to conduct him to the light
  • Of those beloved eyes, the Poet sate,
  • Holding the steady helm. Evening came on,
  • The beams of sunset hung their rainbow hues
  • High 'mid the shifting domes of sheeted spray _335
  • That canopied his path o'er the waste deep;
  • Twilight, ascending slowly from the east,
  • Entwined in duskier wreaths her braided locks
  • O'er the fair front and radiant eyes of day;
  • Night followed, clad with stars. On every side _340
  • More horribly the multitudinous streams
  • Of ocean's mountainous waste to mutual war
  • Rushed in dark tumult thundering, as to mock
  • The calm and spangled sky. The little boat
  • Still fled before the storm; still fled, like foam _345
  • Down the steep cataract of a wintry river;
  • Now pausing on the edge of the riven wave;
  • Now leaving far behind the bursting mass
  • That fell, convulsing ocean: safely fled--
  • As if that frail and wasted human form, _350
  • Had been an elemental god.
  • At midnight
  • The moon arose; and lo! the ethereal cliffs
  • Of Caucasus, whose icy summits shone
  • Among the stars like sunlight, and around
  • Whose caverned base the whirlpools and the waves _355
  • Bursting and eddying irresistibly
  • Rage and resound forever.--Who shall save?--
  • The boat fled on,--the boiling torrent drove,--
  • The crags closed round with black and jagged arms,
  • The shattered mountain overhung the sea, _360
  • And faster still, beyond all human speed,
  • Suspended on the sweep of the smooth wave,
  • The little boat was driven. A cavern there
  • Yawned, and amid its slant and winding depths
  • Ingulfed the rushing sea. The boat fled on _365
  • With unrelaxing speed.--'Vision and Love!'
  • The Poet cried aloud, 'I have beheld
  • The path of thy departure. Sleep and death
  • Shall not divide us long.'
  • The boat pursued
  • The windings of the cavern. Daylight shone _370
  • At length upon that gloomy river's flow;
  • Now, where the fiercest war among the waves
  • Is calm, on the unfathomable stream
  • The boat moved slowly. Where the mountain, riven,
  • Exposed those black depths to the azure sky, _375
  • Ere yet the flood's enormous volume fell
  • Even to the base of Caucasus, with sound
  • That shook the everlasting rocks, the mass
  • Filled with one whirlpool all that ample chasm:
  • Stair above stair the eddying waters rose, _380
  • Circling immeasurably fast, and laved
  • With alternating dash the gnarled roots
  • Of mighty trees, that stretched their giant arms
  • In darkness over it. I' the midst was left,
  • Reflecting, yet distorting every cloud, _385
  • A pool of treacherous and tremendous calm.
  • Seized by the sway of the ascending stream,
  • With dizzy swiftness, round, and round, and round,
  • Ridge after ridge the straining boat arose,
  • Till on the verge of the extremest curve, _390
  • Where, through an opening of the rocky bank,
  • The waters overflow, and a smooth spot
  • Of glassy quiet mid those battling tides
  • Is left, the boat paused shuddering.--Shall it sink
  • Down the abyss? Shall the reverting stress _395
  • Of that resistless gulf embosom it?
  • Now shall it fall?--A wandering stream of wind,
  • Breathed from the west, has caught the expanded sail,
  • And, lo! with gentle motion, between banks
  • Of mossy slope, and on a placid stream, _400
  • Beneath a woven grove it sails, and, hark!
  • The ghastly torrent mingles its far roar,
  • With the breeze murmuring in the musical woods.
  • Where the embowering trees recede, and leave
  • A little space of green expanse, the cove _405
  • Is closed by meeting banks, whose yellow flowers
  • For ever gaze on their own drooping eyes,
  • Reflected in the crystal calm. The wave
  • Of the boat's motion marred their pensive task,
  • Which naught but vagrant bird, or wanton wind, _410
  • Or falling spear-grass, or their own decay
  • Had e'er disturbed before. The Poet longed
  • To deck with their bright hues his withered hair,
  • But on his heart its solitude returned,
  • And he forbore. Not the strong impulse hid _415
  • In those flushed cheeks, bent eyes, and shadowy frame
  • Had yet performed its ministry: it hung
  • Upon his life, as lightning in a cloud
  • Gleams, hovering ere it vanish, ere the floods
  • Of night close over it.
  • The noonday sun _420
  • Now shone upon the forest, one vast mass
  • Of mingling shade, whose brown magnificence
  • A narrow vale embosoms. There, huge caves,
  • Scooped in the dark base of their aery rocks,
  • Mocking its moans, respond and roar for ever. _425
  • The meeting boughs and implicated leaves
  • Wove twilight o'er the Poet's path, as led
  • By love, or dream, or god, or mightier Death,
  • He sought in Nature's dearest haunt some bank,
  • Her cradle, and his sepulchre. More dark _430
  • And dark the shades accumulate. The oak,
  • Expanding its immense and knotty arms,
  • Embraces the light beech. The pyramids
  • Of the tall cedar overarching frame
  • Most solemn domes within, and far below, _435
  • Like clouds suspended in an emerald sky,
  • The ash and the acacia floating hang
  • Tremulous and pale. Like restless serpents, clothed
  • In rainbow and in fire, the parasites,
  • Starred with ten thousand blossoms, flow around _440
  • The grey trunks, and, as gamesome infants' eyes,
  • With gentle meanings, and most innocent wiles,
  • Fold their beams round the hearts of those that love,
  • These twine their tendrils with the wedded boughs
  • Uniting their close union; the woven leaves _445
  • Make net-work of the dark blue light of day,
  • And the night's noontide clearness, mutable
  • As shapes in the weird clouds. Soft mossy lawns
  • Beneath these canopies extend their swells,
  • Fragrant with perfumed herbs, and eyed with blooms _450
  • Minute yet beautiful. One darkest glen
  • Sends from its woods of musk-rose, twined with jasmine,
  • A soul-dissolving odour to invite
  • To some more lovely mystery. Through the dell,
  • Silence and Twilight here, twin-sisters, keep _455
  • Their noonday watch, and sail among the shades,
  • Like vaporous shapes half-seen; beyond, a well,
  • Dark, gleaming, and of most translucent wave,
  • Images all the woven boughs above,
  • And each depending leaf, and every speck _460
  • Of azure sky, darting between their chasms;
  • Nor aught else in the liquid mirror laves
  • Its portraiture, but some inconstant star
  • Between one foliaged lattice twinkling fair,
  • Or painted bird, sleeping beneath the moon, _465
  • Or gorgeous insect floating motionless,
  • Unconscious of the day, ere yet his wings
  • Have spread their glories to the gaze of noon.
  • Hither the Poet came. His eyes beheld
  • Their own wan light through the reflected lines _470
  • Of his thin hair, distinct in the dark depth
  • Of that still fountain; as the human heart,
  • Gazing in dreams over the gloomy grave,
  • Sees its own treacherous likeness there. He heard
  • The motion of the leaves, the grass that sprung _475
  • Startled and glanced and trembled even to feel
  • An unaccustomed presence, and the sound
  • Of the sweet brook that from the secret springs
  • Of that dark fountain rose. A Spirit seemed
  • To stand beside him--clothed in no bright robes _480
  • Of shadowy silver or enshrining light,
  • Borrowed from aught the visible world affords
  • Of grace, or majesty, or mystery;--
  • But, undulating woods, and silent well,
  • And leaping rivulet, and evening gloom _485
  • Now deepening the dark shades, for speech assuming,
  • Held commune with him, as if he and it
  • Were all that was,--only...when his regard
  • Was raised by intense pensiveness,...two eyes,
  • Two starry eyes, hung in the gloom of thought, _490
  • And seemed with their serene and azure smiles
  • To beckon him.
  • Obedient to the light
  • That shone within his soul, he went, pursuing
  • The windings of the dell.--The rivulet,
  • Wanton and wild, through many a green ravine _495
  • Beneath the forest flowed. Sometimes it fell
  • Among the moss with hollow harmony
  • Dark and profound. Now on the polished stones
  • It danced; like childhood laughing as it went:
  • Then, through the plain in tranquil wanderings crept, _500
  • Reflecting every herb and drooping bud
  • That overhung its quietness.--'O stream!
  • Whose source is inaccessibly profound,
  • Whither do thy mysterious waters tend?
  • Thou imagest my life. Thy darksome stillness, _505
  • Thy dazzling waves, thy loud and hollow gulfs,
  • Thy searchless fountain, and invisible course
  • Have each their type in me; and the wide sky.
  • And measureless ocean may declare as soon
  • What oozy cavern or what wandering cloud _510
  • Contains thy waters, as the universe
  • Tell where these living thoughts reside, when stretched
  • Upon thy flowers my bloodless limbs shall waste
  • I' the passing wind!'
  • Beside the grassy shore
  • Of the small stream he went; he did impress _515
  • On the green moss his tremulous step, that caught
  • Strong shuddering from his burning limbs. As one
  • Roused by some joyous madness from the couch
  • Of fever, he did move; yet, not like him,
  • Forgetful of the grave, where, when the flame _520
  • Of his frail exultation shall be spent,
  • He must descend. With rapid steps he went
  • Beneath the shade of trees, beside the flow
  • Of the wild babbling rivulet; and now
  • The forest's solemn canopies were changed _525
  • For the uniform and lightsome evening sky.
  • Grey rocks did peep from the spare moss, and stemmed
  • The struggling brook; tall spires of windlestrae
  • Threw their thin shadows down the rugged slope,
  • And nought but gnarled roots of ancient pines _530
  • Branchless and blasted, clenched with grasping roots
  • The unwilling soil. A gradual change was here,
  • Yet ghastly. For, as fast years flow away,
  • The smooth brow gathers, and the hair grows thin
  • And white, and where irradiate dewy eyes _535
  • Had shone, gleam stony orbs:--so from his steps
  • Bright flowers departed, and the beautiful shade
  • Of the green groves, with all their odorous winds
  • And musical motions. Calm, he still pursued
  • The stream, that with a larger volume now _540
  • Rolled through the labyrinthine dell; and there
  • Fretted a path through its descending curves
  • With its wintry speed. On every side now rose
  • Rocks, which, in unimaginable forms,
  • Lifted their black and barren pinnacles _545
  • In the light of evening, and its precipice
  • Obscuring the ravine, disclosed above,
  • Mid toppling stones, black gulfs and yawning caves,
  • Whose windings gave ten thousand various tongues
  • To the loud stream. Lo! where the pass expands _550
  • Its stony jaws, the abrupt mountain breaks,
  • And seems, with its accumulated crags,
  • To overhang the world: for wide expand
  • Beneath the wan stars and descending moon
  • Islanded seas, blue mountains, mighty streams, _555
  • Dim tracts and vast, robed in the lustrous gloom
  • Of leaden-coloured even, and fiery hills
  • Mingling their flames with twilight, on the verge
  • Of the remote horizon. The near scene,
  • In naked and severe simplicity, _560
  • Made contrast with the universe. A pine,
  • Rock-rooted, stretched athwart the vacancy
  • Its swinging boughs, to each inconstant blast
  • Yielding one only response, at each pause
  • In most familiar cadence, with the howl _565
  • The thunder and the hiss of homeless streams
  • Mingling its solemn song, whilst the broad river
  • Foaming and hurrying o'er its rugged path,
  • Fell into that immeasurable void
  • Scattering its waters to the passing winds. _570
  • Yet the grey precipice and solemn pine
  • And torrent were not all;--one silent nook
  • Was there. Even on the edge of that vast mountain,
  • Upheld by knotty roots and fallen rocks,
  • It overlooked in its serenity _575
  • The dark earth, and the bending vault of stars.
  • It was a tranquil spot, that seemed to smile
  • Even in the lap of horror. Ivy clasped
  • The fissured stones with its entwining arms,
  • And did embower with leaves for ever green, _580
  • And berries dark, the smooth and even space
  • Of its inviolated floor, and here
  • The children of the autumnal whirlwind bore,
  • In wanton sport, those bright leaves, whose decay,
  • Red, yellow, or ethereally pale, _585
  • Rivals the pride of summer. 'Tis the haunt
  • Of every gentle wind, whose breath can teach
  • The wilds to love tranquillity. One step,
  • One human step alone, has ever broken
  • The stillness of its solitude:--one voice _590
  • Alone inspired its echoes;--even that voice
  • Which hither came, floating among the winds,
  • And led the loveliest among human forms
  • To make their wild haunts the depository
  • Of all the grace and beauty that endued _595
  • Its motions, render up its majesty,
  • Scatter its music on the unfeeling storm,
  • And to the damp leaves and blue cavern mould,
  • Nurses of rainbow flowers and branching moss,
  • Commit the colours of that varying cheek, _600
  • That snowy breast, those dark and drooping eyes.
  • The dim and horned moon hung low, and poured
  • A sea of lustre on the horizon's verge
  • That overflowed its mountains. Yellow mist
  • Filled the unbounded atmosphere, and drank _605
  • Wan moonlight even to fulness; not a star
  • Shone, not a sound was heard; the very winds,
  • Danger's grim playmates, on that precipice
  • Slept, clasped in his embrace.--O, storm of death!
  • Whose sightless speed divides this sullen night: 610
  • And thou, colossal Skeleton, that, still
  • Guiding its irresistible career
  • In thy devastating omnipotence,
  • Art king of this frail world, from the red field
  • Of slaughter, from the reeking hospital, _615
  • The patriot's sacred couch, the snowy bed
  • Of innocence, the scaffold and the throne,
  • A mighty voice invokes thee. Ruin calls
  • His brother Death. A rare and regal prey
  • He hath prepared, prowling around the world; _620
  • Glutted with which thou mayst repose, and men
  • Go to their graves like flowers or creeping worms,
  • Nor ever more offer at thy dark shrine
  • The unheeded tribute of a broken heart.
  • When on the threshold of the green recess _625
  • The wanderer's footsteps fell, he knew that death
  • Was on him. Yet a little, ere it fled,
  • Did he resign his high and holy soul
  • To images of the majestic past,
  • That paused within his passive being now, _630
  • Like winds that bear sweet music, when they breathe
  • Through some dim latticed chamber. He did place
  • His pale lean hand upon the rugged trunk
  • Of the old pine. Upon an ivied stone
  • Reclined his languid head, his limbs did rest, _635
  • Diffused and motionless, on the smooth brink
  • Of that obscurest chasm;--and thus he lay,
  • Surrendering to their final impulses
  • The hovering powers of life. Hope and despair,
  • The torturers, slept; no mortal pain or fear _640
  • Marred his repose; the influxes of sense,
  • And his own being unalloyed by pain,
  • Yet feebler and more feeble, calmly fed
  • The stream of thought, till he lay breathing there
  • At peace, and faintly smiling:--his last sight _645
  • Was the great moon, which o'er the western line
  • Of the wide world her mighty horn suspended,
  • With whose dun beams inwoven darkness seemed
  • To mingle. Now upon the jagged hills
  • It rests; and still as the divided frame _650
  • Of the vast meteor sunk, the Poet's blood,
  • That ever beat in mystic sympathy
  • With nature's ebb and flow, grew feebler still:
  • And when two lessening points of light alone
  • Gleamed through the darkness, the alternate gasp _655
  • Of his faint respiration scarce did stir
  • The stagnate night:--till the minutest ray
  • Was quenched, the pulse yet lingered in his heart.
  • It paused--it fluttered. But when heaven remained
  • Utterly black, the murky shades involved _660
  • An image, silent, cold, and motionless,
  • As their own voiceless earth and vacant air.
  • Even as a vapour fed with golden beams
  • That ministered on sunlight, ere the west
  • Eclipses it, was now that wondrous frame-- _665
  • No sense, no motion, no divinity--
  • A fragile lute, on whose harmonious strings
  • The breath of heaven did wander--a bright stream
  • Once fed with many-voiced waves--a dream
  • Of youth, which night and time have quenched for ever, _670
  • Still, dark, and dry, and unremembered now.
  • Oh, for Medea's wondrous alchemy,
  • Which wheresoe'er it fell made the earth gleam
  • With bright flowers, and the wintry boughs exhale
  • From vernal blooms fresh fragrance! O, that God, _675
  • Profuse of poisons, would concede the chalice
  • Which but one living man has drained, who now,
  • Vessel of deathless wrath, a slave that feels
  • No proud exemption in the blighting curse
  • He bears, over the world wanders for ever, _680
  • Lone as incarnate death! O, that the dream
  • Of dark magician in his visioned cave,
  • Raking the cinders of a crucible
  • For life and power, even when his feeble hand
  • Shakes in its last decay, were the true law _685
  • Of this so lovely world! But thou art fled,
  • Like some frail exhalation; which the dawn
  • Robes in its golden beams,--ah! thou hast fled!
  • The brave, the gentle and the beautiful,
  • The child of grace and genius. Heartless things _690
  • Are done and said i' the world, and many worms
  • And beasts and men live on, and mighty Earth
  • From sea and mountain, city and wilderness,
  • In vesper low or joyous orison,
  • Lifts still its solemn voice:--but thou art fled-- _695
  • Thou canst no longer know or love the shapes
  • Of this phantasmal scene, who have to thee
  • Been purest ministers, who are, alas!
  • Now thou art not. Upon those pallid lips
  • So sweet even in their silence, on those eyes _700
  • That image sleep in death, upon that form
  • Yet safe from the worm's outrage, let no tear
  • Be shed--not even in thought. Nor, when those hues
  • Are gone, and those divinest lineaments,
  • Worn by the senseless wind, shall live alone _705
  • In the frail pauses of this simple strain,
  • Let not high verse, mourning the memory
  • Of that which is no more, or painting's woe
  • Or sculpture, speak in feeble imagery
  • Their own cold powers. Art and eloquence, _710
  • And all the shows o' the world are frail and vain
  • To weep a loss that turns their lights to shade.
  • It is a woe "too deep for tears," when all
  • Is reft at once, when some surpassing Spirit,
  • Whose light adorned the world around it, leaves _715
  • Those who remain behind, not sobs or groans,
  • The passionate tumult of a clinging hope;
  • But pale despair and cold tranquillity,
  • Nature's vast frame, the web of human things,
  • Birth and the grave, that are not as they were. _720
  • Notes:
  • _219 Conduct edition 1816. See "Editor's Notes".
  • _530 roots edition 1816: query stumps or trunks. See "Editor's Notes".
  • NOTE ON ALASTOR, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • "Alastor" is written in a very different tone from "Queen Mab". In the
  • latter, Shelley poured out all the cherished speculations of his
  • youth--all the irrepressible emotions of sympathy, censure, and hope,
  • to which the present suffering, and what he considers the proper
  • destiny of his fellow-creatures, gave birth. "Alastor", on the
  • contrary, contains an individual interest only. A very few years, with
  • their attendant events, had checked the ardour of Shelley's hopes,
  • though he still thought them well-grounded, and that to advance their
  • fulfilment was the noblest task man could achieve.
  • This is neither the time nor place to speak of the misfortunes that
  • chequered his life. It will be sufficient to say that, in all he did,
  • he at the time of doing it believed himself justified to his own
  • conscience; while the various ills of poverty and loss of friends
  • brought home to him the sad realities of life. Physical suffering had
  • also considerable influence in causing him to turn his eyes inward;
  • inclining him rather to brood over the thoughts and emotions of his
  • own soul than to glance abroad, and to make, as in "Queen Mab", the
  • whole universe the object and subject of his song. In the Spring of
  • 1815, an eminent physician pronounced that he was dying rapidly of a
  • consumption; abscesses were formed on his lungs, and he suffered acute
  • spasms. Suddenly a complete change took place; and though through life
  • he was a martyr to pain and debility, every symptom of pulmonary
  • disease vanished. His nerves, which nature had formed sensitive to an
  • unexampled degree, were rendered still more susceptible by the state
  • of his health.
  • As soon as the peace of 1814 had opened the Continent, he went abroad.
  • He visited some of the more magnificent scenes of Switzerland, and
  • returned to England from Lucerne, by the Reuss and the Rhine. This
  • river-navigation enchanted him. In his favourite poem of "Thalaba",
  • his imagination had been excited by a description of such a voyage. In
  • the summer of 1815, after a tour along the southern coast of
  • Devonshire and a visit to Clifton, he rented a house on Bishopgate
  • Heath, on the borders of Windsor Forest, where he enjoyed several
  • months of comparative health and tranquil happiness. The later summer
  • months were warm and dry. Accompanied by a few friends, he visited the
  • source of the Thames, making a voyage in a wherry from Windsor to
  • Crichlade. His beautiful stanzas in the churchyard of Lechlade were
  • written on that occasion. "Alastor" was composed on his return. He
  • spent his days under the oak-shades of Windsor Great Park; and the
  • magnificent woodland was a fitting study to inspire the various
  • descriptions of forest scenery we find in the poem.
  • None of Shelley's poems is more characteristic than this. The solemn
  • spirit that reigns throughout, the worship of the majesty of nature,
  • the broodings of a poet's heart in solitude--the mingling of the
  • exulting joy which the various aspects of the visible universe
  • inspires with the sad and struggling pangs which human passion
  • imparts--give a touching interest to the whole. The death which he had
  • often contemplated during the last months as certain and near he here
  • represented in such colours as had, in his lonely musings, soothed his
  • soul to peace. The versification sustains the solemn spirit which
  • breathes throughout: it is peculiarly melodious. The poem ought rather
  • to be considered didactic than narrative: it was the outpouring of his
  • own emotions, embodied in the purest form he could conceive, painted
  • in the ideal hues which his brilliant imagination inspired, and
  • softened by the recent anticipation of death.
  • ***
  • THE REVOLT OF ISLAM.
  • A POEM IN TWELVE CANTOS.
  • Osais de Broton ethnos aglaiais aptomestha
  • perainei pros eschaton
  • ploon nausi d oute pezos ion an eurois
  • es Uperboreon agona thaumatan odon.
  • Pind. Pyth. x.
  • [Composed in the neighbourhood of Bisham Wood, near Great Marlow,
  • Bucks, 1817 (April-September 23); printed, with title (dated 1818),
  • "Laon and Cythna; or, The Revolution of the Golden City: A Vision of
  • the Nineteenth Century", October, November, 1817, but suppressed,
  • pending revision, by the publishers, C & J. Ollier. (A few copies had
  • got out, but these were recalled, and some recovered.) Published, with
  • a fresh title-page and twenty-seven cancel-leaves, as "The Revolt of
  • Islam", January 10, 1818. Sources of the text are (1) "Laon and
  • Cythna", 1818; (2) "The Revolt of Islam", 1818; (3) "Poetical Works",
  • 1839, editions 1st and 2nd--both edited by Mrs. Shelley. A copy, with
  • several pages missing, of the "Preface", the Dedication", and "Canto
  • 1" of "Laon and Cythna" is amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the
  • Bodleian. For a full collation of this manuscript see Mr. C.D.
  • Locock's "Examination of the Shelley Manuscripts at the Bodleian
  • Library". Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1903. Two manuscript fragments from
  • the Hunt papers are also extant: one (twenty-four lines) in the
  • possession of Mr. W.M. Rossetti, another (9 23 9 to 29 6) in that of
  • Mr. H. Buxton Forman, C.B. See "The Shelley Library", pages 83-86, for
  • an account of the copy of "Laon" upon which Shelley worked in revising
  • for publication.]
  • AUTHOR'S PREFACE.
  • The Poem which I now present to the world is an attempt from which I
  • scarcely dare to expect success, and in which a writer of established
  • fame might fail without disgrace. It is an experiment on the temper of
  • the public mind, as to how far a thirst for a happier condition of
  • moral and political society survives, among the enlightened and
  • refined, the tempests which have shaken the age in which we live. I
  • have sought to enlist the harmony of metrical language, the ethereal
  • combinations of the fancy, the rapid and subtle transitions of human
  • passion, all those elements which essentially compose a Poem, in the
  • cause of a liberal and comprehensive morality; and in the view of
  • kindling within the bosoms of my readers a virtuous enthusiasm for
  • those doctrines of liberty and justice, that faith and hope in
  • something good, which neither violence nor misrepresentation nor
  • prejudice can ever totally extinguish among mankind.
  • For this purpose I have chosen a story of human passion in its most
  • universal character, diversified with moving and romantic adventures,
  • and appealing, in contempt of all artificial opinions or institutions,
  • to the common sympathies of every human breast. I have made no attempt
  • to recommend the motives which I would substitute for those at present
  • governing mankind, by methodical and systematic argument. I would only
  • awaken the feelings, so that the reader should see the beauty of true
  • virtue, and be incited to those inquiries which have led to my moral
  • and political creed, and that of some of the sublimest intellects in
  • the world. The Poem therefore (with the exception of the first canto,
  • which is purely introductory) is narrative, not didactic. It is a
  • succession of pictures illustrating the growth and progress of
  • individual mind aspiring after excellence, and devoted to the love of
  • mankind; its influence in refining and making pure the most daring and
  • uncommon impulses of the imagination, the understanding, and the
  • senses; its impatience at 'all the oppressions which are done under
  • the sun;' its tendency to awaken public hope, and to enlighten and
  • improve mankind; the rapid effects of the application of that
  • tendency; the awakening of an immense nation from their slavery and
  • degradation to a true sense of moral dignity and freedom; the
  • bloodless dethronement of their oppressors, and the unveiling of the
  • religious frauds by which they had been deluded into submission; the
  • tranquillity of successful patriotism, and the universal toleration
  • and benevolence of true philanthropy; the treachery and barbarity of
  • hired soldiers; vice not the object of punishment and hatred, but
  • kindness and pity; the faithlessness of tyrants; the confederacy of
  • the Rulers of the World and the restoration of the expelled Dynasty by
  • foreign arms; the massacre and extermination of the Patriots, and the
  • victory of established power; the consequences of legitimate
  • despotism,--civil war, famine, plague, superstition, and an utter
  • extinction of the domestic affections; the judicial murder of the
  • advocates of Liberty; the temporary triumph of oppression, that secure
  • earnest of its final and inevitable fall; the transient nature of
  • ignorance and error and the eternity of genius and virtue. Such is the
  • series of delineations of which the Poem consists. And, if the lofty
  • passions with which it has been my scope to distinguish this story
  • shall not excite in the reader a generous impulse, an ardent thirst
  • for excellence, an interest profound and strong such as belongs to no
  • meaner desires, let not the failure be imputed to a natural unfitness
  • for human sympathy in these sublime and animating themes. It is the
  • business of the Poet to communicate to others the pleasure and the
  • enthusiasm arising out of those images and feelings in the vivid
  • presence of which within his own mind consists at once his inspiration
  • and his reward.
  • The panic which, like an epidemic transport, seized upon all classes
  • of men during the excesses consequent upon the French Revolution, is
  • gradually giving place to sanity. It has ceased to be believed that
  • whole generations of mankind ought to consign themselves to a hopeless
  • inheritance of ignorance and misery, because a nation of men who had
  • been dupes and slaves for centuries were incapable of conducting
  • themselves with the wisdom and tranquillity of freemen so soon as some
  • of their fetters were partially loosened. That their conduct could not
  • have been marked by any other characters than ferocity and
  • thoughtlessness is the historical fact from which liberty derives all
  • its recommendations, and falsehood the worst features of its
  • deformity. There is a reflux in the tide of human things which bears
  • the shipwrecked hopes of men into a secure haven after the storms are
  • past. Methinks, those who now live have survived an age of despair.
  • The French Revolution may be considered as one of those manifestations
  • of a general state of feeling among civilised mankind produced by a
  • defect of correspondence between the knowledge existing in society and
  • the improvement or gradual abolition of political institutions. The
  • year 1788 may be assumed as the epoch of one of the most important
  • crises produced by this feeling. The sympathies connected with that
  • event extended to every bosom. The most generous and amiable natures
  • were those which participated the most extensively in these
  • sympathies. But such a degree of unmingled good was expected as it was
  • impossible to realise. If the Revolution had been in every respect
  • prosperous, then misrule and superstition would lose half their claims
  • to our abhorrence, as fetters which the captive can unlock with the
  • slightest motion of his fingers, and which do not eat with poisonous
  • rust into the soul. The revulsion occasioned by the atrocities of the
  • demagogues, and the re-establishment of successive tyrannies in
  • France, was terrible, and felt in the remotest corner of the civilised
  • world. Could they listen to the plea of reason who had groaned under
  • the calamities of a social state according to the provisions of which
  • one man riots in luxury whilst another famishes for want of bread? Can
  • he who the day before was a trampled slave suddenly become
  • liberal-minded, forbearing, and independent? This is the consequence
  • of the habits of a state of society to be produced by resolute
  • perseverance and indefatigable hope, and long-suffering and
  • long-believing courage, and the systematic efforts of generations of
  • men of intellect and virtue. Such is the lesson which experience
  • teaches now. But, on the first reverses of hope in the progress of
  • French liberty, the sanguine eagerness for good overleaped the
  • solution of these questions, and for a time extinguished itself in the
  • unexpectedness of their result. Thus, many of the most ardent and
  • tender-hearted of the worshippers of public good have been morally
  • ruined by what a partial glimpse of the events they deplored appeared
  • to show as the melancholy desolation of all their cherished hopes.
  • Hence gloom and misanthropy have become the characteristics of the age
  • in which we live, the solace of a disappointment that unconsciously
  • finds relief only in the wilful exaggeration of its own despair. This
  • influence has tainted the literature of the age with the hopelessness
  • of the minds from which it flows. Metaphysics (I ought to except sir
  • W. Drummond's "Academical Questions"; a volume of very acute and
  • powerful metaphysical criticism.), and inquiries into moral and
  • political science, have become little else than vain attempts to
  • revive exploded superstitions, or sophisms like those of Mr. Malthus
  • (It is remarkable, as a symptom of the revival of public hope, that
  • Mr. Malthus has assigned, in the later editions of his work, an
  • indefinite dominion to moral restraint over the principle of
  • population. This concession answers all the inferences from his
  • doctrine unfavourable to human improvement, and reduces the "Essay on
  • Population" to a commentary illustrative of the unanswerableness of
  • "Political Justice".), calculated to lull the oppressors of mankind
  • into a security of everlasting triumph. Our works of fiction and
  • poetry have been overshadowed by the same infectious gloom. But
  • mankind appear to me to be emerging from their trance. I am aware,
  • methinks, of a slow, gradual, silent change. In that belief I have
  • composed the following Poem.
  • I do not presume to enter into competition with our greatest
  • contemporary Poets. Yet I am unwilling to tread in the footsteps of
  • any who have preceded me. I have sought to avoid the imitation of any
  • style of language or versification peculiar to the original minds of
  • which it is the character; designing that, even if what I have
  • produced be worthless, it should still be properly my own. Nor have I
  • permitted any system relating to mere words to divert the attention of
  • the reader, from whatever interest I may have succeeded in creating,
  • to my own ingenuity in contriving to disgust them according to the
  • rules of criticism. I have simply clothed my thoughts in what appeared
  • to me the most obvious and appropriate language. A person familiar
  • with nature, and with the most celebrated productions of the human
  • mind, can scarcely err in following the instinct, with respect to
  • selection of language, produced by that familiarity.
  • There is an education peculiarly fitted for a Poet, without which
  • genius and sensibility can hardly fill the circle of their capacities.
  • No education, indeed, can entitle to this appellation a dull and
  • unobservant mind, or one, though neither dull nor unobservant, in
  • which the channels of communication between thought and expression
  • have been obstructed or closed. How far it is my fortune to belong to
  • either of the latter classes I cannot know. I aspire to be something
  • better. The circumstances of my accidental education have been
  • favourable to this ambition. I have been familiar from boyhood with
  • mountains and lakes and the sea, and the solitude of forests: Danger,
  • which sports upon the brink of precipices, has been my playmate. I
  • have trodden the glaciers of the Alps, and lived under the eye of Mont
  • Blanc. I have been a wanderer among distant fields. I have sailed down
  • mighty rivers, and seen the sun rise and set, and the stars come
  • forth, whilst I have sailed night and day down a rapid stream among
  • mountains. I have seen populous cities, and have watched the passions
  • which rise and spread, and sink and change, amongst assembled
  • multitudes of men. I have seen the theatre of the more visible ravages
  • of tyranny and war, cities and villages reduced to scattered groups of
  • black and roofless houses, and the naked inhabitants sitting famished
  • upon their desolated thresholds. I have conversed with living men of
  • genius. The poetry of ancient Greece and Rome, and modern Italy, and
  • our own country, has been to me, like external nature, a passion and
  • an enjoyment. Such are the sources from which the materials for the
  • imagery of my Poem have been drawn. I have considered Poetry in its
  • most comprehensive sense; and have read the Poets and the Historians
  • and the Metaphysicians (In this sense there may be such a thing as
  • perfectibility in works of fiction, notwithstanding the concession
  • often made by the advocates of human improvement, that perfectibility
  • is a term applicable only to science.) whose writings have been
  • accessible to me, and have looked upon the beautiful and majestic
  • scenery of the earth, as common sources of those elements which it is
  • the province of the Poet to embody and combine. Yet the experience and
  • the feelings to which I refer do not in themselves constitute men
  • Poets, but only prepares them to be the auditors of those who are. How
  • far I shall be found to possess that more essential attribute of
  • Poetry, the power of awakening in others sensations like those which
  • animate my own bosom, is that which, to speak sincerely, I know not;
  • and which, with an acquiescent and contented spirit, I expect to be
  • taught by the effect which I shall produce upon those whom I now
  • address.
  • I have avoided, as I have said before, the imitation of any
  • contemporary style. But there must be a resemblance, which does not
  • depend upon their own will, between all the writers of any particular
  • age. They cannot escape from subjection to a common influence which
  • arises out of an infinite combination of circumstances belonging to
  • the times in which they live; though each is in a degree the author of
  • the very influence by which his being is thus pervaded. Thus, the
  • tragic poets of the age of Pericles; the Italian revivers of ancient
  • learning; those mighty intellects of our own country that succeeded
  • the Reformation, the translators of the Bible, Shakespeare, Spenser,
  • the Dramatists of the reign of Elizabeth, and Lord Bacon (Milton
  • stands alone in the age which he illumined.); the colder spirits of
  • the interval that succeeded;--all resemble each other, and differ from
  • every other in their several classes. In this view of things, Ford can
  • no more be called the imitator of Shakespeare than Shakespeare the
  • imitator of Ford. There were perhaps few other points of resemblance
  • between these two men than that which the universal and inevitable
  • influence of their age produced. And this is an influence which
  • neither the meanest scribbler nor the sublimest genius of any era can
  • escape; and which I have not attempted to escape.
  • I have adopted the stanza of Spenser (a measure inexpressibly
  • beautiful), not because I consider it a finer model of poetical
  • harmony than the blank verse of Shakespeare and Milton, but because in
  • the latter there is no shelter for mediocrity; you must either succeed
  • or fail. This perhaps an aspiring spirit should desire. But I was
  • enticed also by the brilliancy and magnificence of sound which a mind
  • that has been nourished upon musical thoughts can produce by a just
  • and harmonious arrangement of the pauses of this measure. Yet there
  • will be found some instances where I have completely failed in this
  • attempt, and one, which I here request the reader to consider as an
  • erratum, where there is left, most inadvertently, an alexandrine in
  • the middle of a stanza.
  • But in this, as in every other respect, I have written fearlessly. It
  • is the misfortune of this age that its Writers, too thoughtless of
  • immortality, are exquisitely sensible to temporary praise or blame.
  • They write with the fear of Reviews before their eyes. This system of
  • criticism sprang up in that torpid interval when Poetry was not.
  • Poetry, and the art which professes to regulate and limit its powers,
  • cannot subsist together. Longinus could not have been the contemporary
  • of Homer, nor Boileau of Horace. Yet this species of criticism never
  • presumed to assert an understanding of its own; it has always, unlike
  • true science, followed, not preceded, the opinion of mankind, and
  • would even now bribe with worthless adulation some of our greatest
  • Poets to impose gratuitous fetters on their own imaginations, and
  • become unconscious accomplices in the daily murder of all genius
  • either not so aspiring or not so fortunate as their own. I have sought
  • therefore to write, as I believe that Homer, Shakespeare, and Milton
  • wrote, with an utter disregard of anonymous censure. I am certain that
  • calumny and misrepresentation, though it may move me to compassion,
  • cannot disturb my peace. I shall understand the expressive silence of
  • those sagacious enemies who dare not trust themselves to speak. I
  • shall endeavour to extract, from the midst of insult and contempt and
  • maledictions, those admonitions which may tend to correct whatever
  • imperfections such censurers may discover in this my first serious
  • appeal to the Public. If certain Critics were as clear-sighted as they
  • are malignant, how great would be the benefit to be derived from their
  • virulent writings! As it is, I fear I shall be malicious enough to be
  • amused with their paltry tricks and lame invectives. Should the Public
  • judge that my composition is worthless, I shall indeed bow before the
  • tribunal from which Milton received his crown of immortality, and
  • shall seek to gather, if I live, strength from that defeat, which may
  • nerve me to some new enterprise of thought which may not be worthless.
  • I cannot conceive that Lucretius, when he meditated that poem whose
  • doctrines are yet the basis of our metaphysical knowledge, and whose
  • eloquence has been the wonder of mankind, wrote in awe of such censure
  • as the hired sophists of the impure and superstitious noblemen of Rome
  • might affix to what he should produce. It was at the period when
  • Greece was led captive and Asia made tributary to the Republic, fast
  • verging itself to slavery and ruin, that a multitude of Syrian
  • captives, bigoted to the worship of their obscene Ashtaroth, and the
  • unworthy successors of Socrates and Zeno, found there a precarious
  • subsistence by administering, under the name of freedmen, to the vices
  • and vanities of the great. These wretched men were skilled to plead,
  • with a superficial but plausible set of sophisms, in favour of that
  • contempt for virtue which is the portion of slaves, and that faith in
  • portents, the most fatal substitute for benevolence in the
  • imaginations of men, which, arising from the enslaved communities of
  • the East, then first began to overwhelm the western nations in its
  • stream. Were these the kind of men whose disapprobation the wise and
  • lofty-minded Lucretius should have regarded with a salutary awe? The
  • latest and perhaps the meanest of those who follow in his footsteps
  • would disdain to hold life on such conditions.
  • The Poem now presented to the Public occupied little more than six
  • months in the composition. That period has been devoted to the task
  • with unremitting ardour and enthusiasm. I have exercised a watchful
  • and earnest criticism on my work as it grew under my hands. I would
  • willingly have sent it forth to the world with that perfection which
  • long labour and revision is said to bestow. But I found that, if I
  • should gain something in exactness by this method, I might lose much
  • of the newness and energy of imagery and language as it flowed fresh
  • from my mind. And, although the mere composition occupied no more than
  • six months, the thoughts thus arranged were slowly gathered in as many
  • years.
  • I trust that the reader will carefully distinguish between those
  • opinions which have a dramatic propriety in reference to the
  • characters which they are designed to elucidate, and such as are
  • properly my own. The erroneous and degrading idea which men have
  • conceived of a Supreme Being, for instance, is spoken against, but not
  • the Supreme Being itself. The belief which some superstitious persons
  • whom I have brought upon the stage entertain of the Deity, as
  • injurious to the character of his benevolence, is widely different
  • from my own. In recommending also a great and important change in the
  • spirit which animates the social institutions of mankind, I have
  • avoided all flattery to those violent and malignant passions of our
  • nature which are ever on the watch to mingle with and to alloy the
  • most beneficial innovations. There is no quarter given to Revenge, or
  • Envy, or Prejudice. Love is celebrated everywhere as the sole law
  • which should govern the moral world.
  • DEDICATION.
  • There is no danger to a man that knows
  • What life and death is: there's not any law
  • Exceeds his knowledge; neither is it lawful
  • That he should stoop to any other law.--CHAPMAN.
  • TO MARY -- --.
  • 1.
  • So now my summer-task is ended, Mary,
  • And I return to thee, mine own heart's home;
  • As to his Queen some victor Knight of Faery,
  • Earning bright spoils for her enchanted dome;
  • Nor thou disdain, that ere my fame become _5
  • A star among the stars of mortal night,
  • If it indeed may cleave its natal gloom,
  • Its doubtful promise thus I would unite
  • With thy beloved name, thou Child of love and light.
  • 2.
  • The toil which stole from thee so many an hour, _10
  • Is ended,--and the fruit is at thy feet!
  • No longer where the woods to frame a bower
  • With interlaced branches mix and meet,
  • Or where with sound like many voices sweet,
  • Waterfalls leap among wild islands green, _15
  • Which framed for my lone boat a lone retreat
  • Of moss-grown trees and weeds, shall I be seen;
  • But beside thee, where still my heart has ever been.
  • 3.
  • Thoughts of great deeds were mine, dear Friend, when first
  • The clouds which wrap this world from youth did pass. _20
  • I do remember well the hour which burst
  • My spirit's sleep. A fresh May-dawn it was,
  • When I walked forth upon the glittering grass,
  • And wept, I knew not why; until there rose
  • From the near schoolroom, voices that, alas! _25
  • Were but one echo from a world of woes--
  • The harsh and grating strife of tyrants and of foes.
  • 4.
  • And then I clasped my hands and looked around--
  • --But none was near to mock my streaming eyes,
  • Which poured their warm drops on the sunny ground-- _30
  • So without shame I spake:--'I will be wise,
  • And just, and free, and mild, if in me lies
  • Such power, for I grow weary to behold
  • The selfish and the strong still tyrannise
  • Without reproach or check.' I then controlled _35
  • My tears, my heart grew calm, and I was meek and bold.
  • 5.
  • And from that hour did I with earnest thought
  • Heap knowledge from forbidden mines of lore;
  • Yet nothing that my tyrants knew or taught
  • I cared to learn, but from that secret store _40
  • Wrought linked armour for my soul, before
  • It might walk forth to war among mankind;
  • Thus power and hope were strengthened more and more
  • Within me, till there came upon my mind
  • A sense of loneliness, a thirst with which I pined. _45
  • 6.
  • Alas, that love should be a blight and snare
  • To those who seek all sympathies in one!--
  • Such once I sought in vain; then black despair,
  • The shadow of a starless night, was thrown
  • Over the world in which I moved alone:-- _50
  • Yet never found I one not false to me,
  • Hard hearts, and cold, like weights of icy stone
  • Which crushed and withered mine, that could not be
  • Aught but a lifeless clod, until revived by thee.
  • 7.
  • Thou Friend, whose presence on my wintry heart _55
  • Fell, like bright Spring upon some herbless plain;
  • How beautiful and calm and free thou wert
  • In thy young wisdom, when the mortal chain
  • Of Custom thou didst burst and rend in twain,
  • And walked as free as light the clouds among, _60
  • Which many an envious slave then breathed in vain
  • From his dim dungeon, and my spirit sprung
  • To meet thee from the woes which had begirt it long!
  • 8.
  • No more alone through the world's wilderness,
  • Although I trod the paths of high intent, _65
  • I journeyed now: no more companionless,
  • Where solitude is like despair, I went.--
  • There is the wisdom of a stern content
  • When Poverty can blight the just and good,
  • When Infamy dares mock the innocent, _70
  • And cherished friends turn with the multitude
  • To trample: this was ours, and we unshaken stood!
  • 9.
  • Now has descended a serener hour,
  • And with inconstant fortune, friends return;
  • Though suffering leaves the knowledge and the power _75
  • Which says:--Let scorn be not repaid with scorn.
  • And from thy side two gentle babes are born
  • To fill our home with smiles, and thus are we
  • Most fortunate beneath life's beaming morn;
  • And these delights, and thou, have been to me _80
  • The parents of the Song I consecrate to thee.
  • 10.
  • Is it that now my inexperienced fingers
  • But strike the prelude of a loftier strain?
  • Or, must the lyre on which my spirit lingers
  • Soon pause in silence, ne'er to sound again, _85
  • Though it might shake the Anarch Custom's reign,
  • And charm the minds of men to Truth's own sway
  • Holier than was Amphion's? I would fain
  • Reply in hope--but I am worn away,
  • And Death and Love are yet contending for their prey. _90
  • 11.
  • And what art thou? I know, but dare not speak:
  • Time may interpret to his silent years.
  • Yet in the paleness of thy thoughtful cheek,
  • And in the light thine ample forehead wears,
  • And in thy sweetest smiles, and in thy tears, _95
  • And in thy gentle speech, a prophecy
  • Is whispered, to subdue my fondest fears:
  • And through thine eyes, even in thy soul I see
  • A lamp of vestal fire burning internally.
  • 12.
  • They say that thou wert lovely from thy birth, _100
  • Of glorious parents thou aspiring Child.
  • I wonder not--for One then left this earth
  • Whose life was like a setting planet mild,
  • Which clothed thee in the radiance undefiled
  • Of its departing glory; still her fame _105
  • Shines on thee, through the tempests dark and wild
  • Which shake these latter days; and thou canst claim
  • The shelter, from thy Sire, of an immortal name.
  • 13.
  • One voice came forth from many a mighty spirit,
  • Which was the echo of three thousand years; _110
  • And the tumultuous world stood mute to hear it,
  • As some lone man who in a desert hears
  • The music of his home:--unwonted fears
  • Fell on the pale oppressors of our race,
  • And Faith, and Custom, and low-thoughted cares, _115
  • Like thunder-stricken dragons, for a space
  • Left the torn human heart, their food and dwelling-place.
  • 14.
  • Truth's deathless voice pauses among mankind!
  • If there must be no response to my cry--
  • If men must rise and stamp with fury blind _120
  • On his pure name who loves them,--thou and I,
  • Sweet friend! can look from our tranquillity
  • Like lamps into the world's tempestuous night,--
  • Two tranquil stars, while clouds are passing by
  • Which wrap them from the foundering seaman's sight, _125
  • That burn from year to year with unextinguished light.
  • NOTES.
  • _54 cloaking edition 1818. See notes at end.
  • CANTO 1.
  • 1.
  • When the last hope of trampled France had failed
  • Like a brief dream of unremaining glory,
  • From visions of despair I rose, and scaled
  • The peak of an aerial promontory, _130
  • Whose caverned base with the vexed surge was hoary;
  • And saw the golden dawn break forth, and waken
  • Each cloud, and every wave:--but transitory
  • The calm; for sudden, the firm earth was shaken,
  • As if by the last wreck its frame were overtaken. _135
  • 2.
  • So as I stood, one blast of muttering thunder
  • Burst in far peals along the waveless deep,
  • When, gathering fast, around, above, and under,
  • Long trains of tremulous mist began to creep,
  • Until their complicating lines did steep _140
  • The orient sun in shadow:--not a sound
  • Was heard; one horrible repose did keep
  • The forests and the floods, and all around
  • Darkness more dread than night was poured upon the ground.
  • 3.
  • Hark! 'tis the rushing of a wind that sweeps _145
  • Earth and the ocean. See! the lightnings yawn
  • Deluging Heaven with fire, and the lashed deeps
  • Glitter and boil beneath: it rages on,
  • One mighty stream, whirlwind and waves upthrown,
  • Lightning, and hail, and darkness eddying by. _150
  • There is a pause--the sea-birds, that were gone
  • Into their caves to shriek, come forth, to spy
  • What calm has fall'n on earth, what light is in the sky.
  • 4.
  • For, where the irresistible storm had cloven
  • That fearful darkness, the blue sky was seen _155
  • Fretted with many a fair cloud interwoven
  • Most delicately, and the ocean green,
  • Beneath that opening spot of blue serene,
  • Quivered like burning emerald; calm was spread
  • On all below; but far on high, between _160
  • Earth and the upper air, the vast clouds fled,
  • Countless and swift as leaves on autumn's tempest shed.
  • 5.
  • For ever, as the war became more fierce
  • Between the whirlwinds and the rack on high,
  • That spot grew more serene; blue light did pierce _165
  • The woof of those white clouds, which seem to lie
  • Far, deep, and motionless; while through the sky
  • The pallid semicircle of the moon
  • Passed on, in slow and moving majesty;
  • Its upper horn arrayed in mists, which soon _170
  • But slowly fled, like dew beneath the beams of noon.
  • 6.
  • I could not choose but gaze; a fascination
  • Dwelt in that moon, and sky, and clouds, which drew
  • My fancy thither, and in expectation
  • Of what I knew not, I remained:--the hue _175
  • Of the white moon, amid that heaven so blue,
  • Suddenly stained with shadow did appear;
  • A speck, a cloud, a shape, approaching grew,
  • Like a great ship in the sun's sinking sphere
  • Beheld afar at sea, and swift it came anear. _180
  • 7.
  • Even like a bark, which from a chasm of mountains,
  • Dark, vast and overhanging, on a river
  • Which there collects the strength of all its fountains,
  • Comes forth, whilst with the speed its frame doth quiver,
  • Sails, oars and stream, tending to one endeavour; _185
  • So, from that chasm of light a winged Form
  • On all the winds of heaven approaching ever
  • Floated, dilating as it came; the storm
  • Pursued it with fierce blasts, and lightnings swift and warm.
  • 8.
  • A course precipitous, of dizzy speed, _190
  • Suspending thought and breath; a monstrous sight!
  • For in the air do I behold indeed
  • An Eagle and a Serpent wreathed in fight:--
  • And now, relaxing its impetuous flight,
  • Before the aerial rock on which I stood, _195
  • The Eagle, hovering, wheeled to left and right,
  • And hung with lingering wings over the flood,
  • And startled with its yells the wide air's solitude.
  • 9.
  • A shaft of light upon its wings descended,
  • And every golden feather gleamed therein-- _200
  • Feather and scale, inextricably blended.
  • The Serpent's mailed and many-coloured skin
  • Shone through the plumes its coils were twined within
  • By many a swoln and knotted fold, and high
  • And far, the neck, receding lithe and thin, _205
  • Sustained a crested head, which warily
  • Shifted and glanced before the Eagle's steadfast eye.
  • 10.
  • Around, around, in ceaseless circles wheeling
  • With clang of wings and scream, the Eagle sailed
  • Incessantly--sometimes on high concealing _210
  • Its lessening orbs, sometimes as if it failed,
  • Drooped through the air; and still it shrieked and wailed,
  • And casting back its eager head, with beak
  • And talon unremittingly assailed
  • The wreathed Serpent, who did ever seek _215
  • Upon his enemy's heart a mortal wound to wreak.
  • 11.
  • What life, what power, was kindled and arose
  • Within the sphere of that appalling fray!
  • For, from the encounter of those wondrous foes,
  • A vapour like the sea's suspended spray _220
  • Hung gathered; in the void air, far away,
  • Floated the shattered plumes; bright scales did leap,
  • Where'er the Eagle's talons made their way,
  • Like sparks into the darkness;--as they sweep,
  • Blood stains the snowy foam of the tumultuous deep. _225
  • 12.
  • Swift chances in that combat--many a check,
  • And many a change, a dark and wild turmoil;
  • Sometimes the Snake around his enemy's neck
  • Locked in stiff rings his adamantine coil,
  • Until the Eagle, faint with pain and toil, _230
  • Remitted his strong flight, and near the sea
  • Languidly fluttered, hopeless so to foil
  • His adversary, who then reared on high
  • His red and burning crest, radiant with victory.
  • 13.
  • Then on the white edge of the bursting surge, _235
  • Where they had sunk together, would the Snake
  • Relax his suffocating grasp, and scourge
  • The wind with his wild writhings; for to break
  • That chain of torment, the vast bird would shake
  • The strength of his unconquerable wings _240
  • As in despair, and with his sinewy neck,
  • Dissolve in sudden shock those linked rings--
  • Then soar, as swift as smoke from a volcano springs.
  • 14.
  • Wile baffled wile, and strength encountered strength,
  • Thus long, but unprevailing:--the event _245
  • Of that portentous fight appeared at length:
  • Until the lamp of day was almost spent
  • It had endured, when lifeless, stark, and rent,
  • Hung high that mighty Serpent, and at last
  • Fell to the sea, while o'er the continent _250
  • With clang of wings and scream the Eagle passed,
  • Heavily borne away on the exhausted blast.
  • 15.
  • And with it fled the tempest, so that ocean
  • And earth and sky shone through the atmosphere--
  • Only, 'twas strange to see the red commotion _255
  • Of waves like mountains o'er the sinking sphere
  • Of sunset sweep, and their fierce roar to hear
  • Amid the calm: down the steep path I wound
  • To the sea-shore--the evening was most clear
  • And beautiful, and there the sea I found _260
  • Calm as a cradled child in dreamless slumber bound.
  • 16.
  • There was a Woman, beautiful as morning,
  • Sitting beneath the rocks, upon the sand
  • Of the waste sea--fair as one flower adorning
  • An icy wilderness; each delicate hand _265
  • Lay crossed upon her bosom, and the band
  • Of her dark hair had fall'n, and so she sate
  • Looking upon the waves; on the bare strand
  • Upon the sea-mark a small boat did wait,
  • Fair as herself, like Love by Hope left desolate. _270
  • 17.
  • It seemed that this fair Shape had looked upon
  • That unimaginable fight, and now
  • That her sweet eyes were weary of the sun,
  • As brightly it illustrated her woe;
  • For in the tears which silently to flow _275
  • Paused not, its lustre hung: she watching aye
  • The foam-wreaths which the faint tide wove below
  • Upon the spangled sands, groaned heavily,
  • And after every groan looked up over the sea.
  • 18.
  • And when she saw the wounded Serpent make _280
  • His path between the waves, her lips grew pale,
  • Parted, and quivered; the tears ceased to break
  • From her immovable eyes; no voice of wail
  • Escaped her; but she rose, and on the gale
  • Loosening her star-bright robe and shadowy hair _285
  • Poured forth her voice; the caverns of the vale
  • That opened to the ocean, caught it there,
  • And filled with silver sounds the overflowing air.
  • 19.
  • She spake in language whose strange melody
  • Might not belong to earth. I heard alone, _290
  • What made its music more melodious be,
  • The pity and the love of every tone;
  • But to the Snake those accents sweet were known
  • His native tongue and hers; nor did he beat
  • The hoar spray idly then, but winding on _295
  • Through the green shadows of the waves that meet
  • Near to the shore, did pause beside her snowy feet.
  • 20.
  • Then on the sands the Woman sate again,
  • And wept and clasped her hands, and all between,
  • Renewed the unintelligible strain _300
  • Of her melodious voice and eloquent mien;
  • And she unveiled her bosom, and the green
  • And glancing shadows of the sea did play
  • O'er its marmoreal depth:--one moment seen,
  • For ere the next, the Serpent did obey _305
  • Her voice, and, coiled in rest in her embrace it lay.
  • 21.
  • Then she arose, and smiled on me with eyes
  • Serene yet sorrowing, like that planet fair,
  • While yet the daylight lingereth in the skies
  • Which cleaves with arrowy beams the dark-red air, _310
  • And said: 'To grieve is wise, but the despair
  • Was weak and vain which led thee here from sleep:
  • This shalt thou know, and more, if thou dost dare
  • With me and with this Serpent, o'er the deep,
  • A voyage divine and strange, companionship to keep.' _315
  • 22.
  • Her voice was like the wildest, saddest tone,
  • Yet sweet, of some loved voice heard long ago.
  • I wept. 'Shall this fair woman all alone,
  • Over the sea with that fierce Serpent go?
  • His head is on her heart, and who can know _320
  • How soon he may devour his feeble prey?'--
  • Such were my thoughts, when the tide gan to flow;
  • And that strange boat like the moon's shade did sway
  • Amid reflected stars that in the waters lay:--
  • 23.
  • A boat of rare device, which had no sail _325
  • But its own curved prow of thin moonstone,
  • Wrought like a web of texture fine and frail,
  • To catch those gentlest winds which are not known
  • To breathe, but by the steady speed alone
  • With which it cleaves the sparkling sea; and now _330
  • We are embarked--the mountains hang and frown
  • Over the starry deep that gleams below,
  • A vast and dim expanse, as o'er the waves we go.
  • 24.
  • And as we sailed, a strange and awful tale
  • That Woman told, like such mysterious dream _335
  • As makes the slumberer's cheek with wonder pale!
  • 'Twas midnight, and around, a shoreless stream,
  • Wide ocean rolled, when that majestic theme
  • Shrined in her heart found utterance, and she bent
  • Her looks on mine; those eyes a kindling beam _340
  • Of love divine into my spirit sent,
  • And ere her lips could move, made the air eloquent.
  • 25.
  • 'Speak not to me, but hear! Much shalt thou learn,
  • Much must remain unthought, and more untold,
  • In the dark Future's ever-flowing urn: _345
  • Know then, that from the depth of ages old
  • Two Powers o'er mortal things dominion hold,
  • Ruling the world with a divided lot,
  • Immortal, all-pervading, manifold,
  • Twin Genii, equal Gods--when life and thought _350
  • Sprang forth, they burst the womb of inessential Nought.
  • 26.
  • 'The earliest dweller of the world, alone,
  • Stood on the verge of chaos. Lo! afar
  • O'er the wide wild abyss two meteors shone,
  • Sprung from the depth of its tempestuous jar: _355
  • A blood-red Comet and the Morning Star
  • Mingling their beams in combat--as he stood,
  • All thoughts within his mind waged mutual war,
  • In dreadful sympathy--when to the flood
  • That fair Star fell, he turned and shed his brother's blood. _360
  • 27.
  • 'Thus evil triumphed, and the Spirit of evil,
  • One Power of many shapes which none may know,
  • One Shape of many names; the Fiend did revel
  • In victory, reigning o'er a world of woe,
  • For the new race of man went to and fro, _365
  • Famished and homeless, loathed and loathing, wild,
  • And hating good--for his immortal foe,
  • He changed from starry shape, beauteous and mild,
  • To a dire Snake, with man and beast unreconciled.
  • 28.
  • 'The darkness lingering o'er the dawn of things, _370
  • Was Evil's breath and life; this made him strong
  • To soar aloft with overshadowing wings;
  • And the great Spirit of Good did creep among
  • The nations of mankind, and every tongue
  • Cursed and blasphemed him as he passed; for none _375
  • Knew good from evil, though their names were hung
  • In mockery o'er the fane where many a groan,
  • As King, and Lord, and God, the conquering Fiend did own,--
  • 29.
  • 'The Fiend, whose name was Legion: Death, Decay,
  • Earthquake and Blight, and Want, and Madness pale, _380
  • Winged and wan diseases, an array
  • Numerous as leaves that strew the autumnal gale;
  • Poison, a snake in flowers, beneath the veil
  • Of food and mirth, hiding his mortal head;
  • And, without whom all these might nought avail, _385
  • Fear, Hatred, Faith, and Tyranny, who spread
  • Those subtle nets which snare the living and the dead.
  • 30.
  • 'His spirit is their power, and they his slaves
  • In air, and light, and thought, and language, dwell;
  • And keep their state from palaces to graves, _390
  • In all resorts of men--invisible,
  • But when, in ebon mirror, Nightmare fell
  • To tyrant or impostor bids them rise,
  • Black winged demon forms--whom, from the hell,
  • His reign and dwelling beneath nether skies, _395
  • He loosens to their dark and blasting ministries.
  • 31.
  • 'In the world's youth his empire was as firm
  • As its foundations...Soon the Spirit of Good,
  • Though in the likeness of a loathsome worm,
  • Sprang from the billows of the formless flood, _400
  • Which shrank and fled; and with that Fiend of blood
  • Renewed the doubtful war...Thrones then first shook,
  • And earth's immense and trampled multitude
  • In hope on their own powers began to look,
  • And Fear, the demon pale, his sanguine shrine forsook. _405
  • 32.
  • 'Then Greece arose, and to its bards and sages,
  • In dream, the golden-pinioned Genii came,
  • Even where they slept amid the night of ages,
  • Steeping their hearts in the divinest flame
  • Which thy breath kindled, Power of holiest name! _410
  • And oft in cycles since, when darkness gave
  • New weapons to thy foe, their sunlike fame
  • Upon the combat shone--a light to save,
  • Like Paradise spread forth beyond the shadowy grave.
  • 33.
  • 'Such is this conflict--when mankind doth strive _415
  • With its oppressors in a strife of blood,
  • Or when free thoughts, like lightnings, are alive,
  • And in each bosom of the multitude
  • Justice and truth with Custom's hydra brood
  • Wage silent war; when Priests and Kings dissemble _420
  • In smiles or frowns their fierce disquietude,
  • When round pure hearts a host of hopes assemble,
  • The Snake and Eagle meet--the world's foundations tremble!
  • 34.
  • 'Thou hast beheld that fight--when to thy home
  • Thou dost return, steep not its hearth in tears; _425
  • Though thou may'st hear that earth is now become
  • The tyrant's garbage, which to his compeers,
  • The vile reward of their dishonoured years,
  • He will dividing give.--The victor Fiend,
  • Omnipotent of yore, now quails, and fears _430
  • His triumph dearly won, which soon will lend
  • An impulse swift and sure to his approaching end.
  • 35.
  • 'List, stranger, list, mine is an human form,
  • Like that thou wearest--touch me--shrink not now!
  • My hand thou feel'st is not a ghost's, but warm _435
  • With human blood.--'Twas many years ago,
  • Since first my thirsting soul aspired to know
  • The secrets of this wondrous world, when deep
  • My heart was pierced with sympathy, for woe
  • Which could not be mine own, and thought did keep, _440
  • In dream, unnatural watch beside an infant's sleep.
  • 36.
  • 'Woe could not be mine own, since far from men
  • I dwelt, a free and happy orphan child,
  • By the sea-shore, in a deep mountain glen;
  • And near the waves, and through the forests wild, _445
  • I roamed, to storm and darkness reconciled:
  • For I was calm while tempest shook the sky:
  • But when the breathless heavens in beauty smiled,
  • I wept, sweet tears, yet too tumultuously
  • For peace, and clasped my hands aloft in ecstasy. _450
  • 37.
  • 'These were forebodings of my fate--before
  • A woman's heart beat in my virgin breast,
  • It had been nurtured in divinest lore:
  • A dying poet gave me books, and blessed
  • With wild but holy talk the sweet unrest _455
  • In which I watched him as he died away--
  • A youth with hoary hair--a fleeting guest
  • Of our lone mountains: and this lore did sway
  • My spirit like a storm, contending there alway.
  • 38.
  • 'Thus the dark tale which history doth unfold _460
  • I knew, but not, methinks, as others know,
  • For they weep not; and Wisdom had unrolled
  • The clouds which hide the gulf of mortal woe,--
  • To few can she that warning vision show--
  • For I loved all things with intense devotion; _465
  • So that when Hope's deep source in fullest flow,
  • Like earthquake did uplift the stagnant ocean
  • Of human thoughts--mine shook beneath the wide emotion.
  • 39.
  • 'When first the living blood through all these veins
  • Kindled a thought in sense, great France sprang forth, _470
  • And seized, as if to break, the ponderous chains
  • Which bind in woe the nations of the earth.
  • I saw, and started from my cottage-hearth;
  • And to the clouds and waves in tameless gladness
  • Shrieked, till they caught immeasurable mirth-- _475
  • And laughed in light and music: soon, sweet madness
  • Was poured upon my heart, a soft and thrilling sadness.
  • 40.
  • 'Deep slumber fell on me:--my dreams were fire--
  • Soft and delightful thoughts did rest and hover
  • Like shadows o'er my brain; and strange desire, _480
  • The tempest of a passion, raging over
  • My tranquil soul, its depths with light did cover,
  • Which passed; and calm, and darkness, sweeter far,
  • Came--then I loved; but not a human lover!
  • For when I rose from sleep, the Morning Star _485
  • Shone through the woodbine-wreaths which round my casement were.
  • 41.
  • ''Twas like an eye which seemed to smile on me.
  • I watched, till by the sun made pale, it sank
  • Under the billows of the heaving sea;
  • But from its beams deep love my spirit drank, _490
  • And to my brain the boundless world now shrank
  • Into one thought--one image--yes, for ever!
  • Even like the dayspring, poured on vapours dank,
  • The beams of that one Star did shoot and quiver
  • Through my benighted mind--and were extinguished never. _495
  • 42.
  • 'The day passed thus: at night, methought, in dream
  • A shape of speechless beauty did appear:
  • It stood like light on a careering stream
  • Of golden clouds which shook the atmosphere;
  • A winged youth, his radiant brow did wear _500
  • The Morning Star: a wild dissolving bliss
  • Over my frame he breathed, approaching near,
  • And bent his eyes of kindling tenderness
  • Near mine, and on my lips impressed a lingering kiss,--
  • 43.
  • 'And said: "A Spirit loves thee, mortal maiden, _505
  • How wilt thou prove thy worth?" Then joy and sleep
  • Together fled; my soul was deeply laden,
  • And to the shore I went to muse and weep;
  • But as I moved, over my heart did creep
  • A joy less soft, but more profound and strong _510
  • Than my sweet dream; and it forbade to keep
  • The path of the sea-shore: that Spirit's tongue
  • Seemed whispering in my heart, and bore my steps along.
  • 44.
  • 'How, to that vast and peopled city led,
  • Which was a field of holy warfare then, _515
  • I walked among the dying and the dead,
  • And shared in fearless deeds with evil men,
  • Calm as an angel in the dragon's den--
  • How I braved death for liberty and truth,
  • And spurned at peace, and power, and fame--and when _520
  • Those hopes had lost the glory of their youth,
  • How sadly I returned--might move the hearer's ruth:
  • 45.
  • 'Warm tears throng fast! the tale may not be said--
  • Know then, that when this grief had been subdued,
  • I was not left, like others, cold and dead; _525
  • The Spirit whom I loved, in solitude
  • Sustained his child: the tempest-shaken wood,
  • The waves, the fountains, and the hush of night--
  • These were his voice, and well I understood
  • His smile divine, when the calm sea was bright _530
  • With silent stars, and Heaven was breathless with delight.
  • 46.
  • 'In lonely glens, amid the roar of rivers,
  • When the dim nights were moonless, have I known
  • Joys which no tongue can tell; my pale lip quivers
  • When thought revisits them:--know thou alone, _535
  • That after many wondrous years were flown,
  • I was awakened by a shriek of woe;
  • And over me a mystic robe was thrown,
  • By viewless hands, and a bright Star did glow
  • Before my steps--the Snake then met his mortal foe.' _540
  • 47.
  • 'Thou fearest not then the Serpent on thy heart?'
  • 'Fear it!' she said, with brief and passionate cry,
  • And spake no more: that silence made me start--
  • I looked, and we were sailing pleasantly,
  • Swift as a cloud between the sea and sky; _545
  • Beneath the rising moon seen far away,
  • Mountains of ice, like sapphire, piled on high,
  • Hemming the horizon round, in silence lay
  • On the still waters--these we did approach alway.
  • 48.
  • And swift and swifter grew the vessel's motion, _550
  • So that a dizzy trance fell on my brain--
  • Wild music woke me; we had passed the ocean
  • Which girds the pole, Nature's remotest reign--
  • And we glode fast o'er a pellucid plain
  • Of waters, azure with the noontide day. _555
  • Ethereal mountains shone around--a Fane
  • Stood in the midst, girt by green isles which lay
  • On the blue sunny deep, resplendent far away.
  • 49.
  • It was a Temple, such as mortal hand
  • Has never built, nor ecstasy, nor dream _560
  • Reared in the cities of enchanted land:
  • 'Twas likest Heaven, ere yet day's purple stream
  • Ebbs o'er the western forest, while the gleam
  • Of the unrisen moon among the clouds
  • Is gathering--when with many a golden beam _565
  • The thronging constellations rush in crowds,
  • Paving with fire the sky and the marmoreal floods.
  • 50.
  • Like what may be conceived of this vast dome,
  • When from the depths which thought can seldom pierce
  • Genius beholds it rise, his native home, _570
  • Girt by the deserts of the Universe;
  • Yet, nor in painting's light, or mightier verse,
  • Or sculpture's marble language, can invest
  • That shape to mortal sense--such glooms immerse
  • That incommunicable sight, and rest _575
  • Upon the labouring brain and overburdened breast.
  • 51.
  • Winding among the lawny islands fair,
  • Whose blosmy forests starred the shadowy deep,
  • The wingless boat paused where an ivory stair
  • Its fretwork in the crystal sea did steep, _580
  • Encircling that vast Fane's aerial heap:
  • We disembarked, and through a portal wide
  • We passed--whose roof of moonstone carved, did keep
  • A glimmering o'er the forms on every side,
  • Sculptures like life and thought, immovable, deep-eyed. _585
  • 52.
  • We came to a vast hall, whose glorious roof
  • Was diamond, which had drunk the lightning's sheen
  • In darkness, and now poured it through the woof
  • Of spell-inwoven clouds hung there to screen
  • Its blinding splendour--through such veil was seen _590
  • That work of subtlest power, divine and rare;
  • Orb above orb, with starry shapes between,
  • And horned moons, and meteors strange and fair,
  • On night-black columns poised--one hollow hemisphere!
  • 53.
  • Ten thousand columns in that quivering light _595
  • Distinct--between whose shafts wound far away
  • The long and labyrinthine aisles--more bright
  • With their own radiance than the Heaven of Day;
  • And on the jasper walls around, there lay
  • Paintings, the poesy of mightiest thought, _600
  • Which did the Spirit's history display;
  • A tale of passionate change, divinely taught,
  • Which, in their winged dance, unconscious Genii wrought.
  • 54.
  • Beneath, there sate on many a sapphire throne,
  • The Great, who had departed from mankind, _605
  • A mighty Senate;--some, whose white hair shone
  • Like mountain snow, mild, beautiful, and blind;
  • Some, female forms, whose gestures beamed with mind;
  • And ardent youths, and children bright and fair;
  • And some had lyres whose strings were intertwined _610
  • With pale and clinging flames, which ever there
  • Waked faint yet thrilling sounds that pierced the crystal air.
  • 55.
  • One seat was vacant in the midst, a throne,
  • Reared on a pyramid like sculptured flame,
  • Distinct with circling steps which rested on _615
  • Their own deep fire--soon as the Woman came
  • Into that hall, she shrieked the Spirit's name
  • And fell; and vanished slowly from the sight.
  • Darkness arose from her dissolving frame,
  • Which gathering, filled that dome of woven light, _620
  • Blotting its sphered stars with supernatural night.
  • 56.
  • Then first, two glittering lights were seen to glide
  • In circles on the amethystine floor,
  • Small serpent eyes trailing from side to side,
  • Like meteors on a river's grassy shore, _625
  • They round each other rolled, dilating more
  • And more--then rose, commingling into one,
  • One clear and mighty planet hanging o'er
  • A cloud of deepest shadow, which was thrown
  • Athwart the glowing steps and the crystalline throne. _630
  • 57.
  • The cloud which rested on that cone of flame
  • Was cloven; beneath the planet sate a Form,
  • Fairer than tongue can speak or thought may frame,
  • The radiance of whose limbs rose-like and warm
  • Flowed forth, and did with softest light inform _635
  • The shadowy dome, the sculptures, and the state
  • Of those assembled shapes--with clinging charm
  • Sinking upon their hearts and mine. He sate
  • Majestic, yet most mild--calm, yet compassionate.
  • 58.
  • Wonder and joy a passing faintness threw _640
  • Over my brow--a hand supported me,
  • Whose touch was magic strength; an eye of blue
  • Looked into mine, like moonlight, soothingly;
  • And a voice said:--'Thou must a listener be
  • This day--two mighty Spirits now return, _645
  • Like birds of calm, from the world's raging sea,
  • They pour fresh light from Hope's immortal urn;
  • A tale of human power--despair not--list and learn!
  • 59.
  • I looked, and lo! one stood forth eloquently.
  • His eyes were dark and deep, and the clear brow _650
  • Which shadowed them was like the morning sky,
  • The cloudless Heaven of Spring, when in their flow
  • Through the bright air, the soft winds as they blow
  • Wake the green world--his gestures did obey
  • The oracular mind that made his features glow, _655
  • And where his curved lips half-open lay,
  • Passion's divinest stream had made impetuous way.
  • 60.
  • Beneath the darkness of his outspread hair
  • He stood thus beautiful; but there was One
  • Who sate beside him like his shadow there, _660
  • And held his hand--far lovelier; she was known
  • To be thus fair, by the few lines alone
  • Which through her floating locks and gathered cloak,
  • Glances of soul-dissolving glory, shone:--
  • None else beheld her eyes--in him they woke _665
  • Memories which found a tongue as thus he silence broke.
  • CANTO 2.
  • 1.
  • The starlight smile of children, the sweet looks
  • Of women, the fair breast from which I fed,
  • The murmur of the unreposing brooks,
  • And the green light which, shifting overhead, _670
  • Some tangled bower of vines around me shed,
  • The shells on the sea-sand, and the wild flowers,
  • The lamp-light through the rafters cheerly spread,
  • And on the twining flax--in life's young hours
  • These sights and sounds did nurse my spirit's folded powers. _675
  • 2.
  • In Argolis, beside the echoing sea,
  • Such impulses within my mortal frame
  • Arose, and they were dear to memory,
  • Like tokens of the dead:--but others came
  • Soon, in another shape: the wondrous fame _680
  • Of the past world, the vital words and deeds
  • Of minds whom neither time nor change can tame,
  • Traditions dark and old, whence evil creeds
  • Start forth, and whose dim shade a stream of poison feeds.
  • 3.
  • I heard, as all have heard, the various story _685
  • Of human life, and wept unwilling tears.
  • Feeble historians of its shame and glory,
  • False disputants on all its hopes and fears,
  • Victims who worshipped ruin, chroniclers
  • Of daily scorn, and slaves who loathed their state _690
  • Yet, flattering power, had given its ministers
  • A throne of judgement in the grave:--'twas fate,
  • That among such as these my youth should seek its mate.
  • 4.
  • The land in which I lived, by a fell bane
  • Was withered up. Tyrants dwelt side by side, _695
  • And stabled in our homes,--until the chain
  • Stifled the captive's cry, and to abide
  • That blasting curse men had no shame--all vied
  • In evil, slave and despot; fear with lust
  • Strange fellowship through mutual hate had tied, _700
  • Like two dark serpents tangled in the dust,
  • Which on the paths of men their mingling poison thrust.
  • 5.
  • Earth, our bright home, its mountains and its waters,
  • And the ethereal shapes which are suspended
  • Over its green expanse, and those fair daughters, _705
  • The clouds, of Sun and Ocean, who have blended
  • The colours of the air since first extended
  • It cradled the young world, none wandered forth
  • To see or feel; a darkness had descended
  • On every heart; the light which shows its worth, _710
  • Must among gentle thoughts and fearless take its birth.
  • 6.
  • This vital world, this home of happy spirits,
  • Was as a dungeon to my blasted kind;
  • All that despair from murdered hope inherits
  • They sought, and in their helpless misery blind, _715
  • A deeper prison and heavier chains did find,
  • And stronger tyrants:--a dark gulf before,
  • The realm of a stern Ruler, yawned; behind,
  • Terror and Time conflicting drove, and bore
  • On their tempestuous flood the shrieking wretch from shore. _720
  • 7.
  • Out of that Ocean's wrecks had Guilt and Woe
  • Framed a dark dwelling for their homeless thought,
  • And, starting at the ghosts which to and fro
  • Glide o'er its dim and gloomy strand, had brought
  • The worship thence which they each other taught. _725
  • Well might men loathe their life, well might they turn
  • Even to the ills again from which they sought
  • Such refuge after death!--well might they learn
  • To gaze on this fair world with hopeless unconcern!
  • 8.
  • For they all pined in bondage; body and soul, _730
  • Tyrant and slave, victim and torturer, bent
  • Before one Power, to which supreme control
  • Over their will by their own weakness lent,
  • Made all its many names omnipotent;
  • All symbols of things evil, all divine; _735
  • And hymns of blood or mockery, which rent
  • The air from all its fanes, did intertwine
  • Imposture's impious toils round each discordant shrine.
  • 9.
  • I heard, as all have heard, life's various story,
  • And in no careless heart transcribed the tale; _740
  • But, from the sneers of men who had grown hoary
  • In shame and scorn, from groans of crowds made pale
  • By famine, from a mother's desolate wail
  • O'er her polluted child, from innocent blood
  • Poured on the earth, and brows anxious and pale _745
  • With the heart's warfare, did I gather food
  • To feed my many thoughts--a tameless multitude!
  • 10.
  • I wandered through the wrecks of days departed
  • Far by the desolated shore, when even
  • O'er the still sea and jagged islets darted _750
  • The light of moonrise; in the northern Heaven,
  • Among the clouds near the horizon driven,
  • The mountains lay beneath one planet pale;
  • Around me, broken tombs and columns riven
  • Looked vast in twilight, and the sorrowing gale _755
  • Waked in those ruins gray its everlasting wail!
  • 11.
  • I knew not who had framed these wonders then,
  • Nor had I heard the story of their deeds;
  • But dwellings of a race of mightier men,
  • And monuments of less ungentle creeds _760
  • Tell their own tale to him who wisely heeds
  • The language which they speak; and now, to me
  • The moonlight making pale the blooming weeds,
  • The bright stars shining in the breathless sea,
  • Interpreted those scrolls of mortal mystery. _765
  • 12.
  • Such man has been, and such may yet become!
  • Ay, wiser, greater, gentler even than they
  • Who on the fragments of yon shattered dome
  • Have stamped the sign of power--I felt the sway
  • Of the vast stream of ages bear away _770
  • My floating thoughts--my heart beat loud and fast--
  • Even as a storm let loose beneath the ray
  • Of the still moon, my spirit onward passed
  • Beneath truth's steady beams upon its tumult cast.
  • 13.
  • It shall be thus no more! too long, too long, _775
  • Sons of the glorious dead, have ye lain bound
  • In darkness and in ruin!--Hope is strong,
  • Justice and Truth their winged child have found--
  • Awake! arise! until the mighty sound
  • Of your career shall scatter in its gust _780
  • The thrones of the oppressor, and the ground
  • Hide the last altar's unregarded dust,
  • Whose Idol has so long betrayed your impious trust!
  • 14.
  • It must be so--I will arise and waken
  • The multitude, and like a sulphurous hill, _785
  • Which on a sudden from its snows has shaken
  • The swoon of ages, it shall burst and fill
  • The world with cleansing fire; it must, it will--
  • It may not be restrained!--and who shall stand
  • Amid the rocking earthquake steadfast still, _790
  • But Laon? on high Freedom's desert land
  • A tower whose marble walls the leagued storms withstand!
  • 15.
  • One summer night, in commune with the hope
  • Thus deeply fed, amid those ruins gray
  • I watched, beneath the dark sky's starry cope; _795
  • And ever from that hour upon me lay
  • The burden of this hope, and night or day,
  • In vision or in dream, clove to my breast:
  • Among mankind, or when gone far away
  • To the lone shores and mountains, 'twas a guest _800
  • Which followed where I fled, and watched when I did rest.
  • 16.
  • These hopes found words through which my spirit sought
  • To weave a bondage of such sympathy,
  • As might create some response to the thought
  • Which ruled me now--and as the vapours lie _805
  • Bright in the outspread morning's radiancy,
  • So were these thoughts invested with the light
  • Of language: and all bosoms made reply
  • On which its lustre streamed, whene'er it might
  • Through darkness wide and deep those tranced spirits smite. _810
  • 17.
  • Yes, many an eye with dizzy tears was dim,
  • And oft I thought to clasp my own heart's brother,
  • When I could feel the listener's senses swim,
  • And hear his breath its own swift gaspings smother
  • Even as my words evoked them--and another, _815
  • And yet another, I did fondly deem,
  • Felt that we all were sons of one great mother;
  • And the cold truth such sad reverse did seem
  • As to awake in grief from some delightful dream.
  • 18.
  • Yes, oft beside the ruined labyrinth _820
  • Which skirts the hoary caves of the green deep,
  • Did Laon and his friend, on one gray plinth,
  • Round whose worn base the wild waves hiss and leap,
  • Resting at eve, a lofty converse keep:
  • And that this friend was false, may now be said _825
  • Calmly--that he like other men could weep
  • Tears which are lies, and could betray and spread
  • Snares for that guileless heart which for his own had bled.
  • 19.
  • Then, had no great aim recompensed my sorrow,
  • I must have sought dark respite from its stress _830
  • In dreamless rest, in sleep that sees no morrow--
  • For to tread life's dismaying wilderness
  • Without one smile to cheer, one voice to bless,
  • Amid the snares and scoffs of human kind,
  • Is hard--but I betrayed it not, nor less _835
  • With love that scorned return sought to unbind
  • The interwoven clouds which make its wisdom blind.
  • 20.
  • With deathless minds which leave where they have passed
  • A path of light, my soul communion knew;
  • Till from that glorious intercourse, at last, _840
  • As from a mine of magic store, I drew
  • Words which were weapons;--round my heart there grew
  • The adamantine armour of their power;
  • And from my fancy wings of golden hue
  • Sprang forth--yet not alone from wisdom's tower, _845
  • A minister of truth, these plumes young Laon bore.
  • 21.
  • An orphan with my parents lived, whose eyes
  • Were lodestars of delight, which drew me home
  • When I might wander forth; nor did I prize
  • Aught human thing beneath Heaven's mighty dome _850
  • Beyond this child; so when sad hours were come,
  • And baffled hope like ice still clung to me,
  • Since kin were cold, and friends had now become
  • Heartless and false, I turned from all, to be,
  • Cythna, the only source of tears and smiles to thee. _855
  • 22.
  • What wert thou then? A child most infantine,
  • Yet wandering far beyond that innocent age
  • In all but its sweet looks and mien divine;
  • Even then, methought, with the world's tyrant rage
  • A patient warfare thy young heart did wage, _860
  • When those soft eyes of scarcely conscious thought
  • Some tale, or thine own fancies, would engage
  • To overflow with tears, or converse fraught
  • With passion, o'er their depths its fleeting light had wrought.
  • 23.
  • She moved upon this earth a shape of brightness, _865
  • A power, that from its objects scarcely drew
  • One impulse of her being--in her lightness
  • Most like some radiant cloud of morning dew,
  • Which wanders through the waste air's pathless blue,
  • To nourish some far desert; she did seem _870
  • Beside me, gathering beauty as she grew,
  • Like the bright shade of some immortal dream
  • Which walks, when tempest sleeps, the wave of life's dark stream.
  • 24.
  • As mine own shadow was this child to me,
  • A second self, far dearer and more fair; _875
  • Which clothed in undissolving radiancy
  • All those steep paths which languor and despair
  • Of human things, had made so dark and bare,
  • But which I trod alone--nor, till bereft
  • Of friends, and overcome by lonely care, _880
  • Knew I what solace for that loss was left,
  • Though by a bitter wound my trusting heart was cleft.
  • 25.
  • Once she was dear, now she was all I had
  • To love in human life--this playmate sweet,
  • This child of twelve years old--so she was made _885
  • My sole associate, and her willing feet
  • Wandered with mine where earth and ocean meet,
  • Beyond the aereal mountains whose vast cells
  • The unreposing billows ever beat,
  • Through forests wild and old, and lawny dells _890
  • Where boughs of incense droop over the emerald wells.
  • 26.
  • And warm and light I felt her clasping hand
  • When twined in mine; she followed where I went,
  • Through the lone paths of our immortal land.
  • It had no waste but some memorial lent _895
  • Which strung me to my toil--some monument
  • Vital with mind; then Cythna by my side,
  • Until the bright and beaming day were spent,
  • Would rest, with looks entreating to abide,
  • Too earnest and too sweet ever to be denied. _900
  • 27.
  • And soon I could not have refused her--thus
  • For ever, day and night, we two were ne'er
  • Parted, but when brief sleep divided us:
  • And when the pauses of the lulling air
  • Of noon beside the sea had made a lair _905
  • For her soothed senses, in my arms she slept,
  • And I kept watch over her slumbers there,
  • While, as the shifting visions over her swept,
  • Amid her innocent rest by turns she smiled and wept.
  • 28.
  • And, in the murmur of her dreams was heard _910
  • Sometimes the name of Laon:--suddenly
  • She would arise, and, like the secret bird
  • Whom sunset wakens, fill the shore and sky
  • With her sweet accents, a wild melody!
  • Hymns which my soul had woven to Freedom, strong _915
  • The source of passion, whence they rose, to be;
  • Triumphant strains, which, like a spirit's tongue,
  • To the enchanted waves that child of glory sung--
  • 29.
  • Her white arms lifted through the shadowy stream
  • Of her loose hair. Oh, excellently great _920
  • Seemed to me then my purpose, the vast theme
  • Of those impassioned songs, when Cythna sate
  • Amid the calm which rapture doth create
  • After its tumult, her heart vibrating,
  • Her spirit o'er the Ocean's floating state _925
  • From her deep eyes far wandering, on the wing
  • Of visions that were mine, beyond its utmost spring!
  • 30.
  • For, before Cythna loved it, had my song
  • Peopled with thoughts the boundless universe,
  • A mighty congregation, which were strong _930
  • Where'er they trod the darkness to disperse
  • The cloud of that unutterable curse
  • Which clings upon mankind:--all things became
  • Slaves to my holy and heroic verse,
  • Earth, sea and sky, the planets, life and fame _935
  • And fate, or whate'er else binds the world's wondrous frame.
  • 31.
  • And this beloved child thus felt the sway
  • Of my conceptions, gathering like a cloud
  • The very wind on which it rolls away:
  • Hers too were all my thoughts, ere yet, endowed _940
  • With music and with light, their fountains flowed
  • In poesy; and her still and earnest face,
  • Pallid with feelings which intensely glowed
  • Within, was turned on mine with speechless grace,
  • Watching the hopes which there her heart had learned to trace. _945
  • 32.
  • In me, communion with this purest being
  • Kindled intenser zeal, and made me wise
  • In knowledge, which, in hers mine own mind seeing,
  • Left in the human world few mysteries:
  • How without fear of evil or disguise _950
  • Was Cythna!--what a spirit strong and mild,
  • Which death, or pain or peril could despise,
  • Yet melt in tenderness! what genius wild
  • Yet mighty, was enclosed within one simple child!
  • 33.
  • New lore was this--old age with its gray hair, _955
  • And wrinkled legends of unworthy things,
  • And icy sneers, is nought: it cannot dare
  • To burst the chains which life for ever flings
  • On the entangled soul's aspiring wings,
  • So is it cold and cruel, and is made _960
  • The careless slave of that dark power which brings
  • Evil, like blight, on man, who, still betrayed,
  • Laughs o'er the grave in which his living hopes are laid.
  • 34.
  • Nor are the strong and the severe to keep
  • The empire of the world: thus Cythna taught _965
  • Even in the visions of her eloquent sleep,
  • Unconscious of the power through which she wrought
  • The woof of such intelligible thought,
  • As from the tranquil strength which cradled lay
  • In her smile-peopled rest, my spirit sought _970
  • Why the deceiver and the slave has sway
  • O'er heralds so divine of truth's arising day.
  • 35.
  • Within that fairest form, the female mind,
  • Untainted by the poison clouds which rest
  • On the dark world, a sacred home did find: _975
  • But else, from the wide earth's maternal breast,
  • Victorious Evil, which had dispossessed
  • All native power, had those fair children torn,
  • And made them slaves to soothe his vile unrest,
  • And minister to lust its joys forlorn, _980
  • Till they had learned to breathe the atmosphere of scorn.
  • 36.
  • This misery was but coldly felt, till she
  • Became my only friend, who had endued
  • My purpose with a wider sympathy;
  • Thus, Cythna mourned with me the servitude _985
  • In which the half of humankind were mewed
  • Victims of lust and hate, the slaves of slaves,
  • She mourned that grace and power were thrown as food
  • To the hyena lust, who, among graves,
  • Over his loathed meal, laughing in agony, raves. _990
  • 37.
  • And I, still gazing on that glorious child,
  • Even as these thoughts flushed o'er her:--'Cythna sweet,
  • Well with the world art thou unreconciled;
  • Never will peace and human nature meet
  • Till free and equal man and woman greet _995
  • Domestic peace; and ere this power can make
  • In human hearts its calm and holy seat,
  • This slavery must be broken'--as I spake,
  • From Cythna's eyes a light of exultation brake.
  • 38.
  • She replied earnestly:--'It shall be mine, _1000
  • This task,--mine, Laon!--thou hast much to gain;
  • Nor wilt thou at poor Cythna's pride repine,
  • If she should lead a happy female train
  • To meet thee over the rejoicing plain,
  • When myriads at thy call shall throng around _1005
  • The Golden City.'--Then the child did strain
  • My arm upon her tremulous heart, and wound
  • Her own about my neck, till some reply she found.
  • 39.
  • I smiled, and spake not.--'Wherefore dost thou smile
  • At what I say? Laon, I am not weak, _1010
  • And, though my cheek might become pale the while,
  • With thee, if thou desirest, will I seek
  • Through their array of banded slaves to wreak
  • Ruin upon the tyrants. I had thought
  • It was more hard to turn my unpractised cheek _1015
  • To scorn and shame, and this beloved spot
  • And thee, O dearest friend, to leave and murmur not.
  • 40.
  • 'Whence came I what I am? Thou, Laon, knowest
  • How a young child should thus undaunted be;
  • Methinks, it is a power which thou bestowest, _1020
  • Through which I seek, by most resembling thee,
  • So to become most good and great and free;
  • Yet far beyond this Ocean's utmost roar,
  • In towers and huts are many like to me,
  • Who, could they see thine eyes, or feel such lore _1025
  • As I have learnt from them, like me would fear no more.
  • 41.
  • 'Think'st thou that I shall speak unskilfully,
  • And none will heed me? I remember now,
  • How once, a slave in tortures doomed to die,
  • Was saved, because in accents sweet and low _1030
  • He sung a song his Judge loved long ago,
  • As he was led to death.--All shall relent
  • Who hear me--tears, as mine have flowed, shall flow,
  • Hearts beat as mine now beats, with such intent
  • As renovates the world; a will omnipotent! _1035
  • 42.
  • 'Yes, I will tread Pride's golden palaces,
  • Through Penury's roofless huts and squalid cells
  • Will I descend, where'er in abjectness
  • Woman with some vile slave her tyrant dwells,
  • There with the music of thine own sweet spells _1040
  • Will disenchant the captives, and will pour
  • For the despairing, from the crystal wells
  • Of thy deep spirit, reason's mighty lore,
  • And power shall then abound, and hope arise once more.
  • 43.
  • 'Can man be free if woman be a slave? _1045
  • Chain one who lives, and breathes this boundless air,
  • To the corruption of a closed grave!
  • Can they whose mates are beasts, condemned to bear
  • Scorn, heavier far than toil or anguish, dare
  • To trample their oppressors? in their home _1050
  • Among their babes, thou knowest a curse would wear
  • The shape of woman--hoary Crime would come
  • Behind, and Fraud rebuild religion's tottering dome.
  • 44.
  • 'I am a child:--I would not yet depart.
  • When I go forth alone, bearing the lamp _1055
  • Aloft which thou hast kindled in my heart,
  • Millions of slaves from many a dungeon damp
  • Shall leap in joy, as the benumbing cramp
  • Of ages leaves their limbs--no ill may harm
  • Thy Cythna ever--truth its radiant stamp _1060
  • Has fixed, as an invulnerable charm,
  • Upon her children's brow, dark Falsehood to disarm.
  • 45.
  • 'Wait yet awhile for the appointed day--
  • Thou wilt depart, and I with tears shall stand
  • Watching thy dim sail skirt the ocean gray; _1065
  • Amid the dwellers of this lonely land
  • I shall remain alone--and thy command
  • Shall then dissolve the world's unquiet trance,
  • And, multitudinous as the desert sand
  • Borne on the storm, its millions shall advance, _1070
  • Thronging round thee, the light of their deliverance.
  • 46.
  • 'Then, like the forests of some pathless mountain,
  • Which from remotest glens two warring winds
  • Involve in fire which not the loosened fountain
  • Of broadest floods might quench, shall all the kinds _1075
  • Of evil, catch from our uniting minds
  • The spark which must consume them;--Cythna then
  • Will have cast off the impotence that binds
  • Her childhood now, and through the paths of men
  • Will pass, as the charmed bird that haunts the serpent's den. _1080
  • 47.
  • 'We part!--O Laon, I must dare nor tremble,
  • To meet those looks no more!--Oh, heavy stroke!
  • Sweet brother of my soul! can I dissemble
  • The agony of this thought?'--As thus she spoke
  • The gathered sobs her quivering accents broke, _1085
  • And in my arms she hid her beating breast.
  • I remained still for tears--sudden she woke
  • As one awakes from sleep, and wildly pressed
  • My bosom, her whole frame impetuously possessed.
  • 48.
  • 'We part to meet again--but yon blue waste, _1090
  • Yon desert wide and deep, holds no recess,
  • Within whose happy silence, thus embraced
  • We might survive all ills in one caress:
  • Nor doth the grave--I fear 'tis passionless--
  • Nor yon cold vacant Heaven:--we meet again _1095
  • Within the minds of men, whose lips shall bless
  • Our memory, and whose hopes its light retain
  • When these dissevered bones are trodden in the plain.'
  • 49.
  • I could not speak, though she had ceased, for now
  • The fountains of her feeling, swift and deep, _1100
  • Seemed to suspend the tumult of their flow;
  • So we arose, and by the starlight steep
  • Went homeward--neither did we speak nor weep,
  • But, pale, were calm with passion--thus subdued
  • Like evening shades that o'er the mountains creep, _1105
  • We moved towards our home; where, in this mood,
  • Each from the other sought refuge in solitude.
  • CANTO 3.
  • 1.
  • What thoughts had sway o'er Cythna's lonely slumber
  • That night, I know not; but my own did seem
  • As if they might ten thousand years outnumber _1110
  • Of waking life, the visions of a dream
  • Which hid in one dim gulf the troubled stream
  • Of mind; a boundless chaos wild and vast,
  • Whose limits yet were never memory's theme:
  • And I lay struggling as its whirlwinds passed, _1115
  • Sometimes for rapture sick, sometimes for pain aghast.
  • 2.
  • Two hours, whose mighty circle did embrace
  • More time than might make gray the infant world,
  • Rolled thus, a weary and tumultuous space:
  • When the third came, like mist on breezes curled, _1120
  • From my dim sleep a shadow was unfurled:
  • Methought, upon the threshold of a cave
  • I sate with Cythna; drooping briony, pearled
  • With dew from the wild streamlet's shattered wave,
  • Hung, where we sate to taste the joys which Nature gave. _1125
  • 3.
  • We lived a day as we were wont to live,
  • But Nature had a robe of glory on,
  • And the bright air o'er every shape did weave
  • Intenser hues, so that the herbless stone,
  • The leafless bough among the leaves alone, _1130
  • Had being clearer than its own could be,
  • And Cythna's pure and radiant self was shown,
  • In this strange vision, so divine to me,
  • That if I loved before, now love was agony.
  • 4.
  • Morn fled, noon came, evening, then night descended, _1135
  • And we prolonged calm talk beneath the sphere
  • Of the calm moon--when suddenly was blended
  • With our repose a nameless sense of fear;
  • And from the cave behind I seemed to hear
  • Sounds gathering upwards!--accents incomplete, _1140
  • And stifled shrieks,--and now, more near and near,
  • A tumult and a rush of thronging feet
  • The cavern's secret depths beneath the earth did beat.
  • 5.
  • The scene was changed, and away, away, away!
  • Through the air and over the sea we sped, _1145
  • And Cythna in my sheltering bosom lay,
  • And the winds bore me--through the darkness spread
  • Around, the gaping earth then vomited
  • Legions of foul and ghastly shapes, which hung
  • Upon my flight; and ever, as we fled, _1150
  • They plucked at Cythna--soon to me then clung
  • A sense of actual things those monstrous dreams among.
  • 6.
  • And I lay struggling in the impotence
  • Of sleep, while outward life had burst its bound,
  • Though, still deluded, strove the tortured sense _1155
  • To its dire wanderings to adapt the sound
  • Which in the light of morn was poured around
  • Our dwelling; breathless, pale and unaware
  • I rose, and all the cottage crowded found
  • With armed men, whose glittering swords were bare, _1160
  • And whose degraded limbs the tyrant's garb did wear.
  • 7.
  • And, ere with rapid lips and gathered brow
  • I could demand the cause--a feeble shriek--
  • It was a feeble shriek, faint, far and low,
  • Arrested me--my mien grew calm and meek, _1165
  • And grasping a small knife, I went to seek
  • That voice among the crowd--'twas Cythna's cry!
  • Beneath most calm resolve did agony wreak
  • Its whirlwind rage:--so I passed quietly
  • Till I beheld, where bound, that dearest child did lie. _1170
  • 8.
  • I started to behold her, for delight
  • And exultation, and a joyance free,
  • Solemn, serene and lofty, filled the light
  • Of the calm smile with which she looked on me:
  • So that I feared some brainless ecstasy, _1175
  • Wrought from that bitter woe, had wildered her--
  • 'Farewell! farewell!' she said, as I drew nigh;
  • 'At first my peace was marred by this strange stir,
  • Now I am calm as truth--its chosen minister.
  • 9.
  • 'Look not so, Laon--say farewell in hope, _1180
  • These bloody men are but the slaves who bear
  • Their mistress to her task--it was my scope
  • The slavery where they drag me now, to share,
  • And among captives willing chains to wear
  • Awhile--the rest thou knowest--return, dear friend! _1185
  • Let our first triumph trample the despair
  • Which would ensnare us now, for in the end,
  • In victory or in death our hopes and fears must blend.'
  • 10.
  • These words had fallen on my unheeding ear,
  • Whilst I had watched the motions of the crew _1190
  • With seeming-careless glance; not many were
  • Around her, for their comrades just withdrew
  • To guard some other victim--so I drew
  • My knife, and with one impulse, suddenly
  • All unaware three of their number slew, _1195
  • And grasped a fourth by the throat, and with loud cry
  • My countrymen invoked to death or liberty!
  • 11.
  • What followed then, I know not--for a stroke
  • On my raised arm and naked head, came down,
  • Filling my eyes with blood.--When I awoke, _1200
  • I felt that they had bound me in my swoon,
  • And up a rock which overhangs the town,
  • By the steep path were bearing me; below,
  • The plain was filled with slaughter,--overthrown
  • The vineyards and the harvests, and the glow _1205
  • Of blazing roofs shone far o'er the white Ocean's flow.
  • 12.
  • Upon that rock a mighty column stood,
  • Whose capital seemed sculptured in the sky,
  • Which to the wanderers o'er the solitude
  • Of distant seas, from ages long gone by, _1210
  • Had made a landmark; o'er its height to fly
  • Scarcely the cloud, the vulture, or the blast,
  • Has power--and when the shades of evening lie
  • On Earth and Ocean, its carved summits cast
  • The sunken daylight far through the aerial waste. _1215
  • 13.
  • They bore me to a cavern in the hill
  • Beneath that column, and unbound me there;
  • And one did strip me stark; and one did fill
  • A vessel from the putrid pool; one bare
  • A lighted torch, and four with friendless care _1220
  • Guided my steps the cavern-paths along,
  • Then up a steep and dark and narrow stair
  • We wound, until the torch's fiery tongue
  • Amid the gushing day beamless and pallid hung.
  • 14.
  • They raised me to the platform of the pile, _1225
  • That column's dizzy height:--the grate of brass
  • Through which they thrust me, open stood the while,
  • As to its ponderous and suspended mass,
  • With chains which eat into the flesh, alas!
  • With brazen links, my naked limbs they bound: _1230
  • The grate, as they departed to repass,
  • With horrid clangour fell, and the far sound
  • Of their retiring steps in the dense gloom was drowned.
  • 15.
  • The noon was calm and bright:--around that column
  • The overhanging sky and circling sea _1235
  • Spread forth in silentness profound and solemn
  • The darkness of brief frenzy cast on me,
  • So that I knew not my own misery:
  • The islands and the mountains in the day
  • Like clouds reposed afar; and I could see _1240
  • The town among the woods below that lay,
  • And the dark rocks which bound the bright and glassy bay.
  • 16.
  • It was so calm, that scarce the feathery weed
  • Sown by some eagle on the topmost stone
  • Swayed in the air:--so bright, that noon did breed _1245
  • No shadow in the sky beside mine own--
  • Mine, and the shadow of my chain alone.
  • Below, the smoke of roofs involved in flame
  • Rested like night, all else was clearly shown
  • In that broad glare; yet sound to me none came, _1250
  • But of the living blood that ran within my frame.
  • 17.
  • The peace of madness fled, and ah, too soon!
  • A ship was lying on the sunny main,
  • Its sails were flagging in the breathless noon--
  • Its shadow lay beyond--that sight again _1255
  • Waked, with its presence, in my tranced brain
  • The stings of a known sorrow, keen and cold:
  • I knew that ship bore Cythna o'er the plain
  • Of waters, to her blighting slavery sold,
  • And watched it with such thoughts as must remain untold. _1260
  • 18.
  • I watched until the shades of evening wrapped
  • Earth like an exhalation--then the bark
  • Moved, for that calm was by the sunset snapped.
  • It moved a speck upon the Ocean dark:
  • Soon the wan stars came forth, and I could mark _1265
  • Its path no more!--I sought to close mine eyes,
  • But like the balls, their lids were stiff and stark;
  • I would have risen, but ere that I could rise,
  • My parched skin was split with piercing agonies.
  • 19.
  • I gnawed my brazen chain, and sought to sever _1270
  • Its adamantine links, that I might die:
  • O Liberty! forgive the base endeavour,
  • Forgive me, if, reserved for victory,
  • The Champion of thy faith e'er sought to fly.--
  • That starry night, with its clear silence, sent _1275
  • Tameless resolve which laughed at misery
  • Into my soul--linked remembrance lent
  • To that such power, to me such a severe content.
  • 20.
  • To breathe, to be, to hope, or to despair
  • And die, I questioned not; nor, though the Sun _1280
  • Its shafts of agony kindling through the air
  • Moved over me, nor though in evening dun,
  • Or when the stars their visible courses run,
  • Or morning, the wide universe was spread
  • In dreary calmness round me, did I shun _1285
  • Its presence, nor seek refuge with the dead
  • From one faint hope whose flower a dropping poison shed.
  • 21.
  • Two days thus passed--I neither raved nor died--
  • Thirst raged within me, like a scorpion's nest
  • Built in mine entrails; I had spurned aside _1290
  • The water-vessel, while despair possessed
  • My thoughts, and now no drop remained! The uprest
  • Of the third sun brought hunger--but the crust
  • Which had been left, was to my craving breast
  • Fuel, not food. I chewed the bitter dust, _1295
  • And bit my bloodless arm, and licked the brazen rust.
  • 22.
  • My brain began to fail when the fourth morn
  • Burst o'er the golden isles--a fearful sleep,
  • Which through the caverns dreary and forlorn
  • Of the riven soul, sent its foul dreams to sweep _1300
  • With whirlwind swiftness--a fall far and deep,--
  • A gulf, a void, a sense of senselessness--
  • These things dwelt in me, even as shadows keep
  • Their watch in some dim charnel's loneliness,
  • A shoreless sea, a sky sunless and planetless! _1305
  • 23.
  • The forms which peopled this terrific trance
  • I well remember--like a choir of devils,
  • Around me they involved a giddy dance;
  • Legions seemed gathering from the misty levels
  • Of Ocean, to supply those ceaseless revels, _1310
  • Foul, ceaseless shadows:--thought could not divide
  • The actual world from these entangling evils,
  • Which so bemocked themselves, that I descried
  • All shapes like mine own self, hideously multiplied.
  • 24.
  • The sense of day and night, of false and true, _1315
  • Was dead within me. Yet two visions burst
  • That darkness--one, as since that hour I knew,
  • Was not a phantom of the realms accursed,
  • Where then my spirit dwelt--but of the first
  • I know not yet, was it a dream or no. _1320
  • But both, though not distincter, were immersed
  • In hues which, when through memory's waste they flow,
  • Make their divided streams more bright and rapid now.
  • 25.
  • Methought that grate was lifted, and the seven
  • Who brought me thither four stiff corpses bare, _1325
  • And from the frieze to the four winds of Heaven
  • Hung them on high by the entangled hair;
  • Swarthy were three--the fourth was very fair;
  • As they retired, the golden moon upsprung,
  • And eagerly, out in the giddy air, _1330
  • Leaning that I might eat, I stretched and clung
  • Over the shapeless depth in which those corpses hung.
  • 26.
  • A woman's shape, now lank and cold and blue,
  • The dwelling of the many-coloured worm,
  • Hung there; the white and hollow cheek I drew _1335
  • To my dry lips--what radiance did inform
  • Those horny eyes? whose was that withered form?
  • Alas, alas! it seemed that Cythna's ghost
  • Laughed in those looks, and that the flesh was warm
  • Within my teeth!--a whirlwind keen as frost _1340
  • Then in its sinking gulfs my sickening spirit tossed.
  • 27.
  • Then seemed it that a tameless hurricane
  • Arose, and bore me in its dark career
  • Beyond the sun, beyond the stars that wane
  • On the verge of formless space--it languished there, _1345
  • And dying, left a silence lone and drear,
  • More horrible than famine:--in the deep
  • The shape of an old man did then appear,
  • Stately and beautiful; that dreadful sleep
  • His heavenly smiles dispersed, and I could wake and weep. _1350
  • 28.
  • And, when the blinding tears had fallen, I saw
  • That column, and those corpses, and the moon,
  • And felt the poisonous tooth of hunger gnaw
  • My vitals, I rejoiced, as if the boon
  • Of senseless death would be accorded soon;-- _1355
  • When from that stony gloom a voice arose,
  • Solemn and sweet as when low winds attune
  • The midnight pines; the grate did then unclose,
  • And on that reverend form the moonlight did repose.
  • 29.
  • He struck my chains, and gently spake and smiled; _1360
  • As they were loosened by that Hermit old,
  • Mine eyes were of their madness half beguiled,
  • To answer those kind looks; he did enfold
  • His giant arms around me, to uphold
  • My wretched frame; my scorched limbs he wound _1365
  • In linen moist and balmy, and as cold
  • As dew to drooping leaves;--the chain, with sound
  • Like earthquake, through the chasm of that steep stair did bound,
  • 30.
  • As, lifting me, it fell!--What next I heard,
  • Were billows leaping on the harbour-bar, _1370
  • And the shrill sea-wind, whose breath idly stirred
  • My hair;--I looked abroad, and saw a star
  • Shining beside a sail, and distant far
  • That mountain and its column, the known mark
  • Of those who in the wide deep wandering are, _1375
  • So that I feared some Spirit, fell and dark,
  • In trance had lain me thus within a fiendish bark.
  • 31.
  • For now indeed, over the salt sea-billow
  • I sailed: yet dared not look upon the shape
  • Of him who ruled the helm, although the pillow _1380
  • For my light head was hollowed in his lap,
  • And my bare limbs his mantle did enwrap,
  • Fearing it was a fiend: at last, he bent
  • O'er me his aged face; as if to snap
  • Those dreadful thoughts the gentle grandsire bent, _1385
  • And to my inmost soul his soothing looks he sent.
  • 32.
  • A soft and healing potion to my lips
  • At intervals he raised--now looked on high,
  • To mark if yet the starry giant dips
  • His zone in the dim sea--now cheeringly, _1390
  • Though he said little, did he speak to me.
  • 'It is a friend beside thee--take good cheer,
  • Poor victim, thou art now at liberty!'
  • I joyed as those a human tone to hear,
  • Who in cells deep and lone have languished many a year. _1395
  • 33.
  • A dim and feeble joy, whose glimpses oft
  • Were quenched in a relapse of wildering dreams;
  • Yet still methought we sailed, until aloft
  • The stars of night grew pallid, and the beams
  • Of morn descended on the ocean-streams, _1400
  • And still that aged man, so grand and mild,
  • Tended me, even as some sick mother seems
  • To hang in hope over a dying child,
  • Till in the azure East darkness again was piled.
  • 34.
  • And then the night-wind steaming from the shore, _1405
  • Sent odours dying sweet across the sea,
  • And the swift boat the little waves which bore,
  • Were cut by its keen keel, though slantingly;
  • Soon I could hear the leaves sigh, and could see
  • The myrtle-blossoms starring the dim grove, _1410
  • As past the pebbly beach the boat did flee
  • On sidelong wing, into a silent cove,
  • Where ebon pines a shade under the starlight wove.
  • NOTES:
  • _1223 torches' editions 1818, 1839.
  • _1385 bent]meant cj. J. Nettleship.
  • CANTO 4.
  • 1.
  • The old man took the oars, and soon the bark
  • Smote on the beach beside a tower of stone; _1415
  • It was a crumbling heap, whose portal dark
  • With blooming ivy-trails was overgrown;
  • Upon whose floor the spangling sands were strown,
  • And rarest sea-shells, which the eternal flood,
  • Slave to the mother of the months, had thrown _1420
  • Within the walls of that gray tower, which stood
  • A changeling of man's art nursed amid Nature's brood.
  • 2.
  • When the old man his boat had anchored,
  • He wound me in his arms with tender care,
  • And very few, but kindly words he said, _1425
  • And bore me through the tower adown a stair,
  • Whose smooth descent some ceaseless step to wear
  • For many a year had fallen.--We came at last
  • To a small chamber, which with mosses rare
  • Was tapestried, where me his soft hands placed _1430
  • Upon a couch of grass and oak-leaves interlaced.
  • 3.
  • The moon was darting through the lattices
  • Its yellow light, warm as the beams of day--
  • So warm, that to admit the dewy breeze,
  • The old man opened them; the moonlight lay _1435
  • Upon a lake whose waters wove their play
  • Even to the threshold of that lonely home:
  • Within was seen in the dim wavering ray
  • The antique sculptured roof, and many a tome
  • Whose lore had made that sage all that he had become. _1440
  • 4.
  • The rock-built barrier of the sea was past,--
  • And I was on the margin of a lake,
  • A lonely lake, amid the forests vast
  • And snowy mountains:--did my spirit wake
  • From sleep as many-coloured as the snake _1445
  • That girds eternity? in life and truth,
  • Might not my heart its cravings ever slake?
  • Was Cythna then a dream, and all my youth,
  • And all its hopes and fears, and all its joy and ruth?
  • 5.
  • Thus madness came again,--a milder madness, _1450
  • Which darkened nought but time's unquiet flow
  • With supernatural shades of clinging sadness;
  • That gentle Hermit, in my helpless woe,
  • By my sick couch was busy to and fro,
  • Like a strong spirit ministrant of good: _1455
  • When I was healed, he led me forth to show
  • The wonders of his sylvan solitude,
  • And we together sate by that isle-fretted flood.
  • 6.
  • He knew his soothing words to weave with skill
  • From all my madness told; like mine own heart, _1460
  • Of Cythna would he question me, until
  • That thrilling name had ceased to make me start,
  • From his familiar lips--it was not art,
  • Of wisdom and of justice when he spoke--
  • When mid soft looks of pity, there would dart _1465
  • A glance as keen as is the lightning's stroke
  • When it doth rive the knots of some ancestral oak.
  • 7.
  • Thus slowly from my brain the darkness rolled,
  • My thoughts their due array did re-assume
  • Through the enchantments of that Hermit old; _1470
  • Then I bethought me of the glorious doom
  • Of those who sternly struggle to relume
  • The lamp of Hope o'er man's bewildered lot,
  • And, sitting by the waters, in the gloom
  • Of eve, to that friend's heart I told my thought-- _1475
  • That heart which had grown old, but had corrupted not.
  • 8.
  • That hoary man had spent his livelong age
  • In converse with the dead, who leave the stamp
  • Of ever-burning thoughts on many a page,
  • When they are gone into the senseless damp _1480
  • Of graves;--his spirit thus became a lamp
  • Of splendour, like to those on which it fed;
  • Through peopled haunts, the City and the Camp,
  • Deep thirst for knowledge had his footsteps led,
  • And all the ways of men among mankind he read. _1485
  • 9.
  • But custom maketh blind and obdurate
  • The loftiest hearts;--he had beheld the woe
  • In which mankind was bound, but deemed that fate
  • Which made them abject, would preserve them so;
  • And in such faith, some steadfast joy to know, _1490
  • He sought this cell: but when fame went abroad
  • That one in Argolis did undergo
  • Torture for liberty, and that the crowd
  • High truths from gifted lips had heard and understood;
  • 10.
  • And that the multitude was gathering wide,-- _1495
  • His spirit leaped within his aged frame;
  • In lonely peace he could no more abide,
  • But to the land on which the victor's flame
  • Had fed, my native land, the Hermit came:
  • Each heart was there a shield, and every tongue _1500
  • Was as a sword of truth--young Laon's name
  • Rallied their secret hopes, though tyrants sung
  • Hymns of triumphant joy our scattered tribes among.
  • 11.
  • He came to the lone column on the rock,
  • And with his sweet and mighty eloquence _1505
  • The hearts of those who watched it did unlock,
  • And made them melt in tears of penitence.
  • They gave him entrance free to bear me thence.
  • 'Since this,' the old man said, 'seven years are spent,
  • While slowly truth on thy benighted sense _1510
  • Has crept; the hope which wildered it has lent
  • Meanwhile, to me the power of a sublime intent.
  • 12.
  • 'Yes, from the records of my youthful state,
  • And from the lore of bards and sages old,
  • From whatsoe'er my wakened thoughts create _1515
  • Out of the hopes of thine aspirings bold,
  • Have I collected language to unfold
  • Truth to my countrymen; from shore to shore
  • Doctrines of human power my words have told,
  • They have been heard, and men aspire to more _1520
  • Than they have ever gained or ever lost of yore.
  • 13.
  • 'In secret chambers parents read, and weep,
  • My writings to their babes, no longer blind;
  • And young men gather when their tyrants sleep,
  • And vows of faith each to the other bind; _1525
  • And marriageable maidens, who have pined
  • With love, till life seemed melting through their look,
  • A warmer zeal, a nobler hope, now find;
  • And every bosom thus is rapt and shook,
  • Like autumn's myriad leaves in one swoln mountain-brook. _1530
  • 14.
  • 'The tyrants of the Golden City tremble
  • At voices which are heard about the streets;
  • The ministers of fraud can scarce dissemble
  • The lies of their own heart, but when one meets
  • Another at the shrine, he inly weets, _1535
  • Though he says nothing, that the truth is known;
  • Murderers are pale upon the judgement-seats,
  • And gold grows vile even to the wealthy crone,
  • And laughter fills the Fane, and curses shake the Throne.
  • 15.
  • 'Kind thoughts, and mighty hopes, and gentle deeds _1540
  • Abound, for fearless love, and the pure law
  • Of mild equality and peace, succeeds
  • To faiths which long have held the world in awe,
  • Bloody and false, and cold:--as whirlpools draw
  • All wrecks of Ocean to their chasm, the sway _1545
  • Of thy strong genius, Laon, which foresaw
  • This hope, compels all spirits to obey,
  • Which round thy secret strength now throng in wide array.
  • 16.
  • 'For I have been thy passive instrument'--
  • (As thus the old man spake, his countenance _1550
  • Gleamed on me like a spirit's)--'thou hast lent
  • To me, to all, the power to advance
  • Towards this unforeseen deliverance
  • From our ancestral chains--ay, thou didst rear
  • That lamp of hope on high, which time nor chance _1555
  • Nor change may not extinguish, and my share
  • Of good, was o'er the world its gathered beams to bear.
  • 17.
  • 'But I, alas! am both unknown and old,
  • And though the woof of wisdom I know well
  • To dye in hues of language, I am cold _1560
  • In seeming, and the hopes which inly dwell,
  • My manners note that I did long repel;
  • But Laon's name to the tumultuous throng
  • Were like the star whose beams the waves compel
  • And tempests, and his soul-subduing tongue _1565
  • Were as a lance to quell the mailed crest of wrong.
  • 18.
  • 'Perchance blood need not flow, if thou at length
  • Wouldst rise, perchance the very slaves would spare
  • Their brethren and themselves; great is the strength
  • Of words--for lately did a maiden fair, _1570
  • Who from her childhood has been taught to bear
  • The Tyrant's heaviest yoke, arise, and make
  • Her sex the law of truth and freedom hear,
  • And with these quiet words--"for thine own sake
  • I prithee spare me;"--did with ruth so take _1575
  • 19.
  • 'All hearts, that even the torturer who had bound
  • Her meek calm frame, ere it was yet impaled,
  • Loosened her, weeping then; nor could be found
  • One human hand to harm her--unassailed
  • Therefore she walks through the great City, veiled _1580
  • In virtue's adamantine eloquence,
  • 'Gainst scorn, and death and pain thus trebly mailed,
  • And blending, in the smiles of that defence,
  • The Serpent and the Dove, Wisdom and Innocence.
  • 20.
  • 'The wild-eyed women throng around her path: _1585
  • From their luxurious dungeons, from the dust
  • Of meaner thralls, from the oppressor's wrath,
  • Or the caresses of his sated lust
  • They congregate:--in her they put their trust;
  • The tyrants send their armed slaves to quell _1590
  • Her power;--they, even like a thunder-gust
  • Caught by some forest, bend beneath the spell
  • Of that young maiden's speech, and to their chiefs rebel.
  • 21.
  • 'Thus she doth equal laws and justice teach
  • To woman, outraged and polluted long; _1595
  • Gathering the sweetest fruit in human reach
  • For those fair hands now free, while armed wrong
  • Trembles before her look, though it be strong;
  • Thousands thus dwell beside her, virgins bright,
  • And matrons with their babes, a stately throng! _1600
  • Lovers renew the vows which they did plight
  • In early faith, and hearts long parted now unite,
  • 22.
  • 'And homeless orphans find a home near her,
  • And those poor victims of the proud, no less,
  • Fair wrecks, on whom the smiling world with stir, _1605
  • Thrusts the redemption of its wickedness:--
  • In squalid huts, and in its palaces
  • Sits Lust alone, while o'er the land is borne
  • Her voice, whose awful sweetness doth repress
  • All evil, and her foes relenting turn, _1610
  • And cast the vote of love in hope's abandoned urn.
  • 23.
  • 'So in the populous City, a young maiden
  • Has baffled Havoc of the prey which he
  • Marks as his own, whene'er with chains o'erladen
  • Men make them arms to hurl down tyranny,-- _1615
  • False arbiter between the bound and free;
  • And o'er the land, in hamlets and in towns
  • The multitudes collect tumultuously,
  • And throng in arms; but tyranny disowns
  • Their claim, and gathers strength around its trembling thrones. _1620
  • 24.
  • 'Blood soon, although unwillingly, to shed
  • The free cannot forbear--the Queen of Slaves,
  • The hoodwinked Angel of the blind and dead,
  • Custom, with iron mace points to the graves
  • Where her own standard desolately waves _1625
  • Over the dust of Prophets and of Kings.
  • Many yet stand in her array--"she paves
  • Her path with human hearts," and o'er it flings
  • The wildering gloom of her immeasurable wings.
  • 25.
  • 'There is a plain beneath the City's wall, _1630
  • Bounded by misty mountains, wide and vast,
  • Millions there lift at Freedom's thrilling call
  • Ten thousand standards wide, they load the blast
  • Which bears one sound of many voices past,
  • And startles on his throne their sceptred foe: _1635
  • He sits amid his idle pomp aghast,
  • And that his power hath passed away, doth know--
  • Why pause the victor swords to seal his overthrow?
  • 26.
  • 'The tyrant's guards resistance yet maintain:
  • Fearless, and fierce, and hard as beasts of blood, _1640
  • They stand a speck amid the peopled plain;
  • Carnage and ruin have been made their food
  • From infancy--ill has become their good,
  • And for its hateful sake their will has wove
  • The chains which eat their hearts. The multitude _1645
  • Surrounding them, with words of human love,
  • Seek from their own decay their stubborn minds to move.
  • 27.
  • 'Over the land is felt a sudden pause,
  • As night and day those ruthless bands around,
  • The watch of love is kept:--a trance which awes _1650
  • The thoughts of men with hope; as when the sound
  • Of whirlwind, whose fierce blasts the waves and clouds confound,
  • Dies suddenly, the mariner in fear
  • Feels silence sink upon his heart--thus bound,
  • The conquerors pause, and oh! may freemen ne'er _1655
  • Clasp the relentless knees of Dread, the murderer!
  • 28.
  • 'If blood be shed, 'tis but a change and choice
  • Of bonds,--from slavery to cowardice
  • A wretched fall!--Uplift thy charmed voice!
  • Pour on those evil men the love that lies _1660
  • Hovering within those spirit-soothing eyes--
  • Arise, my friend, farewell!'--As thus he spake,
  • From the green earth lightly I did arise,
  • As one out of dim dreams that doth awake,
  • And looked upon the depth of that reposing lake. _1665
  • 29.
  • I saw my countenance reflected there;--
  • And then my youth fell on me like a wind
  • Descending on still waters--my thin hair
  • Was prematurely gray, my face was lined
  • With channels, such as suffering leaves behind, _1670
  • Not age; my brow was pale, but in my cheek
  • And lips a flush of gnawing fire did find
  • Their food and dwelling; though mine eyes might speak
  • A subtle mind and strong within a frame thus weak.
  • 30.
  • And though their lustre now was spent and faded, _1675
  • Yet in my hollow looks and withered mien
  • The likeness of a shape for which was braided
  • The brightest woof of genius, still was seen--
  • One who, methought, had gone from the world's scene,
  • And left it vacant--'twas her lover's face-- _1680
  • It might resemble her--it once had been
  • The mirror of her thoughts, and still the grace
  • Which her mind's shadow cast, left there a lingering trace.
  • 31.
  • What then was I? She slumbered with the dead.
  • Glory and joy and peace, had come and gone. _1685
  • Doth the cloud perish, when the beams are fled
  • Which steeped its skirts in gold? or, dark and lone,
  • Doth it not through the paths of night unknown,
  • On outspread wings of its own wind upborne
  • Pour rain upon the earth? The stars are shown, _1690
  • When the cold moon sharpens her silver horn
  • Under the sea, and make the wide night not forlorn.
  • 32.
  • Strengthened in heart, yet sad, that aged man
  • I left, with interchange of looks and tears,
  • And lingering speech, and to the Camp began _1695
  • My war. O'er many a mountain-chain which rears
  • Its hundred crests aloft, my spirit bears
  • My frame; o'er many a dale and many a moor,
  • And gaily now meseems serene earth wears
  • The blosmy spring's star-bright investiture, _1700
  • A vision which aught sad from sadness might allure.
  • 33.
  • My powers revived within me, and I went,
  • As one whom winds waft o'er the bending grass,
  • Through many a vale of that broad continent.
  • At night when I reposed, fair dreams did pass _1705
  • Before my pillow;--my own Cythna was,
  • Not like a child of death, among them ever;
  • When I arose from rest, a woful mass
  • That gentlest sleep seemed from my life to sever,
  • As if the light of youth were not withdrawn for ever. _1710
  • 34.
  • Aye as I went, that maiden who had reared
  • The torch of Truth afar, of whose high deeds
  • The Hermit in his pilgrimage had heard,
  • Haunted my thoughts.--Ah, Hope its sickness feeds
  • With whatsoe'er it finds, or flowers or weeds! _1715
  • Could she be Cythna?--Was that corpse a shade
  • Such as self-torturing thought from madness breeds?
  • Why was this hope not torture? Yet it made
  • A light around my steps which would not ever fade.
  • NOTES:
  • _1625 Where]When edition 1818.
  • CANTO 5.
  • 1.
  • Over the utmost hill at length I sped, _1720
  • A snowy steep:--the moon was hanging low
  • Over the Asian mountains, and outspread
  • The plain, the City, and the Camp below,
  • Skirted the midnight Ocean's glimmering flow;
  • The City's moonlit spires and myriad lamps, _1725
  • Like stars in a sublunar sky did glow,
  • And fires blazed far amid the scattered camps,
  • Like springs of flame, which burst where'er swift Earthquake stamps.
  • 2.
  • All slept but those in watchful arms who stood,
  • And those who sate tending the beacon's light, _1730
  • And the few sounds from that vast multitude
  • Made silence more profound.--Oh, what a might
  • Of human thought was cradled in that night!
  • How many hearts impenetrably veiled
  • Beat underneath its shade, what secret fight _1735
  • Evil and good, in woven passions mailed,
  • Waged through that silent throng--a war that never failed!
  • 3.
  • And now the Power of Good held victory.
  • So, through the labyrinth of many a tent,
  • Among the silent millions who did lie _1740
  • In innocent sleep, exultingly I went;
  • The moon had left Heaven desert now, but lent
  • From eastern morn the first faint lustre showed
  • An armed youth--over his spear he bent
  • His downward face.--'A friend!' I cried aloud, _1745
  • And quickly common hopes made freemen understood.
  • 4.
  • I sate beside him while the morning beam
  • Crept slowly over Heaven, and talked with him
  • Of those immortal hopes, a glorious theme!
  • Which led us forth, until the stars grew dim: _1750
  • And all the while, methought, his voice did swim
  • As if it drowned in remembrance were
  • Of thoughts which make the moist eyes overbrim:
  • At last, when daylight 'gan to fill the air,
  • He looked on me, and cried in wonder--'Thou art here!' _1755
  • 5.
  • Then, suddenly, I knew it was the youth
  • In whom its earliest hopes my spirit found;
  • But envious tongues had stained his spotless truth,
  • And thoughtless pride his love in silence bound,
  • And shame and sorrow mine in toils had wound, _1760
  • Whilst he was innocent, and I deluded;
  • The truth now came upon me, on the ground
  • Tears of repenting joy, which fast intruded,
  • Fell fast, and o'er its peace our mingling spirits brooded.
  • 6.
  • Thus, while with rapid lips and earnest eyes _1765
  • We talked, a sound of sweeping conflict spread
  • As from the earth did suddenly arise;
  • From every tent roused by that clamour dread,
  • Our bands outsprung and seized their arms--we sped
  • Towards the sound: our tribes were gathering far. _1770
  • Those sanguine slaves amid ten thousand dead
  • Stabbed in their sleep, trampled in treacherous war
  • The gentle hearts whose power their lives had sought to spare.
  • 7.
  • Like rabid snakes, that sting some gentle child
  • Who brings them food, when winter false and fair _1775
  • Allures them forth with its cold smiles, so wild
  • They rage among the camp;--they overbear
  • The patriot hosts--confusion, then despair,
  • Descends like night--when 'Laon!' one did cry;
  • Like a bright ghost from Heaven that shout did scare _1780
  • The slaves, and widening through the vaulted sky,
  • Seemed sent from Earth to Heaven in sign of victory.
  • 8.
  • In sudden panic those false murderers fled,
  • Like insect tribes before the northern gale:
  • But swifter still, our hosts encompassed _1785
  • Their shattered ranks, and in a craggy vale,
  • Where even their fierce despair might nought avail,
  • Hemmed them around!--and then revenge and fear
  • Made the high virtue of the patriots fail:
  • One pointed on his foe the mortal spear-- _1790
  • I rushed before its point, and cried 'Forbear, forbear!'
  • 9.
  • The spear transfixed my arm that was uplifted
  • In swift expostulation, and the blood
  • Gushed round its point: I smiled, and--'Oh! thou gifted
  • With eloquence which shall not be withstood, _1795
  • Flow thus!' I cried in joy, 'thou vital flood,
  • Until my heart be dry, ere thus the cause
  • For which thou wert aught worthy be subdued--
  • Ah, ye are pale,--ye weep,--your passions pause,--
  • 'Tis well! ye feel the truth of love's benignant laws. _1800
  • 10.
  • 'Soldiers, our brethren and our friends are slain.
  • Ye murdered them, I think, as they did sleep!
  • Alas, what have ye done? the slightest pain
  • Which ye might suffer, there were eyes to weep,
  • But ye have quenched them--there were smiles to steep _1805
  • Your hearts in balm, but they are lost in woe;
  • And those whom love did set his watch to keep
  • Around your tents, truth's freedom to bestow,
  • Ye stabbed as they did sleep--but they forgive ye now.
  • 11.
  • 'Oh wherefore should ill ever flow from ill, _1810
  • And pain still keener pain for ever breed?
  • We all are brethren--even the slaves who kill
  • For hire, are men; and to avenge misdeed
  • On the misdoer, doth but Misery feed
  • With her own broken heart! O Earth, O Heaven! _1815
  • And thou, dread Nature, which to every deed
  • And all that lives, or is, to be hath given,
  • Even as to thee have these done ill, and are forgiven!
  • 12.
  • 'Join then your hands and hearts, and let the past
  • Be as a grave which gives not up its dead _1820
  • To evil thoughts.'--A film then overcast
  • My sense with dimness, for the wound, which bled
  • Freshly, swift shadows o'er mine eyes had shed.
  • When I awoke, I lay mid friends and foes,
  • And earnest countenances on me shed _1825
  • The light of questioning looks, whilst one did close
  • My wound with balmiest herbs, and soothed me to repose;
  • 13.
  • And one whose spear had pierced me, leaned beside
  • With quivering lips and humid eyes;--and all
  • Seemed like some brothers on a journey wide _1830
  • Gone forth, whom now strange meeting did befall
  • In a strange land, round one whom they might call
  • Their friend, their chief, their father, for assay
  • Of peril, which had saved them from the thrall
  • Of death, now suffering. Thus the vast array _1835
  • Of those fraternal bands were reconciled that day.
  • 14.
  • Lifting the thunder of their acclamation,
  • Towards the City then the multitude,
  • And I among them, went in joy--a nation
  • Made free by love;--a mighty brotherhood _1840
  • Linked by a jealous interchange of good;
  • A glorious pageant, more magnificent
  • Than kingly slaves arrayed in gold and blood,
  • When they return from carnage, and are sent
  • In triumph bright beneath the populous battlement. _1845
  • 15.
  • Afar, the city-walls were thronged on high,
  • And myriads on each giddy turret clung,
  • And to each spire far lessening in the sky
  • Bright pennons on the idle winds were hung;
  • As we approached, a shout of joyance sprung _1850
  • At once from all the crowd, as if the vast
  • And peopled Earth its boundless skies among
  • The sudden clamour of delight had cast,
  • When from before its face some general wreck had passed.
  • 16.
  • Our armies through the City's hundred gates _1855
  • Were poured, like brooks which to the rocky lair
  • Of some deep lake, whose silence them awaits,
  • Throng from the mountains when the storms are there
  • And, as we passed through the calm sunny air
  • A thousand flower-inwoven crowns were shed, _1860
  • The token flowers of truth and freedom fair,
  • And fairest hands bound them on many a head,
  • Those angels of love's heaven that over all was spread.
  • 17.
  • I trod as one tranced in some rapturous vision:
  • Those bloody bands so lately reconciled, _1865
  • Were, ever as they went, by the contrition
  • Of anger turned to love, from ill beguiled,
  • And every one on them more gently smiled,
  • Because they had done evil:--the sweet awe
  • Of such mild looks made their own hearts grow mild, _1870
  • And did with soft attraction ever draw
  • Their spirits to the love of freedom's equal law.
  • 18.
  • And they, and all, in one loud symphony
  • My name with Liberty commingling, lifted,
  • 'The friend and the preserver of the free! _1875
  • The parent of this joy!' and fair eyes gifted
  • With feelings, caught from one who had uplifted
  • The light of a great spirit, round me shone;
  • And all the shapes of this grand scenery shifted
  • Like restless clouds before the steadfast sun,-- _1880
  • Where was that Maid? I asked, but it was known of none.
  • 19.
  • Laone was the name her love had chosen,
  • For she was nameless, and her birth none knew:
  • Where was Laone now?--The words were frozen
  • Within my lips with fear; but to subdue _1885
  • Such dreadful hope, to my great task was due,
  • And when at length one brought reply, that she
  • To-morrow would appear, I then withdrew
  • To judge what need for that great throng might be,
  • For now the stars came thick over the twilight sea. _1890
  • 20.
  • Yet need was none for rest or food to care,
  • Even though that multitude was passing great,
  • Since each one for the other did prepare
  • All kindly succour--Therefore to the gate
  • Of the Imperial House, now desolate, _1895
  • I passed, and there was found aghast, alone,
  • The fallen Tyrant!--Silently he sate
  • Upon the footstool of his golden throne,
  • Which, starred with sunny gems, in its own lustre shone.
  • 21.
  • Alone, but for one child, who led before him _1900
  • A graceful dance: the only living thing
  • Of all the crowd, which thither to adore him
  • Flocked yesterday, who solace sought to bring
  • In his abandonment!--She knew the King
  • Had praised her dance of yore, and now she wove _1905
  • Its circles, aye weeping and murmuring
  • Mid her sad task of unregarded love,
  • That to no smiles it might his speechless sadness move.
  • 22.
  • She fled to him, and wildly clasped his feet
  • When human steps were heard:--he moved nor spoke, _1910
  • Nor changed his hue, nor raised his looks to meet
  • The gaze of strangers--our loud entrance woke
  • The echoes of the hall, which circling broke
  • The calm of its recesses,--like a tomb
  • Its sculptured walls vacantly to the stroke _1915
  • Of footfalls answered, and the twilight's gloom
  • Lay like a charnel's mist within the radiant dome.
  • 23.
  • The little child stood up when we came nigh;
  • Her lips and cheeks seemed very pale and wan,
  • But on her forehead, and within her eye _1920
  • Lay beauty, which makes hearts that feed thereon
  • Sick with excess of sweetness; on the throne
  • She leaned;--the King, with gathered brow, and lips
  • Wreathed by long scorn, did inly sneer and frown
  • With hue like that when some great painter dips _1925
  • His pencil in the gloom of earthquake and eclipse.
  • 24.
  • She stood beside him like a rainbow braided
  • Within some storm, when scarce its shadows vast
  • From the blue paths of the swift sun have faded;
  • A sweet and solemn smile, like Cythna's, cast _1930
  • One moment's light, which made my heart beat fast,
  • O'er that child's parted lips--a gleam of bliss,
  • A shade of vanished days,--as the tears passed
  • Which wrapped it, even as with a father's kiss
  • I pressed those softest eyes in trembling tenderness. _1935
  • 25.
  • The sceptred wretch then from that solitude
  • I drew, and, of his change compassionate,
  • With words of sadness soothed his rugged mood.
  • But he, while pride and fear held deep debate,
  • With sullen guile of ill-dissembled hate _1940
  • Glared on me as a toothless snake might glare:
  • Pity, not scorn I felt, though desolate
  • The desolator now, and unaware
  • The curses which he mocked had caught him by the hair.
  • 26.
  • I led him forth from that which now might seem _1945
  • A gorgeous grave: through portals sculptured deep
  • With imagery beautiful as dream
  • We went, and left the shades which tend on sleep
  • Over its unregarded gold to keep
  • Their silent watch.--The child trod faintingly, _1950
  • And as she went, the tears which she did weep
  • Glanced in the starlight; wildered seemed she,
  • And, when I spake, for sobs she could not answer me.
  • 27.
  • At last the tyrant cried, 'She hungers, slave!
  • Stab her, or give her bread!'--It was a tone _1955
  • Such as sick fancies in a new-made grave
  • Might hear. I trembled, for the truth was known;
  • He with this child had thus been left alone,
  • And neither had gone forth for food,--but he
  • In mingled pride and awe cowered near his throne, _1960
  • And she a nursling of captivity
  • Knew nought beyond those walls, nor what such change might be.
  • 28.
  • And he was troubled at a charm withdrawn
  • Thus suddenly; that sceptres ruled no more--
  • That even from gold the dreadful strength was gone, _1965
  • Which once made all things subject to its power--
  • Such wonder seized him, as if hour by hour
  • The past had come again; and the swift fall
  • Of one so great and terrible of yore,
  • To desolateness, in the hearts of all _1970
  • Like wonder stirred, who saw such awful change befall.
  • 29.
  • A mighty crowd, such as the wide land pours
  • Once in a thousand years, now gathered round
  • The fallen tyrant;--like the rush of showers
  • Of hail in spring, pattering along the ground, _1975
  • Their many footsteps fell, else came no sound
  • From the wide multitude: that lonely man
  • Then knew the burden of his change, and found,
  • Concealing in the dust his visage wan,
  • Refuge from the keen looks which through his bosom ran. _1980
  • 30.
  • And he was faint withal: I sate beside him
  • Upon the earth, and took that child so fair
  • From his weak arms, that ill might none betide him
  • Or her;--when food was brought to them, her share
  • To his averted lips the child did bear, _1985
  • But, when she saw he had enough, she ate
  • And wept the while;--the lonely man's despair
  • Hunger then overcame, and of his state
  • Forgetful, on the dust as in a trance he sate.
  • 31.
  • Slowly the silence of the multitudes _1990
  • Passed, as when far is heard in some lone dell
  • The gathering of a wind among the woods--
  • 'And he is fallen!' they cry, 'he who did dwell
  • Like famine or the plague, or aught more fell
  • Among our homes, is fallen! the murderer _1995
  • Who slaked his thirsting soul as from a well
  • Of blood and tears with ruin! he is here!
  • Sunk in a gulf of scorn from which none may him rear!'
  • 32.
  • Then was heard--'He who judged let him be brought
  • To judgement! blood for blood cries from the soil _2000
  • On which his crimes have deep pollution wrought!
  • Shall Othman only unavenged despoil?
  • Shall they who by the stress of grinding toil
  • Wrest from the unwilling earth his luxuries,
  • Perish for crime, while his foul blood may boil, _2005
  • Or creep within his veins at will?--Arise!
  • And to high justice make her chosen sacrifice!'
  • 33.
  • 'What do ye seek? what fear ye,' then I cried,
  • Suddenly starting forth, 'that ye should shed
  • The blood of Othman?--if your hearts are tried _2010
  • In the true love of freedom, cease to dread
  • This one poor lonely man--beneath Heaven spread
  • In purest light above us all, through earth--
  • Maternal earth, who doth her sweet smiles shed
  • For all, let him go free; until the worth _2015
  • Of human nature win from these a second birth.
  • 34.
  • 'What call ye "justice"? Is there one who ne'er
  • In secret thought has wished another's ill?--
  • Are ye all pure? Let those stand forth who hear
  • And tremble not. Shall they insult and kill, _2020
  • If such they be? their mild eyes can they fill
  • With the false anger of the hypocrite?
  • Alas, such were not pure!--the chastened will
  • Of virtue sees that justice is the light
  • Of love, and not revenge, and terror and despite.' _2025
  • 35.
  • The murmur of the people, slowly dying,
  • Paused as I spake, then those who near me were,
  • Cast gentle looks where the lone man was lying
  • Shrouding his head, which now that infant fair
  • Clasped on her lap in silence;--through the air _2030
  • Sobs were then heard, and many kissed my feet
  • In pity's madness, and to the despair
  • Of him whom late they cursed, a solace sweet
  • His very victims brought--soft looks and speeches meet.
  • 36.
  • Then to a home for his repose assigned, _2035
  • Accompanied by the still throng, he went
  • In silence, where, to soothe his rankling mind,
  • Some likeness of his ancient state was lent;
  • And if his heart could have been innocent
  • As those who pardoned him, he might have ended _2040
  • His days in peace; but his straight lips were bent,
  • Men said, into a smile which guile portended,
  • A sight with which that child like hope with fear was blended.
  • 37.
  • 'Twas midnight now, the eve of that great day
  • Whereon the many nations at whose call _2045
  • The chains of earth like mist melted away,
  • Decreed to hold a sacred Festival,
  • A rite to attest the equality of all
  • Who live. So to their homes, to dream or wake
  • All went. The sleepless silence did recall _2050
  • Laone to my thoughts, with hopes that make
  • The flood recede from which their thirst they seek to slake.
  • 38.
  • The dawn flowed forth, and from its purple fountains
  • I drank those hopes which make the spirit quail,
  • As to the plain between the misty mountains _2055
  • And the great City, with a countenance pale,
  • I went:--it was a sight which might avail
  • To make men weep exulting tears, for whom
  • Now first from human power the reverend veil
  • Was torn, to see Earth from her general womb _2060
  • Pour forth her swarming sons to a fraternal doom:
  • 39.
  • To see, far glancing in the misty morning,
  • The signs of that innumerable host;
  • To hear one sound of many made, the warning
  • Of Earth to Heaven from its free children tossed, _2065
  • While the eternal hills, and the sea lost
  • In wavering light, and, starring the blue sky
  • The city's myriad spires of gold, almost
  • With human joy made mute society--
  • Its witnesses with men who must hereafter be. _2070
  • 40.
  • To see, like some vast island from the Ocean,
  • The Altar of the Federation rear
  • Its pile i' the midst; a work, which the devotion
  • Of millions in one night created there,
  • Sudden as when the moonrise makes appear _2075
  • Strange clouds in the east; a marble pyramid
  • Distinct with steps: that mighty shape did wear
  • The light of genius; its still shadow hid
  • Far ships: to know its height the morning mists forbid!
  • 41.
  • To hear the restless multitudes for ever _2080
  • Around the base of that great Altar flow,
  • As on some mountain-islet burst and shiver
  • Atlantic waves; and solemnly and slow
  • As the wind bore that tumult to and fro,
  • To feel the dreamlike music, which did swim _2085
  • Like beams through floating clouds on waves below
  • Falling in pauses, from that Altar dim,
  • As silver-sounding tongues breathed an aerial hymn.
  • 42.
  • To hear, to see, to live, was on that morn
  • Lethean joy! so that all those assembled _2090
  • Cast off their memories of the past outworn;
  • Two only bosoms with their own life trembled,
  • And mine was one,--and we had both dissembled;
  • So with a beating heart I went, and one,
  • Who having much, covets yet more, resembled; _2095
  • A lost and dear possession, which not won,
  • He walks in lonely gloom beneath the noonday sun.
  • 43.
  • To the great Pyramid I came: its stair
  • With female choirs was thronged: the loveliest
  • Among the free, grouped with its sculptures rare; _2100
  • As I approached, the morning's golden mist,
  • Which now the wonder-stricken breezes kissed
  • With their cold lips, fled, and the summit shone
  • Like Athos seen from Samothracia, dressed
  • In earliest light, by vintagers, and one _2105
  • Sate there, a female Shape upon an ivory throne:
  • 44.
  • A Form most like the imagined habitant
  • Of silver exhalations sprung from dawn,
  • By winds which feed on sunrise woven, to enchant
  • The faiths of men: all mortal eyes were drawn, _2110
  • As famished mariners through strange seas gone
  • Gaze on a burning watch-tower, by the light
  • Of those divinest lineaments--alone
  • With thoughts which none could share, from that fair sight
  • I turned in sickness, for a veil shrouded her countenance bright. _2115
  • 45.
  • And neither did I hear the acclamations,
  • Which from brief silence bursting, filled the air
  • With her strange name and mine, from all the nations
  • Which we, they said, in strength had gathered there
  • From the sleep of bondage; nor the vision fair _2120
  • Of that bright pageantry beheld,--but blind
  • And silent, as a breathing corpse did fare,
  • Leaning upon my friend, till like a wind
  • To fevered cheeks, a voice flowed o'er my troubled mind.
  • 46.
  • Like music of some minstrel heavenly gifted, _2125
  • To one whom fiends enthral, this voice to me;
  • Scarce did I wish her veil to be uplifted,
  • I was so calm and joyous.--I could see
  • The platform where we stood, the statues three
  • Which kept their marble watch on that high shrine, _2130
  • The multitudes, the mountains, and the sea;
  • As when eclipse hath passed, things sudden shine
  • To men's astonished eyes most clear and crystalline.
  • 47.
  • At first Laone spoke most tremulously:
  • But soon her voice the calmness which it shed _2135
  • Gathered, and--'Thou art whom I sought to see,
  • And thou art our first votary here,' she said:
  • 'I had a dear friend once, but he is dead!--
  • And of all those on the wide earth who breathe,
  • Thou dost resemble him alone--I spread _2140
  • This veil between us two that thou beneath
  • Shouldst image one who may have been long lost in death.
  • 48.
  • 'For this wilt thou not henceforth pardon me?
  • Yes, but those joys which silence well requite
  • Forbid reply;--why men have chosen me _2145
  • To be the Priestess of this holiest rite
  • I scarcely know, but that the floods of light
  • Which flow over the world, have borne me hither
  • To meet thee, long most dear; and now unite
  • Thine hand with mine, and may all comfort wither _2150
  • From both the hearts whose pulse in joy now beat together,
  • 49.
  • 'If our own will as others' law we bind,
  • If the foul worship trampled here we fear;
  • If as ourselves we cease to love our kind!'--
  • She paused, and pointed upwards--sculptured there _2155
  • Three shapes around her ivory throne appear;
  • One was a Giant, like a child asleep
  • On a loose rock, whose grasp crushed, as it were
  • In dream, sceptres and crowns; and one did keep
  • Its watchful eyes in doubt whether to smile or weep; _2160
  • 50.
  • A Woman sitting on the sculptured disk
  • Of the broad earth, and feeding from one breast
  • A human babe and a young basilisk;
  • Her looks were sweet as Heaven's when loveliest
  • In Autumn eves. The third Image was dressed _2165
  • In white wings swift as clouds in winter skies;
  • Beneath his feet, 'mongst ghastliest forms, repressed
  • Lay Faith, an obscene worm, who sought to rise,
  • While calmly on the Sun he turned his diamond eyes.
  • 51.
  • Beside that Image then I sate, while she _2170
  • Stood, mid the throngs which ever ebbed and flowed,
  • Like light amid the shadows of the sea
  • Cast from one cloudless star, and on the crowd
  • That touch which none who feels forgets, bestowed;
  • And whilst the sun returned the steadfast gaze _2175
  • Of the great Image, as o'er Heaven it glode,
  • That rite had place; it ceased when sunset's blaze
  • Burned o'er the isles. All stood in joy and deep amaze--
  • --When in the silence of all spirits there
  • Laone's voice was felt, and through the air _2180
  • Her thrilling gestures spoke, most eloquently fair:--
  • 51.1.
  • 'Calm art thou as yon sunset! swift and strong
  • As new-fledged Eagles, beautiful and young,
  • That float among the blinding beams of morning;
  • And underneath thy feet writhe Faith, and Folly, _2185
  • Custom, and Hell, and mortal Melancholy--
  • Hark! the Earth starts to hear the mighty warning
  • Of thy voice sublime and holy;
  • Its free spirits here assembled
  • See thee, feel thee, know thee now,-- _2190
  • To thy voice their hearts have trembled
  • Like ten thousand clouds which flow
  • With one wide wind as it flies!--
  • Wisdom! thy irresistible children rise
  • To hail thee, and the elements they chain _2195
  • And their own will, to swell the glory of thy train.
  • 51.2.
  • 'O Spirit vast and deep as Night and Heaven!
  • Mother and soul of all to which is given
  • The light of life, the loveliness of being,
  • Lo! thou dost re-ascend the human heart, _2200
  • Thy throne of power, almighty as thou wert
  • In dreams of Poets old grown pale by seeing
  • The shade of thee;--now, millions start
  • To feel thy lightnings through them burning:
  • Nature, or God, or Love, or Pleasure, _2205
  • Or Sympathy the sad tears turning
  • To mutual smiles, a drainless treasure,
  • Descends amidst us;--Scorn and Hate,
  • Revenge and Selfishness are desolate--
  • A hundred nations swear that there shall be _2210
  • Pity and Peace and Love, among the good and free!
  • 51.3.
  • 'Eldest of things, divine Equality!
  • Wisdom and Love are but the slaves of thee,
  • The Angels of thy sway, who pour around thee
  • Treasures from all the cells of human thought, _2215
  • And from the Stars, and from the Ocean brought,
  • And the last living heart whose beatings bound thee:
  • The powerful and the wise had sought
  • Thy coming, thou in light descending
  • O'er the wide land which is thine own _2220
  • Like the Spring whose breath is blending
  • All blasts of fragrance into one,
  • Comest upon the paths of men!--
  • Earth bares her general bosom to thy ken,
  • And all her children here in glory meet _2225
  • To feed upon thy smiles, and clasp thy sacred feet.
  • 51.4
  • 'My brethren, we are free! the plains and mountains,
  • The gray sea-shore, the forests and the fountains,
  • Are haunts of happiest dwellers;--man and woman,
  • Their common bondage burst, may freely borrow _2230
  • From lawless love a solace for their sorrow;
  • For oft we still must weep, since we are human.
  • A stormy night's serenest morrow,
  • Whose showers are pity's gentle tears,
  • Whose clouds are smiles of those that die _2235
  • Like infants without hopes or fears,
  • And whose beams are joys that lie
  • In blended hearts, now holds dominion;
  • The dawn of mind, which upwards on a pinion
  • Borne, swift as sunrise, far illumines space, _2240
  • And clasps this barren world in its own bright embrace!
  • 51.5
  • 'My brethren, we are free! The fruits are glowing
  • Beneath the stars, and the night-winds are flowing
  • O'er the ripe corn, the birds and beasts are dreaming--
  • Never again may blood of bird or beast _2245
  • Stain with its venomous stream a human feast,
  • To the pure skies in accusation steaming;
  • Avenging poisons shall have ceased
  • To feed disease and fear and madness,
  • The dwellers of the earth and air _2250
  • Shall throng around our steps in gladness,
  • Seeking their food or refuge there.
  • Our toil from thought all glorious forms shall cull,
  • To make this Earth, our home, more beautiful,
  • And Science, and her sister Poesy, _2255
  • Shall clothe in light the fields and cities of the free!
  • 51.6
  • 'Victory, Victory to the prostrate nations!
  • Bear witness Night, and ye mute Constellations
  • Who gaze on us from your crystalline cars!
  • Thoughts have gone forth whose powers can sleep no more! _2260
  • Victory! Victory! Earth's remotest shore,
  • Regions which groan beneath the Antarctic stars,
  • The green lands cradled in the roar
  • Of western waves, and wildernesses
  • Peopled and vast, which skirt the oceans _2265
  • Where morning dyes her golden tresses,
  • Shall soon partake our high emotions:
  • Kings shall turn pale! Almighty Fear,
  • The Fiend-God, when our charmed name he hear,
  • Shall fade like shadow from his thousand fanes, _2270
  • While Truth with Joy enthroned o'er his lost empire reigns!'
  • 51.52.
  • Ere she had ceased, the mists of night entwining
  • Their dim woof, floated o'er the infinite throng;
  • She, like a spirit through the darkness shining,
  • In tones whose sweetness silence did prolong, _2275
  • As if to lingering winds they did belong,
  • Poured forth her inmost soul: a passionate speech
  • With wild and thrilling pauses woven among,
  • Which whoso heard was mute, for it could teach
  • To rapture like her own all listening hearts to reach. _2280
  • 53.
  • Her voice was as a mountain stream which sweeps
  • The withered leaves of Autumn to the lake,
  • And in some deep and narrow bay then sleeps
  • In the shadow of the shores; as dead leaves wake,
  • Under the wave, in flowers and herbs which make _2285
  • Those green depths beautiful when skies are blue,
  • The multitude so moveless did partake
  • Such living change, and kindling murmurs flew
  • As o'er that speechless calm delight and wonder grew.
  • 54.
  • Over the plain the throngs were scattered then _2290
  • In groups around the fires, which from the sea
  • Even to the gorge of the first mountain-glen
  • Blazed wide and far: the banquet of the free
  • Was spread beneath many a dark cypress-tree,
  • Beneath whose spires, which swayed in the red flame, _2295
  • Reclining, as they ate, of Liberty,
  • And Hope, and Justice, and Laone's name,
  • Earth's children did a woof of happy converse frame.
  • 55.
  • Their feast was such as Earth, the general mother,
  • Pours from her fairest bosom, when she smiles _2300
  • In the embrace of Autumn;--to each other
  • As when some parent fondly reconciles
  • Her warring children, she their wrath beguiles
  • With her own sustenance, they relenting weep:
  • Such was this Festival, which from their isles _2305
  • And continents, and winds, and oceans deep,
  • All shapes might throng to share, that fly, or walk or creep,--
  • 56.
  • Might share in peace and innocence, for gore
  • Or poison none this festal did pollute,
  • But, piled on high, an overflowing store _2310
  • Of pomegranates and citrons, fairest fruit,
  • Melons, and dates, and figs, and many a root
  • Sweet and sustaining, and bright grapes ere yet
  • Accursed fire their mild juice could transmute
  • Into a mortal bane, and brown corn set _2315
  • In baskets; with pure streams their thirsting lips they wet.
  • 57.
  • Laone had descended from the shrine,
  • And every deepest look and holiest mind
  • Fed on her form, though now those tones divine
  • Were silent as she passed; she did unwind _2320
  • Her veil, as with the crowds of her own kind
  • She mixed; some impulse made my heart refrain
  • From seeking her that night, so I reclined
  • Amidst a group, where on the utmost plain
  • A festal watchfire burned beside the dusky main. _2325
  • 58.
  • And joyous was our feast; pathetic talk,
  • And wit, and harmony of choral strains,
  • While far Orion o'er the waves did walk
  • That flow among the isles, held us in chains
  • Of sweet captivity which none disdains _2330
  • Who feels; but when his zone grew dim in mist
  • Which clothes the Ocean's bosom, o'er the plains
  • The multitudes went homeward, to their rest,
  • Which that delightful day with its own shadow blessed.
  • NOTES:
  • _2295 flame]light edition 1818.
  • CANTO 6.
  • 1.
  • Beside the dimness of the glimmering sea, _2335
  • Weaving swift language from impassioned themes,
  • With that dear friend I lingered, who to me
  • So late had been restored, beneath the gleams
  • Of the silver stars; and ever in soft dreams
  • Of future love and peace sweet converse lapped _2340
  • Our willing fancies, till the pallid beams
  • Of the last watchfire fell, and darkness wrapped
  • The waves, and each bright chain of floating fire was snapped;
  • 2.
  • And till we came even to the City's wall
  • And the great gate; then, none knew whence or why, _2345
  • Disquiet on the multitudes did fall:
  • And first, one pale and breathless passed us by,
  • And stared and spoke not;--then with piercing cry
  • A troop of wild-eyed women, by the shrieks
  • Of their own terror driven,--tumultuously _2350
  • Hither and thither hurrying with pale cheeks,
  • Each one from fear unknown a sudden refuge seeks--
  • 3.
  • Then, rallying cries of treason and of danger
  • Resounded: and--'They come! to arms! to arms!
  • The Tyrant is amongst us, and the stranger _2355
  • Comes to enslave us in his name! to arms!'
  • In vain: for Panic, the pale fiend who charms
  • Strength to forswear her right, those millions swept
  • Like waves before the tempest--these alarms
  • Came to me, as to know their cause I lept _2360
  • On the gate's turret, and in rage and grief and scorn I wept!
  • 4.
  • For to the North I saw the town on fire,
  • And its red light made morning pallid now,
  • Which burst over wide Asia;--louder, higher,
  • The yells of victory and the screams of woe _2365
  • I heard approach, and saw the throng below
  • Stream through the gates like foam-wrought waterfalls
  • Fed from a thousand storms--the fearful glow
  • Of bombs flares overhead--at intervals
  • The red artillery's bolt mangling among them falls. _2370
  • 5.
  • And now the horsemen come--and all was done
  • Swifter than I have spoken--I beheld
  • Their red swords flash in the unrisen sun.
  • I rushed among the rout, to have repelled
  • That miserable flight--one moment quelled _2375
  • By voice and looks and eloquent despair,
  • As if reproach from their own hearts withheld
  • Their steps, they stood; but soon came pouring there
  • New multitudes, and did those rallied bands o'erbear.
  • 6.
  • I strove, as, drifted on some cataract _2380
  • By irresistible streams, some wretch might strive
  • Who hears its fatal roar:--the files compact
  • Whelmed me, and from the gate availed to drive
  • With quickening impulse, as each bolt did rive
  • Their ranks with bloodier chasm:--into the plain _2385
  • Disgorged at length the dead and the alive
  • In one dread mass, were parted, and the stain
  • Of blood, from mortal steel fell o'er the fields like rain.
  • 7.
  • For now the despot's bloodhounds with their prey
  • Unarmed and unaware, were gorging deep _2390
  • Their gluttony of death; the loose array
  • Of horsemen o'er the wide fields murdering sweep,
  • And with loud laughter for their tyrant reap
  • A harvest sown with other hopes; the while,
  • Far overhead, ships from Propontis keep _2395
  • A killing rain of fire:--when the waves smile
  • As sudden earthquakes light many a volcano-isle,
  • 8.
  • Thus sudden, unexpected feast was spread
  • For the carrion-fowls of Heaven.--I saw the sight--
  • I moved--I lived--as o'er the heaps of dead, _2400
  • Whose stony eyes glared in the morning light
  • I trod;--to me there came no thought of flight,
  • But with loud cries of scorn, which whoso heard
  • That dreaded death, felt in his veins the might
  • Of virtuous shame return, the crowd I stirred, _2405
  • And desperation's hope in many hearts recurred.
  • 9.
  • A band of brothers gathering round me, made,
  • Although unarmed, a steadfast front, and still
  • Retreating, with stern looks beneath the shade
  • Of gathered eyebrows, did the victors fill _2410
  • With doubt even in success; deliberate will
  • Inspired our growing troop; not overthrown
  • It gained the shelter of a grassy hill,
  • And ever still our comrades were hewn down,
  • And their defenceless limbs beneath our footsteps strown. _2415
  • 10.
  • Immovably we stood--in joy I found,
  • Beside me then, firm as a giant pine
  • Among the mountain-vapours driven around,
  • The old man whom I loved--his eyes divine
  • With a mild look of courage answered mine, _2420
  • And my young friend was near, and ardently
  • His hand grasped mine a moment--now the line
  • Of war extended, to our rallying cry
  • As myriads flocked in love and brotherhood to die.
  • 11.
  • For ever while the sun was climbing Heaven _2425
  • The horseman hewed our unarmed myriads down
  • Safely, though when by thirst of carnage driven
  • Too near, those slaves were swiftly overthrown
  • By hundreds leaping on them:--flesh and bone
  • Soon made our ghastly ramparts; then the shaft _2430
  • Of the artillery from the sea was thrown
  • More fast and fiery, and the conquerors laughed
  • In pride to hear the wind our screams of torment waft.
  • 12.
  • For on one side alone the hill gave shelter,
  • So vast that phalanx of unconquered men, _2435
  • And there the living in the blood did welter
  • Of the dead and dying, which in that green glen,
  • Like stifled torrents, made a plashy fen
  • Under the feet--thus was the butchery waged
  • While the sun clomb Heaven's eastern steep--but when _2440
  • It 'gan to sink--a fiercer combat raged,
  • For in more doubtful strife the armies were engaged.
  • 13.
  • Within a cave upon the hill were found
  • A bundle of rude pikes, the instrument
  • Of those who war but on their native ground _2445
  • For natural rights: a shout of joyance sent
  • Even from our hearts the wide air pierced and rent,
  • As those few arms the bravest and the best
  • Seized, and each sixth, thus armed, did now present
  • A line which covered and sustained the rest, _2450
  • A confident phalanx, which the foes on every side invest.
  • 14.
  • That onset turned the foes to flight almost;
  • But soon they saw their present strength, and knew
  • That coming night would to our resolute host
  • Bring victory; so dismounting, close they drew _2455
  • Their glittering files, and then the combat grew
  • Unequal but most horrible;--and ever
  • Our myriads, whom the swift bolt overthrew,
  • Or the red sword, failed like a mountain river
  • Which rushes forth in foam to sink in sands for ever. _2460
  • 15.
  • Sorrow and shame, to see with their own kind
  • Our human brethren mix, like beasts of blood,
  • To mutual ruin armed by one behind
  • Who sits and scoffs!--That friend so mild and good,
  • Who like its shadow near my youth had stood, _2465
  • Was stabbed!--my old preserver's hoary hair
  • With the flesh clinging to its roots, was strewed
  • Under my feet!--I lost all sense or care,
  • And like the rest I grew desperate and unaware.
  • 16.
  • The battle became ghastlier--in the midst _2470
  • I paused, and saw, how ugly and how fell
  • O Hate! thou art, even when thy life thou shedd'st
  • For love. The ground in many a little dell
  • Was broken, up and down whose steeps befell
  • Alternate victory and defeat, and there _2475
  • The combatants with rage most horrible
  • Strove, and their eyes started with cracking stare,
  • And impotent their tongues they lolled into the air,
  • 17.
  • Flaccid and foamy, like a mad dog's hanging;
  • Want, and Moon-madness, and the pest's swift Bane _2480
  • When its shafts smite--while yet its bow is twanging--
  • Have each their mark and sign--some ghastly stain;
  • And this was thine, O War! of hate and pain
  • Thou loathed slave! I saw all shapes of death
  • And ministered to many, o'er the plain _2485
  • While carnage in the sunbeam's warmth did seethe,
  • Till twilight o'er the east wove her serenest wreath.
  • 18.
  • The few who yet survived, resolute and firm
  • Around me fought. At the decline of day
  • Winding above the mountain's snowy term _2490
  • New banners shone; they quivered in the ray
  • Of the sun's unseen orb--ere night the array
  • Of fresh troops hemmed us in--of those brave bands
  • I soon survived alone--and now I lay
  • Vanquished and faint, the grasp of bloody hands _2495
  • I felt, and saw on high the glare of falling brands,
  • 19.
  • When on my foes a sudden terror came,
  • And they fled, scattering--lo! with reinless speed
  • A black Tartarian horse of giant frame
  • Comes trampling over the dead, the living bleed _2500
  • Beneath the hoofs of that tremendous steed,
  • On which, like to an Angel, robed in white,
  • Sate one waving a sword;--the hosts recede
  • And fly, as through their ranks with awful might,
  • Sweeps in the shadow of eve that Phantom swift and bright; _2505
  • 20.
  • And its path made a solitude.--I rose
  • And marked its coming: it relaxed its course
  • As it approached me, and the wind that flows
  • Through night, bore accents to mine ear whose force
  • Might create smiles in death--the Tartar horse _2510
  • Paused, and I saw the shape its might which swayed,
  • And heard her musical pants, like the sweet source
  • Of waters in the desert, as she said,
  • 'Mount with me, Laon, now'--I rapidly obeyed.
  • 21.
  • Then: 'Away! away!' she cried, and stretched her sword _2515
  • As 'twere a scourge over the courser's head,
  • And lightly shook the reins.--We spake no word,
  • But like the vapour of the tempest fled
  • Over the plain; her dark hair was dispread
  • Like the pine's locks upon the lingering blast; _2520
  • Over mine eyes its shadowy strings it spread
  • Fitfully, and the hills and streams fled fast,
  • As o'er their glimmering forms the steed's broad shadow passed.
  • 22.
  • And his hoofs ground the rocks to fire and dust,
  • His strong sides made the torrents rise in spray, _2525
  • And turbulence, as of a whirlwind's gust
  • Surrounded us;--and still away! away!
  • Through the desert night we sped, while she alway
  • Gazed on a mountain which we neared, whose crest,
  • Crowned with a marble ruin, in the ray _2530
  • Of the obscure stars gleamed;--its rugged breast
  • The steed strained up, and then his impulse did arrest.
  • 23.
  • A rocky hill which overhung the Ocean:--
  • From that lone ruin, when the steed that panted
  • Paused, might be heard the murmur of the motion _2535
  • Of waters, as in spots for ever haunted
  • By the choicest winds of Heaven, which are enchanted
  • To music, by the wand of Solitude,
  • That wizard wild, and the far tents implanted
  • Upon the plain, be seen by those who stood _2540
  • Thence marking the dark shore of Ocean's curved flood.
  • 24.
  • One moment these were heard and seen--another
  • Passed; and the two who stood beneath that night,
  • Each only heard, or saw, or felt the other;
  • As from the lofty steed she did alight, _2545
  • Cythna, (for, from the eyes whose deepest light
  • Of love and sadness made my lips feel pale
  • With influence strange of mournfullest delight,
  • My own sweet Cythna looked), with joy did quail,
  • And felt her strength in tears of human weakness fail. _2550
  • 25.
  • And for a space in my embrace she rested,
  • Her head on my unquiet heart reposing,
  • While my faint arms her languid frame invested;
  • At length she looked on me, and half unclosing
  • Her tremulous lips, said, 'Friend, thy bands were losing _2555
  • The battle, as I stood before the King
  • In bonds.--I burst them then, and swiftly choosing
  • The time, did seize a Tartar's sword, and spring
  • Upon his horse, and swift, as on the whirlwind's wing,
  • 26.
  • 'Have thou and I been borne beyond pursuer, _2560
  • And we are here.'--Then, turning to the steed,
  • She pressed the white moon on his front with pure
  • And rose-like lips, and many a fragrant weed
  • From the green ruin plucked, that he might feed;--
  • But I to a stone seat that Maiden led, _2565
  • And, kissing her fair eyes, said, 'Thou hast need
  • Of rest,' and I heaped up the courser's bed
  • In a green mossy nook, with mountain flowers dispread.
  • 27.
  • Within that ruin, where a shattered portal
  • Looks to the eastern stars, abandoned now _2570
  • By man, to be the home of things immortal,
  • Memories, like awful ghosts which come and go,
  • And must inherit all he builds below,
  • When he is gone, a hall stood; o'er whose roof
  • Fair clinging weeds with ivy pale did grow, _2575
  • Clasping its gray rents with a verdurous woof,
  • A hanging dome of leaves, a canopy moon-proof.
  • 28.
  • The autumnal winds, as if spell-bound, had made
  • A natural couch of leaves in that recess,
  • Which seasons none disturbed, but, in the shade _2580
  • Of flowering parasites, did Spring love to dress
  • With their sweet blooms the wintry loneliness
  • Of those dead leaves, shedding their stars, whene'er
  • The wandering wind her nurslings might caress;
  • Whose intertwining fingers ever there _2585
  • Made music wild and soft that filled the listening air.
  • 29.
  • We know not where we go, or what sweet dream
  • May pilot us through caverns strange and fair
  • Of far and pathless passion, while the stream
  • Of life, our bark doth on its whirlpools bear, _2590
  • Spreading swift wings as sails to the dim air;
  • Nor should we seek to know, so the devotion
  • Of love and gentle thoughts be heard still there
  • Louder and louder from the utmost Ocean
  • Of universal life, attuning its commotion. _2595
  • 30.
  • To the pure all things are pure! Oblivion wrapped
  • Our spirits, and the fearful overthrow
  • Of public hope was from our being snapped,
  • Though linked years had bound it there; for now
  • A power, a thirst, a knowledge, which below _2600
  • All thoughts, like light beyond the atmosphere,
  • Clothing its clouds with grace, doth ever flow,
  • Came on us, as we sate in silence there,
  • Beneath the golden stars of the clear azure air;--
  • 31.
  • In silence which doth follow talk that causes _2605
  • The baffled heart to speak with sighs and tears,
  • When wildering passion swalloweth up the pauses
  • Of inexpressive speech:--the youthful years
  • Which we together passed, their hopes and fears,
  • The blood itself which ran within our frames, _2610
  • That likeness of the features which endears
  • The thoughts expressed by them, our very names,
  • And all the winged hours which speechless memory claims,
  • 32.
  • Had found a voice--and ere that voice did pass,
  • The night grew damp and dim, and, through a rent _2615
  • Of the ruin where we sate, from the morass
  • A wandering Meteor by some wild wind sent,
  • Hung high in the green dome, to which it lent
  • A faint and pallid lustre; while the song
  • Of blasts, in which its blue hair quivering bent, _2620
  • Strewed strangest sounds the moving leaves among;
  • A wondrous light, the sound as of a spirit's tongue.
  • 33.
  • The Meteor showed the leaves on which we sate,
  • And Cythna's glowing arms, and the thick ties
  • Of her soft hair, which bent with gathered weight _2625
  • My neck near hers; her dark and deepening eyes,
  • Which, as twin phantoms of one star that lies
  • O'er a dim well, move, though the star reposes,
  • Swam in our mute and liquid ecstasies,
  • Her marble brow, and eager lips, like roses, _2630
  • With their own fragrance pale, which Spring but half uncloses.
  • 34.
  • The Meteor to its far morass returned:
  • The beating of our veins one interval
  • Made still; and then I felt the blood that burned
  • Within her frame, mingle with mine, and fall _2635
  • Around my heart like fire; and over all
  • A mist was spread, the sickness of a deep
  • And speechless swoon of joy, as might befall
  • Two disunited spirits when they leap
  • In union from this earth's obscure and fading sleep. _2640
  • 35.
  • Was it one moment that confounded thus
  • All thought, all sense, all feeling, into one
  • Unutterable power, which shielded us
  • Even from our own cold looks, when we had gone
  • Into a wide and wild oblivion _2645
  • Of tumult and of tenderness? or now
  • Had ages, such as make the moon and sun,
  • The seasons, and mankind their changes know,
  • Left fear and time unfelt by us alone below?
  • 36.
  • I know not. What are kisses whose fire clasps _2650
  • The failing heart in languishment, or limb
  • Twined within limb? or the quick dying gasps
  • Of the life meeting, when the faint eyes swim
  • Through tears of a wide mist boundless and dim,
  • In one caress? What is the strong control _2655
  • Which leads the heart that dizzy steep to climb,
  • Where far over the world those vapours roll
  • Which blend two restless frames in one reposing soul?
  • 37.
  • It is the shadow which doth float unseen,
  • But not unfelt, o'er blind mortality, _2660
  • Whose divine darkness fled not from that green
  • And lone recess, where lapped in peace did lie
  • Our linked frames, till, from the changing sky
  • That night and still another day had fled;
  • And then I saw and felt. The moon was high, _2665
  • And clouds, as of a coming storm, were spread
  • Under its orb,--loud winds were gathering overhead.
  • 38.
  • Cythna's sweet lips seemed lurid in the moon,
  • Her fairest limbs with the night wind were chill,
  • And her dark tresses were all loosely strewn _2670
  • O'er her pale bosom:--all within was still,
  • And the sweet peace of joy did almost fill
  • The depth of her unfathomable look;--
  • And we sate calmly, though that rocky hill,
  • The waves contending in its caverns strook, _2675
  • For they foreknew the storm, and the gray ruin shook.
  • 39.
  • There we unheeding sate, in the communion
  • Of interchanged vows, which, with a rite
  • Of faith most sweet and sacred, stamped our union.--
  • Few were the living hearts which could unite _2680
  • Like ours, or celebrate a bridal night
  • With such close sympathies, for they had sprung
  • From linked youth, and from the gentle might
  • Of earliest love, delayed and cherished long,
  • Which common hopes and fears made, like a tempest, strong. _2685
  • 40.
  • And such is Nature's law divine, that those
  • Who grow together cannot choose but love,
  • If faith or custom do not interpose,
  • Or common slavery mar what else might move
  • All gentlest thoughts; as in the sacred grove _2690
  • Which shades the springs of Ethiopian Nile,
  • That living tree which, if the arrowy dove
  • Strike with her shadow, shrinks in fear awhile,
  • But its own kindred leaves clasps while the sunbeams smile;
  • 41.
  • And clings to them, when darkness may dissever _2695
  • The close caresses of all duller plants
  • Which bloom on the wide earth--thus we for ever
  • Were linked, for love had nursed us in the haunts
  • Where knowledge, from its secret source enchants
  • Young hearts with the fresh music of its springing, _2700
  • Ere yet its gathered flood feeds human wants,
  • As the great Nile feeds Egypt; ever flinging
  • Light on the woven boughs which o'er its waves are swinging.
  • 42.
  • The tones of Cythna's voice like echoes were
  • Of those far murmuring streams; they rose and fell, _2705
  • Mixed with mine own in the tempestuous air,--
  • And so we sate, until our talk befell
  • Of the late ruin, swift and horrible,
  • And how those seeds of hope might yet be sown,
  • Whose fruit is evil's mortal poison: well, _2710
  • For us, this ruin made a watch-tower lone,
  • But Cythna's eyes looked faint, and now two days were gone
  • 43.
  • Since she had food:--therefore I did awaken
  • The Tartar steed, who, from his ebon mane
  • Soon as the clinging slumbers he had shaken, _2715
  • Bent his thin head to seek the brazen rein,
  • Following me obediently; with pain
  • Of heart, so deep and dread, that one caress,
  • When lips and heart refuse to part again
  • Till they have told their fill, could scarce express _2720
  • The anguish of her mute and fearful tenderness,
  • 44.
  • Cythna beheld me part, as I bestrode
  • That willing steed--the tempest and the night,
  • Which gave my path its safety as I rode
  • Down the ravine of rocks, did soon unite _2725
  • The darkness and the tumult of their might
  • Borne on all winds.--Far through the streaming rain
  • Floating at intervals the garments white
  • Of Cythna gleamed, and her voice once again
  • Came to me on the gust, and soon I reached the plain. _2730
  • 45.
  • I dreaded not the tempest, nor did he
  • Who bore me, but his eyeballs wide and red
  • Turned on the lightning's cleft exultingly;
  • And when the earth beneath his tameless tread,
  • Shook with the sullen thunder, he would spread _2735
  • His nostrils to the blast, and joyously
  • Mock the fierce peal with neighings;--thus we sped
  • O'er the lit plain, and soon I could descry
  • Where Death and Fire had gorged the spoil of victory.
  • 46.
  • There was a desolate village in a wood _2740
  • Whose bloom-inwoven leaves now scattering fed
  • The hungry storm; it was a place of blood,
  • A heap of hearthless walls;--the flames were dead
  • Within those dwellings now,--the life had fled
  • From all those corpses now,--but the wide sky _2745
  • Flooded with lightning was ribbed overhead
  • By the black rafters, and around did lie
  • Women, and babes, and men, slaughtered confusedly.
  • 47.
  • Beside the fountain in the market-place
  • Dismounting, I beheld those corpses stare _2750
  • With horny eyes upon each other's face,
  • And on the earth and on the vacant air,
  • And upon me, close to the waters where
  • I stooped to slake my thirst;--I shrank to taste,
  • For the salt bitterness of blood was there; _2755
  • But tied the steed beside, and sought in haste
  • If any yet survived amid that ghastly waste.
  • 48.
  • No living thing was there beside one woman,
  • Whom I found wandering in the streets, and she
  • Was withered from a likeness of aught human _2760
  • Into a fiend, by some strange misery:
  • Soon as she heard my steps she leaped on me,
  • And glued her burning lips to mine, and laughed
  • With a loud, long, and frantic laugh of glee,
  • And cried, 'Now, Mortal, thou hast deeply quaffed _2765
  • The Plague's blue kisses--soon millions shall pledge the draught!
  • 49.
  • 'My name is Pestilence--this bosom dry,
  • Once fed two babes--a sister and a brother--
  • When I came home, one in the blood did lie
  • Of three death-wounds--the flames had ate the other! _2770
  • Since then I have no longer been a mother,
  • But I am Pestilence;--hither and thither
  • I flit about, that I may slay and smother:--
  • All lips which I have kissed must surely wither,
  • But Death's--if thou art he, we'll go to work together! _2775
  • 50.
  • 'What seek'st thou here? The moonlight comes in flashes,--
  • The dew is rising dankly from the dell--
  • 'Twill moisten her! and thou shalt see the gashes
  • In my sweet boy, now full of worms--but tell
  • First what thou seek'st.'--'I seek for food.'--''Tis well, _2780
  • Thou shalt have food. Famine, my paramour,
  • Waits for us at the feast--cruel and fell
  • Is Famine, but he drives not from his door
  • Those whom these lips have kissed, alone. No more, no more!'
  • 51.
  • As thus she spake, she grasped me with the strength _2785
  • Of madness, and by many a ruined hearth
  • She led, and over many a corpse:--at length
  • We came to a lone hut where on the earth
  • Which made its floor, she in her ghastly mirth,
  • Gathering from all those homes now desolate, _2790
  • Had piled three heaps of loaves, making a dearth
  • Among the dead--round which she set in state
  • A ring of cold, stiff babes; silent and stark they sate.
  • 52.
  • She leaped upon a pile, and lifted high
  • Her mad looks to the lightning, and cried: 'Eat! _2795
  • Share the great feast--to-morrow we must die!'
  • And then she spurned the loaves with her pale feet,
  • Towards her bloodless guests;--that sight to meet,
  • Mine eyes and my heart ached, and but that she
  • Who loved me, did with absent looks defeat _2800
  • Despair, I might have raved in sympathy;
  • But now I took the food that woman offered me;
  • 53.
  • And vainly having with her madness striven
  • If I might win her to return with me,
  • Departed. In the eastern beams of Heaven _2805
  • The lightning now grew pallid--rapidly,
  • As by the shore of the tempestuous sea
  • The dark steed bore me; and the mountain gray
  • Soon echoed to his hoofs, and I could see
  • Cythna among the rocks, where she alway _2810
  • Had sate with anxious eyes fixed on the lingering day.
  • 54.
  • And joy was ours to meet: she was most pale,
  • Famished, and wet and weary, so I cast
  • My arms around her, lest her steps should fail
  • As to our home we went, and thus embraced, _2815
  • Her full heart seemed a deeper joy to taste
  • Than e'er the prosperous know; the steed behind
  • Trod peacefully along the mountain waste;
  • We reached our home ere morning could unbind
  • Night's latest veil, and on our bridal-couch reclined. _2820
  • 55.
  • Her chilled heart having cherished in my bosom,
  • And sweetest kisses past, we two did share
  • Our peaceful meal:--as an autumnal blossom
  • Which spreads its shrunk leaves in the sunny air,
  • After cold showers, like rainbows woven there, _2825
  • Thus in her lips and cheeks the vital spirit
  • Mantled, and in her eyes, an atmosphere
  • Of health, and hope; and sorrow languished near it,
  • And fear, and all that dark despondence doth inherit.
  • NOTES:
  • _2397 -isle. Bradley, who cps. Marianne's Dream, St. 12. See note at end.
  • CANTO 7.
  • 1.
  • So we sate joyous as the morning ray _2830
  • Which fed upon the wrecks of night and storm
  • Now lingering on the winds; light airs did play
  • Among the dewy weeds, the sun was warm,
  • And we sate linked in the inwoven charm
  • Of converse and caresses sweet and deep, _2835
  • Speechless caresses, talk that might disarm
  • Time, though he wield the darts of death and sleep,
  • And those thrice mortal barbs in his own poison steep.
  • 2.
  • I told her of my sufferings and my madness,
  • And how, awakened from that dreamy mood _2840
  • By Liberty's uprise, the strength of gladness
  • Came to my spirit in my solitude;
  • And all that now I was--while tears pursued
  • Each other down her fair and listening cheek
  • Fast as the thoughts which fed them, like a flood _2845
  • From sunbright dales; and when I ceased to speak,
  • Her accents soft and sweet the pausing air did wake.
  • 3.
  • She told me a strange tale of strange endurance,
  • Like broken memories of many a heart
  • Woven into one; to which no firm assurance, _2850
  • So wild were they, could her own faith impart.
  • She said that not a tear did dare to start
  • From the swoln brain, and that her thoughts were firm
  • When from all mortal hope she did depart,
  • Borne by those slaves across the Ocean's term, _2855
  • And that she reached the port without one fear infirm.
  • 4.
  • One was she among many there, the thralls
  • Of the cold Tyrant's cruel lust; and they
  • Laughed mournfully in those polluted halls;
  • But she was calm and sad, musing alway _2860
  • On loftiest enterprise, till on a day
  • The Tyrant heard her singing to her lute
  • A wild, and sad, and spirit-thrilling lay,
  • Like winds that die in wastes--one moment mute
  • The evil thoughts it made, which did his breast pollute. _2865
  • 5.
  • Even when he saw her wondrous loveliness,
  • One moment to great Nature's sacred power
  • He bent, and was no longer passionless;
  • But when he bade her to his secret bower
  • Be borne, a loveless victim, and she tore _2870
  • Her locks in agony, and her words of flame
  • And mightier looks availed not; then he bore
  • Again his load of slavery, and became
  • A king, a heartless beast, a pageant and a name.
  • 6.
  • She told me what a loathsome agony _2875
  • Is that when selfishness mocks love's delight,
  • Foul as in dream's most fearful imagery,
  • To dally with the mowing dead--that night
  • All torture, fear, or horror made seem light
  • Which the soul dreams or knows, and when the day _2880
  • Shone on her awful frenzy, from the sight
  • Where like a Spirit in fleshly chains she lay
  • Struggling, aghast and pale the Tyrant fled away.
  • 7.
  • Her madness was a beam of light, a power
  • Which dawned through the rent soul; and words it gave, _2885
  • Gestures and looks, such as in whirlwinds bore
  • Which might not be withstood--whence none could save--
  • All who approached their sphere,--like some calm wave
  • Vexed into whirlpools by the chasms beneath;
  • And sympathy made each attendant slave _2890
  • Fearless and free, and they began to breathe
  • Deep curses, like the voice of flames far underneath.
  • 8.
  • The King felt pale upon his noonday throne:
  • At night two slaves he to her chamber sent,--
  • One was a green and wrinkled eunuch, grown _2895
  • From human shape into an instrument
  • Of all things ill--distorted, bowed and bent.
  • The other was a wretch from infancy
  • Made dumb by poison; who nought knew or meant
  • But to obey: from the fire isles came he, _2900
  • A diver lean and strong, of Oman's coral sea.
  • 9.
  • They bore her to a bark, and the swift stroke
  • Of silent rowers clove the blue moonlight seas,
  • Until upon their path the morning broke;
  • They anchored then, where, be there calm or breeze, _2905
  • The gloomiest of the drear Symplegades
  • Shakes with the sleepless surge;--the Ethiop there
  • Wound his long arms around her, and with knees
  • Like iron clasped her feet, and plunged with her
  • Among the closing waves out of the boundless air. _2910
  • 10.
  • 'Swift as an eagle stooping from the plain
  • Of morning light, into some shadowy wood,
  • He plunged through the green silence of the main,
  • Through many a cavern which the eternal flood
  • Had scooped, as dark lairs for its monster brood; _2915
  • And among mighty shapes which fled in wonder,
  • And among mightier shadows which pursued
  • His heels, he wound: until the dark rocks under
  • He touched a golden chain--a sound arose like thunder.
  • 11.
  • 'A stunning clang of massive bolts redoubling _2920
  • Beneath the deep--a burst of waters driven
  • As from the roots of the sea, raging and bubbling:
  • And in that roof of crags a space was riven
  • Through which there shone the emerald beams of heaven,
  • Shot through the lines of many waves inwoven, _2925
  • Like sunlight through acacia woods at even,
  • Through which, his way the diver having cloven,
  • Passed like a spark sent up out of a burning oven.
  • 12.
  • 'And then,' she said, 'he laid me in a cave
  • Above the waters, by that chasm of sea, _2930
  • A fountain round and vast, in which the wave
  • Imprisoned, boiled and leaped perpetually,
  • Down which, one moment resting, he did flee,
  • Winning the adverse depth; that spacious cell
  • Like an hupaithric temple wide and high, _2935
  • Whose aery dome is inaccessible,
  • Was pierced with one round cleft through which the sunbeams fell.
  • 13.
  • 'Below, the fountain's brink was richly paven
  • With the deep's wealth, coral, and pearl, and sand
  • Like spangling gold, and purple shells engraven _2940
  • With mystic legends by no mortal hand,
  • Left there, when thronging to the moon's command,
  • The gathering waves rent the Hesperian gate
  • Of mountains, and on such bright floor did stand
  • Columns, and shapes like statues, and the state _2945
  • Of kingless thrones, which Earth did in her heart create.
  • 14.
  • 'The fiend of madness which had made its prey
  • Of my poor heart, was lulled to sleep awhile:
  • There was an interval of many a day,
  • And a sea-eagle brought me food the while, _2950
  • Whose nest was built in that untrodden isle,
  • And who, to be the gaoler had been taught
  • Of that strange dungeon; as a friend whose smile
  • Like light and rest at morn and even is sought
  • That wild bird was to me, till madness misery brought. _2955
  • 15.
  • 'The misery of a madness slow and creeping,
  • Which made the earth seem fire, the sea seem air,
  • And the white clouds of noon which oft were sleeping,
  • In the blue heaven so beautiful and fair,
  • Like hosts of ghastly shadows hovering there; _2960
  • And the sea-eagle looked a fiend, who bore
  • Thy mangled limbs for food!--Thus all things were
  • Transformed into the agony which I wore
  • Even as a poisoned robe around my bosom's core.
  • 16.
  • 'Again I knew the day and night fast fleeing, _2965
  • The eagle, and the fountain, and the air;
  • Another frenzy came--there seemed a being
  • Within me--a strange load my heart did bear,
  • As if some living thing had made its lair
  • Even in the fountains of my life:--a long _2970
  • And wondrous vision wrought from my despair,
  • Then grew, like sweet reality among
  • Dim visionary woes, an unreposing throng.
  • 17.
  • 'Methought I was about to be a mother--
  • Month after month went by, and still I dreamed _2975
  • That we should soon be all to one another,
  • I and my child; and still new pulses seemed
  • To beat beside my heart, and still I deemed
  • There was a babe within--and, when the rain
  • Of winter through the rifted cavern streamed, _2980
  • Methought, after a lapse of lingering pain,
  • I saw that lovely shape, which near my heart had lain.
  • 18.
  • 'It was a babe, beautiful from its birth,--
  • It was like thee, dear love, its eyes were thine,
  • Its brow, its lips, and so upon the earth _2985
  • It laid its fingers, as now rest on mine
  • Thine own, beloved!--'twas a dream divine;
  • Even to remember how it fled, how swift,
  • How utterly, might make the heart repine,--
  • Though 'twas a dream.'--Then Cythna did uplift _2990
  • Her looks on mine, as if some doubt she sought to shift:
  • 19.
  • A doubt which would not flee, a tenderness
  • Of questioning grief, a source of thronging tears;
  • Which having passed, as one whom sobs oppress
  • She spoke: 'Yes, in the wilderness of years _2995
  • Her memory, aye, like a green home appears;
  • She sucked her fill even at this breast, sweet love,
  • For many months. I had no mortal fears;
  • Methought I felt her lips and breath approve,--
  • It was a human thing which to my bosom clove. _3000
  • 20.
  • 'I watched the dawn of her first smiles; and soon
  • When zenith stars were trembling on the wave,
  • Or when the beams of the invisible moon,
  • Or sun, from many a prism within the cave
  • Their gem-born shadows to the water gave, _3005
  • Her looks would hunt them, and with outspread hand,
  • From the swift lights which might that fountain pave,
  • She would mark one, and laugh, when that command
  • Slighting, it lingered there, and could not understand.
  • 21.
  • 'Methought her looks began to talk with me; _3010
  • And no articulate sounds, but something sweet
  • Her lips would frame,--so sweet it could not be,
  • That it was meaningless; her touch would meet
  • Mine, and our pulses calmly flow and beat
  • In response while we slept; and on a day _3015
  • When I was happiest in that strange retreat,
  • With heaps of golden shells we two did play,--
  • Both infants, weaving wings for time's perpetual way.
  • 22.
  • 'Ere night, methought, her waning eyes were grown
  • Weary with joy, and tired with our delight, _3020
  • We, on the earth, like sister twins lay down
  • On one fair mother's bosom:--from that night
  • She fled,--like those illusions clear and bright,
  • Which dwell in lakes, when the red moon on high
  • Pause ere it wakens tempest;--and her flight, _3025
  • Though 'twas the death of brainless fantasy,
  • Yet smote my lonesome heart more than all misery.
  • 23.
  • 'It seemed that in the dreary night the diver
  • Who brought me thither, came again, and bore
  • My child away. I saw the waters quiver, _3030
  • When he so swiftly sunk, as once before:
  • Then morning came--it shone even as of yore,
  • But I was changed--the very life was gone
  • Out of my heart--I wasted more and more,
  • Day after day, and sitting there alone, _3035
  • Vexed the inconstant waves with my perpetual moan.
  • 24.
  • 'I was no longer mad, and yet methought
  • My breasts were swoln and changed:--in every vein
  • The blood stood still one moment, while that thought
  • Was passing--with a gush of sickening pain _3040
  • It ebbed even to its withered springs again:
  • When my wan eyes in stern resolve I turned
  • From that most strange delusion, which would fain
  • Have waked the dream for which my spirit yearned
  • With more than human love,--then left it unreturned. _3045
  • 25.
  • 'So now my reason was restored to me
  • I struggled with that dream, which, like a beast
  • Most fierce and beauteous, in my memory
  • Had made its lair, and on my heart did feast;
  • But all that cave and all its shapes, possessed _3050
  • By thoughts which could not fade, renewed each one
  • Some smile, some look, some gesture which had blessed
  • Me heretofore: I, sitting there alone,
  • Vexed the inconstant waves with my perpetual moan.
  • 26.
  • 'Time passed, I know not whether months or years; _3055
  • For day, nor night, nor change of seasons made
  • Its note, but thoughts and unavailing tears:
  • And I became at last even as a shade,
  • A smoke, a cloud on which the winds have preyed,
  • Till it be thin as air; until, one even, _3060
  • A Nautilus upon the fountain played,
  • Spreading his azure sail where breath of Heaven
  • Descended not, among the waves and whirlpools driven.
  • 27.
  • 'And, when the Eagle came, that lovely thing,
  • Oaring with rosy feet its silver boat, _3065
  • Fled near me as for shelter; on slow wing,
  • The Eagle, hovering o'er his prey did float;
  • But when he saw that I with fear did note
  • His purpose, proffering my own food to him,
  • The eager plumes subsided on his throat-- _3070
  • He came where that bright child of sea did swim,
  • And o'er it cast in peace his shadow broad and dim.
  • 28.
  • 'This wakened me, it gave me human strength;
  • And hope, I know not whence or wherefore, rose,
  • But I resumed my ancient powers at length; _3075
  • My spirit felt again like one of those
  • Like thine, whose fate it is to make the woes
  • Of humankind their prey--what was this cave?
  • Its deep foundation no firm purpose knows
  • Immutable, resistless, strong to save, _3080
  • Like mind while yet it mocks the all-devouring grave.
  • 29.
  • 'And where was Laon? might my heart be dead,
  • While that far dearer heart could move and be?
  • Or whilst over the earth the pall was spread,
  • Which I had sworn to rend? I might be free, _3085
  • Could I but win that friendly bird to me,
  • To bring me ropes; and long in vain I sought
  • By intercourse of mutual imagery
  • Of objects, if such aid he could be taught;
  • But fruit, and flowers, and boughs, yet never ropes he brought. _3090
  • 30.
  • 'We live in our own world, and mine was made
  • From glorious fantasies of hope departed:
  • Aye we are darkened with their floating shade,
  • Or cast a lustre on them--time imparted
  • Such power to me--I became fearless-hearted, _3095
  • My eye and voice grew firm, calm was my mind,
  • And piercing, like the morn, now it has darted
  • Its lustre on all hidden things, behind
  • Yon dim and fading clouds which load the weary wind.
  • 31.
  • 'My mind became the book through which I grew _3100
  • Wise in all human wisdom, and its cave,
  • Which like a mine I rifled through and through,
  • To me the keeping of its secrets gave--
  • One mind, the type of all, the moveless wave
  • Whose calm reflects all moving things that are, _3105
  • Necessity, and love, and life, the grave,
  • And sympathy, fountains of hope and fear,
  • Justice, and truth, and time, and the world's natural sphere.
  • 32.
  • 'And on the sand would I make signs to range
  • These woofs, as they were woven, of my thought; _3110
  • Clear, elemental shapes, whose smallest change
  • A subtler language within language wrought:
  • The key of truths which once were dimly taught
  • In old Crotona;--and sweet melodies
  • Of love, in that lorn solitude I caught _3115
  • From mine own voice in dream, when thy dear eyes
  • Shone through my sleep, and did that utterance harmonize.
  • 33.
  • 'Thy songs were winds whereon I fled at will,
  • As in a winged chariot, o'er the plain
  • Of crystal youth; and thou wert there to fill _3120
  • My heart with joy, and there we sate again
  • On the gray margin of the glimmering main,
  • Happy as then but wiser far, for we
  • Smiled on the flowery grave in which were lain
  • Fear, Faith and Slavery; and mankind was free, _3125
  • Equal, and pure, and wise, in Wisdom's prophecy.
  • 34.
  • 'For to my will my fancies were as slaves
  • To do their sweet and subtile ministries;
  • And oft from that bright fountain's shadowy waves
  • They would make human throngs gather and rise _3130
  • To combat with my overflowing eyes,
  • And voice made deep with passion--thus I grew
  • Familiar with the shock and the surprise
  • And war of earthly minds, from which I drew
  • The power which has been mine to frame their thoughts anew. _3135
  • 35.
  • 'And thus my prison was the populous earth--
  • Where I saw--even as misery dreams of morn
  • Before the east has given its glory birth--
  • Religion's pomp made desolate by the scorn
  • Of Wisdom's faintest smile, and thrones uptorn, _3140
  • And dwellings of mild people interspersed
  • With undivided fields of ripening corn,
  • And love made free,--a hope which we have nursed
  • Even with our blood and tears,--until its glory burst.
  • 36.
  • 'All is not lost! There is some recompense _3145
  • For hope whose fountain can be thus profound,
  • Even throned Evil's splendid impotence,
  • Girt by its hell of power, the secret sound
  • Of hymns to truth and freedom--the dread bound
  • Of life and death passed fearlessly and well, _3150
  • Dungeons wherein the high resolve is found,
  • Racks which degraded woman's greatness tell,
  • And what may else be good and irresistible.
  • 37.
  • 'Such are the thoughts which, like the fires that flare
  • In storm-encompassed isles, we cherish yet _3155
  • In this dark ruin--such were mine even there;
  • As in its sleep some odorous violet,
  • While yet its leaves with nightly dews are wet,
  • Breathes in prophetic dreams of day's uprise,
  • Or as, ere Scythian frost in fear has met _3160
  • Spring's messengers descending from the skies,
  • The buds foreknow their life--this hope must ever rise.
  • 38.
  • 'So years had passed, when sudden earthquake rent
  • The depth of ocean, and the cavern cracked
  • With sound, as if the world's wide continent _3165
  • Had fallen in universal ruin wracked:
  • And through the cleft streamed in one cataract
  • The stifling waters--when I woke, the flood
  • Whose banded waves that crystal cave had sacked
  • Was ebbing round me, and my bright abode _3170
  • Before me yawned--a chasm desert, and bare, and broad.
  • 39.
  • 'Above me was the sky, beneath the sea:
  • I stood upon a point of shattered stone,
  • And heard loose rocks rushing tumultuously
  • With splash and shock into the deep--anon _3175
  • All ceased, and there was silence wide and lone.
  • I felt that I was free! The Ocean-spray
  • Quivered beneath my feet, the broad Heaven shone
  • Around, and in my hair the winds did play
  • Lingering as they pursued their unimpeded way. _3180
  • 40.
  • 'My spirit moved upon the sea like wind
  • Which round some thymy cape will lag and hover,
  • Though it can wake the still cloud, and unbind
  • The strength of tempest: day was almost over,
  • When through the fading light I could discover _3185
  • A ship approaching--its white sails were fed
  • With the north wind--its moving shade did cover
  • The twilight deep; the mariners in dread
  • Cast anchor when they saw new rocks around them spread.
  • 41.
  • 'And when they saw one sitting on a crag, _3190
  • They sent a boat to me;--the Sailors rowed
  • In awe through many a new and fearful jag
  • Of overhanging rock, through which there flowed
  • The foam of streams that cannot make abode.
  • They came and questioned me, but when they heard _3195
  • My voice, they became silent, and they stood
  • And moved as men in whom new love had stirred
  • Deep thoughts: so to the ship we passed without a word.
  • NOTES:
  • _2877 dreams edition 1818.
  • _2994 opprest edition 1818.
  • _3115 lone solitude edition 1818.
  • CANTO 8.
  • 1.
  • 'I sate beside the Steersman then, and gazing
  • Upon the west, cried, "Spread the sails! Behold! _3200
  • The sinking moon is like a watch-tower blazing
  • Over the mountains yet;--the City of Gold
  • Yon Cape alone does from the sight withhold;
  • The stream is fleet--the north breathes steadily
  • Beneath the stars; they tremble with the cold! _3205
  • Ye cannot rest upon the dreary sea!--
  • Haste, haste to the warm home of happier destiny!"
  • 2.
  • 'The Mariners obeyed--the Captain stood
  • Aloof, and, whispering to the Pilot, said,
  • "Alas, alas! I fear we are pursued _3210
  • By wicked ghosts; a Phantom of the Dead,
  • The night before we sailed, came to my bed
  • In dream, like that!" The Pilot then replied,
  • "It cannot be--she is a human Maid--
  • Her low voice makes you weep--she is some bride, _3215
  • Or daughter of high birth--she can be nought beside."
  • 3.
  • 'We passed the islets, borne by wind and stream,
  • And as we sailed, the Mariners came near
  • And thronged around to listen;--in the gleam
  • Of the pale moon I stood, as one whom fear _3220
  • May not attaint, and my calm voice did rear;
  • "Ye are all human--yon broad moon gives light
  • To millions who the selfsame likeness wear,
  • Even while I speak--beneath this very night,
  • Their thoughts flow on like ours, in sadness or delight. _3225
  • 4.
  • '"What dream ye? Your own hands have built an home,
  • Even for yourselves on a beloved shore:
  • For some, fond eyes are pining till they come,
  • How they will greet him when his toils are o'er,
  • And laughing babes rush from the well-known door! _3230
  • Is this your care? ye toil for your own good--
  • Ye feel and think--has some immortal power
  • Such purposes? or in a human mood,
  • Dream ye some Power thus builds for man in solitude?
  • 5.
  • '"What is that Power? Ye mock yourselves, and give _3235
  • A human heart to what ye cannot know:
  • As if the cause of life could think and live!
  • 'Twere as if man's own works should feel, and show
  • The hopes, and fears, and thoughts from which they flow,
  • And he be like to them! Lo! Plague is free _3240
  • To waste, Blight, Poison, Earthquake, Hail, and Snow,
  • Disease, and Want, and worse Necessity
  • Of hate and ill, and Pride, and Fear, and Tyranny!
  • 6.
  • '"What is that Power? Some moon-struck sophist stood
  • Watching the shade from his own soul upthrown _3245
  • Fill Heaven and darken Earth, and in such mood
  • The Form he saw and worshipped was his own,
  • His likeness in the world's vast mirror shown;
  • And 'twere an innocent dream, but that a faith
  • Nursed by fear's dew of poison, grows thereon, _3250
  • And that men say, that Power has chosen Death
  • On all who scorn its laws, to wreak immortal wrath.
  • 7.
  • '"Men say that they themselves have heard and seen,
  • Or known from others who have known such things,
  • A Shade, a Form, which Earth and Heaven between _3255
  • Wields an invisible rod--that Priests and Kings,
  • Custom, domestic sway, ay, all that brings
  • Man's freeborn soul beneath the oppressor's heel,
  • Are his strong ministers, and that the stings
  • Of death will make the wise his vengeance feel, _3260
  • Though truth and virtue arm their hearts with tenfold steel.
  • 8.
  • '"And it is said, this Power will punish wrong;
  • Yes, add despair to crime, and pain to pain!
  • And deepest hell, and deathless snakes among,
  • Will bind the wretch on whom is fixed a stain, _3265
  • Which, like a plague, a burden, and a bane,
  • Clung to him while he lived; for love and hate,
  • Virtue and vice, they say are difference vain--
  • The will of strength is right--this human state
  • Tyrants, that they may rule, with lies thus desolate. _3270
  • 9.
  • '"Alas, what strength? Opinion is more frail
  • Than yon dim cloud now fading on the moon
  • Even while we gaze, though it awhile avail
  • To hide the orb of truth--and every throne
  • Of Earth or Heaven, though shadow, rests thereon, _3275
  • One shape of many names:--for this ye plough
  • The barren waves of ocean, hence each one
  • Is slave or tyrant; all betray and bow,
  • Command, or kill, or fear, or wreak, or suffer woe.
  • 10.
  • '"Its names are each a sign which maketh holy _3280
  • All power--ay, the ghost, the dream, the shade
  • Of power--lust, falsehood, hate, and pride, and folly;
  • The pattern whence all fraud and wrong is made,
  • A law to which mankind has been betrayed;
  • And human love, is as the name well known _3285
  • Of a dear mother, whom the murderer laid
  • In bloody grave, and into darkness thrown,
  • Gathered her wildered babes around him as his own.
  • 11.
  • '"O Love, who to the hearts of wandering men
  • Art as the calm to Ocean's weary waves! _3290
  • Justice, or Truth, or Joy! those only can
  • From slavery and religion's labyrinth caves
  • Guide us, as one clear star the seaman saves.
  • To give to all an equal share of good,
  • To track the steps of Freedom, though through graves _3295
  • She pass, to suffer all in patient mood,
  • To weep for crime, though stained with thy friend's dearest blood,--
  • 12.
  • '"To feel the peace of self-contentment's lot,
  • To own all sympathies, and outrage none,
  • And in the inmost bowers of sense and thought, _3300
  • Until life's sunny day is quite gone down,
  • To sit and smile with Joy, or, not alone,
  • To kiss salt tears from the worn cheek of Woe;
  • To live, as if to love and live were one,--
  • This is not faith or law, nor those who bow _3305
  • To thrones on Heaven or Earth, such destiny may know.
  • 13.
  • '"But children near their parents tremble now,
  • Because they must obey--one rules another,
  • And as one Power rules both high and low,
  • So man is made the captive of his brother, _3310
  • And Hate is throned on high with Fear her mother,
  • Above the Highest--and those fountain-cells,
  • Whence love yet flowed when faith had choked all other,
  • Are darkened--Woman as the bond-slave dwells
  • Of man, a slave; and life is poisoned in its wells. _3315
  • 14.
  • '"Man seeks for gold in mines, that he may weave
  • A lasting chain for his own slavery;--
  • In fear and restless care that he may live
  • He toils for others, who must ever be
  • The joyless thralls of like captivity; _3320
  • He murders, for his chiefs delight in ruin;
  • He builds the altar, that its idol's fee
  • May be his very blood; he is pursuing--
  • O, blind and willing wretch!--his own obscure undoing.
  • 15.
  • '"Woman!--she is his slave, she has become _3325
  • A thing I weep to speak--the child of scorn,
  • The outcast of a desolated home;
  • Falsehood, and fear, and toil, like waves have worn
  • Channels upon her cheek, which smiles adorn,
  • As calm decks the false Ocean:--well ye know _3330
  • What Woman is, for none of Woman born
  • Can choose but drain the bitter dregs of woe,
  • Which ever from the oppressed to the oppressors flow.
  • 16.
  • '"This need not be; ye might arise, and will
  • That gold should lose its power, and thrones their glory; _3335
  • That love, which none may bind, be free to fill
  • The world, like light; and evil faith, grown hoary
  • With crime, be quenched and die.--Yon promontory
  • Even now eclipses the descending moon!--
  • Dungeons and palaces are transitory-- _3340
  • High temples fade like vapour--Man alone
  • Remains, whose will has power when all beside is gone.
  • 17.
  • '"Let all be free and equal!--From your hearts
  • I feel an echo; through my inmost frame
  • Like sweetest sound, seeking its mate, it darts-- _3345
  • Whence come ye, friends? Alas, I cannot name
  • All that I read of sorrow, toil, and shame,
  • On your worn faces; as in legends old
  • Which make immortal the disastrous fame
  • Of conquerors and impostors false and bold, _3350
  • The discord of your hearts, I in your looks behold.
  • 18.
  • '"Whence come ye, friends? from pouring human blood
  • Forth on the earth? Or bring ye steel and gold,
  • That Kings may dupe and slay the multitude?
  • Or from the famished poor, pale, weak and cold, _3355
  • Bear ye the earnings of their toil? Unfold!
  • Speak! Are your hands in slaughter's sanguine hue
  • Stained freshly? have your hearts in guile grown old?
  • Know yourselves thus! ye shall be pure as dew,
  • And I will be a friend and sister unto you. _3360
  • 19.
  • '"Disguise it not--we have one human heart--
  • All mortal thoughts confess a common home:
  • Blush not for what may to thyself impart
  • Stains of inevitable crime: the doom
  • Is this, which has, or may, or must become _3365
  • Thine, and all humankind's. Ye are the spoil
  • Which Time thus marks for the devouring tomb--
  • Thou and thy thoughts and they, and all the toil
  • Wherewith ye twine the rings of life's perpetual coil.
  • 20.
  • '"Disguise it not--ye blush for what ye hate, _3370
  • And Enmity is sister unto Shame;
  • Look on your mind--it is the book of fate--
  • Ah! it is dark with many a blazoned name
  • Of misery--all are mirrors of the same;
  • But the dark fiend who with his iron pen _3375
  • Dipped in scorn's fiery poison, makes his fame
  • Enduring there, would o'er the heads of men
  • Pass harmless, if they scorned to make their hearts his den.
  • 21.
  • '"Yes, it is Hate, that shapeless fiendly thing
  • Of many names, all evil, some divine, _3380
  • Whom self-contempt arms with a mortal sting;
  • Which, when the heart its snaky folds entwine
  • Is wasted quite, and when it doth repine
  • To gorge such bitter prey, on all beside
  • It turns with ninefold rage, as with its twine _3385
  • When Amphisbaena some fair bird has tied,
  • Soon o'er the putrid mass he threats on every side.
  • 22.
  • '"Reproach not thine own soul, but know thyself,
  • Nor hate another's crime, nor loathe thine own.
  • It is the dark idolatry of self, _3390
  • Which, when our thoughts and actions once are gone,
  • Demands that man should weep, and bleed, and groan;
  • Oh, vacant expiation! Be at rest.--
  • The past is Death's, the future is thine own;
  • And love and joy can make the foulest breast _3395
  • A paradise of flowers, where peace might build her nest.
  • 23.
  • '"Speak thou! whence come ye?"--A Youth made reply:
  • "Wearily, wearily o'er the boundless deep
  • We sail;--thou readest well the misery
  • Told in these faded eyes, but much doth sleep _3400
  • Within, which there the poor heart loves to keep,
  • Or dare not write on the dishonoured brow;
  • Even from our childhood have we learned to steep
  • The bread of slavery in the tears of woe,
  • And never dreamed of hope or refuge until now. _3405
  • 24.
  • '"Yes--I must speak--my secret should have perished
  • Even with the heart it wasted, as a brand
  • Fades in the dying flame whose life it cherished,
  • But that no human bosom can withstand
  • Thee, wondrous Lady, and the mild command _3410
  • Of thy keen eyes:--yes, we are wretched slaves,
  • Who from their wonted loves and native land
  • Are reft, and bear o'er the dividing waves
  • The unregarded prey of calm and happy graves.
  • 25.
  • '"We drag afar from pastoral vales the fairest _3415
  • Among the daughters of those mountains lone,
  • We drag them there, where all things best and rarest
  • Are stained and trampled:--years have come and gone
  • Since, like the ship which bears me, I have known
  • No thought;--but now the eyes of one dear Maid _3420
  • On mine with light of mutual love have shone--
  • She is my life,--I am but as the shade
  • Of her,--a smoke sent up from ashes, soon to fade.
  • 26.
  • '"For she must perish in the Tyrant's hall--
  • Alas, alas!"--He ceased, and by the sail _3425
  • Sate cowering--but his sobs were heard by all,
  • And still before the ocean and the gale
  • The ship fled fast till the stars 'gan to fail;
  • And, round me gathered with mute countenance,
  • The Seamen gazed, the Pilot, worn and pale _3430
  • With toil, the Captain with gray locks, whose glance
  • Met mine in restless awe--they stood as in a trance.
  • 27.
  • '"Recede not! pause not now! Thou art grown old,
  • But Hope will make thee young, for Hope and Youth
  • Are children of one mother, even Love--behold! _3435
  • The eternal stars gaze on us!--is the truth
  • Within your soul? care for your own, or ruth
  • For others' sufferings? do ye thirst to bear
  • A heart which not the serpent Custom's tooth
  • May violate?--Be free! and even here, _3440
  • Swear to be firm till death!" They cried, "We swear! We swear!"
  • 28.
  • 'The very darkness shook, as with a blast
  • Of subterranean thunder, at the cry;
  • The hollow shore its thousand echoes cast
  • Into the night, as if the sea and sky, _3445
  • And earth, rejoiced with new-born liberty,
  • For in that name they swore! Bolts were undrawn,
  • And on the deck, with unaccustomed eye
  • The captives gazing stood, and every one
  • Shrank as the inconstant torch upon her countenance shone. _3450
  • 29.
  • 'They were earth's purest children, young and fair,
  • With eyes the shrines of unawakened thought,
  • And brows as bright as Spring or Morning, ere
  • Dark time had there its evil legend wrought
  • In characters of cloud which wither not.-- _3455
  • The change was like a dream to them; but soon
  • They knew the glory of their altered lot,
  • In the bright wisdom of youth's breathless noon,
  • Sweet talk, and smiles, and sighs, all bosoms did attune.
  • 30.
  • 'But one was mute; her cheeks and lips most fair, _3460
  • Changing their hue like lilies newly blown,
  • Beneath a bright acacia's shadowy hair,
  • Waved by the wind amid the sunny noon,
  • Showed that her soul was quivering; and full soon
  • That Youth arose, and breathlessly did look _3465
  • On her and me, as for some speechless boon:
  • I smiled, and both their hands in mine I took,
  • And felt a soft delight from what their spirits shook.
  • CANTO 9.
  • 1.
  • 'That night we anchored in a woody bay,
  • And sleep no more around us dared to hover _3470
  • Than, when all doubt and fear has passed away,
  • It shades the couch of some unresting lover,
  • Whose heart is now at rest: thus night passed over
  • In mutual joy:--around, a forest grew
  • Of poplars and dark oaks, whose shade did cover _3475
  • The waning stars pranked in the waters blue,
  • And trembled in the wind which from the morning flew.
  • 2.
  • 'The joyous Mariners, and each free Maiden
  • Now brought from the deep forest many a bough,
  • With woodland spoil most innocently laden; _3480
  • Soon wreaths of budding foliage seemed to flow
  • Over the mast and sails, the stern and prow
  • Were canopied with blooming boughs,--the while
  • On the slant sun's path o'er the waves we go
  • Rejoicing, like the dwellers of an isle _3485
  • Doomed to pursue those waves that cannot cease to smile.
  • 3.
  • 'The many ships spotting the dark blue deep
  • With snowy sails, fled fast as ours came nigh,
  • In fear and wonder; and on every steep
  • Thousands did gaze, they heard the startling cry, _3490
  • Like Earth's own voice lifted unconquerably
  • To all her children, the unbounded mirth,
  • The glorious joy of thy name--Liberty!
  • They heard!--As o'er the mountains of the earth
  • From peak to peak leap on the beams of Morning's birth: _3495
  • 4.
  • 'So from that cry over the boundless hills
  • Sudden was caught one universal sound,
  • Like a volcano's voice, whose thunder fills
  • Remotest skies,--such glorious madness found
  • A path through human hearts with stream which drowned _3500
  • Its struggling fears and cares, dark Custom's brood;
  • They knew not whence it came, but felt around
  • A wide contagion poured--they called aloud
  • On Liberty--that name lived on the sunny flood.
  • 5.
  • 'We reached the port.--Alas! from many spirits _3505
  • The wisdom which had waked that cry, was fled,
  • Like the brief glory which dark Heaven inherits
  • From the false dawn, which fades ere it is spread,
  • Upon the night's devouring darkness shed:
  • Yet soon bright day will burst--even like a chasm _3510
  • Of fire, to burn the shrouds outworn and dead,
  • Which wrap the world; a wide enthusiasm,
  • To cleanse the fevered world as with an earthquake's spasm!
  • 6.
  • 'I walked through the great City then, but free
  • From shame or fear; those toil-worn Mariners _3515
  • And happy Maidens did encompass me;
  • And like a subterranean wind that stirs
  • Some forest among caves, the hopes and fears
  • From every human soul, a murmur strange
  • Made as I passed; and many wept, with tears _3520
  • Of joy and awe, and winged thoughts did range,
  • And half-extinguished words, which prophesied of change.
  • 7.
  • 'For, with strong speech I tore the veil that hid
  • Nature, and Truth, and Liberty, and Love,--
  • As one who from some mountain's pyramid _3525
  • Points to the unrisen sun!--the shades approve
  • His truth, and flee from every stream and grove.
  • Thus, gentle thoughts did many a bosom fill,--
  • Wisdom, the mail of tried affections wove
  • For many a heart, and tameless scorn of ill, _3530
  • Thrice steeped in molten steel the unconquerable will.
  • 8.
  • 'Some said I was a maniac wild and lost;
  • Some, that I scarce had risen from the grave,
  • The Prophet's virgin bride, a heavenly ghost:--
  • Some said, I was a fiend from my weird cave, _3535
  • Who had stolen human shape, and o'er the wave,
  • The forest, and the mountain, came;--some said
  • I was the child of God, sent down to save
  • Woman from bonds and death, and on my head
  • The burden of their sins would frightfully be laid. _3540
  • 9.
  • 'But soon my human words found sympathy
  • In human hearts: the purest and the best,
  • As friend with friend, made common cause with me,
  • And they were few, but resolute;--the rest,
  • Ere yet success the enterprise had blessed, _3545
  • Leagued with me in their hearts;--their meals, their slumber,
  • Their hourly occupations, were possessed
  • By hopes which I had armed to overnumber
  • Those hosts of meaner cares, which life's strong wings encumber.
  • 10.
  • 'But chiefly women, whom my voice did waken _3550
  • From their cold, careless, willing slavery,
  • Sought me: one truth their dreary prison has shaken,--
  • They looked around, and lo! they became free!
  • Their many tyrants sitting desolately
  • In slave-deserted halls, could none restrain; _3555
  • For wrath's red fire had withered in the eye,
  • Whose lightning once was death,--nor fear, nor gain
  • Could tempt one captive now to lock another's chain.
  • 11.
  • 'Those who were sent to bind me, wept, and felt
  • Their minds outsoar the bonds which clasped them round, _3560
  • Even as a waxen shape may waste and melt
  • In the white furnace; and a visioned swound,
  • A pause of hope and awe the City bound,
  • Which, like the silence of a tempest's birth,
  • When in its awful shadow it has wound _3565
  • The sun, the wind, the ocean, and the earth,
  • Hung terrible, ere yet the lightnings have leaped forth.
  • 12.
  • 'Like clouds inwoven in the silent sky,
  • By winds from distant regions meeting there,
  • In the high name of truth and liberty, _3570
  • Around the City millions gathered were,
  • By hopes which sprang from many a hidden lair,--
  • Words which the lore of truth in hues of flame
  • Arrayed, thine own wild songs which in the air
  • Like homeless odours floated, and the name _3575
  • Of thee, and many a tongue which thou hadst dipped in flame.
  • 13.
  • 'The Tyrant knew his power was gone, but Fear,
  • The nurse of Vengeance, bade him wait the event--
  • That perfidy and custom, gold and prayer,
  • And whatsoe'er, when force is impotent, _3580
  • To fraud the sceptre of the world has lent,
  • Might, as he judged, confirm his failing sway.
  • Therefore throughout the streets, the Priests he sent
  • To curse the rebels.--To their gods did they
  • For Earthquake, Plague, and Want, kneel in the public way. _3585
  • 14.
  • 'And grave and hoary men were bribed to tell
  • From seats where law is made the slave of wrong,
  • How glorious Athens in her splendour fell,
  • Because her sons were free,--and that among
  • Mankind, the many to the few belong, _3590
  • By Heaven, and Nature, and Necessity.
  • They said, that age was truth, and that the young
  • Marred with wild hopes the peace of slavery,
  • With which old times and men had quelled the vain and free.
  • 15.
  • 'And with the falsehood of their poisonous lips _3595
  • They breathed on the enduring memory
  • Of sages and of bards a brief eclipse;
  • There was one teacher, who necessity
  • Had armed with strength and wrong against mankind,
  • His slave and his avenger aye to be; _3600
  • That we were weak and sinful, frail and blind,
  • And that the will of one was peace, and we
  • Should seek for nought on earth but toil and misery--
  • 16.
  • '"For thus we might avoid the hell hereafter."
  • So spake the hypocrites, who cursed and lied; _3605
  • Alas, their sway was past, and tears and laughter
  • Clung to their hoary hair, withering the pride
  • Which in their hollow hearts dared still abide;
  • And yet obscener slaves with smoother brow,
  • And sneers on their strait lips, thin, blue and wide, _3610
  • Said that the rule of men was over now,
  • And hence, the subject world to woman's will must bow;
  • 17.
  • 'And gold was scattered through the streets, and wine
  • Flowed at a hundred feasts within the wall.
  • In vain! the steady towers in Heaven did shine _3615
  • As they were wont, nor at the priestly call
  • Left Plague her banquet in the Ethiop's hall,
  • Nor Famine from the rich man's portal came,
  • Where at her ease she ever preys on all
  • Who throng to kneel for food: nor fear nor shame, _3620
  • Nor faith, nor discord, dimmed hope's newly kindled flame.
  • 18.
  • 'For gold was as a god whose faith began
  • To fade, so that its worshippers were few,
  • And Faith itself, which in the heart of man
  • Gives shape, voice, name, to spectral Terror, knew _3625
  • Its downfall, as the altars lonelier grew,
  • Till the Priests stood alone within the fane;
  • The shafts of falsehood unpolluting flew,
  • And the cold sneers of calumny were vain,
  • The union of the free with discord's brand to stain. _3630
  • 19.
  • 'The rest thou knowest.--Lo! we two are here--
  • We have survived a ruin wide and deep--
  • Strange thoughts are mine.--I cannot grieve or fear,
  • Sitting with thee upon this lonely steep
  • I smile, though human love should make me weep. _3635
  • We have survived a joy that knows no sorrow,
  • And I do feel a mighty calmness creep
  • Over my heart, which can no longer borrow
  • Its hues from chance or change, dark children of to-morrow.
  • 20.
  • 'We know not what will come--yet, Laon, dearest, _3640
  • Cythna shall be the prophetess of Love,
  • Her lips shall rob thee of the grace thou wearest,
  • To hide thy heart, and clothe the shapes which rove
  • Within the homeless Future's wintry grove;
  • For I now, sitting thus beside thee, seem _3645
  • Even with thy breath and blood to live and move,
  • And violence and wrong are as a dream
  • Which rolls from steadfast truth, an unreturning stream.
  • 21.
  • 'The blasts of Autumn drive the winged seeds
  • Over the earth,--next come the snows, and rain, _3650
  • And frosts, and storms, which dreary Winter leads
  • Out of his Scythian cave, a savage train;
  • Behold! Spring sweeps over the world again,
  • Shedding soft dews from her ethereal wings;
  • Flowers on the mountains, fruits over the plain, _3655
  • And music on the waves and woods she flings,
  • And love on all that lives, and calm on lifeless things.
  • 22.
  • 'O Spring, of hope, and love, and youth, and gladness
  • Wind-winged emblem! brightest, best and fairest!
  • Whence comest thou, when, with dark Winter's sadness _3660
  • The tears that fade in sunny smiles thou sharest?
  • Sister of joy, thou art the child who wearest
  • Thy mother's dying smile, tender and sweet;
  • Thy mother Autumn, for whose grave thou bearest
  • Fresh flowers, and beams like flowers, with gentle feet, _3665
  • Disturbing not the leaves which are her winding-sheet.
  • 23.
  • 'Virtue, and Hope, and Love, like light and Heaven,
  • Surround the world.--We are their chosen slaves.
  • Has not the whirlwind of our spirit driven
  • Truth's deathless germs to thought's remotest caves? _3670
  • Lo, Winter comes!--the grief of many graves,
  • The frost of death, the tempest of the sword,
  • The flood of tyranny, whose sanguine waves
  • Stagnate like ice at Faith the enchanter's word,
  • And bind all human hearts in its repose abhorred. _3675
  • 24.
  • 'The seeds are sleeping in the soil: meanwhile
  • The Tyrant peoples dungeons with his prey,
  • Pale victims on the guarded scaffold smile
  • Because they cannot speak; and, day by day,
  • The moon of wasting Science wanes away _3680
  • Among her stars, and in that darkness vast
  • The sons of earth to their foul idols pray,
  • And gray Priests triumph, and like blight or blast
  • A shade of selfish care o'er human looks is cast.
  • 25.
  • 'This is the winter of the world;--and here _3685
  • We die, even as the winds of Autumn fade,
  • Expiring in the frore and foggy air.
  • Behold! Spring comes, though we must pass, who made
  • The promise of its birth,--even as the shade
  • Which from our death, as from a mountain, flings _3690
  • The future, a broad sunrise; thus arrayed
  • As with the plumes of overshadowing wings,
  • From its dark gulf of chains, Earth like an eagle springs.
  • 26.
  • 'O dearest love! we shall be dead and cold
  • Before this morn may on the world arise; _3695
  • Wouldst thou the glory of its dawn behold?
  • Alas! gaze not on me, but turn thine eyes
  • On thine own heart--it is a paradise
  • Which everlasting Spring has made its own,
  • And while drear Winter fills the naked skies, _3700
  • Sweet streams of sunny thought, and flowers fresh-blown,
  • Are there, and weave their sounds and odours into one.
  • 27.
  • 'In their own hearts the earnest of the hope
  • Which made them great, the good will ever find;
  • And though some envious shade may interlope _3705
  • Between the effect and it, One comes behind,
  • Who aye the future to the past will bind--
  • Necessity, whose sightless strength for ever
  • Evil with evil, good with good must wind
  • In bands of union, which no power may sever: _3710
  • They must bring forth their kind, and be divided never!
  • 28.
  • 'The good and mighty of departed ages
  • Are in their graves, the innocent and free,
  • Heroes, and Poets, and prevailing Sages,
  • Who leave the vesture of their majesty _3715
  • To adorn and clothe this naked world;--and we
  • Are like to them--such perish, but they leave
  • All hope, or love, or truth, or liberty,
  • Whose forms their mighty spirits could conceive,
  • To be a rule and law to ages that survive. _3720
  • 29.
  • 'So be the turf heaped over our remains
  • Even in our happy youth, and that strange lot,
  • Whate'er it be, when in these mingling veins
  • The blood is still, be ours; let sense and thought
  • Pass from our being, or be numbered not _3725
  • Among the things that are; let those who come
  • Behind, for whom our steadfast will has bought
  • A calm inheritance, a glorious doom,
  • Insult with careless tread, our undivided tomb.
  • 30.
  • 'Our many thoughts and deeds, our life and love, _3730
  • Our happiness, and all that we have been,
  • Immortally must live, and burn and move,
  • When we shall be no more;--the world has seen
  • A type of peace; and--as some most serene
  • And lovely spot to a poor maniac's eye, _3735
  • After long years, some sweet and moving scene
  • Of youthful hope, returning suddenly,
  • Quells his long madness--thus man shall remember thee.
  • 31.
  • 'And Calumny meanwhile shall feed on us,
  • As worms devour the dead, and near the throne _3740
  • And at the altar, most accepted thus
  • Shall sneers and curses be;--what we have done
  • None shall dare vouch, though it be truly known;
  • That record shall remain, when they must pass
  • Who built their pride on its oblivion; _3745
  • And fame, in human hope which sculptured was,
  • Survive the perished scrolls of unenduring brass.
  • 32.
  • 'The while we two, beloved, must depart,
  • And Sense and Reason, those enchanters fair,
  • Whose wand of power is hope, would bid the heart _3750
  • That gazed beyond the wormy grave despair:
  • These eyes, these lips, this blood, seems darkly there
  • To fade in hideous ruin; no calm sleep
  • Peopling with golden dreams the stagnant air,
  • Seems our obscure and rotting eyes to steep _3755
  • In joy;--but senseless death--a ruin dark and deep!
  • 33.
  • 'These are blind fancies--reason cannot know
  • What sense can neither feel, nor thought conceive;
  • There is delusion in the world--and woe,
  • And fear, and pain--we know not whence we live, _3760
  • Or why, or how, or what mute Power may give
  • Their being to each plant, and star, and beast,
  • Or even these thoughts.--Come near me! I do weave
  • A chain I cannot break--I am possessed
  • With thoughts too swift and strong for one lone human breast. _3765
  • 34.
  • 'Yes, yes--thy kiss is sweet, thy lips are warm--
  • O! willingly, beloved, would these eyes,
  • Might they no more drink being from thy form,
  • Even as to sleep whence we again arise,
  • Close their faint orbs in death: I fear nor prize _3770
  • Aught that can now betide, unshared by thee--
  • Yes, Love when Wisdom fails makes Cythna wise:
  • Darkness and death, if death be true, must be
  • Dearer than life and hope, if unenjoyed with thee.
  • 35.
  • 'Alas, our thoughts flow on with stream, whose waters _3775
  • Return not to their fountain--Earth and Heaven,
  • The Ocean and the Sun, the Clouds their daughters,
  • Winter, and Spring, and Morn, and Noon, and Even,
  • All that we are or know, is darkly driven
  • Towards one gulf.--Lo! what a change is come _3780
  • Since I first spake--but time shall be forgiven,
  • Though it change all but thee!'--She ceased--night's gloom
  • Meanwhile had fallen on earth from the sky's sunless dome.
  • 36.
  • Though she had ceased, her countenance uplifted
  • To Heaven, still spake, with solemn glory bright; _3785
  • Her dark deep eyes, her lips, whose motions gifted
  • The air they breathed with love, her locks undight.
  • 'Fair star of life and love,' I cried, 'my soul's delight,
  • Why lookest thou on the crystalline skies?
  • O, that my spirit were yon Heaven of night, _3790
  • Which gazes on thee with its thousand eyes!'
  • She turned to me and smiled--that smile was Paradise!
  • NOTES:
  • _3573 hues of grace edition 1818.
  • CANTO 10.
  • 1.
  • Was there a human spirit in the steed,
  • That thus with his proud voice, ere night was gone,
  • He broke our linked rest? or do indeed _3795
  • All living things a common nature own,
  • And thought erect an universal throne,
  • Where many shapes one tribute ever bear?
  • And Earth, their mutual mother, does she groan
  • To see her sons contend? and makes she bare _3800
  • Her breast, that all in peace its drainless stores may share?
  • 2.
  • I have heard friendly sounds from many a tongue
  • Which was not human--the lone nightingale
  • Has answered me with her most soothing song,
  • Out of her ivy bower, when I sate pale _3805
  • With grief, and sighed beneath; from many a dale
  • The antelopes who flocked for food have spoken
  • With happy sounds, and motions, that avail
  • Like man's own speech; and such was now the token
  • Of waning night, whose calm by that proud neigh was broken. _3810
  • 3.
  • Each night, that mighty steed bore me abroad,
  • And I returned with food to our retreat,
  • And dark intelligence; the blood which flowed
  • Over the fields, had stained the courser's feet;
  • Soon the dust drinks that bitter dew,--then meet _3815
  • The vulture, and the wild dog, and the snake,
  • The wolf, and the hyaena gray, and eat
  • The dead in horrid truce: their throngs did make
  • Behind the steed, a chasm like waves in a ship's wake.
  • 4.
  • For, from the utmost realms of earth came pouring _3820
  • The banded slaves whom every despot sent
  • At that throned traitor's summons; like the roaring
  • Of fire, whose floods the wild deer circumvent
  • In the scorched pastures of the South; so bent
  • The armies of the leagued Kings around _3825
  • Their files of steel and flame;--the continent
  • Trembled, as with a zone of ruin bound,
  • Beneath their feet, the sea shook with their Navies' sound.
  • 5.
  • From every nation of the earth they came,
  • The multitude of moving heartless things, _3830
  • Whom slaves call men: obediently they came,
  • Like sheep whom from the fold the shepherd brings
  • To the stall, red with blood; their many kings
  • Led them, thus erring, from their native land;
  • Tartar and Frank, and millions whom the wings _3835
  • Of Indian breezes lull, and many a band
  • The Arctic Anarch sent, and Idumea's sand,
  • 6.
  • Fertile in prodigies and lies;--so there
  • Strange natures made a brotherhood of ill.
  • The desert savage ceased to grasp in fear _3840
  • His Asian shield and bow, when, at the will
  • Of Europe's subtler son, the bolt would kill
  • Some shepherd sitting on a rock secure;
  • But smiles of wondering joy his face would fill,
  • And savage sympathy: those slaves impure, _3845
  • Each one the other thus from ill to ill did lure.
  • 7.
  • For traitorously did that foul Tyrant robe
  • His countenance in lies,--even at the hour
  • When he was snatched from death, then o'er the globe,
  • With secret signs from many a mountain-tower, _3850
  • With smoke by day, and fire by night, the power
  • Of Kings and Priests, those dark conspirators,
  • He called:--they knew his cause their own, and swore
  • Like wolves and serpents to their mutual wars
  • Strange truce, with many a rite which Earth and Heaven abhors. _3855
  • 8.
  • Myriads had come--millions were on their way;
  • The Tyrant passed, surrounded by the steel
  • Of hired assassins, through the public way,
  • Choked with his country's dead:--his footsteps reel
  • On the fresh blood--he smiles. 'Ay, now I feel _3860
  • I am a King in truth!' he said, and took
  • His royal seat, and bade the torturing wheel
  • Be brought, and fire, and pincers, and the hook,
  • And scorpions, that his soul on its revenge might look.
  • 9.
  • 'But first, go slay the rebels--why return _3865
  • The victor bands?' he said, 'millions yet live,
  • Of whom the weakest with one word might turn
  • The scales of victory yet;--let none survive
  • But those within the walls--each fifth shall give
  • The expiation for his brethren here.-- _3870
  • Go forth, and waste and kill!'--'O king, forgive
  • My speech,' a soldier answered--'but we fear
  • The spirits of the night, and morn is drawing near;
  • 10.
  • 'For we were slaying still without remorse,
  • And now that dreadful chief beneath my hand _3875
  • Defenceless lay, when on a hell-black horse,
  • An Angel bright as day, waving a brand
  • Which flashed among the stars, passed.'--'Dost thou stand
  • Parleying with me, thou wretch?' the king replied;
  • 'Slaves, bind him to the wheel; and of this band, _3880
  • Whoso will drag that woman to his side
  • That scared him thus, may burn his dearest foe beside;
  • 11.
  • 'And gold and glory shall be his.--Go forth!'
  • They rushed into the plain.--Loud was the roar
  • Of their career: the horsemen shook the earth; _3885
  • The wheeled artillery's speed the pavement tore;
  • The infantry, file after file, did pour
  • Their clouds on the utmost hills. Five days they slew
  • Among the wasted fields; the sixth saw gore
  • Stream through the city; on the seventh, the dew _3890
  • Of slaughter became stiff, and there was peace anew:
  • 12.
  • Peace in the desert fields and villages,
  • Between the glutted beasts and mangled dead!
  • Peace in the silent streets! save when the cries
  • Of victims to their fiery judgement led, _3895
  • Made pale their voiceless lips who seemed to dread
  • Even in their dearest kindred, lest some tongue
  • Be faithless to the fear yet unbetrayed;
  • Peace in the Tyrant's palace, where the throng
  • Waste the triumphal hours in festival and song! _3900
  • 13.
  • Day after day the burning sun rolled on
  • Over the death-polluted land--it came
  • Out of the east like fire, and fiercely shone
  • A lamp of Autumn, ripening with its flame
  • The few lone ears of corn;--the sky became _3905
  • Stagnate with heat, so that each cloud and blast
  • Languished and died,--the thirsting air did claim
  • All moisture, and a rotting vapour passed
  • From the unburied dead, invisible and fast.
  • 14.
  • First Want, then Plague came on the beasts; their food _3910
  • Failed, and they drew the breath of its decay.
  • Millions on millions, whom the scent of blood
  • Had lured, or who, from regions far away,
  • Had tracked the hosts in festival array,
  • From their dark deserts; gaunt and wasting now, _3915
  • Stalked like fell shades among their perished prey;
  • In their green eyes a strange disease did glow,
  • They sank in hideous spasm, or pains severe and slow.
  • 15.
  • The fish were poisoned in the streams; the birds
  • In the green woods perished; the insect race _3920
  • Was withered up; the scattered flocks and herds
  • Who had survived the wild beasts' hungry chase
  • Died moaning, each upon the other's face
  • In helpless agony gazing; round the City
  • All night, the lean hyaenas their sad case _3925
  • Like starving infants wailed; a woeful ditty!
  • And many a mother wept, pierced with unnatural pity.
  • 16.
  • Amid the aereal minarets on high,
  • The Ethiopian vultures fluttering fell
  • From their long line of brethren in the sky, _3930
  • Startling the concourse of mankind.--Too well
  • These signs the coming mischief did foretell:--
  • Strange panic first, a deep and sickening dread
  • Within each heart, like ice, did sink and dwell,
  • A voiceless thought of evil, which did spread _3935
  • With the quick glance of eyes, like withering lightnings shed.
  • 17.
  • Day after day, when the year wanes, the frosts
  • Strip its green crown of leaves, till all is bare;
  • So on those strange and congregated hosts
  • Came Famine, a swift shadow, and the air _3940
  • Groaned with the burden of a new despair;
  • Famine, than whom Misrule no deadlier daughter
  • Feeds from her thousand breasts, though sleeping there
  • With lidless eyes, lie Faith, and Plague, and Slaughter,
  • A ghastly brood; conceived of Lethe's sullen water. _3945
  • 18.
  • There was no food, the corn was trampled down,
  • The flocks and herds had perished; on the shore
  • The dead and putrid fish were ever thrown;
  • The deeps were foodless, and the winds no more
  • Creaked with the weight of birds, but, as before _3950
  • Those winged things sprang forth, were void of shade;
  • The vines and orchards, Autumn's golden store,
  • Were burned;--so that the meanest food was weighed
  • With gold, and Avarice died before the god it made.
  • 19.
  • There was no corn--in the wide market-place _3955
  • All loathliest things, even human flesh, was sold;
  • They weighed it in small scales--and many a face
  • Was fixed in eager horror then: his gold
  • The miser brought; the tender maid, grown bold
  • Through hunger, bared her scorned charms in vain; _3960
  • The mother brought her eldest born, controlled
  • By instinct blind as love, but turned again
  • And bade her infant suck, and died in silent pain.
  • 20.
  • Then fell blue Plague upon the race of man.
  • 'O, for the sheathed steel, so late which gave _3965
  • Oblivion to the dead, when the streets ran
  • With brothers' blood! O, that the earthquake's grave
  • Would gape, or Ocean lift its stifling wave!'
  • Vain cries--throughout the streets thousands pursued
  • Each by his fiery torture howl and rave, _3970
  • Or sit in frenzy's unimagined mood,
  • Upon fresh heaps of dead; a ghastly multitude.
  • 21.
  • It was not hunger now, but thirst. Each well
  • Was choked with rotting corpses, and became
  • A cauldron of green mist made visible _3975
  • At sunrise. Thither still the myriads came,
  • Seeking to quench the agony of the flame,
  • Which raged like poison through their bursting veins;
  • Naked they were from torture, without shame,
  • Spotted with nameless scars and lurid blains, _3980
  • Childhood, and youth, and age, writhing in savage pains.
  • 22.
  • It was not thirst, but madness! Many saw
  • Their own lean image everywhere, it went
  • A ghastlier self beside them, till the awe
  • Of that dread sight to self-destruction sent _3985
  • Those shrieking victims; some, ere life was spent,
  • Sought, with a horrid sympathy, to shed
  • Contagion on the sound; and others rent
  • Their matted hair, and cried aloud, 'We tread
  • On fire! the avenging Power his hell on earth has spread!' _3990
  • 23.
  • Sometimes the living by the dead were hid.
  • Near the great fountain in the public square,
  • Where corpses made a crumbling pyramid
  • Under the sun, was heard one stifled prayer
  • For life, in the hot silence of the air; _3995
  • And strange 'twas, amid that hideous heap to see
  • Some shrouded in their long and golden hair,
  • As if not dead, but slumbering quietly
  • Like forms which sculptors carve, then love to agony.
  • 24.
  • Famine had spared the palace of the king:-- _4000
  • He rioted in festival the while,
  • He and his guards and priests; but Plague did fling
  • One shadow upon all. Famine can smile
  • On him who brings it food, and pass, with guile
  • Of thankful falsehood, like a courtier gray, _4005
  • The house-dog of the throne; but many a mile
  • Comes Plague, a winged wolf, who loathes alway
  • The garbage and the scum that strangers make her prey.
  • 25.
  • So, near the throne, amid the gorgeous feast,
  • Sheathed in resplendent arms, or loosely dight _4010
  • To luxury, ere the mockery yet had ceased
  • That lingered on his lips, the warrior's might
  • Was loosened, and a new and ghastlier night
  • In dreams of frenzy lapped his eyes; he fell
  • Headlong, or with stiff eyeballs sate upright _4015
  • Among the guests, or raving mad did tell
  • Strange truths; a dying seer of dark oppression's hell.
  • 26.
  • The Princes and the Priests were pale with terror;
  • That monstrous faith wherewith they ruled mankind,
  • Fell, like a shaft loosed by the bowman's error, _4020
  • On their own hearts: they sought and they could find
  • No refuge--'twas the blind who led the blind!
  • So, through the desolate streets to the high fane,
  • The many-tongued and endless armies wind
  • In sad procession: each among the train _4025
  • To his own Idol lifts his supplications vain.
  • 27.
  • 'O God!' they cried, 'we know our secret pride
  • Has scorned thee, and thy worship, and thy name;
  • Secure in human power we have defied
  • Thy fearful might; we bend in fear and shame _4030
  • Before thy presence; with the dust we claim
  • Kindred; be merciful, O King of Heaven!
  • Most justly have we suffered for thy fame
  • Made dim, but be at length our sins forgiven,
  • Ere to despair and death thy worshippers be driven. _4035
  • 28.
  • 'O King of Glory! thou alone hast power!
  • Who can resist thy will? who can restrain
  • Thy wrath, when on the guilty thou dost shower
  • The shafts of thy revenge, a blistering rain?
  • Greatest and best, be merciful again! _4040
  • Have we not stabbed thine enemies, and made
  • The Earth an altar, and the Heavens a fane,
  • Where thou wert worshipped with their blood, and laid
  • Those hearts in dust which would thy searchless works have weighed?
  • 29.
  • 'Well didst thou loosen on this impious City _4045
  • Thine angels of revenge: recall them now;
  • Thy worshippers, abased, here kneel for pity,
  • And bind their souls by an immortal vow:
  • We swear by thee! and to our oath do thou
  • Give sanction, from thine hell of fiends and flame, _4050
  • That we will kill with fire and torments slow,
  • The last of those who mocked thy holy name,
  • And scorned the sacred laws thy prophets did proclaim.'
  • 30.
  • Thus they with trembling limbs and pallid lips
  • Worshipped their own hearts' image, dim and vast, _4055
  • Scared by the shade wherewith they would eclipse
  • The light of other minds;--troubled they passed
  • From the great Temple;--fiercely still and fast
  • The arrows of the plague among them fell,
  • And they on one another gazed aghast, _4060
  • And through the hosts contention wild befell,
  • As each of his own god the wondrous works did tell.
  • 31.
  • And Oromaze, Joshua, and Mahomet,
  • Moses, and Buddh, Zerdusht, and Brahm, and Foh,
  • A tumult of strange names, which never met _4065
  • Before, as watchwords of a single woe,
  • Arose; each raging votary 'gan to throw
  • Aloft his armed hands, and each did howl
  • 'Our God alone is God!'--and slaughter now
  • Would have gone forth, when from beneath a cowl _4070
  • A voice came forth, which pierced like ice through every soul.
  • 32.
  • 'Twas an Iberian Priest from whom it came,
  • A zealous man, who led the legioned West,
  • With words which faith and pride had steeped in flame,
  • To quell the unbelievers; a dire guest _4075
  • Even to his friends was he, for in his breast
  • Did hate and guile lie watchful, intertwined,
  • Twin serpents in one deep and winding nest;
  • He loathed all faith beside his own, and pined
  • To wreak his fear of Heaven in vengeance on mankind. _4080
  • 33.
  • But more he loathed and hated the clear light
  • Of wisdom and free thought, and more did fear,
  • Lest, kindled once, its beams might pierce the night,
  • Even where his Idol stood; for, far and near
  • Did many a heart in Europe leap to hear _4085
  • That faith and tyranny were trampled down;
  • Many a pale victim, doomed for truth to share
  • The murderer's cell, or see, with helpless groan,
  • The priests his children drag for slaves to serve their own.
  • 34.
  • He dared not kill the infidels with fire _4090
  • Or steel, in Europe; the slow agonies
  • Of legal torture mocked his keen desire:
  • So he made truce with those who did despise
  • The expiation, and the sacrifice,
  • That, though detested, Islam's kindred creed _4095
  • Might crush for him those deadlier enemies;
  • For fear of God did in his bosom breed
  • A jealous hate of man, an unreposing need.
  • 35.
  • 'Peace! Peace!' he cried, 'when we are dead, the Day
  • Of Judgement comes, and all shall surely know _4100
  • Whose God is God, each fearfully shall pay
  • The errors of his faith in endless woe!
  • But there is sent a mortal vengeance now
  • On earth, because an impious race had spurned
  • Him whom we all adore,--a subtle foe, _4105
  • By whom for ye this dread reward was earned,
  • And kingly thrones, which rest on faith, nigh overturned.
  • 36.
  • 'Think ye, because ye weep, and kneel, and pray,
  • That God will lull the pestilence? It rose
  • Even from beneath his throne, where, many a day, _4110
  • His mercy soothed it to a dark repose:
  • It walks upon the earth to judge his foes;
  • And what are thou and I, that he should deign
  • To curb his ghastly minister, or close
  • The gates of death, ere they receive the twain _4115
  • Who shook with mortal spells his undefended reign?
  • 37.
  • 'Ay, there is famine in the gulf of hell,
  • Its giant worms of fire for ever yawn.--
  • Their lurid eyes are on us! those who fell
  • By the swift shafts of pestilence ere dawn, _4120
  • Are in their jaws! they hunger for the spawn
  • Of Satan, their own brethren, who were sent
  • To make our souls their spoil. See! see! they fawn
  • Like dogs, and they will sleep with luxury spent,
  • When those detested hearts their iron fangs have rent! _4125
  • 38.
  • 'Our God may then lull Pestilence to sleep:--
  • Pile high the pyre of expiation now,
  • A forest's spoil of boughs, and on the heap
  • Pour venomous gums, which sullenly and slow,
  • When touched by flame, shall burn, and melt, and flow, _4130
  • A stream of clinging fire,--and fix on high
  • A net of iron, and spread forth below
  • A couch of snakes, and scorpions, and the fry
  • Of centipedes and worms, earth's hellish progeny!
  • 39.
  • 'Let Laon and Laone on that pyre, _4135
  • Linked tight with burning brass, perish!--then pray
  • That, with this sacrifice, the withering ire
  • Of Heaven may be appeased.' He ceased, and they
  • A space stood silent, as far, far away
  • The echoes of his voice among them died; _4140
  • And he knelt down upon the dust, alway
  • Muttering the curses of his speechless pride,
  • Whilst shame, and fear, and awe, the armies did divide.
  • 40.
  • His voice was like a blast that burst the portal
  • Of fabled hell; and as he spake, each one _4145
  • Saw gape beneath the chasms of fire immortal,
  • And Heaven above seemed cloven, where, on a throne
  • Girt round with storms and shadows, sate alone
  • Their King and Judge--fear killed in every breast
  • All natural pity then, a fear unknown _4150
  • Before, and with an inward fire possessed,
  • They raged like homeless beasts whom burning woods invest.
  • 41.
  • 'Twas morn.--At noon the public crier went forth,
  • Proclaiming through the living and the dead,
  • 'The Monarch saith, that his great Empire's worth _4155
  • Is set on Laon and Laone's head:
  • He who but one yet living here can lead,
  • Or who the life from both their hearts can wring,
  • Shall be the kingdom's heir--a glorious meed!
  • But he who both alive can hither bring, _4160
  • The Princess shall espouse, and reign an equal King.'
  • 42.
  • Ere night the pyre was piled, the net of iron
  • Was spread above, the fearful couch below;
  • It overtopped the towers that did environ
  • That spacious square; for Fear is never slow _4165
  • To build the thrones of Hate, her mate and foe;
  • So, she scourged forth the maniac multitude
  • To rear this pyramid--tottering and slow,
  • Plague-stricken, foodless, like lean herds pursued
  • By gadflies, they have piled the heath, and gums, and wood. _4170
  • 43.
  • Night came, a starless and a moonless gloom.
  • Until the dawn, those hosts of many a nation
  • Stood round that pile, as near one lover's tomb
  • Two gentle sisters mourn their desolation;
  • And in the silence of that expectation, _4175
  • Was heard on high the reptiles' hiss and crawl--
  • It was so deep--save when the devastation
  • Of the swift pest, with fearful interval,
  • Marking its path with shrieks, among the crowd would fall.
  • 44.
  • Morn came,--among those sleepless multitudes, _4180
  • Madness, and Fear, and Plague, and Famine still
  • Heaped corpse on corpse, as in autumnal woods
  • The frosts of many a wind with dead leaves fill
  • Earth's cold and sullen brooks; in silence, still
  • The pale survivors stood; ere noon, the fear _4185
  • Of Hell became a panic, which did kill
  • Like hunger or disease, with whispers drear,
  • As 'Hush! hark! Come they yet?--Just Heaven! thine hour is near!'
  • 45.
  • And Priests rushed through their ranks, some counterfeiting
  • The rage they did inspire, some mad indeed _4190
  • With their own lies; they said their god was waiting
  • To see his enemies writhe, and burn, and bleed,--
  • And that, till then, the snakes of Hell had need
  • Of human souls:--three hundred furnaces
  • Soon blazed through the wide City, where, with speed, _4195
  • Men brought their infidel kindred to appease
  • God's wrath, and, while they burned, knelt round on quivering knees.
  • 46.
  • The noontide sun was darkened with that smoke,
  • The winds of eve dispersed those ashes gray.
  • The madness which these rites had lulled, awoke _4200
  • Again at sunset.--Who shall dare to say
  • The deeds which night and fear brought forth, or weigh
  • In balance just the good and evil there?
  • He might man's deep and searchless heart display,
  • And cast a light on those dim labyrinths, where _4205
  • Hope, near imagined chasms, is struggling with despair.
  • 47.
  • 'Tis said, a mother dragged three children then,
  • To those fierce flames which roast the eyes in the head,
  • And laughed, and died; and that unholy men,
  • Feasting like fiends upon the infidel dead, _4210
  • Looked from their meal, and saw an Angel tread
  • The visible floor of Heaven, and it was she!
  • And, on that night, one without doubt or dread
  • Came to the fire, and said, 'Stop, I am he!
  • Kill me!'--They burned them both with hellish mockery. _4215
  • 48.
  • And, one by one, that night, young maidens came,
  • Beauteous and calm, like shapes of living stone
  • Clothed in the light of dreams, and by the flame
  • Which shrank as overgorged, they laid them down,
  • And sung a low sweet song, of which alone _4220
  • One word was heard, and that was Liberty;
  • And that some kissed their marble feet, with moan
  • Like love, and died; and then that they did die
  • With happy smiles, which sunk in white tranquillity.
  • NOTES:
  • _3834 native home edition 1818.
  • _3967 earthquakes edition 1818.
  • _4176 reptiles']reptiles edition 1818.
  • CANTO 11.
  • 1.
  • She saw me not--she heard me not--alone _4225
  • Upon the mountain's dizzy brink she stood;
  • She spake not, breathed not, moved not--there was thrown
  • Over her look, the shadow of a mood
  • Which only clothes the heart in solitude,
  • A thought of voiceless depth;--she stood alone, _4230
  • Above, the Heavens were spread;--below, the flood
  • Was murmuring in its caves;--the wind had blown
  • Her hair apart, through which her eyes and forehead shone.
  • 2.
  • A cloud was hanging o'er the western mountains;
  • Before its blue and moveless depth were flying _4235
  • Gray mists poured forth from the unresting fountains
  • Of darkness in the North:--the day was dying:--
  • Sudden, the sun shone forth, its beams were lying
  • Like boiling gold on Ocean, strange to see,
  • And on the shattered vapours, which defying _4240
  • The power of light in vain, tossed restlessly
  • In the red Heaven, like wrecks in a tempestuous sea.
  • 3.
  • It was a stream of living beams, whose bank
  • On either side by the cloud's cleft was made;
  • And where its chasms that flood of glory drank, _4245
  • Its waves gushed forth like fire, and as if swayed
  • By some mute tempest, rolled on HER; the shade
  • Of her bright image floated on the river
  • Of liquid light, which then did end and fade--
  • Her radiant shape upon its verge did shiver; _4250
  • Aloft, her flowing hair like strings of flame did quiver.
  • 4.
  • I stood beside her, but she saw me not--
  • She looked upon the sea, and skies, and earth;
  • Rapture, and love, and admiration wrought
  • A passion deeper far than tears, or mirth, _4255
  • Or speech, or gesture, or whate'er has birth
  • From common joy; which with the speechless feeling
  • That led her there united, and shot forth
  • From her far eyes a light of deep revealing,
  • All but her dearest self from my regard concealing. _4260
  • 5.
  • Her lips were parted, and the measured breath
  • Was now heard there;--her dark and intricate eyes
  • Orb within orb, deeper than sleep or death,
  • Absorbed the glories of the burning skies,
  • Which, mingling with her heart's deep ecstasies, _4265
  • Burst from her looks and gestures;--and a light
  • Of liquid tenderness, like love, did rise
  • From her whole frame, an atmosphere which quite
  • Arrayed her in its beams, tremulous and soft and bright.
  • 6.
  • She would have clasped me to her glowing frame; _4270
  • Those warm and odorous lips might soon have shed
  • On mine the fragrance and the invisible flame
  • Which now the cold winds stole;--she would have laid
  • Upon my languid heart her dearest head;
  • I might have heard her voice, tender and sweet; _4275
  • Her eyes, mingling with mine, might soon have fed
  • My soul with their own joy.--One moment yet
  • I gazed--we parted then, never again to meet!
  • 7.
  • Never but once to meet on Earth again!
  • She heard me as I fled--her eager tone _4280
  • Sunk on my heart, and almost wove a chain
  • Around my will to link it with her own,
  • So that my stern resolve was almost gone.
  • 'I cannot reach thee! whither dost thou fly?
  • My steps are faint--Come back, thou dearest one-- _4285
  • Return, ah me! return!'--The wind passed by
  • On which those accents died, faint, far, and lingeringly.
  • 8.
  • Woe! Woe! that moonless midnight!--Want and Pest
  • Were horrible, but one more fell doth rear,
  • As in a hydra's swarming lair, its crest _4290
  • Eminent among those victims--even the Fear
  • Of Hell: each girt by the hot atmosphere
  • Of his blind agony, like a scorpion stung
  • By his own rage upon his burning bier
  • Of circling coals of fire; but still there clung _4295
  • One hope, like a keen sword on starting threads uphung:
  • 9.
  • Not death--death was no more refuge or rest;
  • Not life--it was despair to be!--not sleep,
  • For fiends and chasms of fire had dispossessed
  • All natural dreams: to wake was not to weep, _4300
  • But to gaze mad and pallid, at the leap
  • To which the Future, like a snaky scourge,
  • Or like some tyrant's eye, which aye doth keep
  • Its withering beam upon his slaves, did urge
  • Their steps; they heard the roar of Hell's sulphureous surge. _4305
  • 10.
  • Each of that multitude, alone, and lost
  • To sense of outward things, one hope yet knew;
  • As on a foam-girt crag some seaman tossed
  • Stares at the rising tide, or like the crew
  • Whilst now the ship is splitting through and through; _4310
  • Each, if the tramp of a far steed was heard,
  • Started from sick despair, or if there flew
  • One murmur on the wind, or if some word
  • Which none can gather yet, the distant crowd has stirred.
  • 11.
  • Why became cheeks, wan with the kiss of death, _4315
  • Paler from hope? they had sustained despair.
  • Why watched those myriads with suspended breath
  • Sleepless a second night? they are not here,
  • The victims, and hour by hour, a vision drear,
  • Warm corpses fall upon the clay-cold dead; _4320
  • And even in death their lips are wreathed with fear.--
  • The crowd is mute and moveless--overhead
  • Silent Arcturus shines--'Ha! hear'st thou not the tread
  • 12.
  • 'Of rushing feet? laughter? the shout, the scream,
  • Of triumph not to be contained? See! hark! _4325
  • They come, they come! give way!' Alas, ye deem
  • Falsely--'tis but a crowd of maniacs stark
  • Driven, like a troop of spectres, through the dark,
  • From the choked well, whence a bright death-fire sprung,
  • A lurid earth-star, which dropped many a spark _4330
  • From its blue train, and spreading widely, clung
  • To their wild hair, like mist the topmost pines among.
  • 13.
  • And many, from the crowd collected there,
  • Joined that strange dance in fearful sympathies;
  • There was the silence of a long despair, _4335
  • When the last echo of those terrible cries
  • Came from a distant street, like agonies
  • Stifled afar.--Before the Tyrant's throne
  • All night his aged Senate sate, their eyes
  • In stony expectation fixed; when one _4340
  • Sudden before them stood, a Stranger and alone.
  • 14.
  • Dark Priests and haughty Warriors gazed on him
  • With baffled wonder, for a hermit's vest
  • Concealed his face; but when he spake, his tone,
  • Ere yet the matter did their thoughts arrest,-- _4345
  • Earnest, benignant, calm, as from a breast
  • Void of all hate or terror--made them start;
  • For as with gentle accents he addressed
  • His speech to them, on each unwilling heart
  • Unusual awe did fall--a spirit-quelling dart. _4350
  • 15.
  • 'Ye Princes of the Earth, ye sit aghast
  • Amid the ruin which yourselves have made,
  • Yes, Desolation heard your trumpet's blast,
  • And sprang from sleep!--dark Terror has obeyed
  • Your bidding--O, that I whom ye have made _4355
  • Your foe, could set my dearest enemy free
  • From pain and fear! but evil casts a shade,
  • Which cannot pass so soon, and Hate must be
  • The nurse and parent still of an ill progeny.
  • 16.
  • 'Ye turn to Heaven for aid in your distress; _4360
  • Alas, that ye, the mighty and the wise,
  • Who, if ye dared, might not aspire to less
  • Than ye conceive of power, should fear the lies
  • Which thou, and thou, didst frame for mysteries
  • To blind your slaves:--consider your own thought, _4365
  • An empty and a cruel sacrifice
  • Ye now prepare, for a vain idol wrought
  • Out of the fears and hate which vain desires have brought.
  • 17.
  • 'Ye seek for happiness--alas, the day!
  • Ye find it not in luxury nor in gold, _4370
  • Nor in the fame, nor in the envied sway
  • For which, O willing slaves to Custom old,
  • Severe taskmistress! ye your hearts have sold.
  • Ye seek for peace, and when ye die, to dream
  • No evil dreams: all mortal things are cold _4375
  • And senseless then; if aught survive, I deem
  • It must be love and joy, for they immortal seem.
  • 18.
  • 'Fear not the future, weep not for the past.
  • Oh, could I win your ears to dare be now
  • Glorious, and great, and calm! that ye would cast _4380
  • Into the dust those symbols of your woe,
  • Purple, and gold, and steel! that ye would go
  • Proclaiming to the nations whence ye came,
  • That Want, and Plague, and Fear, from slavery flow;
  • And that mankind is free, and that the shame _4385
  • Of royalty and faith is lost in freedom's fame!
  • 19.
  • 'If thus, 'tis well--if not, I come to say
  • That Laon--' while the Stranger spoke, among
  • The Council sudden tumult and affray
  • Arose, for many of those warriors young, _4390
  • Had on his eloquent accents fed and hung
  • Like bees on mountain-flowers; they knew the truth,
  • And from their thrones in vindication sprung;
  • The men of faith and law then without ruth
  • Drew forth their secret steel, and stabbed each ardent youth. _4395
  • 20.
  • They stabbed them in the back and sneered--a slave
  • Who stood behind the throne, those corpses drew
  • Each to its bloody, dark, and secret grave;
  • And one more daring raised his steel anew
  • To pierce the Stranger. 'What hast thou to do _4400
  • With me, poor wretch?'--Calm, solemn and severe,
  • That voice unstrung his sinews, and he threw
  • His dagger on the ground, and pale with fear,
  • Sate silently--his voice then did the Stranger rear.
  • 21.
  • 'It doth avail not that I weep for ye-- _4405
  • Ye cannot change, since ye are old and gray,
  • And ye have chosen your lot--your fame must be
  • A book of blood, whence in a milder day
  • Men shall learn truth, when ye are wrapped in clay:
  • Now ye shall triumph. I am Laon's friend, _4410
  • And him to your revenge will I betray,
  • So ye concede one easy boon. Attend!
  • For now I speak of things which ye can apprehend.
  • 22.
  • 'There is a People mighty in its youth,
  • A land beyond the Oceans of the West, _4415
  • Where, though with rudest rites, Freedom and Truth
  • Are worshipped; from a glorious Mother's breast,
  • Who, since high Athens fell, among the rest
  • Sate like the Queen of Nations, but in woe,
  • By inbred monsters outraged and oppressed, _4420
  • Turns to her chainless child for succour now,
  • It draws the milk of Power in Wisdom's fullest flow.
  • 23.
  • 'That land is like an Eagle, whose young gaze
  • Feeds on the noontide beam, whose golden plume
  • Floats moveless on the storm, and in the blaze _4425
  • Of sunrise gleams when Earth is wrapped in gloom;
  • An epitaph of glory for the tomb
  • Of murdered Europe may thy fame be made,
  • Great People! as the sands shalt thou become;
  • Thy growth is swift as morn, when night must fade; _4430
  • The multitudinous Earth shall sleep beneath thy shade.
  • 24.
  • 'Yes, in the desert there is built a home
  • For Freedom. Genius is made strong to rear
  • The monuments of man beneath the dome
  • Of a new Heaven; myriads assemble there, _4435
  • Whom the proud lords of man, in rage or fear,
  • Drive from their wasted homes: the boon I pray
  • Is this--that Cythna shall be convoyed there--
  • Nay, start not at the name--America!
  • And then to you this night Laon will I betray. _4440
  • 25.
  • 'With me do what ye will. I am your foe!'
  • The light of such a joy as makes the stare
  • Of hungry snakes like living emeralds glow,
  • Shone in a hundred human eyes--'Where, where
  • Is Laon? Haste! fly! drag him swiftly here! _4445
  • We grant thy boon.'--'I put no trust in ye,
  • Swear by the Power ye dread.'--'We swear, we swear!'
  • The Stranger threw his vest back suddenly,
  • And smiled in gentle pride, and said, 'Lo! I am he!'
  • NOTES:
  • _4321 wreathed]writhed. "Poetical Works" 1839. 1st edition.
  • _4361 the mighty]tho' mighty edition 1818.
  • _4362 ye]he edition 1818.
  • _4432 there]then edition 1818.
  • CANTO 12.
  • 1.
  • The transport of a fierce and monstrous gladness _4450
  • Spread through the multitudinous streets, fast flying
  • Upon the winds of fear; from his dull madness
  • The starveling waked, and died in joy; the dying,
  • Among the corpses in stark agony lying,
  • Just heard the happy tidings, and in hope _4455
  • Closed their faint eyes; from house to house replying
  • With loud acclaim, the living shook Heaven's cope,
  • And filled the startled Earth with echoes: morn did ope
  • 2.
  • Its pale eyes then; and lo! the long array
  • Of guards in golden arms, and Priests beside, _4460
  • Singing their bloody hymns, whose garbs betray
  • The blackness of the faith it seems to hide;
  • And see, the Tyrant's gem-wrought chariot glide
  • Among the gloomy cowls and glittering spears--
  • A Shape of light is sitting by his side, _4465
  • A child most beautiful. I' the midst appears
  • Laon,--exempt alone from mortal hopes and fears.
  • 3.
  • His head and feet are bare, his hands are bound
  • Behind with heavy chains, yet none do wreak
  • Their scoffs on him, though myriads throng around; _4470
  • There are no sneers upon his lip which speak
  • That scorn or hate has made him bold; his cheek
  • Resolve has not turned pale,--his eyes are mild
  • And calm, and, like the morn about to break,
  • Smile on mankind--his heart seems reconciled _4475
  • To all things and itself, like a reposing child.
  • 4.
  • Tumult was in the soul of all beside,
  • Ill joy, or doubt, or fear; but those who saw
  • Their tranquil victim pass, felt wonder glide
  • Into their brain, and became calm with awe.-- _4480
  • See, the slow pageant near the pile doth draw.
  • A thousand torches in the spacious square,
  • Borne by the ready slaves of ruthless law,
  • Await the signal round: the morning fair
  • Is changed to a dim night by that unnatural glare. _4485
  • 5.
  • And see! beneath a sun-bright canopy,
  • Upon a platform level with the pile,
  • The anxious Tyrant sit, enthroned on high,
  • Girt by the chieftains of the host; all smile
  • In expectation, but one child: the while _4490
  • I, Laon, led by mutes, ascend my bier
  • Of fire, and look around: each distant isle
  • Is dark in the bright dawn; towers far and near,
  • Pierce like reposing flames the tremulous atmosphere.
  • 6.
  • There was such silence through the host, as when _4495
  • An earthquake trampling on some populous town,
  • Has crushed ten thousand with one tread, and men
  • Expect the second; all were mute but one,
  • That fairest child, who, bold with love, alone
  • Stood up before the King, without avail, _4500
  • Pleading for Laon's life--her stifled groan
  • Was heard--she trembled like one aspen pale
  • Among the gloomy pines of a Norwegian vale.
  • 7.
  • What were his thoughts linked in the morning sun,
  • Among those reptiles, stingless with delay, _4505
  • Even like a tyrant's wrath?--The signal-gun
  • Roared--hark, again! In that dread pause he lay
  • As in a quiet dream--the slaves obey--
  • A thousand torches drop,--and hark, the last
  • Bursts on that awful silence; far away, _4510
  • Millions, with hearts that beat both loud and fast,
  • Watch for the springing flame expectant and aghast.
  • 8.
  • They fly--the torches fall--a cry of fear
  • Has startled the triumphant!--they recede!
  • For, ere the cannon's roar has died, they hear _4515
  • The tramp of hoofs like earthquake, and a steed
  • Dark and gigantic, with the tempest's speed,
  • Bursts through their ranks: a woman sits thereon,
  • Fairer, it seems, than aught that earth can breed,
  • Calm, radiant, like the phantom of the dawn, _4520
  • A spirit from the caves of daylight wandering gone.
  • 9.
  • All thought it was God's Angel come to sweep
  • The lingering guilty to their fiery grave;
  • The Tyrant from his throne in dread did leap,--
  • Her innocence his child from fear did save; _4525
  • Scared by the faith they feigned, each priestly slave
  • Knelt for his mercy whom they served with blood,
  • And, like the refluence of a mighty wave
  • Sucked into the loud sea, the multitude
  • With crushing panic, fled in terror's altered mood. _4530
  • 10.
  • They pause, they blush, they gaze,--a gathering shout
  • Bursts like one sound from the ten thousand streams
  • Of a tempestuous sea:--that sudden rout
  • One checked, who, never in his mildest dreams
  • Felt awe from grace or loveliness, the seams _4535
  • Of his rent heart so hard and cold a creed
  • Had seared with blistering ice--but he misdeems
  • That he is wise, whose wounds do only bleed
  • Inly for self,--thus thought the Iberian Priest indeed,
  • 11.
  • And others, too, thought he was wise to see, _4540
  • In pain, and fear, and hate, something divine;
  • In love and beauty, no divinity.--
  • Now with a bitter smile, whose light did shine
  • Like a fiend's hope upon his lips and eyne,
  • He said, and the persuasion of that sneer _4545
  • Rallied his trembling comrades--'Is it mine
  • To stand alone, when kings and soldiers fear
  • A woman? Heaven has sent its other victim here.'
  • 12.
  • 'Were it not impious,' said the King, 'to break
  • Our holy oath?'--'Impious to keep it, say!' _4550
  • Shrieked the exulting Priest:--'Slaves, to the stake
  • Bind her, and on my head the burden lay
  • Of her just torments:--at the Judgement Day
  • Will I stand up before the golden throne
  • Of Heaven, and cry, "To Thee did I betray _4555
  • An infidel; but for me she would have known
  • Another moment's joy! the glory be thine own."'
  • 13.
  • They trembled, but replied not, nor obeyed,
  • Pausing in breathless silence. Cythna sprung
  • From her gigantic steed, who, like a shade _4560
  • Chased by the winds, those vacant streets among
  • Fled tameless, as the brazen rein she flung
  • Upon his neck, and kissed his mooned brow.
  • A piteous sight, that one so fair and young,
  • The clasp of such a fearful death should woo _4565
  • With smiles of tender joy as beamed from Cythna now.
  • 14.
  • The warm tears burst in spite of faith and fear
  • From many a tremulous eye, but like soft dews
  • Which feed Spring's earliest buds, hung gathered there,
  • Frozen by doubt,--alas! they could not choose _4570
  • But weep; for when her faint limbs did refuse
  • To climb the pyre, upon the mutes she smiled;
  • And with her eloquent gestures, and the hues
  • Of her quick lips, even as a weary child
  • Wins sleep from some fond nurse with its caresses mild, _4575
  • 15.
  • She won them, though unwilling, her to bind
  • Near me, among the snakes. When there had fled
  • One soft reproach that was most thrilling kind,
  • She smiled on me, and nothing then we said,
  • But each upon the other's countenance fed _4580
  • Looks of insatiate love; the mighty veil
  • Which doth divide the living and the dead
  • Was almost rent, the world grew dim and pale,--
  • All light in Heaven or Earth beside our love did fail.--
  • 16.
  • Yet--yet--one brief relapse, like the last beam _4585
  • Of dying flames, the stainless air around
  • Hung silent and serene--a blood-red gleam
  • Burst upwards, hurling fiercely from the ground
  • The globed smoke,--I heard the mighty sound
  • Of its uprise, like a tempestuous ocean; _4590
  • And through its chasms I saw, as in a swound,
  • The tyrant's child fall without life or motion
  • Before his throne, subdued by some unseen emotion.--
  • 17.
  • And is this death?--The pyre has disappeared,
  • The Pestilence, the Tyrant, and the throng; _4595
  • The flames grow silent--slowly there is heard
  • The music of a breath-suspending song,
  • Which, like the kiss of love when life is young,
  • Steeps the faint eyes in darkness sweet and deep;
  • With ever-changing notes it floats along, _4600
  • Till on my passive soul there seemed to creep
  • A melody, like waves on wrinkled sands that leap.
  • 18.
  • The warm touch of a soft and tremulous hand
  • Wakened me then; lo! Cythna sate reclined
  • Beside me, on the waved and golden sand _4605
  • Of a clear pool, upon a bank o'ertwined
  • With strange and star-bright flowers, which to the wind
  • Breathed divine odour; high above, was spread
  • The emerald heaven of trees of unknown kind,
  • Whose moonlike blooms and bright fruit overhead _4610
  • A shadow, which was light, upon the waters shed.
  • 19.
  • And round about sloped many a lawny mountain
  • With incense-bearing forests and vast caves
  • Of marble radiance, to that mighty fountain;
  • And where the flood its own bright margin laves, _4615
  • Their echoes talk with its eternal waves,
  • Which, from the depths whose jagged caverns breed
  • Their unreposing strife, it lifts and heaves,--
  • Till through a chasm of hills they roll, and feed
  • A river deep, which flies with smooth but arrowy speed. _4620
  • 20.
  • As we sate gazing in a trance of wonder,
  • A boat approached, borne by the musical air
  • Along the waves which sung and sparkled under
  • Its rapid keel--a winged shape sate there,
  • A child with silver-shining wings, so fair, _4625
  • That as her bark did through the waters glide,
  • The shadow of the lingering waves did wear
  • Light, as from starry beams; from side to side,
  • While veering to the wind her plumes the bark did guide.
  • 21.
  • The boat was one curved shell of hollow pearl, _4630
  • Almost translucent with the light divine
  • Of her within; the prow and stern did curl
  • Horned on high, like the young moon supine,
  • When o'er dim twilight mountains dark with pine,
  • It floats upon the sunset's sea of beams, _4635
  • Whose golden waves in many a purple line
  • Fade fast, till borne on sunlight's ebbing streams,
  • Dilating, on earth's verge the sunken meteor gleams.
  • 22.
  • Its keel has struck the sands beside our feet;--
  • Then Cythna turned to me, and from her eyes _4640
  • Which swam with unshed tears, a look more sweet
  • Than happy love, a wild and glad surprise,
  • Glanced as she spake: 'Ay, this is Paradise
  • And not a dream, and we are all united!
  • Lo, that is mine own child, who in the guise _4645
  • Of madness came, like day to one benighted
  • In lonesome woods: my heart is now too well requited!'
  • 23.
  • And then she wept aloud, and in her arms
  • Clasped that bright Shape, less marvellously fair
  • Than her own human hues and living charms; _4650
  • Which, as she leaned in passion's silence there,
  • Breathed warmth on the cold bosom of the air,
  • Which seemed to blush and tremble with delight;
  • The glossy darkness of her streaming hair
  • Fell o'er that snowy child, and wrapped from sight _4655
  • The fond and long embrace which did their hearts unite.
  • 24.
  • Then the bright child, the plumed Seraph came,
  • And fixed its blue and beaming eyes on mine,
  • And said, 'I was disturbed by tremulous shame
  • When once we met, yet knew that I was thine _4660
  • From the same hour in which thy lips divine
  • Kindled a clinging dream within my brain,
  • Which ever waked when I might sleep, to twine
  • Thine image with HER memory dear--again
  • We meet; exempted now from mortal fear or pain. _4665
  • 25.
  • 'When the consuming flames had wrapped ye round,
  • The hope which I had cherished went away;
  • I fell in agony on the senseless ground,
  • And hid mine eyes in dust, and far astray
  • My mind was gone, when bright, like dawning day, _4670
  • The Spectre of the Plague before me flew,
  • And breathed upon my lips, and seemed to say,
  • "They wait for thee, beloved!"--then I knew
  • The death-mark on my breast, and became calm anew.
  • 26.
  • 'It was the calm of love--for I was dying. _4675
  • I saw the black and half-extinguished pyre
  • In its own gray and shrunken ashes lying;
  • The pitchy smoke of the departed fire
  • Still hung in many a hollow dome and spire
  • Above the towers, like night,--beneath whose shade _4680
  • Awed by the ending of their own desire
  • The armies stood; a vacancy was made
  • In expectation's depth, and so they stood dismayed.
  • 27.
  • 'The frightful silence of that altered mood,
  • The tortures of the dying clove alone, _4685
  • Till one uprose among the multitude,
  • And said--"The flood of time is rolling on;
  • We stand upon its brink, whilst THEY are gone
  • To glide in peace down death's mysterious stream.
  • Have ye done well? They moulder, flesh and bone, _4690
  • Who might have made this life's envenomed dream
  • A sweeter draught than ye will ever taste, I deem.
  • 28.
  • '"These perish as the good and great of yore
  • Have perished, and their murderers will repent,--
  • Yes, vain and barren tears shall flow before _4695
  • Yon smoke has faded from the firmament
  • Even for this cause, that ye who must lament
  • The death of those that made this world so fair,
  • Cannot recall them now; but there is lent
  • To man the wisdom of a high despair, _4700
  • When such can die, and he live on and linger here.
  • 29.
  • '"Ay, ye may fear not now the Pestilence,
  • From fabled hell as by a charm withdrawn;
  • All power and faith must pass, since calmly hence
  • In pain and fire have unbelievers gone; _4705
  • And ye must sadly turn away, and moan
  • In secret, to his home each one returning;
  • And to long ages shall this hour be known;
  • And slowly shall its memory, ever burning,
  • Fill this dark night of things with an eternal morning. _4710
  • 30.
  • '"For me that world is grown too void and cold,
  • Since Hope pursues immortal Destiny
  • With steps thus slow--therefore shall ye behold
  • How those who love, yet fear not, dare to die;
  • Tell to your children this!" Then suddenly _4715
  • He sheathed a dagger in his heart and fell;
  • My brain grew dark in death, and yet to me
  • There came a murmur from the crowd, to tell
  • Of deep and mighty change which suddenly befell.
  • 31.
  • 'Then suddenly I stood, a winged Thought, _4720
  • Before the immortal Senate, and the seat
  • Of that star-shining spirit, whence is wrought
  • The strength of its dominion, good and great,
  • The better Genius of this world's estate.
  • His realm around one mighty Fane is spread, _4725
  • Elysian islands bright and fortunate,
  • Calm dwellings of the free and happy dead,
  • Where I am sent to lead!' These winged words she said,
  • 32.
  • And with the silence of her eloquent smile,
  • Bade us embark in her divine canoe; _4730
  • Then at the helm we took our seat, the while
  • Above her head those plumes of dazzling hue
  • Into the winds' invisible stream she threw,
  • Sitting beside the prow: like gossamer
  • On the swift breath of morn, the vessel flew _4735
  • O'er the bright whirlpools of that fountain fair,
  • Whose shores receded fast, while we seemed lingering there;
  • 33.
  • Till down that mighty stream, dark, calm, and fleet,
  • Between a chasm of cedarn mountains riven,
  • Chased by the thronging winds whose viewless feet _4740
  • As swift as twinkling beams, had, under Heaven,
  • From woods and waves wild sounds and odours driven,
  • The boat fled visibly--three nights and days,
  • Borne like a cloud through morn, and noon, and even,
  • We sailed along the winding watery ways _4745
  • Of the vast stream, a long and labyrinthine maze.
  • 34.
  • A scene of joy and wonder to behold
  • That river's shapes and shadows changing ever,
  • Where the broad sunrise filled with deepening gold
  • Its whirlpools, where all hues did spread and quiver; _4750
  • And where melodious falls did burst and shiver
  • Among rocks clad with flowers, the foam and spray
  • Sparkled like stars upon the sunny river,
  • Or when the moonlight poured a holier day,
  • One vast and glittering lake around green islands lay. _4755
  • 35.
  • Morn, noon, and even, that boat of pearl outran
  • The streams which bore it, like the arrowy cloud
  • Of tempest, or the speedier thought of man,
  • Which flieth forth and cannot make abode;
  • Sometimes through forests, deep like night, we glode, _4760
  • Between the walls of mighty mountains crowned
  • With Cyclopean piles, whose turrets proud,
  • The homes of the departed, dimly frowned
  • O'er the bright waves which girt their dark foundations round.
  • 36.
  • Sometimes between the wide and flowering meadows, _4765
  • Mile after mile we sailed, and 'twas delight
  • To see far off the sunbeams chase the shadows
  • Over the grass; sometimes beneath the night
  • Of wide and vaulted caves, whose roofs were bright
  • With starry gems, we fled, whilst from their deep _4770
  • And dark-green chasms, shades beautiful and white,
  • Amid sweet sounds across our path would sweep,
  • Like swift and lovely dreams that walk the waves of sleep.
  • 37.
  • And ever as we sailed, our minds were full
  • Of love and wisdom, which would overflow _4775
  • In converse wild, and sweet, and wonderful,
  • And in quick smiles whose light would come and go
  • Like music o'er wide waves, and in the flow
  • Of sudden tears, and in the mute caress--
  • For a deep shade was cleft, and we did know, _4780
  • That virtue, though obscured on Earth, not less
  • Survives all mortal change in lasting loveliness.
  • 38.
  • Three days and nights we sailed, as thought and feeling
  • Number delightful hours--for through the sky
  • The sphered lamps of day and night, revealing _4785
  • New changes and new glories, rolled on high,
  • Sun, Moon and moonlike lamps, the progeny
  • Of a diviner Heaven, serene and fair:
  • On the fourth day, wild as a windwrought sea
  • The stream became, and fast and faster bare _4790
  • The spirit-winged boat, steadily speeding there.
  • 39.
  • Steady and swift, where the waves rolled like mountains
  • Within the vast ravine, whose rifts did pour
  • Tumultuous floods from their ten thousand fountains,
  • The thunder of whose earth-uplifting roar _4795
  • Made the air sweep in whirlwinds from the shore,
  • Calm as a shade, the boat of that fair child
  • Securely fled, that rapid stress before,
  • Amid the topmost spray, and sunbows wild,
  • Wreathed in the silver mist: in joy and pride we smiled. _4800
  • 40.
  • The torrent of that wide and raging river
  • Is passed, and our aereal speed suspended.
  • We look behind; a golden mist did quiver
  • When its wild surges with the lake were blended,--
  • Our bark hung there, as on a line suspended _4805
  • Between two heavens,--that windless waveless lake
  • Which four great cataracts from four vales, attended
  • By mists, aye feed; from rocks and clouds they break,
  • And of that azure sea a silent refuge make.
  • 41.
  • Motionless resting on the lake awhile, _4810
  • I saw its marge of snow-bright mountains rear
  • Their peaks aloft, I saw each radiant isle,
  • And in the midst, afar, even like a sphere
  • Hung in one hollow sky, did there appear
  • The Temple of the Spirit; on the sound _4815
  • Which issued thence, drawn nearer and more near,
  • Like the swift moon this glorious earth around,
  • The charmed boat approached, and there its haven found.
  • NOTES:
  • _4577 there]then edition 1818.
  • _4699 there]then edition 1818.
  • _4749 When]Where edition 1818.
  • _4804 Where]When edition 1818.
  • _4805 on a line]one line edition 1818.
  • NOTE ON THE "REVOLT OF ISLAM", BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • Shelley possessed two remarkable qualities of intellect--a brilliant
  • imagination, and a logical exactness of reason. His inclinations led
  • him (he fancied) almost alike to poetry and metaphysical discussions.
  • I say 'he fancied,' because I believe the former to have been
  • paramount, and that it would have gained the mastery even had he
  • struggled against it. However, he said that he deliberated at one time
  • whether he should dedicate himself to poetry or metaphysics; and,
  • resolving on the former, he educated himself for it, discarding in a
  • great measure his philosophical pursuits, and engaging himself in the
  • study of the poets of Greece, Italy, and England. To these may be
  • added a constant perusal of portions of the old Testament--the Psalms,
  • the Book of Job, the Prophet Isaiah, and others, the sublime poetry of
  • which filled him with delight.
  • As a poet, his intellect and compositions were powerfully influenced
  • by exterior circumstances, and especially by his place of abode. He
  • was very fond of travelling, and ill-health increased this
  • restlessness. The sufferings occasioned by a cold English winter made
  • him pine, especially when our colder spring arrived, for a more genial
  • climate. In 1816 he again visited Switzerland, and rented a house on
  • the banks of the Lake of Geneva; and many a day, in cloud or sunshine,
  • was passed alone in his boat--sailing as the wind listed, or weltering
  • on the calm waters. The majestic aspect of Nature ministered such
  • thoughts as he afterwards enwove in verse. His lines on the Bridge of
  • the Arve, and his "Hymn to Intellectual Beauty", were written at this
  • time. Perhaps during this summer his genius was checked by association
  • with another poet whose nature was utterly dissimilar to his own, yet
  • who, in the poem he wrote at that time, gave tokens that he shared for
  • a period the more abstract and etherealised inspiration of Shelley.
  • The saddest events awaited his return to England; but such was his
  • fear to wound the feelings of others that he never expressed the
  • anguish he felt, and seldom gave vent to the indignation roused by the
  • persecutions he underwent; while the course of deep unexpressed
  • passion, and the sense of injury, engendered the desire to embody
  • themselves in forms defecated of all the weakness and evil which cling
  • to real life.
  • He chose therefore for his hero a youth nourished in dreams of
  • liberty, some of whose actions are in direct opposition to the
  • opinions of the world; but who is animated throughout by an ardent
  • love of virtue, and a resolution to confer the boons of political and
  • intellectual freedom on his fellow-creatures. He created for this
  • youth a woman such as he delighted to imagine--full of enthusiasm for
  • the same objects; and they both, with will unvanquished, and the
  • deepest sense of the justice of their cause, met adversity and death.
  • There exists in this poem a memorial of a friend of his youth. The
  • character of the old man who liberates Laon from his tower prison, and
  • tends on him in sickness, is founded on that of Doctor Lind, who, when
  • Shelley was at Eton, had often stood by to befriend and support him,
  • and whose name he never mentioned without love and veneration.
  • During the year 1817 we were established at Marlow in Buckinghamshire.
  • Shelley's choice of abode was fixed chiefly by this town being at no
  • great distance from London, and its neighbourhood to the Thames. The
  • poem was written in his boat, as it floated under the beech groves of
  • Bisham, or during wanderings in the neighbouring country, which is
  • distinguished for peculiar beauty. The chalk hills break into cliffs
  • that overhang the Thames, or form valleys clothed with beech; the
  • wilder portion of the country is rendered beautiful by exuberant
  • vegetation; and the cultivated part is peculiarly fertile. With all
  • this wealth of Nature which, either in the form of gentlemen's parks
  • or soil dedicated to agriculture, flourishes around, Marlow was
  • inhabited (I hope it is altered now) by a very poor population. The
  • women are lacemakers, and lose their health by sedentary labour, for
  • which they were very ill paid. The Poor-laws ground to the dust not
  • only the paupers, but those who had risen just above that state, and
  • were obliged to pay poor-rates. The changes produced by peace
  • following a long war, and a bad harvest, brought with them the most
  • heart-rending evils to the poor. Shelley afforded what alleviation he
  • could. In the winter, while bringing out his poem, he had a severe
  • attack of ophthalmia, caught while visiting the poor cottages. I
  • mention these things,--for this minute and active sympathy with his
  • fellow-creatures gives a thousandfold interest to his speculations,
  • and stamps with reality his pleadings for the human race.
  • The poem, bold in its opinions and uncompromising in their expression,
  • met with many censurers, not only among those who allow of no virtue
  • but such as supports the cause they espouse, but even among those
  • whose opinions were similar to his own. I extract a portion of a
  • letter written in answer to one of these friends. It best details the
  • impulses of Shelley's mind, and his motives: it was written with
  • entire unreserve; and is therefore a precious monument of his own
  • opinion of his powers, of the purity of his designs, and the ardour
  • with which he clung, in adversity and through the valley of the shadow
  • of death, to views from which he believed the permanent happiness of
  • mankind must eventually spring.
  • 'Marlowe, December 11, 1817.
  • 'I have read and considered all that you say about my general powers,
  • and the particular instance of the poem in which I have attempted to
  • develop them. Nothing can be more satisfactory to me than the interest
  • which your admonitions express. But I think you are mistaken in some
  • points with regard to the peculiar nature of my powers, whatever be
  • their amount. I listened with deference and self-suspicion to your
  • censures of "The Revolt of Islam"; but the productions of mine which
  • you commend hold a very low place in my own esteem; and this reassures
  • me, in some degree at least. The poem was produced by a series of
  • thoughts which filled my mind with unbounded and sustained enthusiasm.
  • I felt the precariousness of my life, and I engaged in this task,
  • resolved to leave some record of myself. Much of what the volume
  • contains was written with the same feeling--as real, though not so
  • prophetic--as the communications of a dying man. I never presumed
  • indeed to consider it anything approaching to faultless; but, when I
  • consider contemporary productions of the same apparent pretensions, I
  • own I was filled with confidence. I felt that it was in many respects
  • a genuine picture of my own mind. I felt that the sentiments were
  • true, not assumed. And in this have I long believed that my power
  • consists; in sympathy, and that part of the imagination which relates
  • to sentiment and contemplation. I am formed, if for anything not in
  • common with the herd of mankind, to apprehend minute and remote
  • distinctions of feeling, whether relative to external nature or the
  • living beings which surround us, and to communicate the conceptions
  • which result from considering either the moral or the material
  • universe as a whole. Of course, I believe these faculties, which
  • perhaps comprehend all that is sublime in man, to exist very
  • imperfectly in my own mind. But, when you advert to my Chancery-paper,
  • a cold, forced, unimpassioned, insignificant piece of cramped and
  • cautious argument, and to the little scrap about "Mandeville", which
  • expressed my feelings indeed, but cost scarcely two minutes' thought
  • to express, as specimens of my powers more favourable than that which
  • grew as it were from "the agony and bloody sweat" of intellectual
  • travail; surely I must feel that, in some manner, either I am mistaken
  • in believing that I have any talent at all, or you in the selection of
  • the specimens of it. Yet, after all, I cannot but be conscious, in
  • much of what I write, of an absence of that tranquillity which is the
  • attribute and accompaniment of power. This feeling alone would make
  • your most kind and wise admonitions, on the subject of the economy of
  • intellectual force, valuable to me. And, if I live, or if I see any
  • trust in coming years, doubt not but that I shall do something,
  • whatever it may be, which a serious and earnest estimate of my powers
  • will suggest to me, and which will be in every respect accommodated to
  • their utmost limits.
  • [Shelley to Godwin.]
  • ***
  • PRINCE ATHANASE.
  • A FRAGMENT.
  • (The idea Shelley had formed of Prince Athanase was a good deal
  • modelled on "Alastor". In the first sketch of the poem, he named it
  • "Pandemos and Urania". Athanase seeks through the world the One whom
  • he may love. He meets, in the ship in which he is embarked, a lady who
  • appears to him to embody his ideal of love and beauty. But she proves
  • to be Pandemos, or the earthly and unworthy Venus; who, after
  • disappointing his cherished dreams and hopes, deserts him. Athanase,
  • crushed by sorrow, pines and dies. 'On his deathbed, the lady who can
  • really reply to his soul comes and kisses his lips' ("The Deathbed of
  • Athanase"). The poet describes her [in the words of the final
  • fragment, page 164]. This slender note is all we have to aid our
  • imagination in shaping out the form of the poem, such as its author
  • imagined. [Mrs. Shelley's Note.])
  • [Written at Marlow in 1817, towards the close of the year; first
  • published in "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Part 1 is dated by Mrs.
  • Shelley, 'December, 1817,' the remainder, 'Marlow, 1817.' The verses
  • were probably rehandled in Italy during the following year. Sources of
  • the text are (1) "Posthumous Poems", 1824; (2) "Poetical Works" 1839,
  • editions 1st and 2nd; (3) a much-tortured draft amongst the Bodleian
  • manuscripts, collated by Mr. C.D. Locock. For (1) and (2) Mrs. Shelley
  • is responsible. Our text (enlarged by about thirty lines fro the
  • Bodleian manuscript) follows for the most part the "Poetical Works",
  • 1839; verbal exceptions are pointed out in the footnotes. See also the
  • Editor's Notes at the end of this volume, and Mr. Locock's
  • "Examination of Shelley Manuscripts in the Bodleian Library", Oxford:
  • Clarendon Press, 1903.]
  • PART 1.
  • There was a youth, who, as with toil and travel,
  • Had grown quite weak and gray before his time;
  • Nor any could the restless griefs unravel
  • Which burned within him, withering up his prime
  • And goading him, like fiends, from land to land. _5
  • Not his the load of any secret crime,
  • For nought of ill his heart could understand,
  • But pity and wild sorrow for the same;--
  • Not his the thirst for glory or command,
  • Baffled with blast of hope-consuming shame; _10
  • Nor evil joys which fire the vulgar breast,
  • And quench in speedy smoke its feeble flame,
  • Had left within his soul their dark unrest:
  • Nor what religion fables of the grave
  • Feared he,--Philosophy's accepted guest. _15
  • For none than he a purer heart could have,
  • Or that loved good more for itself alone;
  • Of nought in heaven or earth was he the slave.
  • What sorrow, strange, and shadowy, and unknown,
  • Sent him, a hopeless wanderer, through mankind?-- _20
  • If with a human sadness he did groan,
  • He had a gentle yet aspiring mind;
  • Just, innocent, with varied learning fed;
  • And such a glorious consolation find
  • In others' joy, when all their own is dead: _25
  • He loved, and laboured for his kind in grief,
  • And yet, unlike all others, it is said
  • That from such toil he never found relief.
  • Although a child of fortune and of power,
  • Of an ancestral name the orphan chief, _30
  • His soul had wedded Wisdom, and her dower
  • Is love and justice, clothed in which he sate
  • Apart from men, as in a lonely tower,
  • Pitying the tumult of their dark estate.--
  • Yet even in youth did he not e'er abuse _35
  • The strength of wealth or thought, to consecrate
  • Those false opinions which the harsh rich use
  • To blind the world they famish for their pride;
  • Nor did he hold from any man his dues,
  • But, like a steward in honest dealings tried, _40
  • With those who toiled and wept, the poor and wise,
  • His riches and his cares he did divide.
  • Fearless he was, and scorning all disguise,
  • What he dared do or think, though men might start,
  • He spoke with mild yet unaverted eyes; _45
  • Liberal he was of soul, and frank of heart,
  • And to his many friends--all loved him well--
  • Whate'er he knew or felt he would impart,
  • If words he found those inmost thoughts to tell;
  • If not, he smiled or wept; and his weak foes _50
  • He neither spurned nor hated--though with fell
  • And mortal hate their thousand voices rose,
  • They passed like aimless arrows from his ear--
  • Nor did his heart or mind its portal close
  • To those, or them, or any, whom life's sphere _55
  • May comprehend within its wide array.
  • What sadness made that vernal spirit sere?--
  • He knew not. Though his life, day after day,
  • Was failing like an unreplenished stream,
  • Though in his eyes a cloud and burthen lay, _60
  • Through which his soul, like Vesper's serene beam
  • Piercing the chasms of ever rising clouds,
  • Shone, softly burning; though his lips did seem
  • Like reeds which quiver in impetuous floods;
  • And through his sleep, and o'er each waking hour, _65
  • Thoughts after thoughts, unresting multitudes,
  • Were driven within him by some secret power,
  • Which bade them blaze, and live, and roll afar,
  • Like lights and sounds, from haunted tower to tower
  • O'er castled mountains borne, when tempest's war _70
  • Is levied by the night-contending winds,
  • And the pale dalesmen watch with eager ear;--
  • Though such were in his spirit, as the fiends
  • Which wake and feed an everliving woe,--
  • What was this grief, which ne'er in other minds _75
  • A mirror found,--he knew not--none could know;
  • But on whoe'er might question him he turned
  • The light of his frank eyes, as if to show
  • He knew not of the grief within that burned,
  • But asked forbearance with a mournful look; _80
  • Or spoke in words from which none ever learned
  • The cause of his disquietude; or shook
  • With spasms of silent passion; or turned pale:
  • So that his friends soon rarely undertook
  • To stir his secret pain without avail;-- _85
  • For all who knew and loved him then perceived
  • That there was drawn an adamantine veil
  • Between his heart and mind,--both unrelieved
  • Wrought in his brain and bosom separate strife.
  • Some said that he was mad, others believed _90
  • That memories of an antenatal life
  • Made this, where now he dwelt, a penal hell;
  • And others said that such mysterious grief
  • From God's displeasure, like a darkness, fell
  • On souls like his, which owned no higher law _95
  • Than love; love calm, steadfast, invincible
  • By mortal fear or supernatural awe;
  • And others,--''Tis the shadow of a dream
  • Which the veiled eye of Memory never saw,
  • 'But through the soul's abyss, like some dark stream _100
  • Through shattered mines and caverns underground,
  • Rolls, shaking its foundations; and no beam
  • 'Of joy may rise, but it is quenched and drowned
  • In the dim whirlpools of this dream obscure;
  • Soon its exhausted waters will have found _105
  • 'A lair of rest beneath thy spirit pure,
  • O Athanase!--in one so good and great,
  • Evil or tumult cannot long endure.
  • So spake they: idly of another's state
  • Babbling vain words and fond philosophy; _110
  • This was their consolation; such debate
  • Men held with one another; nor did he,
  • Like one who labours with a human woe,
  • Decline this talk: as if its theme might be
  • Another, not himself, he to and fro _115
  • Questioned and canvassed it with subtlest wit;
  • And none but those who loved him best could know
  • That which he knew not, how it galled and bit
  • His weary mind, this converse vain and cold;
  • For like an eyeless nightmare grief did sit _120
  • Upon his being; a snake which fold by fold
  • Pressed out the life of life, a clinging fiend
  • Which clenched him if he stirred with deadlier hold;--
  • And so his grief remained--let it remain--untold. [1]
  • PART 2.
  • FRAGMENT 1.
  • Prince Athanase had one beloved friend, _125
  • An old, old man, with hair of silver white,
  • And lips where heavenly smiles would hang and blend
  • With his wise words; and eyes whose arrowy light
  • Shone like the reflex of a thousand minds.
  • He was the last whom superstition's blight _130
  • Had spared in Greece--the blight that cramps and blinds,--
  • And in his olive bower at Oenoe
  • Had sate from earliest youth. Like one who finds
  • A fertile island in the barren sea,
  • One mariner who has survived his mates _135
  • Many a drear month in a great ship--so he
  • With soul-sustaining songs, and sweet debates
  • Of ancient lore, there fed his lonely being:--
  • 'The mind becomes that which it contemplates,'--
  • And thus Zonoras, by for ever seeing _140
  • Their bright creations, grew like wisest men;
  • And when he heard the crash of nations fleeing
  • A bloodier power than ruled thy ruins then,
  • O sacred Hellas! many weary years
  • He wandered, till the path of Laian's glen _145
  • Was grass-grown--and the unremembered tears
  • Were dry in Laian for their honoured chief,
  • Who fell in Byzant, pierced by Moslem spears:--
  • And as the lady looked with faithful grief
  • From her high lattice o'er the rugged path, _150
  • Where she once saw that horseman toil, with brief
  • And blighting hope, who with the news of death
  • Struck body and soul as with a mortal blight,
  • She saw between the chestnuts, far beneath,
  • An old man toiling up, a weary wight; _155
  • And soon within her hospitable hall
  • She saw his white hairs glittering in the light
  • Of the wood fire, and round his shoulders fall;
  • And his wan visage and his withered mien,
  • Yet calm and gentle and majestical. _160
  • And Athanase, her child, who must have been
  • Then three years old, sate opposite and gazed
  • In patient silence.
  • FRAGMENT 2.
  • Such was Zonoras; and as daylight finds
  • One amaranth glittering on the path of frost, _165
  • When autumn nights have nipped all weaker kinds,
  • Thus through his age, dark, cold, and tempest-tossed,
  • Shone truth upon Zonoras; and he filled
  • From fountains pure, nigh overgrown and lost,
  • The spirit of Prince Athanase, a child, _170
  • With soul-sustaining songs of ancient lore
  • And philosophic wisdom, clear and mild.
  • And sweet and subtle talk they evermore,
  • The pupil and the master, shared; until,
  • Sharing that undiminishable store, _175
  • The youth, as shadows on a grassy hill
  • Outrun the winds that chase them, soon outran
  • His teacher, and did teach with native skill
  • Strange truths and new to that experienced man;
  • Still they were friends, as few have ever been _180
  • Who mark the extremes of life's discordant span.
  • So in the caverns of the forest green,
  • Or on the rocks of echoing ocean hoar,
  • Zonoras and Prince Athanase were seen
  • By summer woodmen; and when winter's roar _185
  • Sounded o'er earth and sea its blast of war,
  • The Balearic fisher, driven from shore,
  • Hanging upon the peaked wave afar,
  • Then saw their lamp from Laian's turret gleam,
  • Piercing the stormy darkness, like a star _190
  • Which pours beyond the sea one steadfast beam,
  • Whilst all the constellations of the sky
  • Seemed reeling through the storm...They did but seem--
  • For, lo! the wintry clouds are all gone by,
  • And bright Arcturus through yon pines is glowing, _195
  • And far o'er southern waves, immovably
  • Belted Orion hangs--warm light is flowing
  • From the young moon into the sunset's chasm.--
  • 'O, summer eve! with power divine, bestowing
  • 'On thine own bird the sweet enthusiasm _200
  • Which overflows in notes of liquid gladness,
  • Filling the sky like light! How many a spasm
  • 'Of fevered brains, oppressed with grief and madness,
  • Were lulled by thee, delightful nightingale,--
  • And these soft waves, murmuring a gentle sadness,-- _205
  • 'And the far sighings of yon piny dale
  • Made vocal by some wind we feel not here.--
  • I bear alone what nothing may avail
  • 'To lighten--a strange load!'--No human ear
  • Heard this lament; but o'er the visage wan _210
  • Of Athanase, a ruffling atmosphere
  • Of dark emotion, a swift shadow, ran,
  • Like wind upon some forest-bosomed lake,
  • Glassy and dark.--And that divine old man
  • Beheld his mystic friend's whole being shake, _215
  • Even where its inmost depths were gloomiest--
  • And with a calm and measured voice he spake,
  • And, with a soft and equal pressure, pressed
  • That cold lean hand:--'Dost thou remember yet
  • When the curved moon then lingering in the west _220
  • 'Paused, in yon waves her mighty horns to wet,
  • How in those beams we walked, half resting on the sea?
  • 'Tis just one year--sure thou dost not forget--
  • 'Then Plato's words of light in thee and me
  • Lingered like moonlight in the moonless east, _225
  • For we had just then read--thy memory
  • 'Is faithful now--the story of the feast;
  • And Agathon and Diotima seemed
  • From death and dark forgetfulness released...'
  • FRAGMENT 3.
  • And when the old man saw that on the green
  • Leaves of his opening ... a blight had lighted _230
  • He said: 'My friend, one grief alone can wean
  • A gentle mind from all that once delighted:--
  • Thou lovest, and thy secret heart is laden
  • With feelings which should not be unrequited.' _235
  • And Athanase ... then smiled, as one o'erladen
  • With iron chains might smile to talk (?) of bands
  • Twined round her lover's neck by some blithe maiden,
  • And said...
  • FRAGMENT 4.
  • 'Twas at the season when the Earth upsprings _240
  • From slumber, as a sphered angel's child,
  • Shadowing its eyes with green and golden wings,
  • Stands up before its mother bright and mild,
  • Of whose soft voice the air expectant seems--
  • So stood before the sun, which shone and smiled _245
  • To see it rise thus joyous from its dreams,
  • The fresh and radiant Earth. The hoary grove
  • Waxed green--and flowers burst forth like starry beams;--
  • The grass in the warm sun did start and move,
  • And sea-buds burst under the waves serene:-- _250
  • How many a one, though none be near to love,
  • Loves then the shade of his own soul, half seen
  • In any mirror--or the spring's young minions,
  • The winged leaves amid the copses green;--
  • How many a spirit then puts on the pinions _255
  • Of fancy, and outstrips the lagging blast,
  • And his own steps--and over wide dominions
  • Sweeps in his dream-drawn chariot, far and fast,
  • More fleet than storms--the wide world shrinks below,
  • When winter and despondency are past. _260
  • FRAGMENT 5.
  • 'Twas at this season that Prince Athanase
  • Passed the white Alps--those eagle-baffling mountains
  • Slept in their shrouds of snow;--beside the ways
  • The waterfalls were voiceless--for their fountains
  • Were changed to mines of sunless crystal now, _265
  • Or by the curdling winds--like brazen wings
  • Which clanged along the mountain's marble brow--
  • Warped into adamantine fretwork, hung
  • And filled with frozen light the chasms below.
  • Vexed by the blast, the great pines groaned and swung _270
  • Under their load of [snow]--
  • ...
  • ...
  • Such as the eagle sees, when he dives down
  • From the gray deserts of wide air, [beheld] _275
  • [Prince] Athanase; and o'er his mien (?) was thrown
  • The shadow of that scene, field after field,
  • Purple and dim and wide...
  • FRAGMENT 6.
  • Thou art the wine whose drunkenness is all
  • We can desire, O Love! and happy souls, _280
  • Ere from thy vine the leaves of autumn fall,
  • Catch thee, and feed from their o'erflowing bowls
  • Thousands who thirst for thine ambrosial dew;--
  • Thou art the radiance which where ocean rolls
  • Investeth it; and when the heavens are blue _285
  • Thou fillest them; and when the earth is fair
  • The shadow of thy moving wings imbue
  • Its deserts and its mountains, till they wear
  • Beauty like some light robe;--thou ever soarest
  • Among the towers of men, and as soft air _290
  • In spring, which moves the unawakened forest,
  • Clothing with leaves its branches bare and bleak,
  • Thou floatest among men; and aye implorest
  • That which from thee they should implore:--the weak
  • Alone kneel to thee, offering up the hearts _295
  • The strong have broken--yet where shall any seek
  • A garment whom thou clothest not? the darts
  • Of the keen winter storm, barbed with frost,
  • Which, from the everlasting snow that parts
  • The Alps from Heaven, pierce some traveller lost _300
  • In the wide waved interminable snow
  • Ungarmented,...
  • ANOTHER FRAGMENT (A)
  • Yes, often when the eyes are cold and dry,
  • And the lips calm, the Spirit weeps within
  • Tears bitterer than the blood of agony _305
  • Trembling in drops on the discoloured skin
  • Of those who love their kind and therefore perish
  • In ghastly torture--a sweet medicine
  • Of peace and sleep are tears, and quietly
  • Them soothe from whose uplifted eyes they fall _310
  • But...
  • ANOTHER FRAGMENT (B)
  • Her hair was brown, her sphered eyes were brown,
  • And in their dark and liquid moisture swam,
  • Like the dim orb of the eclipsed moon;
  • Yet when the spirit flashed beneath, there came _315
  • The light from them, as when tears of delight
  • Double the western planet's serene flame.
  • NOTES:
  • _19 strange edition 1839; deep edition 1824.
  • _74 feed an Bodleian manuscript; feed on editions 1824, 1839.
  • _124 [1. The Author was pursuing a fuller development of the ideal
  • character of Athanase, when it struck him that in an attempt at
  • extreme refinement and analysis, his conceptions might be betrayed
  • into the assuming a morbid character. The reader will judge whether he
  • is a loser or gainer by this diffidence. [Shelley's Note.]
  • Footnote diffidence cj. Rossetti (1878); difference editions 1824,
  • 1839.]
  • _154 beneath editions 1824, 1839; between Bodleian manuscript.
  • _165 One Bodleian manuscript edition 1839; An edition 1824.
  • _167 Thus thro' Bodleian manuscript (?) edition 1839; Thus had edition 1824.
  • _173 talk they edition 1824, Bodleian manuscript; talk now edition 1839.
  • _175 that edition 1839; the edition 1824.
  • _182 So edition 1839; And edition 1824.
  • _183 Or on Bodleian manuscript; Or by editions 1824, 1839.
  • _199 eve Bodleian manuscript edition 1839; night edition 1824.
  • _212 emotion, a swift editions 1824, 1839;
  • emotion with swift Bodleian manuscript.
  • _250 under edition 1824, Bodleian manuscript; beneath edition 1839.
  • _256 outstrips editions 1824, 1839; outrides Bodleian manuscript.
  • _259 Exulting, while the wide Bodleian manuscript.
  • _262 mountains editions 1824, 1839; crags Bodleian manuscript.
  • _264 fountains editions 1824, 1839; springs Bodleian manuscript.
  • _269 chasms Bodleian manuscript; chasm editions 1824, 1839.
  • _283 thine Bodleian manuscript; thy editions 1824, 1839.
  • _285 Investeth Bodleian manuscript; Investest editions 1824, 1839.
  • _289 light Bodleian manuscript; bright editions 1824, 1839.
  • ***
  • ROSALIND AND HELEN.
  • A MODERN ECLOGUE.
  • [Begun at Marlow, 1817 (summer); already in the press, March, 1818;
  • finished at the Baths of Lucca, August, 1818; published with other
  • poems, as the title-piece of a slender volume, by C. & J. Ollier,
  • London, 1819 (spring). See "Biographical List". Sources of the text
  • are (1) editio princeps, 1819; (2) "Poetical Works", edition Mrs.
  • Shelley, 1839, editions 1st and 2nd. A fragment of the text is amongst
  • the Boscombe manuscripts. The poem is reprinted here from the editio
  • princeps; verbal alterations are recorded in the footnotes, punctual
  • in the Editor's Notes at the end of Volume 3.]
  • ADVERTISEMENT.
  • The story of "Rosalind and Helen" is, undoubtedly, not an attempt in
  • the highest style of poetry. It is in no degree calculated to excite
  • profound meditation; and if, by interesting the affections and amusing
  • the imagination, it awakens a certain ideal melancholy favourable to
  • the reception of more important impressions, it will produce in the
  • reader all that the writer experienced in the composition. I resigned
  • myself, as I wrote, to the impulses of the feelings which moulded the
  • conception of the story; and this impulse determined the pauses of a
  • measure, which only pretends to be regular inasmuch as it corresponds
  • with, and expresses, the irregularity of the imaginations which
  • inspired it.
  • I do not know which of the few scattered poems I left in England will
  • be selected by my bookseller to add to this collection. One ("Lines
  • written among the Euganean Hills".--Editor.), which I sent from Italy,
  • was written after a day's excursion among those lovely mountains which
  • surround what was once the retreat, and where is now the sepulchre, of
  • Petrarch. If any one is inclined to condemn the insertion of the
  • introductory lines, which image forth the sudden relief of a state of
  • deep despondency by the radiant visions disclosed by the sudden burst
  • of an Italian sunrise in autumn on the highest peak of those
  • delightful mountains, I can only offer as my excuse, that they were
  • not erased at the request of a dear friend, with whom added years of
  • intercourse only add to my apprehension of its value, and who would
  • have had more right than any one to complain, that she has not been
  • able to extinguish in me the very power of delineating sadness.
  • Naples, December 20, 1818.
  • ROSALIND, HELEN, AND HER CHILD.
  • SCENE. THE SHORE OF THE LAKE OF COMO.
  • HELEN:
  • Come hither, my sweet Rosalind.
  • 'Tis long since thou and I have met;
  • And yet methinks it were unkind
  • Those moments to forget.
  • Come, sit by me. I see thee stand _5
  • By this lone lake, in this far land,
  • Thy loose hair in the light wind flying,
  • Thy sweet voice to each tone of even
  • United, and thine eyes replying
  • To the hues of yon fair heaven. _10
  • Come, gentle friend: wilt sit by me?
  • And be as thou wert wont to be
  • Ere we were disunited?
  • None doth behold us now; the power
  • That led us forth at this lone hour _15
  • Will be but ill requited
  • If thou depart in scorn: oh! come,
  • And talk of our abandoned home.
  • Remember, this is Italy,
  • And we are exiles. Talk with me _20
  • Of that our land, whose wilds and floods,
  • Barren and dark although they be,
  • Were dearer than these chestnut woods:
  • Those heathy paths, that inland stream,
  • And the blue mountains, shapes which seem _25
  • Like wrecks of childhood's sunny dream:
  • Which that we have abandoned now,
  • Weighs on the heart like that remorse
  • Which altered friendship leaves. I seek
  • No more our youthful intercourse. _30
  • That cannot be! Rosalind, speak.
  • Speak to me. Leave me not.--When morn did come,
  • When evening fell upon our common home,
  • When for one hour we parted,--do not frown:
  • I would not chide thee, though thy faith is broken: _35
  • But turn to me. Oh! by this cherished token,
  • Of woven hair, which thou wilt not disown,
  • Turn, as 'twere but the memory of me,
  • And not my scorned self who prayed to thee.
  • ROSALIND:
  • Is it a dream, or do I see _40
  • And hear frail Helen? I would flee
  • Thy tainting touch; but former years
  • Arise, and bring forbidden tears;
  • And my o'erburthened memory
  • Seeks yet its lost repose in thee. _45
  • I share thy crime. I cannot choose
  • But weep for thee: mine own strange grief
  • But seldom stoops to such relief:
  • Nor ever did I love thee less,
  • Though mourning o'er thy wickedness _50
  • Even with a sister's woe. I knew
  • What to the evil world is due,
  • And therefore sternly did refuse
  • To link me with the infamy
  • Of one so lost as Helen. Now _55
  • Bewildered by my dire despair,
  • Wondering I blush, and weep that thou
  • Should'st love me still,--thou only!--There,
  • Let us sit on that gray stone
  • Till our mournful talk be done. _60
  • HELEN:
  • Alas! not there; I cannot bear
  • The murmur of this lake to hear.
  • A sound from there, Rosalind dear,
  • Which never yet I heard elsewhere
  • But in our native land, recurs, _65
  • Even here where now we meet. It stirs
  • Too much of suffocating sorrow!
  • In the dell of yon dark chestnutwood
  • Is a stone seat, a solitude
  • Less like our own. The ghost of Peace _70
  • Will not desert this spot. To-morrow,
  • If thy kind feelings should not cease,
  • We may sit here.
  • ROSALIND:
  • Thou lead, my sweet,
  • And I will follow.
  • HENRY:
  • 'Tis Fenici's seat
  • Where you are going? This is not the way, _75
  • Mamma; it leads behind those trees that grow
  • Close to the little river.
  • HELEN:
  • Yes: I know;
  • I was bewildered. Kiss me and be gay,
  • Dear boy: why do you sob?
  • HENRY:
  • I do not know:
  • But it might break any one's heart to see _80
  • You and the lady cry so bitterly.
  • HELEN:
  • It is a gentle child, my friend. Go home,
  • Henry, and play with Lilla till I come.
  • We only cried with joy to see each other;
  • We are quite merry now: Good-night.
  • The boy _85
  • Lifted a sudden look upon his mother,
  • And in the gleam of forced and hollow joy
  • Which lightened o'er her face, laughed with the glee
  • Of light and unsuspecting infancy,
  • And whispered in her ear, 'Bring home with you _90
  • That sweet strange lady-friend.' Then off he flew,
  • But stopped, and beckoned with a meaning smile,
  • Where the road turned. Pale Rosalind the while,
  • Hiding her face, stood weeping silently.
  • In silence then they took the way _95
  • Beneath the forest's solitude.
  • It was a vast and antique wood,
  • Thro' which they took their way;
  • And the gray shades of evening
  • O'er that green wilderness did fling _100
  • Still deeper solitude.
  • Pursuing still the path that wound
  • The vast and knotted trees around
  • Through which slow shades were wandering,
  • To a deep lawny dell they came, _105
  • To a stone seat beside a spring,
  • O'er which the columned wood did frame
  • A roofless temple, like the fane
  • Where, ere new creeds could faith obtain,
  • Man's early race once knelt beneath _110
  • The overhanging deity.
  • O'er this fair fountain hung the sky,
  • Now spangled with rare stars. The snake,
  • The pale snake, that with eager breath
  • Creeps here his noontide thirst to slake, _115
  • Is beaming with many a mingled hue,
  • Shed from yon dome's eternal blue,
  • When he floats on that dark and lucid flood
  • In the light of his own loveliness;
  • And the birds that in the fountain dip _120
  • Their plumes, with fearless fellowship
  • Above and round him wheel and hover.
  • The fitful wind is heard to stir
  • One solitary leaf on high;
  • The chirping of the grasshopper _125
  • Fills every pause. There is emotion
  • In all that dwells at noontide here;
  • Then, through the intricate wild wood,
  • A maze of life and light and motion
  • Is woven. But there is stillness now: _130
  • Gloom, and the trance of Nature now:
  • The snake is in his cave asleep;
  • The birds are on the branches dreaming:
  • Only the shadows creep:
  • Only the glow-worm is gleaming: _135
  • Only the owls and the nightingales
  • Wake in this dell when daylight fails,
  • And gray shades gather in the woods:
  • And the owls have all fled far away
  • In a merrier glen to hoot and play, _140
  • For the moon is veiled and sleeping now.
  • The accustomed nightingale still broods
  • On her accustomed bough,
  • But she is mute; for her false mate
  • Has fled and left her desolate. _145
  • This silent spot tradition old
  • Had peopled with the spectral dead.
  • For the roots of the speaker's hair felt cold
  • And stiff, as with tremulous lips he told
  • That a hellish shape at midnight led _150
  • The ghost of a youth with hoary hair,
  • And sate on the seat beside him there,
  • Till a naked child came wandering by,
  • When the fiend would change to a lady fair!
  • A fearful tale! The truth was worse: _155
  • For here a sister and a brother
  • Had solemnized a monstrous curse,
  • Meeting in this fair solitude:
  • For beneath yon very sky,
  • Had they resigned to one another _160
  • Body and soul. The multitude:
  • Tracking them to the secret wood,
  • Tore limb from limb their innocent child,
  • And stabbed and trampled on its mother;
  • But the youth, for God's most holy grace, _165
  • A priest saved to burn in the market-place.
  • Duly at evening Helen came
  • To this lone silent spot,
  • From the wrecks of a tale of wilder sorrow
  • So much of sympathy to borrow _170
  • As soothed her own dark lot.
  • Duly each evening from her home,
  • With her fair child would Helen come
  • To sit upon that antique seat,
  • While the hues of day were pale; _175
  • And the bright boy beside her feet
  • Now lay, lifting at intervals
  • His broad blue eyes on her;
  • Now, where some sudden impulse calls
  • Following. He was a gentle boy _180
  • And in all gentle sorts took joy;
  • Oft in a dry leaf for a boat,
  • With a small feather for a sail,
  • His fancy on that spring would float,
  • If some invisible breeze might stir _185
  • Its marble calm: and Helen smiled
  • Through tears of awe on the gay child,
  • To think that a boy as fair as he,
  • In years which never more may be,
  • By that same fount, in that same wood, _190
  • The like sweet fancies had pursued;
  • And that a mother, lost like her,
  • Had mournfully sate watching him.
  • Then all the scene was wont to swim
  • Through the mist of a burning tear. _195
  • For many months had Helen known
  • This scene; and now she thither turned
  • Her footsteps, not alone.
  • The friend whose falsehood she had mourned,
  • Sate with her on that seat of stone. _200
  • Silent they sate; for evening,
  • And the power its glimpses bring
  • Had, with one awful shadow, quelled
  • The passion of their grief. They sate
  • With linked hands, for unrepelled _205
  • Had Helen taken Rosalind's.
  • Like the autumn wind, when it unbinds
  • The tangled locks of the nightshade's hair,
  • Which is twined in the sultry summer air
  • Round the walls of an outworn sepulchre, _210
  • Did the voice of Helen, sad and sweet,
  • And the sound of her heart that ever beat,
  • As with sighs and words she breathed on her,
  • Unbind the knots of her friend's despair,
  • Till her thoughts were free to float and flow; _215
  • And from her labouring bosom now,
  • Like the bursting of a prisoned flame,
  • The voice of a long pent sorrow came.
  • ROSALIND:
  • I saw the dark earth fall upon
  • The coffin; and I saw the stone _220
  • Laid over him whom this cold breast
  • Had pillowed to his nightly rest!
  • Thou knowest not, thou canst not know
  • My agony. Oh! I could not weep:
  • The sources whence such blessings flow _225
  • Were not to be approached by me!
  • But I could smile, and I could sleep,
  • Though with a self-accusing heart.
  • In morning's light, in evening's gloom,
  • I watched,--and would not thence depart-- _230
  • My husband's unlamented tomb.
  • My children knew their sire was gone,
  • But when I told them,--'He is dead,'--
  • They laughed aloud in frantic glee,
  • They clapped their hands and leaped about, _235
  • Answering each other's ecstasy
  • With many a prank and merry shout.
  • But I sate silent and alone,
  • Wrapped in the mock of mourning weed.
  • They laughed, for he was dead: but I _240
  • Sate with a hard and tearless eye,
  • And with a heart which would deny
  • The secret joy it could not quell,
  • Low muttering o'er his loathed name;
  • Till from that self-contention came _245
  • Remorse where sin was none; a hell
  • Which in pure spirits should not dwell.
  • I'll tell thee truth. He was a man
  • Hard, selfish, loving only gold,
  • Yet full of guile; his pale eyes ran _250
  • With tears, which each some falsehood told,
  • And oft his smooth and bridled tongue
  • Would give the lie to his flushing cheek;
  • He was a coward to the strong:
  • He was a tyrant to the weak, _255
  • On whom his vengeance he would wreak:
  • For scorn, whose arrows search the heart,
  • From many a stranger's eye would dart,
  • And on his memory cling, and follow
  • His soul to its home so cold and hollow. _260
  • He was a tyrant to the weak,
  • And we were such, alas the day!
  • Oft, when my little ones at play,
  • Were in youth's natural lightness gay,
  • Or if they listened to some tale _265
  • Of travellers, or of fairy land,--
  • When the light from the wood-fire's dying brand
  • Flashed on their faces,--if they heard
  • Or thought they heard upon the stair
  • His footstep, the suspended word _270
  • Died on my lips: we all grew pale:
  • The babe at my bosom was hushed with fear
  • If it thought it heard its father near;
  • And my two wild boys would near my knee
  • Cling, cowed and cowering fearfully. _275
  • I'll tell thee truth: I loved another.
  • His name in my ear was ever ringing,
  • His form to my brain was ever clinging:
  • Yet if some stranger breathed that name,
  • My lips turned white, and my heart beat fast: _280
  • My nights were once haunted by dreams of flame,
  • My days were dim in the shadow cast
  • By the memory of the same!
  • Day and night, day and night,
  • He was my breath and life and light, _285
  • For three short years, which soon were passed.
  • On the fourth, my gentle mother
  • Led me to the shrine, to be
  • His sworn bride eternally.
  • And now we stood on the altar stair, _290
  • When my father came from a distant land,
  • And with a loud and fearful cry
  • Rushed between us suddenly.
  • I saw the stream of his thin gray hair,
  • I saw his lean and lifted hand, _295
  • And heard his words,--and live! Oh God!
  • Wherefore do I live?--'Hold, hold!'
  • He cried, 'I tell thee 'tis her brother!
  • Thy mother, boy, beneath the sod
  • Of yon churchyard rests in her shroud so cold: _300
  • I am now weak, and pale, and old:
  • We were once dear to one another,
  • I and that corpse! Thou art our child!'
  • Then with a laugh both long and wild
  • The youth upon the pavement fell: _305
  • They found him dead! All looked on me,
  • The spasms of my despair to see:
  • But I was calm. I went away:
  • I was clammy-cold like clay!
  • I did not weep: I did not speak: _310
  • But day by day, week after week,
  • I walked about like a corpse alive!
  • Alas! sweet friend, you must believe
  • This heart is stone: it did not break.
  • My father lived a little while, _315
  • But all might see that he was dying,
  • He smiled with such a woeful smile!
  • When he was in the churchyard lying
  • Among the worms, we grew quite poor,
  • So that no one would give us bread: _320
  • My mother looked at me, and said
  • Faint words of cheer, which only meant
  • That she could die and be content;
  • So I went forth from the same church door
  • To another husband's bed. _325
  • And this was he who died at last,
  • When weeks and months and years had passed,
  • Through which I firmly did fulfil
  • My duties, a devoted wife,
  • With the stern step of vanquished will, _330
  • Walking beneath the night of life,
  • Whose hours extinguished, like slow rain
  • Falling for ever, pain by pain,
  • The very hope of death's dear rest;
  • Which, since the heart within my breast _335
  • Of natural life was dispossessed,
  • Its strange sustainer there had been.
  • When flowers were dead, and grass was green
  • Upon my mother's grave,--that mother
  • Whom to outlive, and cheer, and make _340
  • My wan eyes glitter for her sake,
  • Was my vowed task, the single care
  • Which once gave life to my despair,--
  • When she was a thing that did not stir
  • And the crawling worms were cradling her _345
  • To a sleep more deep and so more sweet
  • Than a baby's rocked on its nurse's knee,
  • I lived: a living pulse then beat
  • Beneath my heart that awakened me.
  • What was this pulse so warm and free? _350
  • Alas! I knew it could not be
  • My own dull blood: 'twas like a thought
  • Of liquid love, that spread and wrought
  • Under my bosom and in my brain,
  • And crept with the blood through every vein; _355
  • And hour by hour, day after day,
  • The wonder could not charm away,
  • But laid in sleep, my wakeful pain,
  • Until I knew it was a child,
  • And then I wept. For long, long years _360
  • These frozen eyes had shed no tears:
  • But now--'twas the season fair and mild
  • When April has wept itself to May:
  • I sate through the sweet sunny day
  • By my window bowered round with leaves, _365
  • And down my cheeks the quick tears fell
  • Like twinkling rain-drops from the eaves,
  • When warm spring showers are passing o'er.
  • O Helen, none can ever tell
  • The joy it was to weep once more! _370
  • I wept to think how hard it were
  • To kill my babe, and take from it
  • The sense of light, and the warm air,
  • And my own fond and tender care,
  • And love and smiles; ere I knew yet _375
  • That these for it might, as for me,
  • Be the masks of a grinning mockery.
  • And haply, I would dream, 'twere sweet
  • To feed it from my faded breast,
  • Or mark my own heart's restless beat _380
  • Rock it to its untroubled rest,
  • And watch the growing soul beneath
  • Dawn in faint smiles; and hear its breath,
  • Half interrupted by calm sighs,
  • And search the depth of its fair eyes _385
  • For long departed memories!
  • And so I lived till that sweet load
  • Was lightened. Darkly forward flowed
  • The stream of years, and on it bore
  • Two shapes of gladness to my sight; _390
  • Two other babes, delightful more
  • In my lost soul's abandoned night,
  • Than their own country ships may be
  • Sailing towards wrecked mariners,
  • Who cling to the rock of a wintry sea. _395
  • For each, as it came, brought soothing tears;
  • And a loosening warmth, as each one lay
  • Sucking the sullen milk away
  • About my frozen heart, did play,
  • And weaned it, oh how painfully-- _400
  • As they themselves were weaned each one
  • From that sweet food,--even from the thirst
  • Of death, and nothingness, and rest,
  • Strange inmate of a living breast!
  • Which all that I had undergone _405
  • Of grief and shame, since she, who first
  • The gates of that dark refuge closed,
  • Came to my sight, and almost burst
  • The seal of that Lethean spring;
  • But these fair shadows interposed: _410
  • For all delights are shadows now!
  • And from my brain to my dull brow
  • The heavy tears gather and flow:
  • I cannot speak: Oh, let me weep!
  • The tears which fell from her wan eyes _415
  • Glimmered among the moonlight dew:
  • Her deep hard sobs and heavy sighs
  • Their echoes in the darkness threw.
  • When she grew calm, she thus did keep
  • The tenor of her tale:
  • He died: _420
  • I know not how: he was not old,
  • If age be numbered by its years:
  • But he was bowed and bent with fears,
  • Pale with the quenchless thirst of gold,
  • Which, like fierce fever, left him weak; _425
  • And his strait lip and bloated cheek
  • Were warped in spasms by hollow sneers;
  • And selfish cares with barren plough,
  • Not age, had lined his narrow brow,
  • And foul and cruel thoughts, which feed _430
  • Upon the withering life within,
  • Like vipers on some poisonous weed.
  • Whether his ill were death or sin
  • None knew, until he died indeed,
  • And then men owned they were the same. _435
  • Seven days within my chamber lay
  • That corse, and my babes made holiday:
  • At last, I told them what is death:
  • The eldest, with a kind of shame,
  • Came to my knees with silent breath, _440
  • And sate awe-stricken at my feet;
  • And soon the others left their play,
  • And sate there too. It is unmeet
  • To shed on the brief flower of youth
  • The withering knowledge of the grave; _445
  • From me remorse then wrung that truth.
  • I could not bear the joy which gave
  • Too just a response to mine own.
  • In vain. I dared not feign a groan,
  • And in their artless looks I saw, _450
  • Between the mists of fear and awe,
  • That my own thought was theirs, and they
  • Expressed it not in words, but said,
  • Each in its heart, how every day
  • Will pass in happy work and play, _455
  • Now he is dead and gone away.
  • After the funeral all our kin
  • Assembled, and the will was read.
  • My friend, I tell thee, even the dead
  • Have strength, their putrid shrouds within, _460
  • To blast and torture. Those who live
  • Still fear the living, but a corse
  • Is merciless, and power doth give
  • To such pale tyrants half the spoil
  • He rends from those who groan and toil, _465
  • Because they blush not with remorse
  • Among their crawling worms. Behold,
  • I have no child! my tale grows old
  • With grief, and staggers: let it reach
  • The limits of my feeble speech, _470
  • And languidly at length recline
  • On the brink of its own grave and mine.
  • Thou knowest what a thing is Poverty
  • Among the fallen on evil days:
  • 'Tis Crime, and Fear, and Infamy, _475
  • And houseless Want in frozen ways
  • Wandering ungarmented, and Pain,
  • And, worse than all, that inward stain
  • Foul Self-contempt, which drowns in sneers
  • Youth's starlight smile, and makes its tears _480
  • First like hot gall, then dry for ever!
  • And well thou knowest a mother never
  • Could doom her children to this ill,
  • And well he knew the same. The will
  • Imported, that if e'er again _485
  • I sought my children to behold,
  • Or in my birthplace did remain
  • Beyond three days, whose hours were told,
  • They should inherit nought: and he,
  • To whom next came their patrimony, _490
  • A sallow lawyer, cruel and cold,
  • Aye watched me, as the will was read,
  • With eyes askance, which sought to see
  • The secrets of my agony;
  • And with close lips and anxious brow _495
  • Stood canvassing still to and fro
  • The chance of my resolve, and all
  • The dead man's caution just did call;
  • For in that killing lie 'twas said--
  • 'She is adulterous, and doth hold _500
  • In secret that the Christian creed
  • Is false, and therefore is much need
  • That I should have a care to save
  • My children from eternal fire.'
  • Friend, he was sheltered by the grave, _505
  • And therefore dared to be a liar!
  • In truth, the Indian on the pyre
  • Of her dead husband, half consumed,
  • As well might there be false, as I
  • To those abhorred embraces doomed, _510
  • Far worse than fire's brief agony
  • As to the Christian creed, if true
  • Or false, I never questioned it:
  • I took it as the vulgar do:
  • Nor my vexed soul had leisure yet _515
  • To doubt the things men say, or deem
  • That they are other than they seem.
  • All present who those crimes did hear,
  • In feigned or actual scorn and fear,
  • Men, women, children, slunk away, _520
  • Whispering with self-contented pride,
  • Which half suspects its own base lie.
  • I spoke to none, nor did abide,
  • But silently I went my way,
  • Nor noticed I where joyously _525
  • Sate my two younger babes at play,
  • In the court-yard through which I passed;
  • But went with footsteps firm and fast
  • Till I came to the brink of the ocean green,
  • And there, a woman with gray hairs, _530
  • Who had my mother's servant been,
  • Kneeling, with many tears and prayers,
  • Made me accept a purse of gold,
  • Half of the earnings she had kept
  • To refuge her when weak and old. _535
  • With woe, which never sleeps or slept,
  • I wander now. 'Tis a vain thought--
  • But on yon alp, whose snowy head
  • 'Mid the azure air is islanded,
  • (We see it o'er the flood of cloud, _540
  • Which sunrise from its eastern caves
  • Drives, wrinkling into golden waves,
  • Hung with its precipices proud,
  • From that gray stone where first we met)
  • There now--who knows the dead feel nought?-- _545
  • Should be my grave; for he who yet
  • Is my soul's soul, once said: ''Twere sweet
  • 'Mid stars and lightnings to abide,
  • And winds and lulling snows, that beat
  • With their soft flakes the mountain wide, _550
  • Where weary meteor lamps repose,
  • And languid storms their pinions close:
  • And all things strong and bright and pure,
  • And ever during, aye endure:
  • Who knows, if one were buried there, _555
  • But these things might our spirits make,
  • Amid the all-surrounding air,
  • Their own eternity partake?'
  • Then 'twas a wild and playful saying
  • At which I laughed, or seemed to laugh: _560
  • They were his words: now heed my praying,
  • And let them be my epitaph.
  • Thy memory for a term may be
  • My monument. Wilt remember me?
  • I know thou wilt, and canst forgive _565
  • Whilst in this erring world to live
  • My soul disdained not, that I thought
  • Its lying forms were worthy aught
  • And much less thee.
  • HELEN:
  • O speak not so,
  • But come to me and pour thy woe _570
  • Into this heart, full though it be,
  • Ay, overflowing with its own:
  • I thought that grief had severed me
  • From all beside who weep and groan;
  • Its likeness upon earth to be, _575
  • Its express image; but thou art
  • More wretched. Sweet! we will not part
  • Henceforth, if death be not division;
  • If so, the dead feel no contrition.
  • But wilt thou hear since last we parted _580
  • All that has left me broken hearted?
  • ROSALIND:
  • Yes, speak. The faintest stars are scarcely shorn
  • Of their thin beams by that delusive morn
  • Which sinks again in darkness, like the light
  • Of early love, soon lost in total night. _585
  • HELEN:
  • Alas! Italian winds are mild,
  • But my bosom is cold--wintry cold--
  • When the warm air weaves, among the fresh leaves,
  • Soft music, my poor brain is wild,
  • And I am weak like a nursling child, _590
  • Though my soul with grief is gray and old.
  • ROSALIND:
  • Weep not at thine own words, though they must make
  • Me weep. What is thy tale?
  • HELEN:
  • I fear 'twill shake
  • Thy gentle heart with tears. Thou well
  • Rememberest when we met no more, _595
  • And, though I dwelt with Lionel,
  • That friendless caution pierced me sore
  • With grief; a wound my spirit bore
  • Indignantly, but when he died,
  • With him lay dead both hope and pride. _600
  • Alas! all hope is buried now.
  • But then men dreamed the aged earth
  • Was labouring in that mighty birth,
  • Which many a poet and a sage
  • Has aye foreseen--the happy age _605
  • When truth and love shall dwell below
  • Among the works and ways of men;
  • Which on this world not power but will
  • Even now is wanting to fulfil.
  • Among mankind what thence befell _610
  • Of strife, how vain, is known too well;
  • When Liberty's dear paean fell
  • 'Mid murderous howls. To Lionel,
  • Though of great wealth and lineage high,
  • Yet through those dungeon walls there came _615
  • Thy thrilling light, O Liberty!
  • And as the meteor's midnight flame
  • Startles the dreamer, sun-like truth
  • Flashed on his visionary youth,
  • And filled him, not with love, but faith, _620
  • And hope, and courage mute in death;
  • For love and life in him were twins,
  • Born at one birth: in every other
  • First life then love its course begins,
  • Though they be children of one mother; _625
  • And so through this dark world they fleet
  • Divided, till in death they meet;
  • But he loved all things ever. Then
  • He passed amid the strife of men,
  • And stood at the throne of armed power _630
  • Pleading for a world of woe:
  • Secure as one on a rock-built tower
  • O'er the wrecks which the surge trails to and fro,
  • 'Mid the passions wild of human kind
  • He stood, like a spirit calming them; _635
  • For, it was said, his words could bind
  • Like music the lulled crowd, and stem
  • That torrent of unquiet dream
  • Which mortals truth and reason deem,
  • But is revenge and fear and pride. _640
  • Joyous he was; and hope and peace
  • On all who heard him did abide,
  • Raining like dew from his sweet talk,
  • As where the evening star may walk
  • Along the brink of the gloomy seas, _645
  • Liquid mists of splendour quiver.
  • His very gestures touched to tears
  • The unpersuaded tyrant, never
  • So moved before: his presence stung
  • The torturers with their victim's pain, _650
  • And none knew how; and through their ears
  • The subtle witchcraft of his tongue
  • Unlocked the hearts of those who keep
  • Gold, the world's bond of slavery.
  • Men wondered, and some sneered to see _655
  • One sow what he could never reap:
  • For he is rich, they said, and young,
  • And might drink from the depths of luxury.
  • If he seeks Fame, Fame never crowned
  • The champion of a trampled creed: _660
  • If he seeks Power, Power is enthroned
  • 'Mid ancient rights and wrongs, to feed
  • Which hungry wolves with praise and spoil,
  • Those who would sit near Power must toil;
  • And such, there sitting, all may see. _665
  • What seeks he? All that others seek
  • He casts away, like a vile weed
  • Which the sea casts unreturningly.
  • That poor and hungry men should break
  • The laws which wreak them toil and scorn, _670
  • We understand; but Lionel
  • We know, is rich and nobly born.
  • So wondered they: yet all men loved
  • Young Lionel, though few approved;
  • All but the priests, whose hatred fell _675
  • Like the unseen blight of a smiling day,
  • The withering honey dew, which clings
  • Under the bright green buds of May,
  • Whilst they unfold their emerald wings:
  • For he made verses wild and queer _680
  • On the strange creeds priests hold so dear,
  • Because they bring them land and gold.
  • Of devils and saints and all such gear,
  • He made tales which whoso heard or read
  • Would laugh till he were almost dead. _685
  • So this grew a proverb: 'Don't get old
  • Till Lionel's "Banquet in Hell" you hear,
  • And then you will laugh yourself young again.'
  • So the priests hated him, and he
  • Repaid their hate with cheerful glee. _690
  • Ah, smiles and joyance quickly died,
  • For public hope grew pale and dim
  • In an altered time and tide,
  • And in its wasting withered him,
  • As a summer flower that blows too soon _695
  • Droops in the smile of the waning moon,
  • When it scatters through an April night
  • The frozen dews of wrinkling blight.
  • None now hoped more. Gray Power was seated
  • Safely on her ancestral throne; _700
  • And Faith, the Python, undefeated,
  • Even to its blood-stained steps dragged on
  • Her foul and wounded train, and men
  • Were trampled and deceived again,
  • And words and shows again could bind _705
  • The wailing tribes of human kind
  • In scorn and famine. Fire and blood
  • Raged round the raging multitude,
  • To fields remote by tyrants sent
  • To be the scorned instrument _710
  • With which they drag from mines of gore
  • The chains their slaves yet ever wore:
  • And in the streets men met each other,
  • And by old altars and in halls,
  • And smiled again at festivals. _715
  • But each man found in his heart's brother
  • Cold cheer; for all, though half deceived,
  • The outworn creeds again believed,
  • And the same round anew began,
  • Which the weary world yet ever ran. _720
  • Many then wept, not tears, but gall
  • Within their hearts, like drops which fall
  • Wasting the fountain-stone away.
  • And in that dark and evil day
  • Did all desires and thoughts, that claim _725
  • Men's care--ambition, friendship, fame,
  • Love, hope, though hope was now despair--
  • Indue the colours of this change,
  • As from the all-surrounding air
  • The earth takes hues obscure and strange, _730
  • When storm and earthquake linger there.
  • And so, my friend, it then befell
  • To many, most to Lionel,
  • Whose hope was like the life of youth
  • Within him, and when dead, became _735
  • A spirit of unresting flame,
  • Which goaded him in his distress
  • Over the world's vast wilderness.
  • Three years he left his native land,
  • And on the fourth, when he returned, _740
  • None knew him: he was stricken deep
  • With some disease of mind, and turned
  • Into aught unlike Lionel.
  • On him, on whom, did he pause in sleep,
  • Serenest smiles were wont to keep, _745
  • And, did he wake, a winged band
  • Of bright persuasions, which had fed
  • On his sweet lips and liquid eyes,
  • Kept their swift pinions half outspread
  • To do on men his least command; _750
  • On him, whom once 'twas paradise
  • Even to behold, now misery lay:
  • In his own heart 'twas merciless,
  • To all things else none may express
  • Its innocence and tenderness. _755
  • 'Twas said that he had refuge sought
  • In love from his unquiet thought
  • In distant lands, and been deceived
  • By some strange show; for there were found,
  • Blotted with tears as those relieved _760
  • By their own words are wont to do,
  • These mournful verses on the ground,
  • By all who read them blotted too.
  • 'How am I changed! my hopes were once like fire:
  • I loved, and I believed that life was love. _765
  • How am I lost! on wings of swift desire
  • Among Heaven's winds my spirit once did move.
  • I slept, and silver dreams did aye inspire
  • My liquid sleep: I woke, and did approve
  • All nature to my heart, and thought to make _770
  • A paradise of earth for one sweet sake.
  • 'I love, but I believe in love no more.
  • I feel desire, but hope not. O, from sleep
  • Most vainly must my weary brain implore
  • Its long lost flattery now: I wake to weep, _775
  • And sit through the long day gnawing the core
  • Of my bitter heart, and, like a miser, keep,
  • Since none in what I feel take pain or pleasure,
  • To my own soul its self-consuming treasure.'
  • He dwelt beside me near the sea; _780
  • And oft in evening did we meet,
  • When the waves, beneath the starlight, flee
  • O'er the yellow sands with silver feet,
  • And talked: our talk was sad and sweet,
  • Till slowly from his mien there passed _785
  • The desolation which it spoke;
  • And smiles,--as when the lightning's blast
  • Has parched some heaven-delighting oak,
  • The next spring shows leaves pale and rare,
  • But like flowers delicate and fair, _790
  • On its rent boughs,--again arrayed
  • His countenance in tender light:
  • His words grew subtile fire, which made
  • The air his hearers breathed delight:
  • His motions, like the winds, were free, _795
  • Which bend the bright grass gracefully,
  • Then fade away in circlets faint:
  • And winged Hope, on which upborne
  • His soul seemed hovering in his eyes,
  • Like some bright spirit newly born _800
  • Floating amid the sunny skies,
  • Sprang forth from his rent heart anew.
  • Yet o'er his talk, and looks, and mien,
  • Tempering their loveliness too keen,
  • Past woe its shadow backward threw, _805
  • Till like an exhalation, spread
  • From flowers half drunk with evening dew,
  • They did become infectious: sweet
  • And subtle mists of sense and thought:
  • Which wrapped us soon, when we might meet, _810
  • Almost from our own looks and aught
  • The wild world holds. And so, his mind
  • Was healed, while mine grew sick with fear:
  • For ever now his health declined,
  • Like some frail bark which cannot bear _815
  • The impulse of an altered wind,
  • Though prosperous: and my heart grew full
  • 'Mid its new joy of a new care:
  • For his cheek became, not pale, but fair,
  • As rose-o'ershadowed lilies are; _820
  • And soon his deep and sunny hair,
  • In this alone less beautiful,
  • Like grass in tombs grew wild and rare.
  • The blood in his translucent veins
  • Beat, not like animal life, but love _825
  • Seemed now its sullen springs to move,
  • When life had failed, and all its pains:
  • And sudden sleep would seize him oft
  • Like death, so calm, but that a tear,
  • His pointed eyelashes between, _830
  • Would gather in the light serene
  • Of smiles, whose lustre bright and soft
  • Beneath lay undulating there.
  • His breath was like inconstant flame,
  • As eagerly it went and came; _835
  • And I hung o'er him in his sleep,
  • Till, like an image in the lake
  • Which rains disturb, my tears would break
  • The shadow of that slumber deep:
  • Then he would bid me not to weep, _840
  • And say, with flattery false, yet sweet,
  • That death and he could never meet,
  • If I would never part with him.
  • And so we loved, and did unite
  • All that in us was yet divided: _845
  • For when he said, that many a rite,
  • By men to bind but once provided,
  • Could not be shared by him and me,
  • Or they would kill him in their glee,
  • I shuddered, and then laughing said-- _850
  • 'We will have rites our faith to bind,
  • But our church shall be the starry night,
  • Our altar the grassy earth outspread,
  • And our priest the muttering wind.'
  • 'Twas sunset as I spoke: one star _855
  • Had scarce burst forth, when from afar
  • The ministers of misrule sent,
  • Seized upon Lionel, and bore
  • His chained limbs to a dreary tower,
  • In the midst of a city vast and wide. _860
  • For he, they said, from his mind had bent
  • Against their gods keen blasphemy,
  • For which, though his soul must roasted be
  • In hell's red lakes immortally,
  • Yet even on earth must he abide _865
  • The vengeance of their slaves: a trial,
  • I think, men call it. What avail
  • Are prayers and tears, which chase denial
  • From the fierce savage, nursed in hate?
  • What the knit soul that pleading and pale _870
  • Makes wan the quivering cheek, which late
  • It painted with its own delight?
  • We were divided. As I could,
  • I stilled the tingling of my blood,
  • And followed him in their despite, _875
  • As a widow follows, pale and wild,
  • The murderers and corse of her only child;
  • And when we came to the prison door
  • And I prayed to share his dungeon floor
  • With prayers which rarely have been spurned, _880
  • And when men drove me forth and I
  • Stared with blank frenzy on the sky,
  • A farewell look of love he turned,
  • Half calming me; then gazed awhile,
  • As if thro' that black and massy pile, _885
  • And thro' the crowd around him there,
  • And thro' the dense and murky air,
  • And the thronged streets, he did espy
  • What poets know and prophesy;
  • And said, with voice that made them shiver _890
  • And clung like music in my brain,
  • And which the mute walls spoke again
  • Prolonging it with deepened strain:
  • 'Fear not the tyrants shall rule for ever,
  • Or the priests of the bloody faith; _895
  • They stand on the brink of that mighty river,
  • Whose waves they have tainted with death:
  • It is fed from the depths of a thousand dells,
  • Around them it foams, and rages, and swells,
  • And their swords and their sceptres I floating see, _900
  • Like wrecks in the surge of eternity.'
  • I dwelt beside the prison gate;
  • And the strange crowd that out and in
  • Passed, some, no doubt, with mine own fate,
  • Might have fretted me with its ceaseless din, _905
  • But the fever of care was louder within.
  • Soon, but too late, in penitence
  • Or fear, his foes released him thence:
  • I saw his thin and languid form,
  • As leaning on the jailor's arm, _910
  • Whose hardened eyes grew moist the while,
  • To meet his mute and faded smile,
  • And hear his words of kind farewell,
  • He tottered forth from his damp cell.
  • Many had never wept before, _915
  • From whom fast tears then gushed and fell:
  • Many will relent no more,
  • Who sobbed like infants then; aye, all
  • Who thronged the prison's stony hall,
  • The rulers or the slaves of law, _920
  • Felt with a new surprise and awe
  • That they were human, till strong shame
  • Made them again become the same.
  • The prison blood-hounds, huge and grim,
  • From human looks the infection caught, _925
  • And fondly crouched and fawned on him;
  • And men have heard the prisoners say,
  • Who in their rotting dungeons lay,
  • That from that hour, throughout one day,
  • The fierce despair and hate which kept _930
  • Their trampled bosoms almost slept:
  • Where, like twin vultures, they hung feeding
  • On each heart's wound, wide torn and bleeding,--
  • Because their jailors' rule, they thought,
  • Grew merciful, like a parent's sway. _935
  • I know not how, but we were free:
  • And Lionel sate alone with me,
  • As the carriage drove thro' the streets apace;
  • And we looked upon each other's face;
  • And the blood in our fingers intertwined _940
  • Ran like the thoughts of a single mind,
  • As the swift emotions went and came
  • Thro' the veins of each united frame.
  • So thro' the long long streets we passed
  • Of the million-peopled City vast; _945
  • Which is that desert, where each one
  • Seeks his mate yet is alone,
  • Beloved and sought and mourned of none;
  • Until the clear blue sky was seen,
  • And the grassy meadows bright and green, _950
  • And then I sunk in his embrace,
  • Enclosing there a mighty space
  • Of love: and so we travelled on
  • By woods, and fields of yellow flowers,
  • And towns, and villages, and towers, _955
  • Day after day of happy hours.
  • It was the azure time of June,
  • When the skies are deep in the stainless noon,
  • And the warm and fitful breezes shake
  • The fresh green leaves of the hedgerow briar, _960
  • And there were odours then to make
  • The very breath we did respire
  • A liquid element, whereon
  • Our spirits, like delighted things
  • That walk the air on subtle wings, _965
  • Floated and mingled far away,
  • 'Mid the warm winds of the sunny day.
  • And when the evening star came forth
  • Above the curve of the new bent moon,
  • And light and sound ebbed from the earth, _970
  • Like the tide of the full and the weary sea
  • To the depths of its own tranquillity,
  • Our natures to its own repose
  • Did the earth's breathless sleep attune:
  • Like flowers, which on each other close _975
  • Their languid leaves when daylight's gone,
  • We lay, till new emotions came,
  • Which seemed to make each mortal frame
  • One soul of interwoven flame,
  • A life in life, a second birth _980
  • In worlds diviner far than earth,
  • Which, like two strains of harmony
  • That mingle in the silent sky
  • Then slowly disunite, passed by
  • And left the tenderness of tears, _985
  • A soft oblivion of all fears,
  • A sweet sleep: so we travelled on
  • Till we came to the home of Lionel,
  • Among the mountains wild and lone,
  • Beside the hoary western sea, _990
  • Which near the verge of the echoing shore
  • The massy forest shadowed o'er.
  • The ancient steward, with hair all hoar,
  • As we alighted, wept to see
  • His master changed so fearfully; _995
  • And the old man's sobs did waken me
  • From my dream of unremaining gladness;
  • The truth flashed o'er me like quick madness
  • When I looked, and saw that there was death
  • On Lionel: yet day by day _1000
  • He lived, till fear grew hope and faith,
  • And in my soul I dared to say,
  • Nothing so bright can pass away:
  • Death is dark, and foul, and dull,
  • But he is--O how beautiful! _1005
  • Yet day by day he grew more weak,
  • And his sweet voice, when he might speak,
  • Which ne'er was loud, became more low;
  • And the light which flashed through his waxen cheek
  • Grew faint, as the rose-like hues which flow _1010
  • From sunset o'er the Alpine snow:
  • And death seemed not like death in him,
  • For the spirit of life o'er every limb
  • Lingered, a mist of sense and thought.
  • When the summer wind faint odours brought _1015
  • From mountain flowers, even as it passed
  • His cheek would change, as the noonday sea
  • Which the dying breeze sweeps fitfully.
  • If but a cloud the sky o'ercast,
  • You might see his colour come and go, _1020
  • And the softest strain of music made
  • Sweet smiles, yet sad, arise and fade
  • Amid the dew of his tender eyes;
  • And the breath, with intermitting flow,
  • Made his pale lips quiver and part. _1025
  • You might hear the beatings of his heart,
  • Quick, but not strong; and with my tresses
  • When oft he playfully would bind
  • In the bowers of mossy lonelinesses
  • His neck, and win me so to mingle _1030
  • In the sweet depth of woven caresses,
  • And our faint limbs were intertwined,
  • Alas! the unquiet life did tingle
  • From mine own heart through every vein,
  • Like a captive in dreams of liberty, _1035
  • Who beats the walls of his stony cell.
  • But his, it seemed already free,
  • Like the shadow of fire surrounding me!
  • On my faint eyes and limbs did dwell
  • That spirit as it passed, till soon, _1040
  • As a frail cloud wandering o'er the moon,
  • Beneath its light invisible,
  • Is seen when it folds its gray wings again
  • To alight on midnight's dusky plain,
  • I lived and saw, and the gathering soul _1045
  • Passed from beneath that strong control,
  • And I fell on a life which was sick with fear
  • Of all the woe that now I bear.
  • Amid a bloomless myrtle wood,
  • On a green and sea-girt promontory, _1050
  • Not far from where we dwelt, there stood
  • In record of a sweet sad story,
  • An altar and a temple bright
  • Circled by steps, and o'er the gate
  • Was sculptured, 'To Fidelity;' _1055
  • And in the shrine an image sate,
  • All veiled: but there was seen the light
  • Of smiles which faintly could express
  • A mingled pain and tenderness
  • Through that ethereal drapery. _1060
  • The left hand held the head, the right--
  • Beyond the veil, beneath the skin,
  • You might see the nerves quivering within--
  • Was forcing the point of a barbed dart
  • Into its side-convulsing heart. _1065
  • An unskilled hand, yet one informed
  • With genius, had the marble warmed
  • With that pathetic life. This tale
  • It told: A dog had from the sea,
  • When the tide was raging fearfully, _1070
  • Dragged Lionel's mother, weak and pale,
  • Then died beside her on the sand,
  • And she that temple thence had planned;
  • But it was Lionel's own hand
  • Had wrought the image. Each new moon _1075
  • That lady did, in this lone fane,
  • The rites of a religion sweet,
  • Whose god was in her heart and brain:
  • The seasons' loveliest flowers were strewn
  • On the marble floor beneath her feet, _1080
  • And she brought crowns of sea-buds white
  • Whose odour is so sweet and faint,
  • And weeds, like branching chrysolite,
  • Woven in devices fine and quaint.
  • And tears from her brown eyes did stain _1085
  • The altar: need but look upon
  • That dying statue fair and wan,
  • If tears should cease, to weep again:
  • And rare Arabian odours came,
  • Through the myrtle copses steaming thence _1090
  • From the hissing frankincense,
  • Whose smoke, wool-white as ocean foam,
  • Hung in dense flocks beneath the dome--
  • That ivory dome, whose azure night
  • With golden stars, like heaven, was bright-- _1095
  • O'er the split cedar's pointed flame;
  • And the lady's harp would kindle there
  • The melody of an old air,
  • Softer than sleep; the villagers
  • Mixed their religion up with hers, _1100
  • And, as they listened round, shed tears.
  • One eve he led me to this fane:
  • Daylight on its last purple cloud
  • Was lingering gray, and soon her strain
  • The nightingale began; now loud, _1105
  • Climbing in circles the windless sky,
  • Now dying music; suddenly
  • 'Tis scattered in a thousand notes,
  • And now to the hushed ear it floats
  • Like field smells known in infancy, _1110
  • Then failing, soothes the air again.
  • We sate within that temple lone,
  • Pavilioned round with Parian stone:
  • His mother's harp stood near, and oft
  • I had awakened music soft _1115
  • Amid its wires: the nightingale
  • Was pausing in her heaven-taught tale:
  • 'Now drain the cup,' said Lionel,
  • 'Which the poet-bird has crowned so well
  • With the wine of her bright and liquid song! _1120
  • Heardst thou not sweet words among
  • That heaven-resounding minstrelsy?
  • Heard'st thou not that those who die
  • Awake in a world of ecstasy?
  • That love, when limbs are interwoven, _1125
  • And sleep, when the night of life is cloven,
  • And thought, to the world's dim boundaries clinging,
  • And music, when one beloved is singing,
  • Is death? Let us drain right joyously
  • The cup which the sweet bird fills for me.' _1130
  • He paused, and to my lips he bent
  • His own: like spirit his words went
  • Through all my limbs with the speed of fire;
  • And his keen eyes, glittering through mine,
  • Filled me with the flame divine, _1135
  • Which in their orbs was burning far,
  • Like the light of an unmeasured star,
  • In the sky of midnight dark and deep:
  • Yes, 'twas his soul that did inspire
  • Sounds, which my skill could ne'er awaken; _1140
  • And first, I felt my fingers sweep
  • The harp, and a long quivering cry
  • Burst from my lips in symphony:
  • The dusk and solid air was shaken,
  • As swift and swifter the notes came _1145
  • From my touch, that wandered like quick flame,
  • And from my bosom, labouring
  • With some unutterable thing:
  • The awful sound of my own voice made
  • My faint lips tremble; in some mood _1150
  • Of wordless thought Lionel stood
  • So pale, that even beside his cheek
  • The snowy column from its shade
  • Caught whiteness: yet his countenance,
  • Raised upward, burned with radiance _1155
  • Of spirit-piercing joy, whose light,
  • Like the moon struggling through the night
  • Of whirlwind-rifted clouds, did break
  • With beams that might not be confined.
  • I paused, but soon his gestures kindled _1160
  • New power, as by the moving wind
  • The waves are lifted, and my song
  • To low soft notes now changed and dwindled,
  • And from the twinkling wires among,
  • My languid fingers drew and flung _1165
  • Circles of life-dissolving sound,
  • Yet faint; in aery rings they bound
  • My Lionel, who, as every strain
  • Grew fainter but more sweet, his mien
  • Sunk with the sound relaxedly; _1170
  • And slowly now he turned to me,
  • As slowly faded from his face
  • That awful joy: with looks serene
  • He was soon drawn to my embrace,
  • And my wild song then died away _1175
  • In murmurs: words I dare not say
  • We mixed, and on his lips mine fed
  • Till they methought felt still and cold:
  • 'What is it with thee, love?' I said:
  • No word, no look, no motion! yes, _1180
  • There was a change, but spare to guess,
  • Nor let that moment's hope be told.
  • I looked, and knew that he was dead,
  • And fell, as the eagle on the plain
  • Falls when life deserts her brain, _1185
  • And the mortal lightning is veiled again.
  • O that I were now dead! but such
  • (Did they not, love, demand too much,
  • Those dying murmurs?) he forbade.
  • O that I once again were mad! _1190
  • And yet, dear Rosalind, not so,
  • For I would live to share thy woe.
  • Sweet boy! did I forget thee too?
  • Alas, we know not what we do
  • When we speak words.
  • No memory more _1195
  • Is in my mind of that sea shore.
  • Madness came on me, and a troop
  • Of misty shapes did seem to sit
  • Beside me, on a vessel's poop,
  • And the clear north wind was driving it. _1200
  • Then I heard strange tongues, and saw strange flowers,
  • And the stars methought grew unlike ours,
  • And the azure sky and the stormless sea
  • Made me believe that I had died,
  • And waked in a world, which was to me _1205
  • Drear hell, though heaven to all beside:
  • Then a dead sleep fell on my mind,
  • Whilst animal life many long years
  • Had rescued from a chasm of tears;
  • And when I woke, I wept to find _1210
  • That the same lady, bright and wise,
  • With silver locks and quick brown eyes,
  • The mother of my Lionel,
  • Had tended me in my distress,
  • And died some months before. Nor less _1215
  • Wonder, but far more peace and joy,
  • Brought in that hour my lovely boy;
  • For through that trance my soul had well
  • The impress of thy being kept;
  • And if I waked, or if I slept, _1220
  • No doubt, though memory faithless be,
  • Thy image ever dwelt on me;
  • And thus, O Lionel, like thee
  • Is our sweet child. 'Tis sure most strange
  • I knew not of so great a change, _1225
  • As that which gave him birth, who now
  • Is all the solace of my woe.
  • That Lionel great wealth had left
  • By will to me, and that of all
  • The ready lies of law bereft _1230
  • My child and me, might well befall.
  • But let me think not of the scorn,
  • Which from the meanest I have borne,
  • When, for my child's beloved sake,
  • I mixed with slaves, to vindicate _1235
  • The very laws themselves do make:
  • Let me not say scorn is my fate,
  • Lest I be proud, suffering the same
  • With those who live in deathless fame.
  • She ceased.--'Lo, where red morning thro' the woods _1240
  • Is burning o'er the dew;' said Rosalind.
  • And with these words they rose, and towards the flood
  • Of the blue lake, beneath the leaves now wind
  • With equal steps and fingers intertwined:
  • Thence to a lonely dwelling, where the shore _1245
  • Is shadowed with steep rocks, and cypresses
  • Cleave with their dark green cones the silent skies,
  • And with their shadows the clear depths below,
  • And where a little terrace from its bowers,
  • Of blooming myrtle and faint lemon-flowers, _1250
  • Scatters its sense-dissolving fragrance o'er
  • The liquid marble of the windless lake;
  • And where the aged forest's limbs look hoar,
  • Under the leaves which their green garments make,
  • They come: 'Tis Helen's home, and clean and white, _1255
  • Like one which tyrants spare on our own land
  • In some such solitude, its casements bright
  • Shone through their vine-leaves in the morning sun,
  • And even within 'twas scarce like Italy.
  • And when she saw how all things there were planned, _1260
  • As in an English home, dim memory
  • Disturbed poor Rosalind: she stood as one
  • Whose mind is where his body cannot be,
  • Till Helen led her where her child yet slept,
  • And said, 'Observe, that brow was Lionel's, _1265
  • Those lips were his, and so he ever kept
  • One arm in sleep, pillowing his head with it.
  • You cannot see his eyes--they are two wells
  • Of liquid love: let us not wake him yet.'
  • But Rosalind could bear no more, and wept _1270
  • A shower of burning tears, which fell upon
  • His face, and so his opening lashes shone
  • With tears unlike his own, as he did leap
  • In sudden wonder from his innocent sleep.
  • So Rosalind and Helen lived together _1275
  • Thenceforth, changed in all else, yet friends again,
  • Such as they were, when o'er the mountain heather
  • They wandered in their youth, through sun and rain.
  • And after many years, for human things
  • Change even like the ocean and the wind, _1280
  • Her daughter was restored to Rosalind,
  • And in their circle thence some visitings
  • Of joy 'mid their new calm would intervene:
  • A lovely child she was, of looks serene,
  • And motions which o'er things indifferent shed _1285
  • The grace and gentleness from whence they came.
  • And Helen's boy grew with her, and they fed
  • From the same flowers of thought, until each mind
  • Like springs which mingle in one flood became,
  • And in their union soon their parents saw _1290
  • The shadow of the peace denied to them.
  • And Rosalind, for when the living stem
  • Is cankered in its heart, the tree must fall,
  • Died ere her time; and with deep grief and awe
  • The pale survivors followed her remains _1295
  • Beyond the region of dissolving rains,
  • Up the cold mountain she was wont to call
  • Her tomb; and on Chiavenna's precipice
  • They raised a pyramid of lasting ice,
  • Whose polished sides, ere day had yet begun, _1300
  • Caught the first glow of the unrisen sun,
  • The last, when it had sunk; and thro' the night
  • The charioteers of Arctos wheeled round
  • Its glittering point, as seen from Helen's home,
  • Whose sad inhabitants each year would come, _1305
  • With willing steps climbing that rugged height,
  • And hang long locks of hair, and garlands bound
  • With amaranth flowers, which, in the clime's despite,
  • Filled the frore air with unaccustomed light:
  • Such flowers, as in the wintry memory bloom _1310
  • Of one friend left, adorned that frozen tomb.
  • Helen, whose spirit was of softer mould,
  • Whose sufferings too were less, Death slowlier led
  • Into the peace of his dominion cold:
  • She died among her kindred, being old. _1315
  • And know, that if love die not in the dead
  • As in the living, none of mortal kind
  • Are blest, as now Helen and Rosalind.
  • NOTES:
  • _63 from there]from thee edition 1819.
  • _366 fell]ran edition 1819.
  • _405-_408 See Editor's Note on this passage.
  • _551 Where]When edition 1819.
  • _572 Ay, overflowing]Aye overflowing edition 1819.
  • _612 dear]clear cj. Bradley.
  • _711 gore editions 1819, 1839. See Editor's Note.
  • _932 Where]When edition 1819.
  • _1093-_1096 See Editor's Note.
  • _1168-_1171] See Editor's Note.
  • _1209 rescue]rescued edition 1819. See Editor's Note.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • "Rosalind and Helen" was begun at Marlow, and thrown aside--till I
  • found it; and, at my request, it was completed. Shelley had no care
  • for any of his poems that did not emanate from the depths of his mind,
  • and develop some high or abstruse truth. When he does touch on human
  • life and the human heart, no pictures can be more faithful, more
  • delicate, more subtle, or more pathetic. He never mentioned Love but
  • he shed a grace borrowed from his own nature, that scarcely any other
  • poet has bestowed on that passion. When he spoke of it as the law of
  • life, which inasmuch as we rebel against we err and injure ourselves
  • and others, he promulgated that which he considered an irrefragable
  • truth. In his eyes it was the essence of our being, and all woe and
  • pain arose from the war made against it by selfishness, or
  • insensibility, or mistake. By reverting in his mind to this first
  • principle, he discovered the source of many emotions, and could
  • disclose the secrets of all hearts, and his delineations of passion
  • and emotion touch the finest chords of our nature.
  • "Rosalind and Helen" was finished during the summer of 1818, while we
  • were at the Baths of Lucca.
  • ***
  • JULIAN AND MADDALO.
  • A CONVERSATION.
  • [Composed at Este after Shelley's first visit to Venice, 1818
  • (Autumn); first published in the "Posthumous Poems", London, 1824
  • (edition Mrs. Shelley). Shelley's original intention had been to print
  • the poem in Leigh Hunt's "Examiner"; but he changed his mind and, on
  • August 15, 1819, sent the manuscript to Hunt to be published
  • anonymously by Ollier. This manuscript, found by Mr. Townshend Mayer,
  • and by him placed in the hands of Mr. H. Buxton Forman, C.B., is
  • described at length in Mr. Forman's Library Edition of the poems
  • (volume 3 page 107). The date, 'May, 1819,' affixed to "Julian and
  • Maddalo" in the "Posthumous Poems", 1824, indicates the time when the
  • text was finally revised by Shelley. Sources of the text are (1)
  • "Posthumous Poems", 1824; (2) the Hunt manuscript; (3) a fair draft of
  • the poem amongst the Boscombe manuscripts; (4) "Poetical Works", 1839,
  • 1st and 2nd editions (Mrs. Shelley). Our text is that of the Hunt
  • manuscript, as printed in Forman's Library Edition of the Poems, 1876,
  • volume 3, pages 103-30; variants of 1824 are indicated in the
  • footnotes; questions of punctuation are dealt with in the notes at the
  • end of the volume.]
  • PREFACE.
  • The meadows with fresh streams, the bees with thyme,
  • The goats with the green leaves of budding Spring,
  • Are saturated not--nor Love with tears.--VIRGIL'S "Gallus".
  • Count Maddalo is a Venetian nobleman of ancient family and of great
  • fortune, who, without mixing much in the society of his countrymen,
  • resides chiefly at his magnificent palace in that city. He is a person
  • of the most consummate genius, and capable, if he would direct his
  • energies to such an end, of becoming the redeemer of his degraded
  • country. But it is his weakness to be proud: he derives, from a
  • comparison of his own extraordinary mind with the dwarfish intellects
  • that surround him, an intense apprehension of the nothingness of human
  • life. His passions and his powers are incomparably greater than those
  • of other men; and, instead of the latter having been employed in
  • curbing the former, they have mutually lent each other strength. His
  • ambition preys upon itself, for want of objects which it can consider
  • worthy of exertion. I say that Maddalo is proud, because I can find no
  • other word to express the concentred and impatient feelings which
  • consume him; but it is on his own hopes and affections only that he
  • seems to trample, for in social life no human being can be more
  • gentle, patient and unassuming than Maddalo. He is cheerful, frank and
  • witty. His more serious conversation is a sort of intoxication; men
  • are held by it as by a spell. He has travelled much; and there is an
  • inexpressible charm in his relation of his adventures in different
  • countries.
  • Julian is an Englishman of good family, passionately attached to those
  • philosophical notions which assert the power of man over his own mind,
  • and the immense improvements of which, by the extinction of certain
  • moral superstitions, human society may be yet susceptible. Without
  • concealing the evil in the world he is for ever speculating how good
  • may be made superior. He is a complete infidel, and a scoffer at all
  • things reputed holy; and Maddalo takes a wicked pleasure in drawing
  • out his taunts against religion. What Maddalo thinks on these matters
  • is not exactly known. Julian, in spite of his heterodox opinions, is
  • conjectured by his friends to possess some good qualities. How far
  • this is possible the pious reader will determine. Julian is rather
  • serious.
  • Of the Maniac I can give no information. He seems, by his own account,
  • to have been disappointed in love. He was evidently a very cultivated
  • and amiable person when in his right senses. His story, told at
  • length, might be like many other stories of the same kind: the
  • unconnected exclamations of his agony will perhaps be found a
  • sufficient comment for the text of every heart.
  • I rode one evening with Count Maddalo
  • Upon the bank of land which breaks the flow
  • Of Adria towards Venice: a bare strand
  • Of hillocks, heaped from ever-shifting sand,
  • Matted with thistles and amphibious weeds, _5
  • Such as from earth's embrace the salt ooze breeds,
  • Is this; an uninhabited sea-side,
  • Which the lone fisher, when his nets are dried,
  • Abandons; and no other object breaks
  • The waste, but one dwarf tree and some few stakes _10
  • Broken and unrepaired, and the tide makes
  • A narrow space of level sand thereon,
  • Where 'twas our wont to ride while day went down.
  • This ride was my delight. I love all waste
  • And solitary places; where we taste _15
  • The pleasure of believing what we see
  • Is boundless, as we wish our souls to be:
  • And such was this wide ocean, and this shore
  • More barren than its billows; and yet more
  • Than all, with a remembered friend I love _20
  • To ride as then I rode;--for the winds drove
  • The living spray along the sunny air
  • Into our faces; the blue heavens were bare,
  • Stripped to their depths by the awakening north;
  • And, from the waves, sound like delight broke forth _25
  • Harmonising with solitude, and sent
  • Into our hearts aereal merriment.
  • So, as we rode, we talked; and the swift thought,
  • Winging itself with laughter, lingered not,
  • But flew from brain to brain,--such glee was ours, _30
  • Charged with light memories of remembered hours,
  • None slow enough for sadness: till we came
  • Homeward, which always makes the spirit tame.
  • This day had been cheerful but cold, and now
  • The sun was sinking, and the wind also. _35
  • Our talk grew somewhat serious, as may be
  • Talk interrupted with such raillery
  • As mocks itself, because it cannot scorn
  • The thoughts it would extinguish: --'twas forlorn,
  • Yet pleasing, such as once, so poets tell, _40
  • The devils held within the dales of Hell
  • Concerning God, freewill and destiny:
  • Of all that earth has been or yet may be,
  • All that vain men imagine or believe,
  • Or hope can paint or suffering may achieve, _45
  • We descanted; and I (for ever still
  • Is it not wise to make the best of ill?)
  • Argued against despondency, but pride
  • Made my companion take the darker side.
  • The sense that he was greater than his kind _50
  • Had struck, methinks, his eagle spirit blind
  • By gazing on its own exceeding light.
  • Meanwhile the sun paused ere it should alight,
  • Over the horizon of the mountains;--Oh,
  • How beautiful is sunset, when the glow _55
  • Of Heaven descends upon a land like thee,
  • Thou Paradise of exiles, Italy!
  • Thy mountains, seas and vineyards, and the towers
  • Of cities they encircle!--it was ours
  • To stand on thee, beholding it: and then, _60
  • Just where we had dismounted, the Count's men
  • Were waiting for us with the gondola.--
  • As those who pause on some delightful way
  • Though bent on pleasant pilgrimage, we stood
  • Looking upon the evening, and the flood _65
  • Which lay between the city and the shore,
  • Paved with the image of the sky...the hoar
  • And aery Alps towards the North appeared
  • Through mist, an heaven-sustaining bulwark reared
  • Between the East and West; and half the sky _70
  • Was roofed with clouds of rich emblazonry
  • Dark purple at the zenith, which still grew
  • Down the steep West into a wondrous hue
  • Brighter than burning gold, even to the rent
  • Where the swift sun yet paused in his descent _75
  • Among the many-folded hills: they were
  • Those famous Euganean hills, which bear,
  • As seen from Lido thro' the harbour piles,
  • The likeness of a clump of peaked isles--
  • And then--as if the Earth and Sea had been _80
  • Dissolved into one lake of fire, were seen
  • Those mountains towering as from waves of flame
  • Around the vaporous sun, from which there came
  • The inmost purple spirit of light, and made
  • Their very peaks transparent. 'Ere it fade,' _85
  • Said my companion, 'I will show you soon
  • A better station'--so, o'er the lagune
  • We glided; and from that funereal bark
  • I leaned, and saw the city, and could mark
  • How from their many isles, in evening's gleam, _90
  • Its temples and its palaces did seem
  • Like fabrics of enchantment piled to Heaven.
  • I was about to speak, when--'We are even
  • Now at the point I meant,' said Maddalo,
  • And bade the gondolieri cease to row. _95
  • 'Look, Julian, on the west, and listen well
  • If you hear not a deep and heavy bell.'
  • I looked, and saw between us and the sun
  • A building on an island; such a one
  • As age to age might add, for uses vile, _100
  • A windowless, deformed and dreary pile;
  • And on the top an open tower, where hung
  • A bell, which in the radiance swayed and swung;
  • We could just hear its hoarse and iron tongue:
  • The broad sun sunk behind it, and it tolled _105
  • In strong and black relief.--'What we behold
  • Shall be the madhouse and its belfry tower,'
  • Said Maddalo, 'and ever at this hour
  • Those who may cross the water, hear that bell
  • Which calls the maniacs, each one from his cell, _110
  • To vespers.'--'As much skill as need to pray
  • In thanks or hope for their dark lot have they
  • To their stern maker,' I replied. 'O ho!
  • You talk as in years past,' said Maddalo.
  • ''Tis strange men change not. You were ever still _115
  • Among Christ's flock a perilous infidel,
  • A wolf for the meek lambs--if you can't swim
  • Beware of Providence.' I looked on him,
  • But the gay smile had faded in his eye.
  • 'And such,'--he cried, 'is our mortality, _120
  • And this must be the emblem and the sign
  • Of what should be eternal and divine!--
  • And like that black and dreary bell, the soul,
  • Hung in a heaven-illumined tower, must toll
  • Our thoughts and our desires to meet below _125
  • Round the rent heart and pray--as madmen do
  • For what? they know not,--till the night of death
  • As sunset that strange vision, severeth
  • Our memory from itself, and us from all
  • We sought and yet were baffled.' I recall _130
  • The sense of what he said, although I mar
  • The force of his expressions. The broad star
  • Of day meanwhile had sunk behind the hill,
  • And the black bell became invisible,
  • And the red tower looked gray, and all between _135
  • The churches, ships and palaces were seen
  • Huddled in gloom;--into the purple sea
  • The orange hues of heaven sunk silently.
  • We hardly spoke, and soon the gondola
  • Conveyed me to my lodging by the way. _140
  • The following morn was rainy, cold, and dim:
  • Ere Maddalo arose, I called on him,
  • And whilst I waited with his child I played;
  • A lovelier toy sweet Nature never made;
  • A serious, subtle, wild, yet gentle being, _145
  • Graceful without design and unforeseeing,
  • With eyes--Oh speak not of her eyes!--which seem
  • Twin mirrors of Italian Heaven, yet gleam
  • With such deep meaning, as we never see
  • But in the human countenance: with me _150
  • She was a special favourite: I had nursed
  • Her fine and feeble limbs when she came first
  • To this bleak world; and she yet seemed to know
  • On second sight her ancient playfellow,
  • Less changed than she was by six months or so; _155
  • For after her first shyness was worn out
  • We sate there, rolling billiard balls about,
  • When the Count entered. Salutations past--
  • 'The word you spoke last night might well have cast
  • A darkness on my spirit--if man be _160
  • The passive thing you say, I should not see
  • Much harm in the religions and old saws
  • (Tho' I may never own such leaden laws)
  • Which break a teachless nature to the yoke:
  • Mine is another faith.'--thus much I spoke _165
  • And noting he replied not, added: 'See
  • This lovely child, blithe, innocent and free;
  • She spends a happy time with little care,
  • While we to such sick thoughts subjected are
  • As came on you last night. It is our will _170
  • That thus enchains us to permitted ill--
  • We might be otherwise--we might be all
  • We dream of happy, high, majestical.
  • Where is the love, beauty, and truth we seek,
  • But in our mind? and if we were not weak _175
  • Should we be less in deed than in desire?'
  • 'Ay, if we were not weak--and we aspire
  • How vainly to be strong!' said Maddalo:
  • 'You talk Utopia.' 'It remains to know,'
  • I then rejoined, 'and those who try may find _180
  • How strong the chains are which our spirit bind;
  • Brittle perchance as straw...We are assured
  • Much may be conquered, much may be endured,
  • Of what degrades and crushes us. We know
  • That we have power over ourselves to do _185
  • And suffer--what, we know not till we try;
  • But something nobler than to live and die--
  • So taught those kings of old philosophy
  • Who reigned, before Religion made men blind;
  • And those who suffer with their suffering kind _190
  • Yet feel their faith, religion.' 'My dear friend,'
  • Said Maddalo, 'my judgement will not bend
  • To your opinion, though I think you might
  • Make such a system refutation-tight
  • As far as words go. I knew one like you _195
  • Who to this city came some months ago,
  • With whom I argued in this sort, and he
  • Is now gone mad,--and so he answered me,--
  • Poor fellow! but if you would like to go,
  • We'll visit him, and his wild talk will show _200
  • How vain are such aspiring theories.'
  • 'I hope to prove the induction otherwise,
  • And that a want of that true theory, still,
  • Which seeks a "soul of goodness" in things ill
  • Or in himself or others, has thus bowed _205
  • His being--there are some by nature proud,
  • Who patient in all else demand but this--
  • To love and be beloved with gentleness;
  • And being scorned, what wonder if they die
  • Some living death? this is not destiny _210
  • But man's own wilful ill.'
  • As thus I spoke
  • Servants announced the gondola, and we
  • Through the fast-falling rain and high-wrought sea
  • Sailed to the island where the madhouse stands.
  • We disembarked. The clap of tortured hands, _215
  • Fierce yells and howlings and lamentings keen,
  • And laughter where complaint had merrier been,
  • Moans, shrieks, and curses, and blaspheming prayers
  • Accosted us. We climbed the oozy stairs
  • Into an old courtyard. I heard on high, _220
  • Then, fragments of most touching melody,
  • But looking up saw not the singer there--
  • Through the black bars in the tempestuous air
  • I saw, like weeds on a wrecked palace growing,
  • Long tangled locks flung wildly forth, and flowing, _225
  • Of those who on a sudden were beguiled
  • Into strange silence, and looked forth and smiled
  • Hearing sweet sounds. Then I: 'Methinks there were
  • A cure of these with patience and kind care,
  • If music can thus move...but what is he _230
  • Whom we seek here?' 'Of his sad history
  • I know but this,' said Maddalo: 'he came
  • To Venice a dejected man, and fame
  • Said he was wealthy, or he had been so;
  • Some thought the loss of fortune wrought him woe; _235
  • But he was ever talking in such sort
  • As you do--far more sadly--he seemed hurt,
  • Even as a man with his peculiar wrong,
  • To hear but of the oppression of the strong,
  • Or those absurd deceits (I think with you _240
  • In some respects, you know) which carry through
  • The excellent impostors of this earth
  • When they outface detection--he had worth,
  • Poor fellow! but a humorist in his way'--
  • 'Alas, what drove him mad?' 'I cannot say: _245
  • A lady came with him from France, and when
  • She left him and returned, he wandered then
  • About yon lonely isles of desert sand
  • Till he grew wild--he had no cash or land
  • Remaining,--the police had brought him here-- _250
  • Some fancy took him and he would not bear
  • Removal; so I fitted up for him
  • Those rooms beside the sea, to please his whim,
  • And sent him busts and books and urns for flowers,
  • Which had adorned his life in happier hours, _255
  • And instruments of music--you may guess
  • A stranger could do little more or less
  • For one so gentle and unfortunate:
  • And those are his sweet strains which charm the weight
  • From madmen's chains, and make this Hell appear _260
  • A heaven of sacred silence, hushed to hear.'--
  • 'Nay, this was kind of you--he had no claim,
  • As the world says'--'None--but the very same
  • Which I on all mankind were I as he
  • Fallen to such deep reverse;--his melody _265
  • Is interrupted--now we hear the din
  • Of madmen, shriek on shriek, again begin;
  • Let us now visit him; after this strain
  • He ever communes with himself again,
  • And sees nor hears not any.' Having said _270
  • These words, we called the keeper, and he led
  • To an apartment opening on the sea--
  • There the poor wretch was sitting mournfully
  • Near a piano, his pale fingers twined
  • One with the other, and the ooze and wind _275
  • Rushed through an open casement, and did sway
  • His hair, and starred it with the brackish spray;
  • His head was leaning on a music book,
  • And he was muttering, and his lean limbs shook;
  • His lips were pressed against a folded leaf _280
  • In hue too beautiful for health, and grief
  • Smiled in their motions as they lay apart--
  • As one who wrought from his own fervid heart
  • The eloquence of passion, soon he raised
  • His sad meek face and eyes lustrous and glazed _285
  • And spoke--sometimes as one who wrote, and thought
  • His words might move some heart that heeded not,
  • If sent to distant lands: and then as one
  • Reproaching deeds never to be undone
  • With wondering self-compassion; then his speech _290
  • Was lost in grief, and then his words came each
  • Unmodulated, cold, expressionless,--
  • But that from one jarred accent you might guess
  • It was despair made them so uniform:
  • And all the while the loud and gusty storm _295
  • Hissed through the window, and we stood behind
  • Stealing his accents from the envious wind
  • Unseen. I yet remember what he said
  • Distinctly: such impression his words made.
  • 'Month after month,' he cried, 'to bear this load _300
  • And as a jade urged by the whip and goad
  • To drag life on, which like a heavy chain
  • Lengthens behind with many a link of pain!--
  • And not to speak my grief--O, not to dare
  • To give a human voice to my despair, _305
  • But live, and move, and, wretched thing! smile on
  • As if I never went aside to groan,
  • And wear this mask of falsehood even to those
  • Who are most dear--not for my own repose--
  • Alas! no scorn or pain or hate could be _310
  • So heavy as that falsehood is to me--
  • But that I cannot bear more altered faces
  • Than needs must be, more changed and cold embraces,
  • More misery, disappointment, and mistrust
  • To own me for their father...Would the dust _315
  • Were covered in upon my body now!
  • That the life ceased to toil within my brow!
  • And then these thoughts would at the least be fled;
  • Let us not fear such pain can vex the dead.
  • 'What Power delights to torture us? I know _320
  • That to myself I do not wholly owe
  • What now I suffer, though in part I may.
  • Alas! none strewed sweet flowers upon the way
  • Where wandering heedlessly, I met pale Pain
  • My shadow, which will leave me not again-- _325
  • If I have erred, there was no joy in error,
  • But pain and insult and unrest and terror;
  • I have not as some do, bought penitence
  • With pleasure, and a dark yet sweet offence,
  • For then,--if love and tenderness and truth _330
  • Had overlived hope's momentary youth,
  • My creed should have redeemed me from repenting;
  • But loathed scorn and outrage unrelenting
  • Met love excited by far other seeming
  • Until the end was gained...as one from dreaming _335
  • Of sweetest peace, I woke, and found my state
  • Such as it is.--
  • 'O Thou, my spirit's mate
  • Who, for thou art compassionate and wise,
  • Wouldst pity me from thy most gentle eyes
  • If this sad writing thou shouldst ever see-- _340
  • My secret groans must be unheard by thee,
  • Thou wouldst weep tears bitter as blood to know
  • Thy lost friend's incommunicable woe.
  • 'Ye few by whom my nature has been weighed
  • In friendship, let me not that name degrade _345
  • By placing on your hearts the secret load
  • Which crushes mine to dust. There is one road
  • To peace and that is truth, which follow ye!
  • Love sometimes leads astray to misery.
  • Yet think not though subdued--and I may well _350
  • Say that I am subdued--that the full Hell
  • Within me would infect the untainted breast
  • Of sacred nature with its own unrest;
  • As some perverted beings think to find
  • In scorn or hate a medicine for the mind _355
  • Which scorn or hate have wounded--O how vain!
  • The dagger heals not but may rend again...
  • Believe that I am ever still the same
  • In creed as in resolve, and what may tame
  • My heart, must leave the understanding free, _360
  • Or all would sink in this keen agony--
  • Nor dream that I will join the vulgar cry;
  • Or with my silence sanction tyranny;
  • Or seek a moment's shelter from my pain
  • In any madness which the world calls gain, _365
  • Ambition or revenge or thoughts as stern
  • As those which make me what I am; or turn
  • To avarice or misanthropy or lust...
  • Heap on me soon, O grave, thy welcome dust!
  • Till then the dungeon may demand its prey, _370
  • And Poverty and Shame may meet and say--
  • Halting beside me on the public way--
  • "That love-devoted youth is ours--let's sit
  • Beside him--he may live some six months yet."
  • Or the red scaffold, as our country bends, _375
  • May ask some willing victim; or ye friends
  • May fall under some sorrow which this heart
  • Or hand may share or vanquish or avert;
  • I am prepared--in truth, with no proud joy--
  • To do or suffer aught, as when a boy _380
  • I did devote to justice and to love
  • My nature, worthless now!...
  • 'I must remove
  • A veil from my pent mind. 'Tis torn aside!
  • O, pallid as Death's dedicated bride,
  • Thou mockery which art sitting by my side, _385
  • Am I not wan like thee? at the grave's call
  • I haste, invited to thy wedding-ball
  • To greet the ghastly paramour, for whom
  • Thou hast deserted me...and made the tomb
  • Thy bridal bed...But I beside your feet _390
  • Will lie and watch ye from my winding-sheet--
  • Thus...wide awake tho' dead...yet stay, O stay!
  • Go not so soon--I know not what I say--
  • Hear but my reasons...I am mad, I fear,
  • My fancy is o'erwrought...thou art not here... _395
  • Pale art thou, 'tis most true...but thou art gone,
  • Thy work is finished...I am left alone!--
  • ...
  • 'Nay, was it I who wooed thee to this breast
  • Which, like a serpent, thou envenomest
  • As in repayment of the warmth it lent? _400
  • Didst thou not seek me for thine own content?
  • Did not thy love awaken mine? I thought
  • That thou wert she who said, "You kiss me not
  • Ever, I fear you do not love me now"--
  • In truth I loved even to my overthrow _405
  • Her, who would fain forget these words: but they
  • Cling to her mind, and cannot pass away.
  • ...
  • 'You say that I am proud--that when I speak
  • My lip is tortured with the wrongs which break
  • The spirit it expresses...Never one _410
  • Humbled himself before, as I have done!
  • Even the instinctive worm on which we tread
  • Turns, though it wound not--then with prostrate head
  • Sinks in the dusk and writhes like me--and dies?
  • No: wears a living death of agonies! _415
  • As the slow shadows of the pointed grass
  • Mark the eternal periods, his pangs pass,
  • Slow, ever-moving,--making moments be
  • As mine seem--each an immortality!
  • ...
  • 'That you had never seen me--never heard _420
  • My voice, and more than all had ne'er endured
  • The deep pollution of my loathed embrace--
  • That your eyes ne'er had lied love in my face--
  • That, like some maniac monk, I had torn out
  • The nerves of manhood by their bleeding root _425
  • With mine own quivering fingers, so that ne'er
  • Our hearts had for a moment mingled there
  • To disunite in horror--these were not
  • With thee, like some suppressed and hideous thought
  • Which flits athwart our musings, but can find _430
  • No rest within a pure and gentle mind...
  • Thou sealedst them with many a bare broad word,
  • And searedst my memory o'er them,--for I heard
  • And can forget not...they were ministered
  • One after one, those curses. Mix them up _435
  • Like self-destroying poisons in one cup,
  • And they will make one blessing which thou ne'er
  • Didst imprecate for, on me,--death.
  • ...
  • 'It were
  • A cruel punishment for one most cruel,
  • If such can love, to make that love the fuel _440
  • Of the mind's hell; hate, scorn, remorse, despair:
  • But ME--whose heart a stranger's tear might wear
  • As water-drops the sandy fountain-stone,
  • Who loved and pitied all things, and could moan
  • For woes which others hear not, and could see _445
  • The absent with the glance of phantasy,
  • And with the poor and trampled sit and weep,
  • Following the captive to his dungeon deep;
  • ME--who am as a nerve o'er which do creep
  • The else unfelt oppressions of this earth, _450
  • And was to thee the flame upon thy hearth,
  • When all beside was cold--that thou on me
  • Shouldst rain these plagues of blistering agony--
  • Such curses are from lips once eloquent
  • With love's too partial praise--let none relent _455
  • Who intend deeds too dreadful for a name
  • Henceforth, if an example for the same
  • They seek...for thou on me lookedst so, and so--
  • And didst speak thus...and thus...I live to show
  • How much men bear and die not!
  • ...
  • 'Thou wilt tell _460
  • With the grimace of hate, how horrible
  • It was to meet my love when thine grew less;
  • Thou wilt admire how I could e'er address
  • Such features to love's work...this taunt, though true,
  • (For indeed Nature nor in form nor hue _465
  • Bestowed on me her choicest workmanship)
  • Shall not be thy defence...for since thy lip
  • Met mine first, years long past, since thine eye kindled
  • With soft fire under mine, I have not dwindled
  • Nor changed in mind or body, or in aught _470
  • But as love changes what it loveth not
  • After long years and many trials.
  • 'How vain
  • Are words! I thought never to speak again,
  • Not even in secret,--not to mine own heart--
  • But from my lips the unwilling accents start, _475
  • And from my pen the words flow as I write,
  • Dazzling my eyes with scalding tears...my sight
  • Is dim to see that charactered in vain
  • On this unfeeling leaf which burns the brain
  • And eats into it...blotting all things fair _480
  • And wise and good which time had written there.
  • 'Those who inflict must suffer, for they see
  • The work of their own hearts, and this must be
  • Our chastisement or recompense--O child!
  • I would that thine were like to be more mild _485
  • For both our wretched sakes...for thine the most
  • Who feelest already all that thou hast lost
  • Without the power to wish it thine again;
  • And as slow years pass, a funereal train
  • Each with the ghost of some lost hope or friend _490
  • Following it like its shadow, wilt thou bend
  • No thought on my dead memory?
  • ...
  • 'Alas, love!
  • Fear me not...against thee I would not move
  • A finger in despite. Do I not live
  • That thou mayst have less bitter cause to grieve? _495
  • I give thee tears for scorn and love for hate;
  • And that thy lot may be less desolate
  • Than his on whom thou tramplest, I refrain
  • From that sweet sleep which medicines all pain.
  • Then, when thou speakest of me, never say _500
  • "He could forgive not." Here I cast away
  • All human passions, all revenge, all pride;
  • I think, speak, act no ill; I do but hide
  • Under these words, like embers, every spark
  • Of that which has consumed me--quick and dark _505
  • The grave is yawning...as its roof shall cover
  • My limbs with dust and worms under and over
  • So let Oblivion hide this grief...the air
  • Closes upon my accents, as despair
  • Upon my heart--let death upon despair!' _510
  • He ceased, and overcome leant back awhile,
  • Then rising, with a melancholy smile
  • Went to a sofa, and lay down, and slept
  • A heavy sleep, and in his dreams he wept
  • And muttered some familiar name, and we _515
  • Wept without shame in his society.
  • I think I never was impressed so much;
  • The man who were not, must have lacked a touch
  • Of human nature...then we lingered not,
  • Although our argument was quite forgot, _520
  • But calling the attendants, went to dine
  • At Maddalo's; yet neither cheer nor wine
  • Could give us spirits, for we talked of him
  • And nothing else, till daylight made stars dim;
  • And we agreed his was some dreadful ill _525
  • Wrought on him boldly, yet unspeakable,
  • By a dear friend; some deadly change in love
  • Of one vowed deeply which he dreamed not of;
  • For whose sake he, it seemed, had fixed a blot
  • Of falsehood on his mind which flourished not _530
  • But in the light of all-beholding truth;
  • And having stamped this canker on his youth
  • She had abandoned him--and how much more
  • Might be his woe, we guessed not--he had store
  • Of friends and fortune once, as we could guess _535
  • From his nice habits and his gentleness;
  • These were now lost...it were a grief indeed
  • If he had changed one unsustaining reed
  • For all that such a man might else adorn.
  • The colours of his mind seemed yet unworn; _540
  • For the wild language of his grief was high,
  • Such as in measure were called poetry;
  • And I remember one remark which then
  • Maddalo made. He said: 'Most wretched men
  • Are cradled into poetry by wrong, _545
  • They learn in suffering what they teach in song.'
  • If I had been an unconnected man,
  • I, from this moment, should have formed some plan
  • Never to leave sweet Venice,--for to me
  • It was delight to ride by the lone sea; _550
  • And then, the town is silent--one may write
  • Or read in gondolas by day or night,
  • Having the little brazen lamp alight,
  • Unseen, uninterrupted; books are there,
  • Pictures, and casts from all those statues fair _555
  • Which were twin-born with poetry, and all
  • We seek in towns, with little to recall
  • Regrets for the green country. I might sit
  • In Maddalo's great palace, and his wit
  • And subtle talk would cheer the winter night _560
  • And make me know myself, and the firelight
  • Would flash upon our faces, till the day
  • Might dawn and make me wonder at my stay:
  • But I had friends in London too: the chief
  • Attraction here, was that I sought relief _565
  • From the deep tenderness that maniac wrought
  • Within me--'twas perhaps an idle thought--
  • But I imagined that if day by day
  • I watched him, and but seldom went away,
  • And studied all the beatings of his heart _570
  • With zeal, as men study some stubborn art
  • For their own good, and could by patience find
  • An entrance to the caverns of his mind,
  • I might reclaim him from this dark estate:
  • In friendships I had been most fortunate-- _575
  • Yet never saw I one whom I would call
  • More willingly my friend; and this was all
  • Accomplished not; such dreams of baseless good
  • Oft come and go in crowds or solitude
  • And leave no trace--but what I now designed _580
  • Made for long years impression on my mind.
  • The following morning, urged by my affairs,
  • I left bright Venice.
  • After many years
  • And many changes I returned; the name
  • Of Venice, and its aspect, was the same; _585
  • But Maddalo was travelling far away
  • Among the mountains of Armenia.
  • His dog was dead. His child had now become
  • A woman; such as it has been my doom
  • To meet with few,--a wonder of this earth, _590
  • Where there is little of transcendent worth,
  • Like one of Shakespeare's women: kindly she,
  • And, with a manner beyond courtesy,
  • Received her father's friend; and when I asked
  • Of the lorn maniac, she her memory tasked, _595
  • And told as she had heard the mournful tale:
  • 'That the poor sufferer's health began to fail
  • Two years from my departure, but that then
  • The lady who had left him, came again.
  • Her mien had been imperious, but she now _600
  • Looked meek--perhaps remorse had brought her low.
  • Her coming made him better, and they stayed
  • Together at my father's--for I played,
  • As I remember, with the lady's shawl--
  • I might be six years old--but after all _605
  • She left him.'...'Why, her heart must have been tough:
  • How did it end?' 'And was not this enough?
  • They met--they parted.'--'Child, is there no more?'
  • 'Something within that interval which bore
  • The stamp of WHY they parted, HOW they met: _610
  • Yet if thine aged eyes disdain to wet
  • Those wrinkled cheeks with youth's remembered tears,
  • Ask me no more, but let the silent years
  • Be closed and cered over their memory
  • As yon mute marble where their corpses lie.' _615
  • I urged and questioned still, she told me how
  • All happened--but the cold world shall not know.
  • CANCELLED FRAGMENTS OF JULIAN AND MADDALO.
  • 'What think you the dead are?' 'Why, dust and clay,
  • What should they be?' ''Tis the last hour of day.
  • Look on the west, how beautiful it is _620
  • Vaulted with radiant vapours! The deep bliss
  • Of that unutterable light has made
  • The edges of that cloud ... fade
  • Into a hue, like some harmonious thought,
  • Wasting itself on that which it had wrought, _625
  • Till it dies ... and ... between
  • The light hues of the tender, pure, serene,
  • And infinite tranquillity of heaven.
  • Ay, beautiful! but when not...'
  • ...
  • 'Perhaps the only comfort which remains _630
  • Is the unheeded clanking of my chains,
  • The which I make, and call it melody.'
  • NOTES:
  • _45 may Hunt manuscript; can 1824.
  • _99 a one Hunt manuscript; an one 1824.
  • _105 sunk Hunt manuscript; sank 1824.
  • _108 ever Hunt manuscript; even 1824.
  • _119 in Hunt manuscript; from 1824.
  • _124 a Hunt manuscript; an 1824.
  • _171 That Hunt manuscript; Which 1824.
  • _175 mind Hunt manuscript; minds 1824.
  • _179 know 1824; see Hunt manuscript.
  • _188 those Hunt manuscript; the 1824.
  • _191 their Hunt manuscript; this 1824.
  • _218 Moons, etc., Hunt manuscript;
  • The line is wanting in editions 1824 and 1839.
  • _237 far Hunt manuscript; but 1824.
  • _270 nor Hunt manuscript; and 1824.
  • _292 cold Hunt manuscript; and 1824.
  • _318 least Hunt manuscript; last 1824.
  • _323 sweet Hunt manuscript; fresh 1824.
  • _356 have Hunt manuscript; hath 1824.
  • _361 in this keen Hunt manuscript; under this 1824.
  • _362 cry Hunt manuscript; eye 1824.
  • _372 on Hunt manuscript; in 1824.
  • _388 greet Hunt manuscript; meet 1824.
  • _390 your Hunt manuscript; thy 1824.
  • _417 his Hunt manuscript; its 1824.
  • _446 glance Hunt manuscript; glass 1824.
  • _447 with Hunt manuscript; near 1824.
  • _467 lip Hunt manuscript; life 1824.
  • _483 this Hunt manuscript; that 1824.
  • _493 I would Hunt manuscript; I'd 1824.
  • _510 despair Hunt manuscript; my care 1839.
  • _511 leant] See Editor's Note.
  • _518 were Hunt manuscript; was 1839.
  • _525 his Hunt manuscript; it 1824.
  • _530 on Hunt manuscript; in 1824.
  • _537 were now Hunt manuscript; now were 1824.
  • _588 regrets Hunt manuscript; regret 1824.
  • _569 but Hunt manuscript;
  • wanting in editions 1824 and 1839.
  • _574 his 1824; this [?] Hunt manuscript.
  • NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • From the Baths of Lucca, in 1818, Shelley visited Venice; and,
  • circumstances rendering it eligible that we should remain a few weeks
  • in the neighbourhood of that city, he accepted the offer of Lord
  • Byron, who lent him the use of a villa he rented near Este; and he
  • sent for his family from Lucca to join him.
  • I Capuccini was a villa built on the site of a Capuchin convent,
  • demolished when the French suppressed religious houses; it was
  • situated on the very overhanging brow of a low hill at the foot of a
  • range of higher ones. The house was cheerful and pleasant; a
  • vine-trellised walk, a pergola, as it is called in Italian, led from
  • the hall-door to a summer-house at the end of the garden, which
  • Shelley made his study, and in which he began the "Prometheus"; and
  • here also, as he mentions in a letter, he wrote "Julian and Maddalo".
  • A slight ravine, with a road in its depth, divided the garden from the
  • hill, on which stood the ruins of the ancient castle of Este, whose
  • dark massive wall gave forth an echo, and from whose ruined crevices
  • owls and bats flitted forth at night, as the crescent moon sunk behind
  • the black and heavy battlements. We looked from the garden over the
  • wide plain of Lombardy, bounded to the west by the far Apennines,
  • while to the east the horizon was lost in misty distance. After the
  • picturesque but limited view of mountain, ravine, and chestnut-wood,
  • at the Baths of Lucca, there was something infinitely gratifying to
  • the eye in the wide range of prospect commanded by our new abode.
  • Our first misfortune, of the kind from which we soon suffered even
  • more severely, happened here. Our little girl, an infant in whose
  • small features I fancied that I traced great resemblance to her
  • father, showed symptoms of suffering from the heat of the climate.
  • Teething increased her illness and danger. We were at Este, and when
  • we became alarmed, hastened to Venice for the best advice. When we
  • arrived at Fusina, we found that we had forgotten our passport, and
  • the soldiers on duty attempted to prevent our crossing the laguna; but
  • they could not resist Shelley's impetuosity at such a moment. We had
  • scarcely arrived at Venice before life fled from the little sufferer,
  • and we returned to Este to weep her loss.
  • After a few weeks spent in this retreat, which was interspersed by
  • visits to Venice, we proceeded southward.
  • ***
  • PROMETHEUS UNBOUND.
  • A LYRICAL DRAMA IN FOUR ACTS.
  • AUDISNE HAEC AMPHIARAE, SUB TERRAM ABDITE?
  • [Composed at Este, September, October, 1818 (Act 1); at Rome,
  • March-April 6, 1819 (Acts 2, 3); at Florence, close of 1819 (Act 4).
  • Published by C. and J. Ollier, London, summer of 1820. Sources of the
  • text are (1) edition of 1820; (2) text in "Poetical Works", 1839,
  • prepared with the aid of a list of errata in (1) written out by
  • Shelley; (3) a fair draft in Shelley's autograph, now in the Bodleian.
  • This has been carefully collated by Mr. C.D. Locock, who prints the
  • result in his "Examination of the Shelley Manuscripts in the Bodleian
  • Library", Oxford (Clarendon Press), 1903. Our text is that of 1820,
  • modified by edition 1839, and by the Bodleian fair copy. In the
  • following notes B = the Bodleian manuscript; 1820 = the editio
  • princeps, printed by Marchant for C. and J. Ollier, London; and 1839 =
  • the text as edited by Mrs. Shelley in the "Poetical Works", 1st and
  • 2nd editions, 1839. The reader should consult the notes on the Play at
  • the end of the volume.]
  • PREFACE.
  • The Greek tragic writers, in selecting as their subject any portion of
  • their national history or mythology, employed in their treatment of it
  • a certain arbitrary discretion. They by no means conceived themselves
  • bound to adhere to the common interpretation or to imitate in story as
  • in title their rivals and predecessors. Such a system would have
  • amounted to a resignation of those claims to preference over their
  • competitors which incited the composition. The Agamemnonian story was
  • exhibited on the Athenian theatre with as many variations as dramas.
  • I have presumed to employ a similar license. The "Prometheus Unbound"
  • of Aeschylus supposed the reconciliation of Jupiter with his victim as
  • the price of the disclosure of the danger threatened to his empire by
  • the consummation of his marriage with Thetis. Thetis, according to
  • this view of the subject, was given in marriage to Peleus, and
  • Prometheus, by the permission of Jupiter, delivered from his captivity
  • by Hercules. Had I framed my story on this model, I should have done
  • no more than have attempted to restore the lost drama of Aeschylus; an
  • ambition which, if my preference to this mode of treating the subject
  • had incited me to cherish, the recollection of the high comparison
  • such an attempt would challenge might well abate. But, in truth, I was
  • averse from a catastrophe so feeble as that of reconciling the
  • Champion with the Oppressor of mankind. The moral interest of the
  • fable, which is so powerfully sustained by the sufferings and
  • endurance of Prometheus, would be annihilated if we could conceive of
  • him as unsaying his high language and quailing before his successful
  • and perfidious adversary. The only imaginary being resembling in any
  • degree Prometheus, is Satan; and Prometheus is, in my judgement, a
  • more poetical character than Satan, because, in addition to courage,
  • and majesty, and firm and patient opposition to omnipotent force, he
  • is susceptible of being described as exempt from the taints of
  • ambition, envy, revenge, and a desire for personal aggrandisement,
  • which, in the Hero of "Paradise Lost", interfere with the interest.
  • The character of Satan engenders in the mind a pernicious casuistry
  • which leads us to weigh his faults with his wrongs, and to excuse the
  • former because the latter exceed all measure. In the minds of those
  • who consider that magnificent fiction with a religious feeling it
  • engenders something worse. But Prometheus is, as it were, the type of
  • the highest perfection of moral and intellectual nature, impelled by
  • the purest and the truest motives to the best and noblest ends.
  • This Poem was chiefly written upon the mountainous ruins of the Baths
  • of Caracalla, among the flowery glades, and thickets of odoriferous
  • blossoming trees, which are extended in ever winding labyrinths upon
  • its immense platforms and dizzy arches suspended in the air. The
  • bright blue sky of Rome, and the effect of the vigorous awakening
  • spring in that divinest climate, and the new life with which it
  • drenches the spirits even to intoxication, were the inspiration of
  • this drama.
  • The imagery which I have employed will be found, in many instances, to
  • have been drawn from the operations of the human mind, or from those
  • external actions by which they are expressed. This is unusual in
  • modern poetry, although Dante and Shakespeare are full of instances of
  • the same kind: Dante indeed more than any other poet, and with greater
  • success. But the Greek poets, as writers to whom no resource of
  • awakening the sympathy of their contemporaries was unknown, were in
  • the habitual use of this power; and it is the study of their works
  • (since a higher merit would probably be denied me) to which I am
  • willing that my readers should impute this singularity.
  • One word is due in candour to the degree in which the study of
  • contemporary writings may have tinged my composition, for such has
  • been a topic of censure with regard to poems far more popular, and
  • indeed more deservedly popular, than mine. It is impossible that any
  • one who inhabits the same age with such writers as those who stand in
  • the foremost ranks of our own, can conscientiously assure himself that
  • his language and tone of thought may not have been modified by the
  • study of the productions of those extraordinary intellects. It is
  • true, that, not the spirit of their genius, but the forms in which it
  • has manifested itself, are due less to the peculiarities of their own
  • minds than to the peculiarity of the moral and intellectual condition
  • of the minds among which they have been produced. Thus a number of
  • writers possess the form, whilst they want the spirit of those whom,
  • it is alleged, they imitate; because the former is the endowment of
  • the age in which they live, and the latter must be the uncommunicated
  • lightning of their own mind.
  • The peculiar style of intense and comprehensive imagery which
  • distinguishes the modern literature of England has not been, as a
  • general power, the product of the imitation of any particular writer.
  • The mass of capabilities remains at every period materially the same;
  • the circumstances which awaken it to action perpetually change. If
  • England were divided into forty republics, each equal in population
  • and extent to Athens, there is no reason to suppose but that, under
  • institutions not more perfect than those of Athens, each would produce
  • philosophers and poets equal to those who (if we except Shakespeare)
  • have never been surpassed. We owe the great writers of the golden age
  • of our literature to that fervid awakening of the public mind which
  • shook to dust the oldest and most oppressive form of the Christian
  • religion. We owe Milton to the progress and development of the same
  • spirit: the sacred Milton was, let it ever be remembered, a
  • republican, and a bold inquirer into morals and religion. The great
  • writers of our own age are, we have reason to suppose, the companions
  • and forerunners of some unimagined change in our social condition or
  • the opinions which cement it. The cloud of mind is discharging its
  • collected lightning, and the equilibrium between institutions and
  • opinions is now restoring, or is about to be restored.
  • As to imitation, poetry is a mimetic art. It creates, but it creates
  • by combination and representation. Poetical abstractions are beautiful
  • and new, not because the portions of which they are composed had no
  • previous existence in the mind of man or in nature, but because the
  • whole produced by their combination has some intelligible and
  • beautiful analogy with those sources of emotion and thought, and with
  • the contemporary condition of them: one great poet is a masterpiece of
  • nature which another not only ought to study but must study. He might
  • as wisely and as easily determine that his mind should no longer be
  • the mirror of all that is lovely in the visible universe as exclude
  • from his contemplation the beautiful which exists in the writings of a
  • great contemporary. The pretence of doing it would be a presumption in
  • any but the greatest; the effect, even in him, would be strained,
  • unnatural and ineffectual. A poet is the combined product of such
  • internal powers as modify the nature of others; and of such external
  • influences as excite and sustain these powers; he is not one, but
  • both. Every man's mind is, in this respect, modified by all the
  • objects of nature and art; by every word and every suggestion which he
  • ever admitted to act upon his consciousness; it is the mirror upon
  • which all forms are reflected, and in which they compose one form.
  • Poets, not otherwise than philosophers, painters, sculptors and
  • musicians, are, in one sense, the creators, and, in another, the
  • creations, of their age. From this subjection the loftiest do not
  • escape. There is a similarity between Homer and Hesiod, between
  • Aeschylus and Euripides, between Virgil and Horace, between Dante and
  • Petrarch, between Shakespeare and Fletcher, between Dryden and Pope;
  • each has a generic resemblance under which their specific distinctions
  • are arranged. If this similarity be the result of imitation, I am
  • willing to confess that I have imitated.
  • Let this opportunity be conceded to me of acknowledging that I have,
  • what a Scotch philosopher characteristically terms, 'a passion for
  • reforming the world:' what passion incited him to write and publish
  • his book, he omits to explain. For my part I had rather be damned with
  • Plato and Lord Bacon, than go to Heaven with Paley and Malthus. But it
  • is a mistake to suppose that I dedicate my poetical compositions
  • solely to the direct enforcement of reform, or that I consider them in
  • any degree as containing a reasoned system on the theory of human
  • life. Didactic poetry is my abhorrence; nothing can be equally well
  • expressed in prose that is not tedious and supererogatory in verse. My
  • purpose has hitherto been simply to familiarise the highly refined
  • imagination of the more select classes of poetical readers with
  • beautiful idealisms of moral excellence; aware that until the mind can
  • love, and admire, and trust, and hope, and endure, reasoned principles
  • of moral conduct are seeds cast upon the highway of life which the
  • unconscious passenger tramples into dust, although they would bear the
  • harvest of his happiness. Should I live to accomplish what I purpose,
  • that is, produce a systematical history of what appear to me to be the
  • genuine elements of human society, let not the advocates of injustice
  • and superstition flatter themselves that I should take Aeschylus
  • rather than Plato as my model.
  • The having spoken of myself with unaffected freedom will need little
  • apology with the candid; and let the uncandid consider that they
  • injure me less than their own hearts and minds by misrepresentation.
  • Whatever talents a person may possess to amuse and instruct others, be
  • they ever so inconsiderable, he is yet bound to exert them: if his
  • attempt be ineffectual, let the punishment of an unaccomplished
  • purpose have been sufficient; let none trouble themselves to heap the
  • dust of oblivion upon his efforts; the pile they raise will betray his
  • grave which might otherwise have been unknown.
  • DRAMATIS PERSONAE.
  • PROMETHEUS.
  • DEMOGORGON.
  • JUPITER.
  • THE EARTH.
  • OCEAN.
  • APOLLO.
  • MERCURY.
  • OCEANIDES: ASIA, PANTHEA, IONE.
  • HERCULES.
  • THE PHANTASM OF JUPITER.
  • THE SPIRIT OF THE EARTH.
  • THE SPIRIT OF THE MOON.
  • SPIRITS OF THE HOURS.
  • SPIRITS. ECHOES. FAUNS. FURIES.
  • ACT 1.
  • SCENE:
  • A RAVINE OF ICY ROCKS IN THE INDIAN CAUCASUS.
  • PROMETHEUS IS DISCOVERED BOUND TO THE PRECIPICE.
  • PANTEA AND IONE ARE SEATED AT HIS FEET.
  • TIME, NIGHT.
  • DURING, THE SCENE MORNING SLOWLY BREAKS.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Monarch of Gods and DAEmons, and all Spirits
  • But One, who throng those bright and rolling worlds
  • Which Thou and I alone of living things
  • Behold with sleepless eyes! regard this Earth
  • Made multitudinous with thy slaves, whom thou _5
  • Requitest for knee-worship, prayer, and praise,
  • And toil, and hecatombs of broken hearts,
  • With fear and self-contempt and barren hope.
  • Whilst me, who am thy foe, eyeless in hate,
  • Hast thou made reign and triumph, to thy scorn, _10
  • O'er mine own misery and thy vain revenge.
  • Three thousand years of sleep-unsheltered hours,
  • And moments aye divided by keen pangs
  • Till they seemed years, torture and solitude,
  • Scorn and despair,--these are mine empire:-- _15
  • More glorious far than that which thou surveyest
  • From thine unenvied throne, O Mighty God!
  • Almighty, had I deigned to share the shame
  • Of thine ill tyranny, and hung not here
  • Nailed to this wall of eagle-baffling mountain, _20
  • Black, wintry, dead, unmeasured; without herb,
  • Insect, or beast, or shape or sound of life.
  • Ah me! alas, pain, pain ever, for ever!
  • No change, no pause, no hope! Yet I endure.
  • I ask the Earth, have not the mountains felt? _25
  • I ask yon Heaven, the all-beholding Sun,
  • Has it not seen? The Sea, in storm or calm,
  • Heaven's ever-changing Shadow, spread below,
  • Have its deaf waves not heard my agony?
  • Ah me! alas, pain, pain ever, for ever! _30
  • The crawling glaciers pierce me with the spears
  • Of their moon-freezing crystals; the bright chains
  • Eat with their burning cold into my bones.
  • Heaven's winged hound, polluting from thy lips
  • His beak in poison not his own, tears up _35
  • My heart; and shapeless sights come wandering by,
  • The ghastly people of the realm of dream,
  • Mocking me: and the Earthquake-fiends are charged
  • To wrench the rivets from my quivering wounds
  • When the rocks split and close again behind: _40
  • While from their loud abysses howling throng
  • The genii of the storm, urging the rage
  • Of whirlwind, and afflict me with keen hail.
  • And yet to me welcome is day and night,
  • Whether one breaks the hoar-frost of the morn, _45
  • Or starry, dim, and slow, the other climbs
  • The leaden-coloured east; for then they lead
  • The wingless, crawling hours, one among whom
  • --As some dark Priest hales the reluctant victim--
  • Shall drag thee, cruel King, to kiss the blood _50
  • From these pale feet, which then might trample thee
  • If they disdained not such a prostrate slave.
  • Disdain! Ah, no! I pity thee. What ruin
  • Will hunt thee undefended through wide Heaven!
  • How will thy soul, cloven to its depth with terror, _55
  • Gape like a hell within! I speak in grief,
  • Not exultation, for I hate no more,
  • As then ere misery made me wise. The curse
  • Once breathed on thee I would recall. Ye Mountains,
  • Whose many-voiced Echoes, through the mist _60
  • Of cataracts, flung the thunder of that spell!
  • Ye icy Springs, stagnant with wrinkling frost,
  • Which vibrated to hear me, and then crept
  • Shuddering through India! Thou serenest Air,
  • Through which the Sun walks burning without beams! _65
  • And ye swift Whirlwinds, who on poised wings
  • Hung mute and moveless o'er yon hushed abyss,
  • As thunder, louder than your own, made rock
  • The orbed world! If then my words had power,
  • Though I am changed so that aught evil wish _70
  • Is dead within; although no memory be
  • Of what is hate, let them not lose it now!
  • What was that curse? for ye all heard me speak.
  • NOTE:
  • _54 thro' wide B; thro' the wide 1820.
  • FIRST VOICE (FROM THE MOUNTAINS):
  • Thrice three hundred thousand years
  • O'er the Earthquake's couch we stood: _75
  • Oft, as men convulsed with fears,
  • We trembled in our multitude.
  • SECOND VOICE (FROM THE SPRINGS):
  • Thunderbolts had parched our water,
  • We had been stained with bitter blood,
  • And had run mute, 'mid shrieks of slaughter, _80
  • Thro' a city and a solitude.
  • THIRD VOICE (FROM THE AIR):
  • I had clothed, since Earth uprose,
  • Its wastes in colours not their own,
  • And oft had my serene repose
  • Been cloven by many a rending groan. _85
  • FOURTH VOICE (FROM THE WHIRLWINDS):
  • We had soared beneath these mountains
  • Unresting ages; nor had thunder,
  • Nor yon volcano's flaming fountains,
  • Nor any power above or under
  • Ever made us mute with wonder. _90
  • FIRST VOICE:
  • But never bowed our snowy crest
  • As at the voice of thine unrest.
  • SECOND VOICE:
  • Never such a sound before
  • To the Indian waves we bore.
  • A pilot asleep on the howling sea _95
  • Leaped up from the deck in agony,
  • And heard, and cried, 'Ah, woe is me!'
  • And died as mad as the wild waves be.
  • THIRD VOICE:
  • By such dread words from Earth to Heaven
  • My still realm was never riven: _100
  • When its wound was closed, there stood
  • Darkness o'er the day like blood.
  • FOURTH VOICE:
  • And we shrank back: for dreams of ruin
  • To frozen caves our flight pursuing
  • Made us keep silence--thus--and thus-- _105
  • Though silence is a hell to us.
  • THE EARTH:
  • The tongueless caverns of the craggy hills
  • Cried, 'Misery!' then; the hollow Heaven replied,
  • 'Misery!' And the Ocean's purple waves,
  • Climbing the land, howled to the lashing winds, _110
  • And the pale nations heard it, 'Misery!'
  • NOTE:
  • _106 as hell 1839, B; a hell 1820.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • I hear a sound of voices: not the voice
  • Which I gave forth. Mother, thy sons and thou
  • Scorn him, without whose all-enduring will
  • Beneath the fierce omnipotence of Jove, _115
  • Both they and thou had vanished, like thin mist
  • Unrolled on the morning wind. Know ye not me,
  • The Titan? He who made his agony
  • The barrier to your else all-conquering foe?
  • Oh, rock-embosomed lawns, and snow-fed streams, _120
  • Now seen athwart frore vapours, deep below,
  • Through whose o'ershadowing woods I wandered once
  • With Asia, drinking life from her loved eyes;
  • Why scorns the spirit which informs ye, now
  • To commune with me? me alone, who checked, _125
  • As one who checks a fiend-drawn charioteer,
  • The falsehood and the force of him who reigns
  • Supreme, and with the groans of pining slaves
  • Fills your dim glens and liquid wildernesses:
  • Why answer ye not, still? Brethren!
  • THE EARTH:
  • They dare not. _130
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Who dares? for I would hear that curse again.
  • Ha, what an awful whisper rises up!
  • 'Tis scarce like sound: it tingles through the frame
  • As lightning tingles, hovering ere it strike.
  • Speak, Spirit! from thine inorganic voice _135
  • I only know that thou art moving near
  • And love. How cursed I him?
  • THE EARTH:
  • How canst thou hear
  • Who knowest not the language of the dead?
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Thou art a living spirit; speak as they.
  • THE EARTH:
  • I dare not speak like life, lest Heaven's fell King _140
  • Should hear, and link me to some wheel of pain
  • More torturing than the one whereon I roll.
  • Subtle thou art and good; and though the Gods
  • Hear not this voice, yet thou art more than God,
  • Being wise and kind: earnestly hearken now. _145
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Obscurely through my brain, like shadows dim,
  • Sweep awful thoughts, rapid and thick. I feel
  • Faint, like one mingled in entwining love;
  • Yet 'tis not pleasure.
  • THE EARTH:
  • No, thou canst not hear:
  • Thou art immortal, and this tongue is known _150
  • Only to those who die.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • And what art thou,
  • O, melancholy Voice?
  • THE EARTH:
  • I am the Earth,
  • Thy mother; she within whose stony veins,
  • To the last fibre of the loftiest tree
  • Whose thin leaves trembled in the frozen air, _155
  • Joy ran, as blood within a living frame,
  • When thou didst from her bosom, like a cloud
  • Of glory, arise, a spirit of keen joy!
  • And at thy voice her pining sons uplifted
  • Their prostrate brows from the polluting dust, _160
  • And our almighty Tyrant with fierce dread
  • Grew pale, until his thunder chained thee here.
  • Then, see those million worlds which burn and roll
  • Around us: their inhabitants beheld
  • My sphered light wane in wide Heaven; the sea _165
  • Was lifted by strange tempest, and new fire
  • From earthquake-rifted mountains of bright snow
  • Shook its portentous hair beneath Heaven's frown;
  • Lightning and Inundation vexed the plains;
  • Blue thistles bloomed in cities; foodless toads _170
  • Within voluptuous chambers panting crawled:
  • When Plague had fallen on man, and beast, and worm,
  • And Famine; and black blight on herb and tree;
  • And in the corn, and vines, and meadow-grass,
  • Teemed ineradicable poisonous weeds _175
  • Draining their growth, for my wan breast was dry
  • With grief; and the thin air, my breath, was stained
  • With the contagion of a mother's hate
  • Breathed on her child's destroyer; ay, I heard
  • Thy curse, the which, if thou rememberest not, _180
  • Yet my innumerable seas and streams,
  • Mountains, and caves, and winds, and yon wide air,
  • And the inarticulate people of the dead,
  • Preserve, a treasured spell. We meditate
  • In secret joy and hope those dreadful words, _185
  • But dare not speak them.
  • NOTE:
  • _137 And love 1820; And lovest cj. Swinburne.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Venerable mother!
  • All else who live and suffer take from thee
  • Some comfort; flowers, and fruits, and happy sounds,
  • And love, though fleeting; these may not be mine.
  • But mine own words, I pray, deny me not. _190
  • THE EARTH:
  • They shall be told. Ere Babylon was dust,
  • The Magus Zoroaster, my dead child,
  • Met his own image walking in the garden.
  • That apparition, sole of men, he saw.
  • For know there are two worlds of life and death: _195
  • One that which thou beholdest; but the other
  • Is underneath the grave, where do inhabit
  • The shadows of all forms that think and live
  • Till death unite them and they part no more;
  • Dreams and the light imaginings of men, _200
  • And all that faith creates or love desires,
  • Terrible, strange, sublime and beauteous shapes.
  • There thou art, and dost hang, a writhing shade,
  • 'Mid whirlwind-peopled mountains; all the gods
  • Are there, and all the powers of nameless worlds, _205
  • Vast, sceptred phantoms; heroes, men, and beasts;
  • And Demogorgon, a tremendous gloom;
  • And he, the supreme Tyrant, on his throne
  • Of burning gold. Son, one of these shall utter
  • The curse which all remember. Call at will _210
  • Thine own ghost, or the ghost of Jupiter,
  • Hades or Typhon, or what mightier Gods
  • From all-prolific Evil, since thy ruin,
  • Have sprung, and trampled on my prostrate sons.
  • Ask, and they must reply: so the revenge _215
  • Of the Supreme may sweep through vacant shades,
  • As rainy wind through the abandoned gate
  • Of a fallen palace.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Mother, let not aught
  • Of that which may be evil, pass again
  • My lips, or those of aught resembling me. _220
  • Phantasm of Jupiter, arise, appear!
  • IONE:
  • My wings are folded o'er mine ears:
  • My wings are crossed o'er mine eyes:
  • Yet through their silver shade appears,
  • And through their lulling plumes arise, _225
  • A Shape, a throng of sounds;
  • May it be no ill to thee
  • O thou of many wounds!
  • Near whom, for our sweet sister's sake,
  • Ever thus we watch and wake. _230
  • PANTHEA:
  • The sound is of whirlwind underground,
  • Earthquake, and fire, and mountains cloven;
  • The shape is awful like the sound,
  • Clothed in dark purple, star-inwoven.
  • A sceptre of pale gold _235
  • To stay steps proud, o'er the slow cloud
  • His veined hand doth hold.
  • Cruel he looks, but calm and strong,
  • Like one who does, not suffers wrong.
  • PHANTASM OF JUPITER:
  • Why have the secret powers of this strange world _240
  • Driven me, a frail and empty phantom, hither
  • On direst storms? What unaccustomed sounds
  • Are hovering on my lips, unlike the voice
  • With which our pallid race hold ghastly talk
  • In darkness? And, proud sufferer, who art thou? _245
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Tremendous Image, as thou art must be
  • He whom thou shadowest forth. I am his foe,
  • The Titan. Speak the words which I would hear,
  • Although no thought inform thine empty voice.
  • THE EARTH:
  • Listen! And though your echoes must be mute, _250
  • Grey mountains, and old woods, and haunted springs,
  • Prophetic caves, and isle-surrounding streams,
  • Rejoice to hear what yet ye cannot speak.
  • PHANTASM:
  • A spirit seizes me and speaks within:
  • It tears me as fire tears a thunder-cloud. _255
  • PANTHEA:
  • See, how he lifts his mighty looks, the Heaven
  • Darkens above.
  • IONE:
  • He speaks! O shelter me!
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • I see the curse on gestures proud and cold,
  • And looks of firm defiance, and calm hate,
  • And such despair as mocks itself with smiles, _260
  • Written as on a scroll: yet speak! Oh, speak!
  • PHANTASM:
  • Fiend, I defy thee! with a calm, fixed mind,
  • All that thou canst inflict I bid thee do;
  • Foul Tyrant both of Gods and Humankind,
  • One only being shalt thou not subdue. _265
  • Rain then thy plagues upon me here,
  • Ghastly disease, and frenzying fear;
  • And let alternate frost and fire
  • Eat into me, and be thine ire
  • Lightning, and cutting hail, and legioned forms _270
  • Of furies, driving by upon the wounding storms.
  • Ay, do thy worst. Thou art omnipotent.
  • O'er all things but thyself I gave thee power,
  • And my own will. Be thy swift mischiefs sent
  • To blast mankind, from yon ethereal tower. _275
  • Let thy malignant spirit move
  • In darkness over those I love:
  • On me and mine I imprecate
  • The utmost torture of thy hate;
  • And thus devote to sleepless agony, _280
  • This undeclining head while thou must reign on high.
  • But thou, who art the God and Lord: O, thou,
  • Who fillest with thy soul this world of woe,
  • To whom all things of Earth and Heaven do bow
  • In fear and worship: all-prevailing foe! _285
  • I curse thee! let a sufferer's curse
  • Clasp thee, his torturer, like remorse;
  • Till thine Infinity shall be
  • A robe of envenomed agony;
  • And thine Omnipotence a crown of pain, _290
  • To cling like burning gold round thy dissolving brain.
  • Heap on thy soul, by virtue of this Curse,
  • Ill deeds, then be thou damned, beholding good;
  • Both infinite as is the universe,
  • And thou, and thy self-torturing solitude. _295
  • An awful image of calm power
  • Though now thou sittest, let the hour
  • Come, when thou must appear to be
  • That which thou art internally;
  • And after many a false and fruitless crime _300
  • Scorn track thy lagging fall through boundless space and time.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Were these my words, O Parent?
  • THE EARTH:
  • They were thine.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • It doth repent me: words are quick and vain;
  • Grief for awhile is blind, and so was mine.
  • I wish no living thing to suffer pain. _305
  • THE EARTH:
  • Misery, Oh misery to me,
  • That Jove at length should vanquish thee.
  • Wail, howl aloud, Land and Sea,
  • The Earth's rent heart shall answer ye.
  • Howl, Spirits of the living and the dead, _310
  • Your refuge, your defence, lies fallen and vanquished.
  • FIRST ECHO:
  • Lies fallen and vanquished!
  • SECOND ECHO:
  • Fallen and vanquished!
  • IONE:
  • Fear not: 'tis but some passing spasm,
  • The Titan is unvanquished still. _315
  • But see, where through the azure chasm
  • Of yon forked and snowy hill
  • Trampling the slant winds on high
  • With golden-sandalled feet, that glow
  • Under plumes of purple dye, _320
  • Like rose-ensanguined ivory,
  • A Shape comes now,
  • Stretching on high from his right hand
  • A serpent-cinctured wand.
  • PANTHEA:
  • 'Tis Jove's world-wandering herald, Mercury. _325
  • IONE:
  • And who are those with hydra tresses
  • And iron wings that climb the wind,
  • Whom the frowning God represses
  • Like vapours steaming up behind,
  • Clanging loud, an endless crowd-- _330
  • PANTHEA:
  • These are Jove's tempest-walking hounds,
  • Whom he gluts with groans and blood,
  • When charioted on sulphurous cloud
  • He bursts Heaven's bounds.
  • IONE:
  • Are they now led, from the thin dead _335
  • On new pangs to be fed?
  • PANTHEA:
  • The Titan looks as ever, firm, not proud.
  • FIRST FURY:
  • Ha! I scent life!
  • SECOND FURY:
  • Let me but look into his eyes!
  • THIRD FURY:
  • The hope of torturing him smells like a heap
  • Of corpses, to a death-bird after battle. _340
  • FIRST FURY:
  • Darest thou delay, O Herald! take cheer, Hounds
  • Of Hell: what if the Son of Maia soon
  • Should make us food and sport--who can please long
  • The Omnipotent?
  • MERCURY:
  • Back to your towers of iron,
  • And gnash, beside the streams of fire and wail, _345
  • Your foodless teeth. Geryon, arise! and Gorgon,
  • Chimaera, and thou Sphinx, subtlest of fiends
  • Who ministered to Thebes Heaven's poisoned wine,
  • Unnatural love, and more unnatural hate:
  • These shall perform your task.
  • FIRST FURY:
  • Oh, mercy! mercy! _350
  • We die with our desire: drive us not back!
  • MERCURY:
  • Crouch then in silence.
  • Awful Sufferer!
  • To thee unwilling, most unwillingly
  • I come, by the great Father's will driven down,
  • To execute a doom of new revenge. _355
  • Alas! I pity thee, and hate myself
  • That I can do no more: aye from thy sight
  • Returning, for a season, Heaven seems Hell,
  • So thy worn form pursues me night and day,
  • Smiling reproach. Wise art thou, firm and good, _360
  • But vainly wouldst stand forth alone in strife
  • Against the Omnipotent; as yon clear lamps
  • That measure and divide the weary years
  • From which there is no refuge, long have taught
  • And long must teach. Even now thy Torturer arms _365
  • With the strange might of unimagined pains
  • The powers who scheme slow agonies in Hell,
  • And my commission is to lead them here,
  • Or what more subtle, foul, or savage fiends
  • People the abyss, and leave them to their task. _370
  • Be it not so! there is a secret known
  • To thee, and to none else of living things,
  • Which may transfer the sceptre of wide Heaven,
  • The fear of which perplexes the Supreme:
  • Clothe it in words, and bid it clasp his throne _375
  • In intercession; bend thy soul in prayer,
  • And like a suppliant in some gorgeous fane,
  • Let the will kneel within thy haughty heart:
  • For benefits and meek submission tame
  • The fiercest and the mightiest.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Evil minds _380
  • Change good to their own nature. I gave all
  • He has; and in return he chains me here
  • Years, ages, night and day: whether the Sun
  • Split my parched skin, or in the moony night
  • The crystal-winged snow cling round my hair: _385
  • Whilst my beloved race is trampled down
  • By his thought-executing ministers.
  • Such is the tyrant's recompense: 'tis just:
  • He who is evil can receive no good;
  • And for a world bestowed, or a friend lost, _390
  • He can feel hate, fear, shame; not gratitude:
  • He but requites me for his own misdeed.
  • Kindness to such is keen reproach, which breaks
  • With bitter stings the light sleep of Revenge.
  • Submission, thou dost know I cannot try: _395
  • For what submission but that fatal word,
  • The death-seal of mankind's captivity,
  • Like the Sicilian's hair-suspended sword,
  • Which trembles o'er his crown, would he accept,
  • Or could I yield? Which yet I will not yield. _400
  • Let others flatter Crime, where it sits throned
  • In brief Omnipotence: secure are they:
  • For Justice, when triumphant, will weep down
  • Pity, not punishment, on her own wrongs,
  • Too much avenged by those who err. I wait, _405
  • Enduring thus, the retributive hour
  • Which since we spake is even nearer now.
  • But hark, the hell-hounds clamour: fear delay:
  • Behold! Heaven lowers under thy Father's frown.
  • MERCURY:
  • Oh, that we might be spared; I to inflict _410
  • And thou to suffer! Once more answer me:
  • Thou knowest not the period of Jove's power?
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • I know but this, that it must come.
  • MERCURY:
  • Alas!
  • Thou canst not count thy years to come of pain?
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • They last while Jove must reign: nor more, nor less _415
  • Do I desire or fear.
  • MERCURY:
  • Yet pause, and plunge
  • Into Eternity, where recorded time,
  • Even all that we imagine, age on age,
  • Seems but a point, and the reluctant mind
  • Flags wearily in its unending flight, _420
  • Till it sink, dizzy, blind, lost, shelterless;
  • Perchance it has not numbered the slow years
  • Which thou must spend in torture, unreprieved?
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Perchance no thought can count them, yet they pass.
  • MERCURY:
  • If thou might'st dwell among the Gods the while
  • Lapped in voluptuous joy? _425
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • I would not quit
  • This bleak ravine, these unrepentant pains.
  • MERCURY:
  • Alas! I wonder at, yet pity thee.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Pity the self-despising slaves of Heaven,
  • Not me, within whose mind sits peace serene. _430
  • As light in the sun, throned: how vain is talk!
  • Call up the fiends.
  • IONE:
  • O, sister, look! White fire
  • Has cloven to the roots yon huge snow-loaded cedar;
  • How fearfully God's thunder howls behind!
  • MERCURY:
  • I must obey his words and thine: alas! _435
  • Most heavily remorse hangs at my heart!
  • PANTHEA:
  • See where the child of Heaven, with winged feet,
  • Runs down the slanted sunlight of the dawn.
  • IONE:
  • Dear sister, close thy plumes over thine eyes
  • Lest thou behold and die: they come: they come _440
  • Blackening the birth of day with countless wings,
  • And hollow underneath, like death.
  • FIRST FURY:
  • Prometheus!
  • SECOND FURY:
  • Immortal Titan!
  • THIRD FURY:
  • Champion of Heaven's slaves!
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • He whom some dreadful voice invokes is here,
  • Prometheus, the chained Titan. Horrible forms, _445
  • What and who are ye? Never yet there came
  • Phantasms so foul through monster-teeming Hell
  • From the all-miscreative brain of Jove;
  • Whilst I behold such execrable shapes,
  • Methinks I grow like what I contemplate, _450
  • And laugh and stare in loathsome sympathy.
  • FIRST FURY:
  • We are the ministers of pain, and fear,
  • And disappointment, and mistrust, and hate,
  • And clinging crime; and as lean dogs pursue
  • Through wood and lake some struck and sobbing fawn, _455
  • We track all things that weep, and bleed, and live,
  • When the great King betrays them to our will.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Oh! many fearful natures in one name,
  • I know ye; and these lakes and echoes know
  • The darkness and the clangour of your wings. _460
  • But why more hideous than your loathed selves
  • Gather ye up in legions from the deep?
  • SECOND FURY:
  • We knew not that: Sisters, rejoice, rejoice!
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Can aught exult in its deformity?
  • SECOND FURY:
  • The beauty of delight makes lovers glad, _465
  • Gazing on one another: so are we.
  • As from the rose which the pale priestess kneels
  • To gather for her festal crown of flowers
  • The aereal crimson falls, flushing her cheek,
  • So from our victim's destined agony _470
  • The shade which is our form invests us round,
  • Else we are shapeless as our mother Night.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • I laugh your power, and his who sent you here,
  • To lowest scorn. Pour forth the cup of pain.
  • FIRST FURY:
  • Thou thinkest we will rend thee bone from bone, _475
  • And nerve from nerve, working like fire within?
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Pain is my element, as hate is thine;
  • Ye rend me now; I care not.
  • SECOND FURY:
  • Dost imagine
  • We will but laugh into thy lidless eyes?
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • I weigh not what ye do, but what ye suffer, _480
  • Being evil. Cruel was the power which called
  • You, or aught else so wretched, into light.
  • THIRD FURY:
  • Thou think'st we will live through thee, one by one,
  • Like animal life, and though we can obscure not
  • The soul which burns within, that we will dwell _485
  • Beside it, like a vain loud multitude
  • Vexing the self-content of wisest men:
  • That we will be dread thought beneath thy brain,
  • And foul desire round thine astonished heart,
  • And blood within thy labyrinthine veins _490
  • Crawling like agony?
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Why, ye are thus now;
  • Yet am I king over myself, and rule
  • The torturing and conflicting throngs within,
  • As Jove rules you when Hell grows mutinous.
  • CHORUS OF FURIES:
  • From the ends of the earth, from the ends of the earth, _495
  • Where the night has its grave and the morning its birth,
  • Come, come, come!
  • Oh, ye who shake hills with the scream of your mirth,
  • When cities sink howling in ruin; and ye
  • Who with wingless footsteps trample the sea, _500
  • And close upon Shipwreck and Famine's track,
  • Sit chattering with joy on the foodless wreck;
  • Come, come, come!
  • Leave the bed, low, cold, and red,
  • Strewed beneath a nation dead; _505
  • Leave the hatred, as in ashes
  • Fire is left for future burning:
  • It will burst in bloodier flashes
  • When ye stir it, soon returning:
  • Leave the self-contempt implanted _510
  • In young spirits, sense-enchanted,
  • Misery's yet unkindled fuel:
  • Leave Hell's secrets half unchanted
  • To the maniac dreamer; cruel
  • More than ye can be with hate _515
  • Is he with fear.
  • Come, come, come!
  • We are steaming up from Hell's wide gate
  • And we burthen the blast of the atmosphere,
  • But vainly we toil till ye come here. _520
  • IONE:
  • Sister, I hear the thunder of new wings.
  • PANTHEA:
  • These solid mountains quiver with the sound
  • Even as the tremulous air: their shadows make
  • The space within my plumes more black than night.
  • FIRST FURY:
  • Your call was as a winged car, _525
  • Driven on whirlwinds fast and far;
  • It rapped us from red gulfs of war.
  • SECOND FURY:
  • From wide cities, famine-wasted;
  • THIRD FURY:
  • Groans half heard, and blood untasted;
  • FOURTH FURY:
  • Kingly conclaves stern and cold, _530
  • Where blood with gold is bought and sold;
  • FIFTH FURY:
  • From the furnace, white and hot,
  • In which--
  • A FURY:
  • Speak not: whisper not:
  • I know all that ye would tell,
  • But to speak might break the spell _535
  • Which must bend the Invincible,
  • The stern of thought;
  • He yet defies the deepest power of Hell.
  • FURY:
  • Tear the veil!
  • ANOTHER FURY:
  • It is torn.
  • CHORUS:
  • The pale stars of the morn
  • Shine on a misery, dire to be borne. _540
  • Dost thou faint, mighty Titan? We laugh thee to scorn.
  • Dost thou boast the clear knowledge thou waken'dst for man?
  • Then was kindled within him a thirst which outran
  • Those perishing waters; a thirst of fierce fever,
  • Hope, love, doubt, desire, which consume him for ever. _545
  • One came forth of gentle worth
  • Smiling on the sanguine earth;
  • His words outlived him, like swift poison
  • Withering up truth, peace, and pity.
  • Look! where round the wide horizon _550
  • Many a million-peopled city
  • Vomits smoke in the bright air.
  • Mark that outcry of despair!
  • 'Tis his mild and gentle ghost
  • Wailing for the faith he kindled: _555
  • Look again, the flames almost
  • To a glow-worm's lamp have dwindled:
  • The survivors round the embers
  • Gather in dread.
  • Joy, joy, joy! _560
  • Past ages crowd on thee, but each one remembers,
  • And the future is dark, and the present is spread
  • Like a pillow of thorns for thy slumberless head.
  • NOTE:
  • _553 Hark B; Mark 1820.
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Drops of bloody agony flow
  • From his white and quivering brow. _565
  • Grant a little respite now:
  • See a disenchanted nation
  • Springs like day from desolation;
  • To Truth its state is dedicate,
  • And Freedom leads it forth, her mate; _570
  • A legioned band of linked brothers
  • Whom Love calls children--
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • 'Tis another's:
  • See how kindred murder kin:
  • 'Tis the vintage-time for death and sin:
  • Blood, like new wine, bubbles within: _575
  • Till Despair smothers
  • The struggling world, which slaves and tyrants win.
  • [ALL THE FURIES VANISH, EXCEPT ONE.]
  • IONE:
  • Hark, sister! what a low yet dreadful groan
  • Quite unsuppressed is tearing up the heart
  • Of the good Titan, as storms tear the deep, _580
  • And beasts hear the sea moan in inland caves.
  • Darest thou observe how the fiends torture him?
  • PANTHEA:
  • Alas! I looked forth twice, but will no more.
  • IONE:
  • What didst thou see?
  • PANTHEA:
  • A woful sight: a youth
  • With patient looks nailed to a crucifix. _585
  • IONE:
  • What next?
  • PANTHEA:
  • The heaven around, the earth below
  • Was peopled with thick shapes of human death,
  • All horrible, and wrought by human hands,
  • And some appeared the work of human hearts,
  • For men were slowly killed by frowns and smiles: _590
  • And other sights too foul to speak and live
  • Were wandering by. Let us not tempt worse fear
  • By looking forth: those groans are grief enough.
  • NOTE:
  • _589 And 1820; Tho' B.
  • FURY:
  • Behold an emblem: those who do endure
  • Deep wrongs for man, and scorn, and chains, but heap _595
  • Thousand-fold torment on themselves and him.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Remit the anguish of that lighted stare;
  • Close those wan lips; let that thorn-wounded brow
  • Stream not with blood; it mingles with thy tears!
  • Fix, fix those tortured orbs in peace and death, _600
  • So thy sick throes shake not that crucifix,
  • So those pale fingers play not with thy gore.
  • O, horrible! Thy name I will not speak,
  • It hath become a curse. I see, I see
  • The wise, the mild, the lofty, and the just, _605
  • Whom thy slaves hate for being like to thee,
  • Some hunted by foul lies from their heart's home,
  • An early-chosen, late-lamented home;
  • As hooded ounces cling to the driven hind;
  • Some linked to corpses in unwholesome cells: _610
  • Some--Hear I not the multitude laugh loud?--
  • Impaled in lingering fire: and mighty realms
  • Float by my feet, like sea-uprooted isles,
  • Whose sons are kneaded down in common blood
  • By the red light of their own burning homes. _615
  • FURY:
  • Blood thou canst see, and fire; and canst hear groans;
  • Worse things unheard, unseen, remain behind.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Worse?
  • FURY:
  • In each human heart terror survives
  • The ravin it has gorged: the loftiest fear
  • All that they would disdain to think were true: _620
  • Hypocrisy and custom make their minds
  • The fanes of many a worship, now outworn.
  • They dare not devise good for man's estate,
  • And yet they know not that they do not dare.
  • The good want power, but to weep barren tears. _625
  • The powerful goodness want: worse need for them.
  • The wise want love; and those who love want wisdom;
  • And all best things are thus confused to ill.
  • Many are strong and rich, and would be just,
  • But live among their suffering fellow-men _630
  • As if none felt: they know not what they do.
  • NOTE:
  • _619 ravin B, edition 1839; ruin 1820.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Thy words are like a cloud of winged snakes;
  • And yet I pity those they torture not.
  • FURY:
  • Thou pitiest them? I speak no more!
  • [VANISHES.]
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Ah woe!
  • Ah woe! Alas! pain, pain ever, for ever! _635
  • I close my tearless eyes, but see more clear
  • Thy works within my woe-illumed mind,
  • Thou subtle tyrant! Peace is in the grave.
  • The grave hides all things beautiful and good:
  • I am a God and cannot find it there, _640
  • Nor would I seek it: for, though dread revenge,
  • This is defeat, fierce king, not victory.
  • The sights with which thou torturest gird my soul
  • With new endurance, till the hour arrives
  • When they shall be no types of things which are. _645
  • PANTHEA:
  • Alas! what sawest thou more?
  • NOTE:
  • _646 thou more? B; thou? 1820.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • There are two woes:
  • To speak, and to behold; thou spare me one.
  • Names are there, Nature's sacred watchwords, they
  • Were borne aloft in bright emblazonry;
  • The nations thronged around, and cried aloud, _650
  • As with one voice, Truth, liberty, and love!
  • Suddenly fierce confusion fell from heaven
  • Among them: there was strife, deceit, and fear:
  • Tyrants rushed in, and did divide the spoil.
  • This was the shadow of the truth I saw. _655
  • THE EARTH:
  • I felt thy torture, son; with such mixed joy
  • As pain and virtue give. To cheer thy state
  • I bid ascend those subtle and fair spirits,
  • Whose homes are the dim caves of human thought,
  • And who inhabit, as birds wing the wind, _660
  • Its world-surrounding aether: they behold
  • Beyond that twilight realm, as in a glass,
  • The future: may they speak comfort to thee!
  • PANTHEA:
  • Look, sister, where a troop of spirits gather,
  • Like flocks of clouds in spring's delightful weather, _665
  • Thronging in the blue air!
  • IONE:
  • And see! more come,
  • Like fountain-vapours when the winds are dumb,
  • That climb up the ravine in scattered lines.
  • And, hark! is it the music of the pines?
  • Is it the lake? Is it the waterfall? _670
  • PANTHEA:
  • 'Tis something sadder, sweeter far than all.
  • CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
  • From unremembered ages we
  • Gentle guides and guardians be
  • Of heaven-oppressed mortality;
  • And we breathe, and sicken not, _675
  • The atmosphere of human thought:
  • Be it dim, and dank, and gray,
  • Like a storm-extinguished day,
  • Travelled o'er by dying gleams;
  • Be it bright as all between _680
  • Cloudless skies and windless streams,
  • Silent, liquid, and serene;
  • As the birds within the wind,
  • As the fish within the wave,
  • As the thoughts of man's own mind _685
  • Float through all above the grave;
  • We make there our liquid lair,
  • Voyaging cloudlike and unpent
  • Through the boundless element:
  • Thence we bear the prophecy _690
  • Which begins and ends in thee!
  • NOTE:
  • _687 there B, edition 1839; these 1820.
  • IONE:
  • More yet come, one by one: the air around them
  • Looks radiant as the air around a star.
  • FIRST SPIRIT:
  • On a battle-trumpet's blast
  • I fled hither, fast, fast, fast, _695
  • 'Mid the darkness upward cast.
  • From the dust of creeds outworn,
  • From the tyrant's banner torn,
  • Gathering 'round me, onward borne,
  • There was mingled many a cry-- _700
  • Freedom! Hope! Death! Victory!
  • Till they faded through the sky;
  • And one sound, above, around,
  • One sound beneath, around, above,
  • Was moving; 'twas the soul of Love; _705
  • 'Twas the hope, the prophecy,
  • Which begins and ends in thee.
  • SECOND SPIRIT:
  • A rainbow's arch stood on the sea,
  • Which rocked beneath, immovably;
  • And the triumphant storm did flee, _710
  • Like a conqueror, swift and proud,
  • Between, with many a captive cloud,
  • A shapeless, dark and rapid crowd,
  • Each by lightning riven in half:
  • I heard the thunder hoarsely laugh: _715
  • Mighty fleets were strewn like chaff
  • And spread beneath a hell of death
  • O'er the white waters. I alit
  • On a great ship lightning-split,
  • And speeded hither on the sigh _720
  • Of one who gave an enemy
  • His plank, then plunged aside to die.
  • THIRD SPIRIT:
  • I sate beside a sage's bed,
  • And the lamp was burning red
  • Near the book where he had fed, _725
  • When a Dream with plumes of flame,
  • To his pillow hovering came,
  • And I knew it was the same
  • Which had kindled long ago
  • Pity, eloquence, and woe; _730
  • And the world awhile below
  • Wore the shade, its lustre made.
  • It has borne me here as fleet
  • As Desire's lightning feet:
  • I must ride it back ere morrow, _735
  • Or the sage will wake in sorrow.
  • FOURTH SPIRIT:
  • On a poet's lips I slept
  • Dreaming like a love-adept
  • In the sound his breathing kept;
  • Nor seeks nor finds he mortal blisses, _740
  • But feeds on the aereal kisses
  • Of shapes that haunt thought's wildernesses.
  • He will watch from dawn to gloom
  • The lake-reflected sun illume
  • The yellow bees in the ivy-bloom, _745
  • Nor heed nor see, what things they be;
  • But from these create he can
  • Forms more real than living man,
  • Nurslings of immortality!
  • One of these awakened me, _750
  • And I sped to succour thee.
  • IONE:
  • Behold'st thou not two shapes from the east and west
  • Come, as two doves to one beloved nest,
  • Twin nurslings of the all-sustaining air
  • On swift still wings glide down the atmosphere? _755
  • And, hark! their sweet sad voices! 'tis despair
  • Mingled with love and then dissolved in sound.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Canst thou speak, sister? all my words are drowned.
  • IONE:
  • Their beauty gives me voice. See how they float
  • On their sustaining wings of skiey grain, _760
  • Orange and azure deepening into gold:
  • Their soft smiles light the air like a star's fire.
  • CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
  • Hast thou beheld the form of Love?
  • FIFTH SPIRIT:
  • As over wide dominions
  • I sped, like some swift cloud that wings the wide air's wildernesses,
  • That planet-crested shape swept by on lightning-braided pinions, _765
  • Scattering the liquid joy of life from his ambrosial tresses:
  • His footsteps paved the world with light; but as I passed 'twas fading,
  • And hollow Ruin yawned behind: great sages bound in madness,
  • And headless patriots, and pale youths who perished, unupbraiding,
  • Gleamed in the night. I wandered o'er, till thou, O King of sadness, _770
  • Turned by thy smile the worst I saw to recollected gladness.
  • SIXTH SPIRIT:
  • Ah, sister! Desolation is a delicate thing:
  • It walks not on the earth, it floats not on the air,
  • But treads with lulling footstep, and fans with silent wing
  • The tender hopes which in their hearts the best and gentlest bear; _775
  • Who, soothed to false repose by the fanning plumes above
  • And the music-stirring motion of its soft and busy feet,
  • Dream visions of aereal joy, and call the monster, Love,
  • And wake, and find the shadow Pain, as he whom now we greet.
  • NOTE:
  • _774 lulling B; silent 1820.
  • CHORUS:
  • Though Ruin now Love's shadow be, _780
  • Following him, destroyingly,
  • On Death's white and winged steed,
  • Which the fleetest cannot flee,
  • Trampling down both flower and weed,
  • Man and beast, and foul and fair, _785
  • Like a tempest through the air;
  • Thou shalt quell this horseman grim,
  • Woundless though in heart or limb.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Spirits! how know ye this shall be?
  • CHORUS:
  • In the atmosphere we breathe, _790
  • As buds grow red when the snow-storms flee,
  • From Spring gathering up beneath,
  • Whose mild winds shake the elder-brake,
  • And the wandering herdsmen know
  • That the white-thorn soon will blow: _795
  • Wisdom, Justice, Love, and Peace,
  • When they struggle to increase,
  • Are to us as soft winds be
  • To shepherd boys, the prophecy
  • Which begins and ends in thee. _800
  • IONE:
  • Where are the Spirits fled?
  • PANTHEA:
  • Only a sense
  • Remains of them, like the omnipotence
  • Of music, when the inspired voice and lute
  • Languish, ere yet the responses are mute,
  • Which through the deep and labyrinthine soul, _805
  • Like echoes through long caverns, wind and roll.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • How fair these airborn shapes! and yet I feel
  • Most vain all hope but love; and thou art far,
  • Asia! who, when my being overflowed,
  • Wert like a golden chalice to bright wine _810
  • Which else had sunk into the thirsty dust.
  • All things are still: alas! how heavily
  • This quiet morning weighs upon my heart;
  • Though I should dream I could even sleep with grief
  • If slumber were denied not. I would fain _815
  • Be what it is my destiny to be,
  • The saviour and the strength of suffering man,
  • Or sink into the original gulf of things:
  • There is no agony, and no solace left;
  • Earth can console, Heaven can torment no more. _820
  • PANTHEA:
  • Hast thou forgotten one who watches thee
  • The cold dark night, and never sleeps but when
  • The shadow of thy spirit falls on her?
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • I said all hope was vain but love: thou lovest.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Deeply in truth; but the eastern star looks white, _825
  • And Asia waits in that far Indian vale,
  • The scene of her sad exile; rugged once
  • And desolate and frozen, like this ravine;
  • But now invested with fair flowers and herbs,
  • And haunted by sweet airs and sounds, which flow _830
  • Among the woods and waters, from the aether
  • Of her transforming presence, which would fade
  • If it were mingled not with thine. Farewell!
  • END OF ACT 1.
  • ACT 2.
  • SCENE 2.1:
  • MORNING.
  • A LOVELY VALE IN THE INDIAN CAUCASUS.
  • ASIA, ALONE.
  • ASIA:
  • From all the blasts of heaven thou hast descended:
  • Yes, like a spirit, like a thought, which makes
  • Unwonted tears throng to the horny eyes,
  • And beatings haunt the desolated heart,
  • Which should have learnt repose: thou hast descended _5
  • Cradled in tempests; thou dost wake, O Spring!
  • O child of many winds! As suddenly
  • Thou comest as the memory of a dream,
  • Which now is sad because it hath been sweet;
  • Like genius, or like joy which riseth up _10
  • As from the earth, clothing with golden clouds
  • The desert of our life.
  • This is the season, this the day, the hour;
  • At sunrise thou shouldst come, sweet sister mine,
  • Too long desired, too long delaying, come! _15
  • How like death-worms the wingless moments crawl!
  • The point of one white star is quivering still
  • Deep in the orange light of widening morn
  • Beyond the purple mountains: through a chasm
  • Of wind-divided mist the darker lake _20
  • Reflects it: now it wanes: it gleams again
  • As the waves fade, and as the burning threads
  • Of woven cloud unravel in pale air:
  • 'Tis lost! and through yon peaks of cloud-like snow
  • The roseate sunlight quivers: hear I not _25
  • The Aeolian music of her sea-green plumes
  • Winnowing the crimson dawn?
  • PANTHEA [ENTERS]:
  • I feel, I see
  • Those eyes which burn through smiles that fade in tears,
  • Like stars half quenched in mists of silver dew.
  • Beloved and most beautiful, who wearest _30
  • The shadow of that soul by which I live,
  • How late thou art! the sphered sun had climbed
  • The sea; my heart was sick with hope, before
  • The printless air felt thy belated plumes.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Pardon, great Sister! but my wings were faint _35
  • With the delight of a remembered dream,
  • As are the noontide plumes of summer winds
  • Satiate with sweet flowers. I was wont to sleep
  • Peacefully, and awake refreshed and calm
  • Before the sacred Titan's fall, and thy _40
  • Unhappy love, had made, through use and pity,
  • Both love and woe familiar to my heart
  • As they had grown to thine: erewhile I slept
  • Under the glaucous caverns of old Ocean
  • Within dim bowers of green and purple moss, _45
  • Our young Ione's soft and milky arms
  • Locked then, as now, behind my dark, moist hair,
  • While my shut eyes and cheek were pressed within
  • The folded depth of her life-breathing bosom:
  • But not as now, since I am made the wind _50
  • Which fails beneath the music that I bear
  • Of thy most wordless converse; since dissolved
  • Into the sense with which love talks, my rest
  • Was troubled and yet sweet; my waking hours
  • Too full of care and pain.
  • ASIA:
  • Lift up thine eyes, _55
  • And let me read thy dream.
  • PANTHEA:
  • As I have said
  • With our sea-sister at his feet I slept.
  • The mountain mists, condensing at our voice
  • Under the moon, had spread their snowy flakes,
  • From the keen ice shielding our linked sleep. _60
  • Then two dreams came. One, I remember not.
  • But in the other his pale wound-worn limbs
  • Fell from Prometheus, and the azure night
  • Grew radiant with the glory of that form
  • Which lives unchanged within, and his voice fell _65
  • Like music which makes giddy the dim brain,
  • Faint with intoxication of keen joy:
  • 'Sister of her whose footsteps pave the world
  • With loveliness--more fair than aught but her,
  • Whose shadow thou art--lift thine eyes on me.' _70
  • I lifted them: the overpowering light
  • Of that immortal shape was shadowed o'er
  • By love; which, from his soft and flowing limbs,
  • And passion-parted lips, and keen, faint eyes,
  • Steamed forth like vaporous fire; an atmosphere _75
  • Which wrapped me in its all-dissolving power,
  • As the warm ether of the morning sun
  • Wraps ere it drinks some cloud of wandering dew.
  • I saw not, heard not, moved not, only felt
  • His presence flow and mingle through my blood _80
  • Till it became his life, and his grew mine,
  • And I was thus absorbed, until it passed,
  • And like the vapours when the sun sinks down,
  • Gathering again in drops upon the pines,
  • And tremulous as they, in the deep night _85
  • My being was condensed; and as the rays
  • Of thought were slowly gathered, I could hear
  • His voice, whose accents lingered ere they died
  • Like footsteps of weak melody: thy name
  • Among the many sounds alone I heard _90
  • Of what might be articulate; though still
  • I listened through the night when sound was none.
  • Ione wakened then, and said to me:
  • 'Canst thou divine what troubles me to-night?
  • I always knew, what I desired before, _95
  • Nor ever found delight to wish in vain.
  • But now I cannot tell thee what I seek;
  • I know not; something sweet, since it is sweet
  • Even to desire; it is thy sport, false sister;
  • Thou hast discovered some enchantment old, _100
  • Whose spells have stolen my spirit as I slept
  • And mingled it with thine: for when just now
  • We kissed, I felt within thy parted lips
  • The sweet air that sustained me, and the warmth
  • Of the life-blood, for loss of which I faint, _105
  • Quivered between our intertwining arms.'
  • I answered not, for the Eastern star grew pale,
  • But fled to thee.
  • ASIA:
  • Thou speakest, but thy words
  • Are as the air: I feel them not: Oh, lift
  • Thine eyes, that I may read his written soul! _110
  • PANTHEA:
  • I lift them though they droop beneath the load
  • Of that they would express: what canst thou see
  • But thine own fairest shadow imaged there?
  • ASIA:
  • Thine eyes are like the deep, blue, boundless heaven
  • Contracted to two circles underneath _115
  • Their long, fine lashes; dark, far, measureless,
  • Orb within orb, and line through line inwoven.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Why lookest thou as if a spirit passed?
  • ASIA:
  • There is a change: beyond their inmost depth
  • I see a shade, a shape: 'tis He, arrayed _120
  • In the soft light of his own smiles, which spread
  • Like radiance from the cloud-surrounded moon.
  • Prometheus, it is thine! depart not yet!
  • Say not those smiles that we shall meet again
  • Within that bright pavilion which their beams _125
  • Shall build o'er the waste world? The dream is told.
  • What shape is that between us? Its rude hair
  • Roughens the wind that lifts it, its regard
  • Is wild and quick, yet 'tis a thing of air,
  • For through its gray robe gleams the golden dew _130
  • Whose stars the noon has quenched not.
  • NOTE:
  • _122 moon B; morn 1820.
  • _126 o'er B; on 1820.
  • DREAM
  • Follow! Follow!
  • PANTHEA:
  • It is mine other dream.
  • ASIA:
  • It disappears.
  • PANTHEA:
  • It passes now into my mind. Methought
  • As we sate here, the flower-infolding buds
  • Burst on yon lightning-blasted almond tree, _135
  • When swift from the white Scythian wilderness
  • A wind swept forth wrinkling the Earth with frost:
  • I looked, and all the blossoms were blown down;
  • But on each leaf was stamped, as the blue bells
  • Of Hyacinth tell Apollo's written grief, _140
  • O, FOLLOW, FOLLOW!
  • ASIA:
  • As you speak, your words
  • Fill, pause by pause, my own forgotten sleep
  • With shapes. Methought among these lawns together
  • We wandered, underneath the young gray dawn,
  • And multitudes of dense white fleecy clouds _145
  • Were wandering in thick flocks along the mountains
  • Shepherded by the slow, unwilling wind;
  • And the white dew on the new-bladed grass,
  • Just piercing the dark earth, hung silently;
  • And there was more which I remember not: _150
  • But on the shadows of the morning clouds,
  • Athwart the purple mountain slope, was written
  • FOLLOW, O, FOLLOW! as they vanished by;
  • And on each herb, from which Heaven's dew had fallen,
  • The like was stamped, as with a withering fire; _155
  • A wind arose among the pines; it shook
  • The clinging music from their boughs, and then
  • Low, sweet, faint sounds, like the farewell of ghosts,
  • Were heard: O, FOLLOW, FOLLOW, FOLLOW ME!
  • And then I said, 'Panthea, look on me.' _160
  • But in the depth of those beloved eyes
  • Still I saw, FOLLOW, FOLLOW!
  • NOTE:
  • _143 these B; the 1820.
  • ECHO:
  • Follow, follow!
  • PANTHEA:
  • The crags, this clear spring morning, mock our voices
  • As they were spirit-tongued.
  • ASIA:
  • It is some being
  • Around the crags. What fine clear sounds! O, list! _165
  • ECHOES, UNSEEN:
  • Echoes we: listen!
  • We cannot stay:
  • As dew-stars glisten
  • Then fade away--
  • Child of Ocean! _170
  • ASIA:
  • Hark! Spirits speak. The liquid responses
  • Of their aereal tongues yet sound.
  • PANTHEA:
  • I hear.
  • ECHOES:
  • Oh, follow, follow,
  • As our voice recedeth
  • Through the caverns hollow, _175
  • Where the forest spreadeth;
  • [MORE DISTANT.]
  • Oh, follow, follow!
  • Through the caverns hollow,
  • As the song floats thou pursue,
  • Where the wild bee never flew, _180
  • Through the noontide darkness deep,
  • By the odour-breathing sleep
  • Of faint night-flowers, and the waves
  • At the fountain-lighted caves,
  • While our music, wild and sweet, _185
  • Mocks thy gently falling feet,
  • Child of Ocean!
  • ASIA:
  • Shall we pursue the sound? It grows more faint
  • And distant.
  • PANTHEA:
  • List! the strain floats nearer now.
  • ECHOES:
  • In the world unknown _190
  • Sleeps a voice unspoken;
  • By thy step alone
  • Can its rest be broken;
  • Child of Ocean!
  • ASIA:
  • How the notes sink upon the ebbing wind! _195
  • ECHOES:
  • Oh, follow, follow!
  • Through the caverns hollow,
  • As the song floats thou pursue,
  • By the woodland noontide dew;
  • By the forests, lakes, and fountains, _200
  • Through the many-folded mountains;
  • To the rents, and gulfs, and chasms,
  • Where the Earth reposed from spasms,
  • On the day when He and thou
  • Parted, to commingle now; _205
  • Child of Ocean!
  • ASIA:
  • Come, sweet Panthea, link thy hand in mine,
  • And follow, ere the voices fade away.
  • SCENE 2.2:
  • A FOREST, INTERMINGLED WITH ROCKS AND CAVERNS.
  • ASIA AND PANTHEA PASS INTO IT.
  • TWO YOUNG FAUNS ARE SITTING ON A ROCK LISTENING.
  • SEMICHORUS 1 OF SPIRITS:
  • The path through which that lovely twain
  • Have passed, by cedar, pine, and yew,
  • And each dark tree that ever grew,
  • Is curtained out from Heaven's wide blue;
  • Nor sun, nor moon, nor wind, nor rain, _5
  • Can pierce its interwoven bowers,
  • Nor aught, save where some cloud of dew,
  • Drifted along the earth-creeping breeze,
  • Between the trunks of the hoar trees,
  • Hangs each a pearl in the pale flowers _10
  • Of the green laurel, blown anew,
  • And bends, and then fades silently,
  • One frail and fair anemone:
  • Or when some star of many a one
  • That climbs and wanders through steep night, _15
  • Has found the cleft through which alone
  • Beams fall from high those depths upon
  • Ere it is borne away, away,
  • By the swift Heavens that cannot stay,
  • It scatters drops of golden light, _20
  • Like lines of rain that ne'er unite:
  • And the gloom divine is all around,
  • And underneath is the mossy ground.
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • There the voluptuous nightingales,
  • Are awake through all the broad noonday. _25
  • When one with bliss or sadness fails,
  • And through the windless ivy-boughs,
  • Sick with sweet love, droops dying away
  • On its mate's music-panting bosom;
  • Another from the swinging blossom, _30
  • Watching to catch the languid close
  • Of the last strain, then lifts on high
  • The wings of the weak melody,
  • Till some new strain of feeling bear
  • The song, and all the woods are mute; _35
  • When there is heard through the dim air
  • The rush of wings, and rising there
  • Like many a lake-surrounded flute,
  • Sounds overflow the listener's brain
  • So sweet, that joy is almost pain. _40
  • NOTE:
  • _38 surrounded B, edition 1839; surrounding 1820.
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • There those enchanted eddies play
  • Of echoes, music-tongued, which draw,
  • By Demogorgon's mighty law,
  • With melting rapture, or sweet awe,
  • All spirits on that secret way; _45
  • As inland boats are driven to Ocean
  • Down streams made strong with mountain-thaw:
  • And first there comes a gentle sound
  • To those in talk or slumber bound,
  • And wakes the destined soft emotion,-- _50
  • Attracts, impels them; those who saw
  • Say from the breathing earth behind
  • There steams a plume-uplifting wind
  • Which drives them on their path, while they
  • Believe their own swift wings and feet _55
  • The sweet desires within obey:
  • And so they float upon their way,
  • Until, still sweet, but loud and strong,
  • The storm of sound is driven along,
  • Sucked up and hurrying: as they fleet _60
  • Behind, its gathering billows meet
  • And to the fatal mountain bear
  • Like clouds amid the yielding air.
  • NOTE:
  • _50 destined]destinied 1820.
  • FIRST FAUN:
  • Canst thou imagine where those spirits live
  • Which make such delicate music in the woods? _65
  • We haunt within the least frequented caves
  • And closest coverts, and we know these wilds,
  • Yet never meet them, though we hear them oft:
  • Where may they hide themselves?
  • SECOND FAUN:
  • 'Tis hard to tell;
  • I have heard those more skilled in spirits say, _70
  • The bubbles, which the enchantment of the sun
  • Sucks from the pale faint water-flowers that pave
  • The oozy bottom of clear lakes and pools,
  • Are the pavilions where such dwell and float
  • Under the green and golden atmosphere _75
  • Which noontide kindles through the woven leaves;
  • And when these burst, and the thin fiery air,
  • The which they breathed within those lucent domes,
  • Ascends to flow like meteors through the night,
  • They ride on them, and rein their headlong speed, _80
  • And bow their burning crests, and glide in fire
  • Under the waters of the earth again.
  • FIRST FAUN:
  • If such live thus, have others other lives,
  • Under pink blossoms or within the bells
  • Of meadow flowers, or folded violets deep, _85
  • Or on their dying odours, when they die,
  • Or in the sunlight of the sphered dew?
  • NOTE:
  • _86 on 1820; in B.
  • SECOND FAUN:
  • Ay, many more which we may well divine.
  • But should we stay to speak, noontide would come,
  • And thwart Silenus find his goats undrawn, _90
  • And grudge to sing those wise and lovely songs
  • Of Fate, and Chance, and God, and Chaos old,
  • And Love, and the chained Titan's woful doom,
  • And how he shall be loosed, and make the earth
  • One brotherhood: delightful strains which cheer _95
  • Our solitary twilights, and which charm
  • To silence the unenvying nightingales.
  • NOTE:
  • _93 doom B, edition 1839; dooms 1820.
  • SCENE 2.3:
  • A PINNACLE OF ROCK AMONG MOUNTAINS.
  • ASIA AND PANTHEA.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Hither the sound has borne us--to the realm
  • Of Demogorgon, and the mighty portal,
  • Like a volcano's meteor-breathing chasm,
  • Whence the oracular vapour is hurled up
  • Which lonely men drink wandering in their youth, _5
  • And call truth, virtue, love, genius, or joy,
  • That maddening wine of life, whose dregs they drain
  • To deep intoxication; and uplift,
  • Like Maenads who cry loud, Evoe! Evoe!
  • The voice which is contagion to the world. _10
  • ASIA:
  • Fit throne for such a Power! Magnificent!
  • How glorious art thou, Earth! And if thou be
  • The shadow of some spirit lovelier still,
  • Though evil stain its work, and it should be
  • Like its creation, weak yet beautiful, _15
  • I could fall down and worship that and thee.
  • Even now my heart adoreth: Wonderful!
  • Look, sister, ere the vapour dim thy brain:
  • Beneath is a wide plain of billowy mist,
  • As a lake, paving in the morning sky, _20
  • With azure waves which burst in silver light,
  • Some Indian vale. Behold it, rolling on
  • Under the curdling winds, and islanding
  • The peak whereon we stand, midway, around,
  • Encinctured by the dark and blooming forests, _25
  • Dim twilight-lawns, and stream-illumined caves,
  • And wind-enchanted shapes of wandering mist;
  • And far on high the keen sky-cleaving mountains
  • From icy spires of sun-like radiance fling
  • The dawn, as lifted Ocean's dazzling spray, _30
  • From some Atlantic islet scattered up,
  • Spangles the wind with lamp-like water-drops.
  • The vale is girdled with their walls, a howl
  • Of cataracts from their thaw-cloven ravines,
  • Satiates the listening wind, continuous, vast, _35
  • Awful as silence. Hark! the rushing snow!
  • The sun-awakened avalanche! whose mass,
  • Thrice sifted by the storm, had gathered there
  • Flake after flake, in heaven-defying minds
  • As thought by thought is piled, till some great truth _40
  • Is loosened, and the nations echo round,
  • Shaken to their roots, as do the mountains now.
  • NOTE:
  • _26 illumed B; illumined 1820.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Look how the gusty sea of mist is breaking
  • In crimson foam, even at our feet! it rises
  • As Ocean at the enchantment of the moon _45
  • Round foodless men wrecked on some oozy isle.
  • ASIA:
  • The fragments of the cloud are scattered up;
  • The wind that lifts them disentwines my hair;
  • Its billows now sweep o'er mine eyes; my brain
  • Grows dizzy; see'st thou shapes within the mist? _50
  • NOTE:
  • see'st thou B; I see thin 1820; I see 1839.
  • PANTHEA:
  • A countenance with beckoning smiles: there burns
  • An azure fire within its golden locks!
  • Another and another: hark! they speak!
  • SONG OF SPIRITS:
  • To the deep, to the deep,
  • Down, down! _55
  • Through the shade of sleep,
  • Through the cloudy strife
  • Of Death and of Life;
  • Through the veil and the bar
  • Of things which seem and are _60
  • Even to the steps of the remotest throne,
  • Down, down!
  • While the sound whirls around,
  • Down, down!
  • As the fawn draws the hound, _65
  • As the lightning the vapour,
  • As a weak moth the taper;
  • Death, despair; love, sorrow;
  • Time both; to-day, to-morrow;
  • As steel obeys the spirit of the stone, _70
  • Down, down!
  • Through the gray, void abysm,
  • Down, down!
  • Where the air is no prism,
  • And the moon and stars are not, _75
  • And the cavern-crags wear not
  • The radiance of Heaven,
  • Nor the gloom to Earth given,
  • Where there is One pervading, One alone,
  • Down, down! _80
  • In the depth of the deep,
  • Down, down!
  • Like veiled lightning asleep,
  • Like the spark nursed in embers,
  • The last look Love remembers, _85
  • Like a diamond, which shines
  • On the dark wealth of mines,
  • A spell is treasured but for thee alone.
  • Down, down!
  • We have bound thee, we guide thee; _90
  • Down, down!
  • With the bright form beside thee;
  • Resist not the weakness,
  • Such strength is in meekness
  • That the Eternal, the Immortal, _95
  • Must unloose through life's portal
  • The snake-like Doom coiled underneath his throne
  • By that alone.
  • SCENE 2.4:
  • THE CAVE OF DEMOGORGON.
  • ASIA AND PANTHEA.
  • PANTHEA:
  • What veiled form sits on that ebon throne?
  • ASIA:
  • The veil has fallen.
  • PANTHEA:
  • I see a mighty darkness
  • Filling the seat of power, and rays of gloom
  • Dart round, as light from the meridian sun.
  • --Ungazed upon and shapeless; neither limb, _5
  • Nor form, nor outline; yet we feel it is
  • A living Spirit.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Ask what thou wouldst know.
  • ASIA:
  • What canst thou tell?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • All things thou dar'st demand.
  • ASIA:
  • Who made the living world?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • God.
  • ASIA:
  • Who made all
  • That it contains? thought, passion, reason, will, _10
  • Imagination?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • God: Almighty God.
  • ASIA:
  • Who made that sense which, when the winds of Spring
  • In rarest visitation, or the voice
  • Of one beloved heard in youth alone,
  • Fills the faint eyes with falling tears which dim _15
  • The radiant looks of unbewailing flowers,
  • And leaves this peopled earth a solitude
  • When it returns no more?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Merciful God.
  • ASIA:
  • And who made terror, madness, crime, remorse,
  • Which from the links of the great chain of things, _20
  • To every thought within the mind of man
  • Sway and drag heavily, and each one reels
  • Under the load towards the pit of death;
  • Abandoned hope, and love that turns to hate;
  • And self-contempt, bitterer to drink than blood; _25
  • Pain, whose unheeded and familiar speech
  • Is howling, and keen shrieks, day after day;
  • And Hell, or the sharp fear of Hell?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • He reigns.
  • ASIA:
  • Utter his name: a world pining in pain
  • Asks but his name: curses shall drag him down. _30
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • He reigns.
  • ASIA:
  • I feel, I know it: who?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • He reigns.
  • ASIA:
  • Who reigns? There was the Heaven and Earth at first,
  • And Light and Love; then Saturn, from whose throne
  • Time fell, an envious shadow: such the state
  • Of the earth's primal spirits beneath his sway, _35
  • As the calm joy of flowers and living leaves
  • Before the wind or sun has withered them
  • And semivital worms; but he refused
  • The birthright of their being, knowledge, power,
  • The skill which wields the elements, the thought _40
  • Which pierces this dim universe like light,
  • Self-empire, and the majesty of love;
  • For thirst of which they fainted. Then Prometheus
  • Gave wisdom, which is strength, to Jupiter,
  • And with this law alone, 'Let man be free,' _45
  • Clothed him with the dominion of wide Heaven.
  • To know nor faith, nor love, nor law; to be
  • Omnipotent but friendless is to reign;
  • And Jove now reigned; for on the race of man
  • First famine, and then toil, and then disease, _50
  • Strife, wounds, and ghastly death unseen before,
  • Fell; and the unseasonable seasons drove
  • With alternating shafts of frost and fire,
  • Their shelterless, pale tribes to mountain caves:
  • And in their desert hearts fierce wants he sent, _55
  • And mad disquietudes, and shadows idle
  • Of unreal good, which levied mutual war,
  • So ruining the lair wherein they raged.
  • Prometheus saw, and waked the legioned hopes
  • Which sleep within folded Elysian flowers, _60
  • Nepenthe, Moly, Amaranth, fadeless blooms,
  • That they might hide with thin and rainbow wings
  • The shape of Death; and Love he sent to bind
  • The disunited tendrils of that vine
  • Which bears the wine of life, the human heart; _65
  • And he tamed fire which, like some beast of prey,
  • Most terrible, but lovely, played beneath
  • The frown of man; and tortured to his will
  • Iron and gold, the slaves and signs of power,
  • And gems and poisons, and all subtlest forms _70
  • Hidden beneath the mountains and the waves.
  • He gave man speech, and speech created thought,
  • Which is the measure of the universe;
  • And Science struck the thrones of earth and heaven,
  • Which shook, but fell not; and the harmonious mind _75
  • Poured itself forth in all-prophetic song;
  • And music lifted up the listening spirit
  • Until it walked, exempt from mortal care,
  • Godlike, o'er the clear billows of sweet sound;
  • And human hands first mimicked and then mocked, _80
  • With moulded limbs more lovely than its own,
  • The human form, till marble grew divine;
  • And mothers, gazing, drank the love men see
  • Reflected in their race, behold, and perish.
  • He told the hidden power of herbs and springs, _85
  • And Disease drank and slept. Death grew like sleep.
  • He taught the implicated orbits woven
  • Of the wide-wandering stars; and how the sun
  • Changes his lair, and by what secret spell
  • The pale moon is transformed, when her broad eye _90
  • Gazes not on the interlunar sea:
  • He taught to rule, as life directs the limbs,
  • The tempest-winged chariots of the Ocean,
  • And the Celt knew the Indian. Cities then
  • Were built, and through their snow-like columns flowed _95
  • The warm winds, and the azure ether shone,
  • And the blue sea and shadowy hills were seen.
  • Such, the alleviations of his state,
  • Prometheus gave to man, for which he hangs
  • Withering in destined pain: but who rains down _100
  • Evil, the immedicable plague, which, while
  • Man looks on his creation like a God
  • And sees that it is glorious, drives him on,
  • The wreck of his own will, the scorn of earth,
  • The outcast, the abandoned, the alone? _105
  • Not Jove: while yet his frown shook Heaven ay, when
  • His adversary from adamantine chains
  • Cursed him, he trembled like a slave. Declare
  • Who is his master? Is he too a slave?
  • NOTE:
  • _100 rains B, edition 1839; reigns 1820.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • All spirits are enslaved which serve things evil: _110
  • Thou knowest if Jupiter be such or no.
  • ASIA:
  • Whom calledst thou God?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • I spoke but as ye speak,
  • For Jove is the supreme of living things.
  • ASIA:
  • Who is the master of the slave?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • If the abysm
  • Could vomit forth its secrets...But a voice _115
  • Is wanting, the deep truth is imageless;
  • For what would it avail to bid thee gaze
  • On the revolving world? What to bid speak
  • Fate, Time, Occasion, Chance and Change? To these
  • All things are subject but eternal Love. _120
  • ASIA:
  • So much I asked before, and my heart gave
  • The response thou hast given; and of such truths
  • Each to itself must be the oracle.
  • One more demand; and do thou answer me
  • As my own soul would answer, did it know _125
  • That which I ask. Prometheus shall arise
  • Henceforth the sun of this rejoicing world:
  • When shall the destined hour arrive?
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Behold!
  • ASIA:
  • The rocks are cloven, and through the purple night
  • I see cars drawn by rainbow-winged steeds _130
  • Which trample the dim winds: in each there stands
  • A wild-eyed charioteer urging their flight.
  • Some look behind, as fiends pursued them there,
  • And yet I see no shapes but the keen stars:
  • Others, with burning eyes, lean forth, and drink _135
  • With eager lips the wind of their own speed,
  • As if the thing they loved fled on before,
  • And now, even now, they clasped it. Their bright locks
  • Stream like a comet's flashing hair; they all
  • Sweep onward.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • These are the immortal Hours, _140
  • Of whom thou didst demand. One waits for thee.
  • ASIA:
  • A Spirit with a dreadful countenance
  • Checks its dark chariot by the craggy gulf.
  • Unlike thy brethren, ghastly charioteer,
  • Who art thou? Whither wouldst thou bear me? Speak! _145
  • SPIRIT:
  • I am the shadow of a destiny
  • More dread than is my aspect: ere yon planet
  • Has set, the darkness which ascends with me
  • Shall wrap in lasting night heaven's kingless throne.
  • ASIA:
  • What meanest thou?
  • PANTHEA:
  • That terrible shadow floats _150
  • Up from its throne, as may the lurid smoke
  • Of earthquake-ruined cities o'er the sea.
  • Lo! it ascends the car; the coursers fly
  • Terrified: watch its path among the stars
  • Blackening the night!
  • ASIA:
  • Thus I am answered: strange! _155
  • PANTHEA:
  • See, near the verge, another chariot stays;
  • An ivory shell inlaid with crimson fire,
  • Which comes and goes within its sculptured rim
  • Of delicate strange tracery; the young spirit
  • That guides it has the dove-like eyes of hope; _160
  • How its soft smiles attract the soul! as light
  • Lures winged insects through the lampless air.
  • SPIRIT:
  • My coursers are fed with the lightning,
  • They drink of the whirlwind's stream,
  • And when the red morning is bright'ning _165
  • They bathe in the fresh sunbeam;
  • They have strength for their swiftness I deem;
  • Then ascend with me, daughter of Ocean.
  • I desire: and their speed makes night kindle;
  • I fear: they outstrip the Typhoon; _170
  • Ere the cloud piled on Atlas can dwindle
  • We encircle the earth and the moon:
  • We shall rest from long labours at noon:
  • Then ascend with me, daughter of Ocean.
  • SCENE 2.5:
  • THE CAR PAUSES WITHIN A CLOUD ON THE TOP OF A SNOWY MOUNTAIN.
  • ASIA, PANTHEA, AND THE SPIRIT OF THE HOUR.
  • SPIRIT:
  • On the brink of the night and the morning
  • My coursers are wont to respire;
  • But the Earth has just whispered a warning
  • That their flight must be swifter than fire:
  • They shall drink the hot speed of desire! _5
  • ASIA:
  • Thou breathest on their nostrils, but my breath
  • Would give them swifter speed.
  • SPIRIT:
  • Alas! it could not.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Oh Spirit! pause, and tell whence is the light
  • Which fills this cloud? the sun is yet unrisen.
  • NOTE:
  • _9 this B; the 1820.
  • SPIRIT:
  • The sun will rise not until noon. Apollo _10
  • Is held in heaven by wonder; and the light
  • Which fills this vapour, as the aereal hue
  • Of fountain-gazing roses fills the water,
  • Flows from thy mighty sister.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Yes, I feel--
  • ASIA:
  • What is it with thee, sister? Thou art pale. _15
  • PANTHEA:
  • How thou art changed! I dare not look on thee;
  • I feel but see thee not. I scarce endure
  • The radiance of thy beauty. Some good change
  • Is working in the elements, which suffer
  • Thy presence thus unveiled. The Nereids tell _20
  • That on the day when the clear hyaline
  • Was cloven at thine uprise, and thou didst stand
  • Within a veined shell, which floated on
  • Over the calm floor of the crystal sea,
  • Among the Aegean isles, and by the shores _25
  • Which bear thy name; love, like the atmosphere
  • Of the sun's fire filling the living world,
  • Burst from thee, and illumined earth and heaven
  • And the deep ocean and the sunless caves
  • And all that dwells within them; till grief cast _30
  • Eclipse upon the soul from which it came:
  • Such art thou now; nor is it I alone,
  • Thy sister, thy companion, thine own chosen one,
  • But the whole world which seeks thy sympathy.
  • Hearest thou not sounds i' the air which speak the love _35
  • Of all articulate beings? Feelest thou not
  • The inanimate winds enamoured of thee? List!
  • NOTE:
  • _22 thine B; thy 1820.
  • [MUSIC.]
  • ASIA:
  • Thy words are sweeter than aught else but his
  • Whose echoes they are; yet all love is sweet,
  • Given or returned. Common as light is love, _40
  • And its familiar voice wearies not ever.
  • Like the wide heaven, the all-sustaining air,
  • It makes the reptile equal to the God:
  • They who inspire it most are fortunate,
  • As I am now; but those who feel it most _45
  • Are happier still, after long sufferings,
  • As I shall soon become.
  • PANTHEA:
  • List! Spirits speak.
  • VOICE IN THE AIR, SINGING:
  • Life of Life! thy lips enkindle
  • With their love the breath between them;
  • And thy smiles before they dwindle _50
  • Make the cold air fire; then screen them
  • In those looks, where whoso gazes
  • Faints, entangled in their mazes.
  • Child of Light! thy limbs are burning
  • Through the vest which seems to hide them; _55
  • As the radiant lines of morning
  • Through the clouds ere they divide them;
  • And this atmosphere divinest
  • Shrouds thee wheresoe'er thou shinest.
  • Fair are others; none beholds thee, _60
  • But thy voice sounds low and tender
  • Like the fairest, for it folds thee
  • From the sight, that liquid splendour,
  • And all feel, yet see thee never,
  • As I feel now, lost for ever! _65
  • Lamp of Earth! where'er thou movest
  • Its dim shapes are clad with brightness,
  • And the souls of whom thou lovest
  • Walk upon the winds with lightness,
  • Till they fail, as I am failing, _70
  • Dizzy, lost, yet unbewailing!
  • NOTE:
  • _54 limbs B, edition 1839; lips 1820.
  • ASIA:
  • My soul is an enchanted boat,
  • Which, like a sleeping swan, doth float
  • Upon the silver waves of thy sweet singing;
  • And thine doth like an angel sit _75
  • Beside a helm conducting it,
  • Whilst all the winds with melody are ringing.
  • It seems to float ever, for ever,
  • Upon that many-winding river,
  • Between mountains, woods, abysses, _80
  • A paradise of wildernesses!
  • Till, like one in slumber bound,
  • Borne to the ocean, I float down, around,
  • Into a sea profound, of ever-spreading sound:
  • Meanwhile thy spirit lifts its pinions _85
  • In music's most serene dominions;
  • Catching the winds that fan that happy heaven.
  • And we sail on, away, afar,
  • Without a course, without a star,
  • But, by the instinct of sweet music driven; _90
  • Till through Elysian garden islets
  • By thee most beautiful of pilots,
  • Where never mortal pinnace glided,
  • The boat of my desire is guided:
  • Realms where the air we breathe is love, _95
  • Which in the winds on the waves doth move,
  • Harmonizing this earth with what we feel above.
  • We have passed Age's icy caves,
  • And Manhood's dark and tossing waves,
  • And Youth's smooth ocean, smiling to betray: _100
  • Beyond the glassy gulfs we flee
  • Of shadow-peopled Infancy,
  • Through Death and Birth, to a diviner day;
  • A paradise of vaulted bowers,
  • Lit by downward-gazing flowers, _105
  • And watery paths that wind between
  • Wildernesses calm and green,
  • Peopled by shapes too bright to see,
  • And rest, having beheld; somewhat like thee;
  • Which walk upon the sea, and chant melodiously! _110
  • NOTE:
  • _96 winds and on B; winds on 1820.
  • END OF ACT 2.
  • ACT 3.
  • SCENE 3.1:
  • HEAVEN.
  • JUPITER ON HIS THRONE; THETIS AND THE OTHER DEITIES ASSEMBLED.
  • JUPITER:
  • Ye congregated powers of heaven, who share
  • The glory and the strength of him ye serve,
  • Rejoice! henceforth I am omnipotent.
  • All else had been subdued to me; alone
  • The soul of man, like unextinguished fire, _5
  • Yet burns towards heaven with fierce reproach, and doubt,
  • And lamentation, and reluctant prayer,
  • Hurling up insurrection, which might make
  • Our antique empire insecure, though built
  • On eldest faith, and hell's coeval, fear; _10
  • And though my curses through the pendulous air,
  • Like snow on herbless peaks, fall flake by flake,
  • And cling to it; though under my wrath's night
  • It climbs the crags of life, step after step,
  • Which wound it, as ice wounds unsandalled feet, _15
  • It yet remains supreme o'er misery,
  • Aspiring, unrepressed, yet soon to fall:
  • Even now have I begotten a strange wonder,
  • That fatal child, the terror of the earth,
  • Who waits but till the destined hour arrive, _20
  • Bearing from Demogorgon's vacant throne
  • The dreadful might of ever-living limbs
  • Which clothed that awful spirit unbeheld,
  • To redescend, and trample out the spark.
  • Pour forth heaven's wine, Idaean Ganymede, _25
  • And let it fill the Daedal cups like fire,
  • And from the flower-inwoven soil divine
  • Ye all-triumphant harmonies arise,
  • As dew from earth under the twilight stars:
  • Drink! be the nectar circling through your veins _30
  • The soul of joy, ye ever-living Gods,
  • Till exultation burst in one wide voice
  • Like music from Elysian winds.
  • And thou
  • Ascend beside me, veiled in the light
  • Of the desire which makes thee one with me, _35
  • Thetis, bright image of eternity!
  • When thou didst cry, 'Insufferable might!
  • God! Spare me! I sustain not the quick flames,
  • The penetrating presence; all my being,
  • Like him whom the Numidian seps did thaw _40
  • Into a dew with poison, is dissolved,
  • Sinking through its foundations:' even then
  • Two mighty spirits, mingling, made a third
  • Mightier than either, which, unbodied now,
  • Between us floats, felt, although unbeheld, _45
  • Waiting the incarnation, which ascends,
  • (Hear ye the thunder of the fiery wheels
  • Griding the winds?) from Demogorgon's throne.
  • Victory! victory! Feel'st thou not, O world,
  • The earthquake of his chariot thundering up _50
  • Olympus?
  • [THE CAR OF THE HOUR ARRIVES.
  • DEMOGORGON DESCENDS, AND MOVES TOWARDS THE THRONE OF JUPITER.]
  • Awful shape, what art thou? Speak!
  • NOTES:
  • _5 like unextinguished B, edition 1839; like an unextinguished 1820.
  • _13 night B, edition 1839; might 1820.
  • _20 destined B, edition 1839; distant 1820.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Eternity. Demand no direr name.
  • Descend, and follow me down the abyss.
  • I am thy child, as thou wert Saturn's child;
  • Mightier than thee: and we must dwell together _55
  • Henceforth in darkness. Lift thy lightnings not.
  • The tyranny of heaven none may retain,
  • Or reassume, or hold, succeeding thee:
  • Yet if thou wilt, as 'tis the destiny
  • Of trodden worms to writhe till they are dead, _60
  • Put forth thy might.
  • JUPITER:
  • Detested prodigy!
  • Even thus beneath the deep Titanian prisons
  • I trample thee! thou lingerest?
  • Mercy! mercy!
  • No pity, no release, no respite! Oh,
  • That thou wouldst make mine enemy my judge, _65
  • Even where he hangs, seared by my long revenge,
  • On Caucasus! he would not doom me thus.
  • Gentle, and just, and dreadless, is he not
  • The monarch of the world? What then art thou?
  • No refuge! no appeal!
  • Sink with me then, _70
  • We two will sink on the wide waves of ruin,
  • Even as a vulture and a snake outspent
  • Drop, twisted in inextricable fight,
  • Into a shoreless sea. Let hell unlock
  • Its mounded oceans of tempestuous fire, _75
  • And whelm on them into the bottomless void
  • This desolated world, and thee, and me,
  • The conqueror and the conquered, and the wreck
  • Of that for which they combated.
  • Ai, Ai!
  • The elements obey me not. I sink _80
  • Dizzily down, ever, for ever, down.
  • And, like a cloud, mine enemy above
  • Darkens my fall with victory! Ai, Ai!
  • NOTE:
  • _69 then B, edition 1839; omitted 1820.
  • SCENE 3.2:
  • THE MOUTH OF A GREAT RIVER IN THE ISLAND ATLANTIS.
  • OCEAN IS DISCOVERED RECLINING NEAR THE SHORE;
  • APOLLO STANDS BESIDE HIM.
  • OCEAN:
  • He fell, thou sayest, beneath his conqueror's frown?
  • APOLLO:
  • Ay, when the strife was ended which made dim
  • The orb I rule, and shook the solid stars,
  • The terrors of his eye illumined heaven
  • With sanguine light, through the thick ragged skirts _5
  • Of the victorious darkness, as he fell:
  • Like the last glare of day's red agony,
  • Which, from a rent among the fiery clouds,
  • Burns far along the tempest-wrinkled deep.
  • OCEAN:
  • He sunk to the abyss? To the dark void? _10
  • APOLLO:
  • An eagle so caught in some bursting cloud
  • On Caucasus, his thunder-baffled wings
  • Entangled in the whirlwind, and his eyes
  • Which gazed on the undazzling sun, now blinded
  • By the white lightning, while the ponderous hail _15
  • Beats on his struggling form, which sinks at length
  • Prone, and the aereal ice clings over it.
  • OCEAN:
  • Henceforth the fields of heaven-reflecting sea
  • Which are my realm, will heave, unstained with blood,
  • Beneath the uplifting winds, like plains of corn _20
  • Swayed by the summer air; my streams will flow
  • Round many-peopled continents, and round
  • Fortunate isles; and from their glassy thrones
  • Blue Proteus and his humid nymphs shall mark
  • The shadow of fair ships, as mortals see _25
  • The floating bark of the light-laden moon
  • With that white star, its sightless pilot's crest,
  • Borne down the rapid sunset's ebbing sea;
  • Tracking their path no more by blood and groans,
  • And desolation, and the mingled voice _30
  • Of slavery and command; but by the light
  • Of wave-reflected flowers, and floating odours,
  • And music soft, and mild, free, gentle voices,
  • And sweetest music, such as spirits love.
  • NOTES:
  • _22 many-peopled B; many peopled 1820.
  • _26 light-laden B; light laden 1820.
  • APOLLO:
  • And I shall gaze not on the deeds which make _35
  • My mind obscure with sorrow, as eclipse
  • Darkens the sphere I guide; but list, I hear
  • The small, clear, silver lute of the young Spirit
  • That sits i' the morning star.
  • NOTE:
  • _39 i' the B, edition 1839; on the 1820.
  • OCEAN:
  • Thou must away;
  • Thy steeds will pause at even, till when farewell: _40
  • The loud deep calls me home even now to feed it
  • With azure calm out of the emerald urns
  • Which stand for ever full beside my throne.
  • Behold the Nereids under the green sea,
  • Their wavering limbs borne on the wind-like stream, _45
  • Their white arms lifted o'er their streaming hair
  • With garlands pied and starry sea-flower crowns,
  • Hastening to grace their mighty sister's joy.
  • [A SOUND OF WAVES IS HEARD.]
  • It is the unpastured sea hungering for calm.
  • Peace, monster; I come now. Farewell.
  • APOLLO:
  • Farewell. _50
  • SCENE 3.3:
  • CAUCASUS.
  • PROMETHEUS, HERCULES, IONE, THE EARTH, SPIRITS, ASIA,
  • AND PANTHEA, BORNE IN THE CAR WITH THE SPIRIT OF THE HOUR.
  • HERCULES UNBINDS PROMETHEUS, WHO DESCENDS.
  • HERCULES:
  • Most glorious among Spirits, thus doth strength
  • To wisdom, courage, and long-suffering love,
  • And thee, who art the form they animate,
  • Minister like a slave.
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Thy gentle words
  • Are sweeter even than freedom long desired _5
  • And long delayed.
  • Asia, thou light of life,
  • Shadow of beauty unbeheld: and ye,
  • Fair sister nymphs, who made long years of pain
  • Sweet to remember, through your love and care:
  • Henceforth we will not part. There is a cave, _10
  • All overgrown with trailing odorous plants,
  • Which curtain out the day with leaves and flowers,
  • And paved with veined emerald, and a fountain
  • Leaps in the midst with an awakening sound.
  • From its curved roof the mountain's frozen tears _15
  • Like snow, or silver, or long diamond spires,
  • Hang downward, raining forth a doubtful light:
  • And there is heard the ever-moving air,
  • Whispering without from tree to tree, and birds,
  • And bees; and all around are mossy seats, _20
  • And the rough walls are clothed with long soft grass;
  • A simple dwelling, which shall be our own;
  • Where we will sit and talk of time and change,
  • As the world ebbs and flows, ourselves unchanged.
  • What can hide man from mutability? _25
  • And if ye sigh, then I will smile; and thou,
  • Ione, shalt chant fragments of sea-music,
  • Until I weep, when ye shall smile away
  • The tears she brought, which yet were sweet to shed.
  • We will entangle buds and flowers and beams _30
  • Which twinkle on the fountain's brim, and make
  • Strange combinations out of common things,
  • Like human babes in their brief innocence;
  • And we will search, with looks and words of love,
  • For hidden thoughts, each lovelier than the last, _35
  • Our unexhausted spirits; and like lutes
  • Touched by the skill of the enamoured wind,
  • Weave harmonies divine, yet ever new,
  • From difference sweet where discord cannot be;
  • And hither come, sped on the charmed winds, _40
  • Which meet from all the points of heaven, as bees
  • From every flower aereal Enna feeds,
  • At their known island-homes in Himera,
  • The echoes of the human world, which tell
  • Of the low voice of love, almost unheard, _45
  • And dove-eyed pity's murmured pain, and music,
  • Itself the echo of the heart, and all
  • That tempers or improves man's life, now free;
  • And lovely apparitions,--dim at first,
  • Then radiant, as the mind, arising bright _50
  • From the embrace of beauty (whence the forms
  • Of which these are the phantoms) casts on them
  • The gathered rays which are reality--
  • Shall visit us, the progeny immortal
  • Of Painting, Sculpture, and rapt Poesy, _55
  • And arts, though unimagined, yet to be.
  • The wandering voices and the shadows these
  • Of all that man becomes, the mediators
  • Of that best worship love, by him and us
  • Given and returned; swift shapes and sounds, which grow _60
  • More fair and soft as man grows wise and kind,
  • And, veil by veil, evil and error fall:
  • Such virtue has the cave and place around.
  • [TURNING TO THE SPIRIT OF THE HOUR.]
  • For thee, fair Spirit, one toil remains. Ione,
  • Give her that curved shell, which Proteus old _65
  • Made Asia's nuptial boon, breathing within it
  • A voice to be accomplished, and which thou
  • Didst hide in grass under the hollow rock.
  • IONE:
  • Thou most desired Hour, more loved and lovely
  • Than all thy sisters, this is the mystic shell; _70
  • See the pale azure fading into silver
  • Lining it with a soft yet glowing light:
  • Looks it not like lulled music sleeping there?
  • SPIRIT:
  • It seems in truth the fairest shell of Ocean:
  • Its sound must be at once both sweet and strange. _75
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • Go, borne over the cities of mankind
  • On whirlwind-footed coursers: once again
  • Outspeed the sun around the orbed world;
  • And as thy chariot cleaves the kindling air,
  • Thou breathe into the many-folded shell, _80
  • Loosening its mighty music; it shall be
  • As thunder mingled with clear echoes: then
  • Return; and thou shalt dwell beside our cave.
  • And thou, O Mother Earth!--
  • THE EARTH:
  • I hear, I feel;
  • Thy lips are on me, and thy touch runs down _85
  • Even to the adamantine central gloom
  • Along these marble nerves; 'tis life, 'tis joy,
  • And, through my withered, old, and icy frame
  • The warmth of an immortal youth shoots down
  • Circling. Henceforth the many children fair _90
  • Folded in my sustaining arms; all plants,
  • And creeping forms, and insects rainbow-winged,
  • And birds, and beasts, and fish, and human shapes,
  • Which drew disease and pain from my wan bosom,
  • Draining the poison of despair, shall take _95
  • And interchange sweet nutriment; to me
  • Shall they become like sister-antelopes
  • By one fair dam, snow-white and swift as wind,
  • Nursed among lilies near a brimming stream.
  • The dew-mists of my sunless sleep shall float _100
  • Under the stars like balm: night-folded flowers
  • Shall suck unwithering hues in their repose:
  • And men and beasts in happy dreams shall gather
  • Strength for the coming day, and all its joy:
  • And death shall be the last embrace of her _105
  • Who takes the life she gave, even as a mother,
  • Folding her child, says, 'Leave me not again.'
  • NOTES:
  • _85 their B; thy 1820.
  • _102 unwithering B, edition 1839; unwitting 1820.
  • ASIA:
  • Oh, mother! wherefore speak the name of death?
  • Cease they to love, and move, and breathe, and speak,
  • Who die?
  • THE EARTH:
  • It would avail not to reply: _110
  • Thou art immortal, and this tongue is known
  • But to the uncommunicating dead.
  • Death is the veil which those who live call life:
  • They sleep, and it is lifted: and meanwhile
  • In mild variety the seasons mild _115
  • With rainbow-skirted showers, and odorous winds,
  • And long blue meteors cleansing the dull night,
  • And the life-kindling shafts of the keen sun's
  • All-piercing bow, and the dew-mingled rain
  • Of the calm moonbeams, a soft influence mild, _120
  • Shall clothe the forests and the fields, ay, even
  • The crag-built deserts of the barren deep,
  • With ever-living leaves, and fruits, and flowers.
  • And thou! There is a cavern where my spirit
  • Was panted forth in anguish whilst thy pain _125
  • Made my heart mad, and those who did inhale it
  • Became mad too, and built a temple there,
  • And spoke, and were oracular, and lured
  • The erring nations round to mutual war,
  • And faithless faith, such as Jove kept with thee; _130
  • Which breath now rises, as amongst tall weeds
  • A violet's exhalation, and it fills
  • With a serener light and crimson air
  • Intense, yet soft, the rocks and woods around;
  • It feeds the quick growth of the serpent vine, _135
  • And the dark linked ivy tangling wild,
  • And budding, blown, or odour-faded blooms
  • Which star the winds with points of coloured light,
  • As they rain through them, and bright golden globes
  • Of fruit, suspended in their own green heaven, _140
  • And through their veined leaves and amber stems
  • The flowers whose purple and translucid bowls
  • Stand ever mantling with aereal dew,
  • The drink of spirits: and it circles round,
  • Like the soft waving wings of noonday dreams, _145
  • Inspiring calm and happy thoughts, like mine,
  • Now thou art thus restored. This cave is thine.
  • Arise! Appear!
  • [A SPIRIT RISES IN THE LIKENESS OF A WINGED CHILD.]
  • This is my torch-bearer;
  • Who let his lamp out in old time with gazing
  • On eyes from which he kindled it anew _150
  • With love, which is as fire, sweet daughter mine,
  • For such is that within thine own. Run, wayward,
  • And guide this company beyond the peak
  • Of Bacchic Nysa, Maenad-haunted mountain,
  • And beyond Indus and its tribute rivers, _155
  • Trampling the torrent streams and glassy lakes
  • With feet unwet, unwearied, undelaying,
  • And up the green ravine, across the vale,
  • Beside the windless and crystalline pool,
  • Where ever lies, on unerasing waves, _160
  • The image of a temple, built above,
  • Distinct with column, arch, and architrave,
  • And palm-like capital, and over-wrought,
  • And populous with most living imagery,
  • Praxitelean shapes, whose marble smiles _165
  • Fill the hushed air with everlasting love.
  • It is deserted now, but once it bore
  • Thy name, Prometheus; there the emulous youths
  • Bore to thy honour through the divine gloom
  • The lamp which was thine emblem; even as those _170
  • Who bear the untransmitted torch of hope
  • Into the grave, across the night of life,
  • As thou hast borne it most triumphantly
  • To this far goal of Time. Depart, farewell.
  • Beside that temple is the destined cave. _175
  • NOTE:
  • _164 with most B; most with 1820.
  • SCENE 3.4:
  • A FOREST. IN THE BACKGROUND A CAVE.
  • PROMETHEUS, ASIA, PANTHEA, IONE, AND THE SPIRIT OF THE EARTH.
  • IONE:
  • Sister, it is not earthly: how it glides
  • Under the leaves! how on its head there burns
  • A light, like a green star, whose emerald beams
  • Are twined with its fair hair! how, as it moves,
  • The splendour drops in flakes upon the grass! _5
  • Knowest thou it?
  • PANTHEA:
  • It is the delicate spirit
  • That guides the earth through heaven. From afar
  • The populous constellations call that light
  • The loveliest of the planets; and sometimes
  • It floats along the spray of the salt sea, _10
  • Or makes its chariot of a foggy cloud,
  • Or walks through fields or cities while men sleep,
  • Or o'er the mountain tops, or down the rivers,
  • Or through the green waste wilderness, as now,
  • Wondering at all it sees. Before Jove reigned _15
  • It loved our sister Asia, and it came
  • Each leisure hour to drink the liquid light
  • Out of her eyes, for which it said it thirsted
  • As one bit by a dipsas, and with her
  • It made its childish confidence, and told her _20
  • All it had known or seen, for it saw much,
  • Yet idly reasoned what it saw; and called her--
  • For whence it sprung it knew not, nor do I--
  • Mother, dear mother.
  • THE SPIRIT OF THE EARTH [RUNNING TO ASIA]:
  • Mother, dearest mother;
  • May I then talk with thee as I was wont? _25
  • May I then hide my eyes in thy soft arms,
  • After thy looks have made them tired of joy?
  • May I then play beside thee the long noons,
  • When work is none in the bright silent air?
  • ASIA:
  • I love thee, gentlest being, and henceforth _30
  • Can cherish thee unenvied: speak, I pray:
  • Thy simple talk once solaced, now delights.
  • SPIRIT OF THE EARTH:
  • Mother, I am grown wiser, though a child
  • Cannot be wise like thee, within this day;
  • And happier too; happier and wiser both. _35
  • Thou knowest that toads, and snakes, and loathly worms,
  • And venomous and malicious beasts, and boughs
  • That bore ill berries in the woods, were ever
  • An hindrance to my walks o'er the green world:
  • And that, among the haunts of humankind, _40
  • Hard-featured men, or with proud, angry looks,
  • Or cold, staid gait, or false and hollow smiles,
  • Or the dull sneer of self-loved ignorance,
  • Or other such foul masks, with which ill thoughts
  • Hide that fair being whom we spirits call man; _45
  • And women too, ugliest of all things evil,
  • (Though fair, even in a world where thou art fair,
  • When good and kind, free and sincere like thee)
  • When false or frowning made me sick at heart
  • To pass them, though they slept, and I unseen. _50
  • Well, my path lately lay through a great city
  • Into the woody hills surrounding it:
  • A sentinel was sleeping at the gate:
  • When there was heard a sound, so loud, it shook
  • The towers amid the moonlight, yet more sweet _55
  • Than any voice but thine, sweetest of all;
  • A long, long sound, as it would never end:
  • And all the inhabitants leaped suddenly
  • Out of their rest, and gathered in the streets,
  • Looking in wonder up to Heaven, while yet _60
  • The music pealed along. I hid myself
  • Within a fountain in the public square,
  • Where I lay like the reflex of the moon
  • Seen in a wave under green leaves; and soon
  • Those ugly human shapes and visages _65
  • Of which I spoke as having wrought me pain,
  • Passed floating through the air, and fading still
  • Into the winds that scattered them; and those
  • From whom they passed seemed mild and lovely forms
  • After some foul disguise had fallen, and all _70
  • Were somewhat changed, and after brief surprise
  • And greetings of delighted wonder, all
  • Went to their sleep again: and when the dawn
  • Came, wouldst thou think that toads, and snakes, and efts,
  • Could e'er be beautiful? yet so they were, _75
  • And that with little change of shape or hue:
  • All things had put their evil nature off:
  • I cannot tell my joy, when o'er a lake,
  • Upon a drooping bough with nightshade twined,
  • I saw two azure halcyons clinging downward _80
  • And thinning one bright bunch of amber berries,
  • With quick long beaks, and in the deep there lay
  • Those lovely forms imaged as in a sky;
  • So, with my thoughts full of these happy changes,
  • We meet again, the happiest change of all. _85
  • ASIA:
  • And never will we part, till thy chaste sister
  • Who guides the frozen and inconstant moon
  • Will look on thy more warm and equal light
  • Till her heart thaw like flakes of April snow
  • And love thee.
  • SPIRIT OF THE EARTH:
  • What! as Asia loves Prometheus? _90
  • ASIA:
  • Peace, wanton, thou art yet not old enough.
  • Think ye by gazing on each other's eyes
  • To multiply your lovely selves, and fill
  • With sphered fires the interlunar air?
  • SPIRIT OF THE EARTH:
  • Nay, mother, while my sister trims her lamp
  • 'Tis hard I should go darkling. _95
  • ASIA:
  • Listen; look!
  • [THE SPIRIT OF THE HOUR ENTERS.]
  • PROMETHEUS:
  • We feel what thou hast heard and seen: yet speak.
  • SPIRIT OF THE HOUR:
  • Soon as the sound had ceased whose thunder filled
  • The abysses of the sky and the wide earth,
  • There was a change: the impalpable thin air _100
  • And the all-circling sunlight were transformed,
  • As if the sense of love dissolved in them
  • Had folded itself round the sphered world.
  • My vision then grew clear, and I could see
  • Into the mysteries of the universe: _105
  • Dizzy as with delight I floated down,
  • Winnowing the lightsome air with languid plumes,
  • My coursers sought their birthplace in the sun,
  • Where they henceforth will live exempt from toil,
  • Pasturing flowers of vegetable fire; _110
  • And where my moonlike car will stand within
  • A temple, gazed upon by Phidian forms
  • Of thee, and Asia, and the Earth, and me,
  • And you fair nymphs looking the love we feel,--
  • In memory of the tidings it has borne,-- _115
  • Beneath a dome fretted with graven flowers,
  • Poised on twelve columns of resplendent stone,
  • And open to the bright and liquid sky.
  • Yoked to it by an amphisbaenic snake
  • The likeness of those winged steeds will mock _120
  • The flight from which they find repose. Alas,
  • Whither has wandered now my partial tongue
  • When all remains untold which ye would hear?
  • As I have said, I floated to the earth:
  • It was, as it is still, the pain of bliss _125
  • To move, to breathe, to be. I wandering went
  • Among the haunts and dwellings of mankind,
  • And first was disappointed not to see
  • Such mighty change as I had felt within
  • Expressed in outward things; but soon I looked, _130
  • And behold, thrones were kingless, and men walked
  • One with the other even as spirits do,
  • None fawned, none trampled; hate, disdain, or fear,
  • Self-love or self-contempt, on human brows
  • No more inscribed, as o'er the gate of hell, _135
  • 'All hope abandon ye who enter here;'
  • None frowned, none trembled, none with eager fear
  • Gazed on another's eye of cold command,
  • Until the subject of a tyrant's will
  • Became, worse fate, the abject of his own, _140
  • Which spurred him, like an outspent horse, to death.
  • None wrought his lips in truth-entangling lines
  • Which smiled the lie his tongue disdained to speak;
  • None, with firm sneer, trod out in his own heart
  • The sparks of love and hope till there remained _145
  • Those bitter ashes, a soul self-consumed,
  • And the wretch crept a vampire among men,
  • Infecting all with his own hideous ill;
  • None talked that common, false, cold, hollow talk
  • Which makes the heart deny the "yes" it breathes, _150
  • Yet question that unmeant hypocrisy
  • With such a self-mistrust as has no name.
  • And women, too, frank, beautiful, and kind
  • As the free heaven which rains fresh light and dew
  • On the wide earth, past; gentle radiant forms, _155
  • From custom's evil taint exempt and pure;
  • Speaking the wisdom once they could not think,
  • Looking emotions once they feared to feel,
  • And changed to all which once they dared not be,
  • Yet being now, made earth like heaven; nor pride, _160
  • Nor jealousy, nor envy, nor ill shame,
  • The bitterest of those drops of treasured gall,
  • Spoiled the sweet taste of the nepenthe, love.
  • Thrones, altars, judgement-seats, and prisons; wherein,
  • And beside which, by wretched men were borne _165
  • Sceptres, tiaras, swords, and chains, and tomes
  • Of reasoned wrong, glozed on by ignorance,
  • Were like those monstrous and barbaric shapes,
  • The ghosts of a no-more-remembered fame,
  • Which, from their unworn obelisks, look forth _170
  • In triumph o'er the palaces and tombs
  • Of those who were their conquerors: mouldering round,
  • These imaged to the pride of kings and priests
  • A dark yet mighty faith, a power as wide
  • As is the world it wasted, and are now _175
  • But an astonishment; even so the tools
  • And emblems of its last captivity,
  • Amid the dwellings of the peopled earth,
  • Stand, not o'erthrown, but unregarded now.
  • And those foul shapes, abhorred by god and man,-- _180
  • Which, under many a name and many a form
  • Strange, savage, ghastly, dark and execrable,
  • Were Jupiter, the tyrant of the world;
  • And which the nations, panic-stricken, served
  • With blood, and hearts broken by long hope, and love _185
  • Dragged to his altars soiled and garlandless,
  • And slain among men's unreclaiming tears,
  • Flattering the thing they feared, which fear was hate,--
  • Frown, mouldering fast, o'er their abandoned shrines:
  • The painted veil, by those who were, called life, _190
  • Which mimicked, as with colours idly spread,
  • All men believed and hoped, is torn aside;
  • The loathsome mask has fallen, the man remains
  • Sceptreless, free, uncircumscribed, but man
  • Equal, unclassed, tribeless, and nationless, _195
  • Exempt from awe, worship, degree, the king
  • Over himself; just, gentle, wise; but man
  • Passionless?--no, yet free from guilt or pain,
  • Which were, for his will made or suffered them,
  • Nor yet exempt, though ruling them like slaves, _200
  • From chance, and death, and mutability,
  • The clogs of that which else might oversoar
  • The loftiest star of unascended heaven,
  • Pinnacled dim in the intense inane.
  • NOTES:
  • _121 flight B, edition 1839; light 1820.
  • _173 These B; Those 1820.
  • _187 amid B; among 1820.
  • _192 or B; and 1820.
  • END OF ACT 3.
  • ACT 4.
  • SCENE 4.1:
  • A PART OF THE FOREST NEAR THE CAVE OF PROMETHEUS.
  • PANTHEA AND IONE ARE SLEEPING: THEY AWAKEN GRADUALLY DURING THE FIRST SONG.
  • VOICE OF UNSEEN SPIRITS:
  • The pale stars are gone!
  • For the sun, their swift shepherd,
  • To their folds them compelling,
  • In the depths of the dawn,
  • Hastes, in meteor-eclipsing array, and the flee _5
  • Beyond his blue dwelling,
  • As fawns flee the leopard.
  • But where are ye?
  • [A TRAIN OF DARK FORMS AND SHADOWS PASSES BY CONFUSEDLY, SINGING.]
  • Here, oh, here:
  • We bear the bier _10
  • Of the father of many a cancelled year!
  • Spectres we
  • Of the dead Hours be,
  • We bear Time to his tomb in eternity.
  • Strew, oh, strew _15
  • Hair, not yew!
  • Wet the dusty pall with tears, not dew!
  • Be the faded flowers
  • Of Death's bare bowers
  • Spread on the corpse of the King of Hours! _20
  • Haste, oh, haste!
  • As shades are chased,
  • Trembling, by day, from heaven's blue waste.
  • We melt away,
  • Like dissolving spray, _25
  • From the children of a diviner day,
  • With the lullaby
  • Of winds that die
  • On the bosom of their own harmony!
  • IONE:
  • What dark forms were they? _30
  • PANTHEA:
  • The past Hours weak and gray,
  • With the spoil which their toil
  • Raked together
  • From the conquest but One could foil.
  • IONE:
  • Have they passed?
  • PANTHEA:
  • They have passed; _35
  • They outspeeded the blast,
  • While 'tis said, they are fled:
  • IONE:
  • Whither, oh, whither?
  • PANTHEA:
  • To the dark, to the past, to the dead.
  • VOICE OF UNSEEN SPIRITS:
  • Bright clouds float in heaven, _40
  • Dew-stars gleam on earth,
  • Waves assemble on ocean,
  • They are gathered and driven
  • By the storm of delight, by the panic of glee!
  • They shake with emotion, _45
  • They dance in their mirth.
  • But where are ye?
  • The pine boughs are singing
  • Old songs with new gladness,
  • The billows and fountains _50
  • Fresh music are flinging,
  • Like the notes of a spirit from land and from sea;
  • The storms mock the mountains
  • With the thunder of gladness.
  • But where are ye? _55
  • IONE:
  • What charioteers are these?
  • PANTHEA:
  • Where are their chariots?
  • SEMICHORUS OF HOURS:
  • The voice of the Spirits of Air and of Earth
  • Has drawn back the figured curtain of sleep
  • Which covered our being and darkened our birth
  • In the deep.
  • A VOICE:
  • In the deep?
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Oh, below the deep. _60
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • An hundred ages we had been kept
  • Cradled in visions of hate and care,
  • And each one who waked as his brother slept,
  • Found the truth--
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Worse than his visions were!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • We have heard the lute of Hope in sleep; _65
  • We have known the voice of Love in dreams;
  • We have felt the wand of Power, and leap--
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • As the billows leap in the morning beams!
  • CHORUS:
  • Weave the dance on the floor of the breeze,
  • Pierce with song heaven's silent light, _70
  • Enchant the day that too swiftly flees,
  • To check its flight ere the cave of Night.
  • Once the hungry Hours were hounds
  • Which chased the day like a bleeding deer,
  • And it limped and stumbled with many wounds _75
  • Through the nightly dells of the desert year.
  • But now, oh weave the mystic measure
  • Of music, and dance, and shapes of light,
  • Let the Hours, and the spirits of might and pleasure,
  • Like the clouds and sunbeams, unite--
  • A VOICE:
  • Unite! _80
  • PANTHEA:
  • See, where the Spirits of the human mind
  • Wrapped in sweet sounds, as in bright veils, approach.
  • CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
  • We join the throng
  • Of the dance and the song,
  • By the whirlwind of gladness borne along; _85
  • As the flying-fish leap
  • From the Indian deep,
  • And mix with the sea-birds, half-asleep.
  • CHORUS OF HOURS:
  • Whence come ye, so wild and so fleet,
  • For sandals of lightning are on your feet, _90
  • And your wings are soft and swift as thought,
  • And your eyes are as love which is veiled not?
  • CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
  • We come from the mind
  • Of human kind
  • Which was late so dusk, and obscene, and blind, _95
  • Now 'tis an ocean
  • Of clear emotion,
  • A heaven of serene and mighty motion.
  • From that deep abyss
  • Of wonder and bliss, _100
  • Whose caverns are crystal palaces;
  • From those skiey towers
  • Where Thought's crowned powers
  • Sit watching your dance, ye happy Hours!
  • From the dim recesses _105
  • Of woven caresses,
  • Where lovers catch ye by your loose tresses;
  • From the azure isles,
  • Where sweet Wisdom smiles,
  • Delaying your ships with her siren wiles. _110
  • From the temples high
  • Of Man's ear and eye,
  • Roofed over Sculpture and Poesy;
  • From the murmurings
  • Of the unsealed springs _115
  • Where Science bedews her Daedal wings.
  • Years after years,
  • Through blood, and tears,
  • And a thick hell of hatreds, and hopes, and fears;
  • We waded and flew, _120
  • And the islets were few
  • Where the bud-blighted flowers of happiness grew.
  • Our feet now, every palm,
  • Are sandalled with calm,
  • And the dew of our wings is a rain of balm; _125
  • And, beyond our eyes,
  • The human love lies
  • Which makes all it gazes on Paradise.
  • NOTE:
  • _116 her B; his 1820.
  • CHORUS OF SPIRITS AND HOURS:
  • Then weave the web of the mystic measure;
  • From the depths of the sky and the ends of the earth, _130
  • Come, swift Spirits of might and of pleasure,
  • Fill the dance and the music of mirth,
  • As the waves of a thousand streams rush by
  • To an ocean of splendour and harmony!
  • CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
  • Our spoil is won, _135
  • Our task is done,
  • We are free to dive, or soar, or run;
  • Beyond and around,
  • Or within the bound
  • Which clips the world with darkness round. _140
  • We'll pass the eyes
  • Of the starry skies
  • Into the hoar deep to colonize;
  • Death, Chaos, and Night,
  • From the sound of our flight, _145
  • Shall flee, like mist from a tempest's might.
  • And Earth, Air, and Light,
  • And the Spirit of Might,
  • Which drives round the stars in their fiery flight;
  • And Love, Thought, and Breath, _150
  • The powers that quell Death,
  • Wherever we soar shall assemble beneath.
  • And our singing shall build
  • In the void's loose field
  • A world for the Spirit of Wisdom to wield; _155
  • We will take our plan
  • From the new world of man,
  • And our work shall be called the Promethean.
  • CHORUS OF HOURS:
  • Break the dance, and scatter the song;
  • Let some depart, and some remain; _160
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • We, beyond heaven, are driven along:
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Us the enchantments of earth retain:
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Ceaseless, and rapid, and fierce, and free,
  • With the Spirits which build a new earth and sea,
  • And a heaven where yet heaven could never be; _165
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Solemn, and slow, and serene, and bright,
  • Leading the Day and outspeeding the Night,
  • With the powers of a world of perfect light;
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • We whirl, singing loud, round the gathering sphere,
  • Till the trees, and the beasts, and the clouds appear _170
  • From its chaos made calm by love, not fear.
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • We encircle the ocean and mountains of earth,
  • And the happy forms of its death and birth
  • Change to the music of our sweet mirth.
  • CHORUS OF HOURS AND SPIRITS:
  • Break the dance, and scatter the song; _175
  • Let some depart, and some remain,
  • Wherever we fly we lead along
  • In leashes, like starbeams, soft yet strong,
  • The clouds that are heavy with love's sweet rain.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Ha! they are gone!
  • IONE:
  • Yet feel you no delight _180
  • From the past sweetness?
  • PANTHEA:
  • As the bare green hill
  • When some soft cloud vanishes into rain,
  • Laughs with a thousand drops of sunny water
  • To the unpavilioned sky!
  • IONE:
  • Even whilst we speak
  • New notes arise. What is that awful sound? _185
  • PANTHEA:
  • 'Tis the deep music of the rolling world
  • Kindling within the strings of the waved air
  • Aeolian modulations.
  • IONE:
  • Listen too,
  • How every pause is filled with under-notes,
  • Clear, silver, icy, keen awakening tones, _190
  • Which pierce the sense, and live within the soul,
  • As the sharp stars pierce winter's crystal air
  • And gaze upon themselves within the sea.
  • PANTHEA:
  • But see where through two openings in the forest
  • Which hanging branches overcanopy, _195
  • And where two runnels of a rivulet,
  • Between the close moss violet-inwoven,
  • Have made their path of melody, like sisters
  • Who part with sighs that they may meet in smiles,
  • Turning their dear disunion to an isle _200
  • Of lovely grief, a wood of sweet sad thoughts;
  • Two visions of strange radiance float upon
  • The ocean-like enchantment of strong sound,
  • Which flows intenser, keener, deeper yet
  • Under the ground and through the windless air. _205
  • IONE:
  • I see a chariot like that thinnest boat,
  • In which the Mother of the Months is borne
  • By ebbing light into her western cave,
  • When she upsprings from interlunar dreams;
  • O'er which is curved an orblike canopy _210
  • Of gentle darkness, and the hills and woods,
  • Distinctly seen through that dusk aery veil,
  • Regard like shapes in an enchanter's glass;
  • Its wheels are solid clouds, azure and gold,
  • Such as the genii of the thunderstorm _215
  • Pile on the floor of the illumined sea
  • When the sun rushes under it; they roll
  • And move and grow as with an inward wind;
  • Within it sits a winged infant, white
  • Its countenance, like the whiteness of bright snow, _220
  • Its plumes are as feathers of sunny frost,
  • Its limbs gleam white, through the wind-flowing folds
  • Of its white robe, woof of ethereal pearl.
  • Its hair is white, the brightness of white light
  • Scattered in strings; yet its two eyes are heavens _225
  • Of liquid darkness, which the Deity
  • Within seems pouring, as a storm is poured
  • From jagged clouds, out of their arrowy lashes,
  • Tempering the cold and radiant air around,
  • With fire that is not brightness; in its hand _230
  • It sways a quivering moonbeam, from whose point
  • A guiding power directs the chariot's prow
  • Over its wheeled clouds, which as they roll
  • Over the grass, and flowers, and waves, wake sounds,
  • Sweet as a singing rain of silver dew. _235
  • NOTES:
  • _208 light B; night 1820.
  • _212 aery B; airy 1820.
  • _225 strings B, edition 1839; string 1820.
  • PANTHEA:
  • And from the other opening in the wood
  • Rushes, with loud and whirlwind harmony,
  • A sphere, which is as many thousand spheres,
  • Solid as crystal, yet through all its mass
  • Flow, as through empty space, music and light: _240
  • Ten thousand orbs involving and involved,
  • Purple and azure, white, and green, and golden,
  • Sphere within sphere; and every space between
  • Peopled with unimaginable shapes,
  • Such as ghosts dream dwell in the lampless deep, _245
  • Yet each inter-transpicuous, and they whirl
  • Over each other with a thousand motions,
  • Upon a thousand sightless axles spinning,
  • And with the force of self-destroying swiftness,
  • Intensely, slowly, solemnly, roll on, _250
  • Kindling with mingled sounds, and many tones,
  • Intelligible words and music wild.
  • With mighty whirl the multitudinous orb
  • Grinds the bright brook into an azure mist
  • Of elemental subtlety, like light; _255
  • And the wild odour of the forest flowers,
  • The music of the living grass and air,
  • The emerald light of leaf-entangled beams
  • Round its intense yet self-conflicting speed,
  • Seem kneaded into one aereal mass _260
  • Which drowns the sense. Within the orb itself,
  • Pillowed upon its alabaster arms,
  • Like to a child o'erwearied with sweet toil,
  • On its own folded wings, and wavy hair,
  • The Spirit of the Earth is laid asleep, _265
  • And you can see its little lips are moving,
  • Amid the changing light of their own smiles,
  • Like one who talks of what he loves in dream.
  • NOTE:
  • _242 white and green B; white, green 1820.
  • IONE:
  • 'Tis only mocking the orb's harmony.
  • PANTHEA:
  • And from a star upon its forehead, shoot, _270
  • Like swords of azure fire, or golden spears
  • With tyrant-quelling myrtle overtwined,
  • Embleming heaven and earth united now,
  • Vast beams like spokes of some invisible wheel
  • Which whirl as the orb whirls, swifter than thought, _275
  • Filling the abyss with sun-like lightenings,
  • And perpendicular now, and now transverse,
  • Pierce the dark soil, and as they pierce and pass,
  • Make bare the secrets of the earth's deep heart;
  • Infinite mine of adamant and gold, _280
  • Valueless stones, and unimagined gems,
  • And caverns on crystalline columns poised
  • With vegetable silver overspread;
  • Wells of unfathomed fire, and water springs
  • Whence the great sea, even as a child is fed, _285
  • Whose vapours clothe earth's monarch mountain-tops
  • With kingly, ermine snow. The beams flash on
  • And make appear the melancholy ruins
  • Of cancelled cycles; anchors, beaks of ships;
  • Planks turned to marble; quivers, helms, and spears, _290
  • And gorgon-headed targes, and the wheels
  • Of scythed chariots, and the emblazonry
  • Of trophies, standards, and armorial beasts,
  • Round which death laughed, sepulchred emblems
  • Of dead destruction, ruin within ruin! _295
  • The wrecks beside of many a city vast,
  • Whose population which the earth grew over
  • Was mortal, but not human; see, they lie,
  • Their monstrous works, and uncouth skeletons,
  • Their statues, homes and fanes; prodigious shapes _300
  • Huddled in gray annihilation, split,
  • Jammed in the hard, black deep; and over these,
  • The anatomies of unknown winged things,
  • And fishes which were isles of living scale,
  • And serpents, bony chains, twisted around _305
  • The iron crags, or within heaps of dust
  • To which the tortuous strength of their last pangs
  • Had crushed the iron crags; and over these
  • The jagged alligator, and the might
  • Of earth-convulsing behemoth, which once _310
  • Were monarch beasts, and on the slimy shores,
  • And weed-overgrown continents of earth,
  • Increased and multiplied like summer worms
  • On an abandoned corpse, till the blue globe
  • Wrapped deluge round it like a cloak, and they _315
  • Yelled, gasped, and were abolished; or some God
  • Whose throne was in a comet, passed, and cried,
  • 'Be not!' And like my words they were no more.
  • NOTES:
  • _274 spokes B, edition 1839; spoke 1820.
  • _276 lightenings B; lightnings 1820.
  • _280 mines B; mine 1820.
  • _282 poised B; poized edition 1839; poured 1820.
  • THE EARTH:
  • The joy, the triumph, the delight, the madness!
  • The boundless, overflowing, bursting gladness, _320
  • The vaporous exultation not to be confined!
  • Ha! ha! the animation of delight
  • Which wraps me, like an atmosphere of light,
  • And bears me as a cloud is borne by its own wind.
  • THE MOON:
  • Brother mine, calm wanderer, _325
  • Happy globe of land and air,
  • Some Spirit is darted like a beam from thee,
  • Which penetrates my frozen frame,
  • And passes with the warmth of flame,
  • With love, and odour, and deep melody _330
  • Through me, through me!
  • THE EARTH:
  • Ha! ha! the caverns of my hollow mountains,
  • My cloven fire-crags, sound-exulting fountains
  • Laugh with a vast and inextinguishable laughter.
  • The oceans, and the deserts, and the abysses, _335
  • And the deep air's unmeasured wildernesses,
  • Answer from all their clouds and billows, echoing after.
  • They cry aloud as I do. Sceptred curse,
  • Who all our green and azure universe
  • Threatenedst to muffle round with black destruction, sending _340
  • A solid cloud to rain hot thunderstones,
  • And splinter and knead down my children's bones,
  • All I bring forth, to one void mass battering and blending,--
  • Until each crag-like tower, and storied column,
  • Palace, and obelisk, and temple solemn, _345
  • My imperial mountains crowned with cloud, and snow, and fire,
  • My sea-like forests, every blade and blossom
  • Which finds a grave or cradle in my bosom,
  • Were stamped by thy strong hate into a lifeless mire:
  • How art thou sunk, withdrawn, covered, drunk up _350
  • By thirsty nothing, as the brackish cup
  • Drained by a desert-troop, a little drop for all;
  • And from beneath, around, within, above,
  • Filling thy void annihilation, love
  • Bursts in like light on caves cloven by the thunder-ball. _355
  • NOTES:
  • _335-_336 the abysses, And 1820, 1839; the abysses Of B.
  • _355 the omitted 1820.
  • THE MOON:
  • The snow upon my lifeless mountains
  • Is loosened into living fountains,
  • My solid oceans flow, and sing and shine:
  • A spirit from my heart bursts forth,
  • It clothes with unexpected birth _360
  • My cold bare bosom: Oh! it must be thine
  • On mine, on mine!
  • Gazing on thee I feel, I know
  • Green stalks burst forth, and bright flowers grow,
  • And living shapes upon my bosom move: _365
  • Music is in the sea and air,
  • Winged clouds soar here and there,
  • Dark with the rain new buds are dreaming of:
  • 'Tis love, all love!
  • THE EARTH:
  • It interpenetrates my granite mass, _370
  • Through tangled roots and trodden clay doth pass
  • Into the utmost leaves and delicatest flowers;
  • Upon the winds, among the clouds 'tis spread,
  • It wakes a life in the forgotten dead,
  • They breathe a spirit up from their obscurest bowers. _375
  • And like a storm bursting its cloudy prison
  • With thunder, and with whirlwind, has arisen
  • Out of the lampless caves of unimagined being:
  • With earthquake shock and swiftness making shiver
  • Thought's stagnant chaos, unremoved for ever, _380
  • Till hate, and fear, and pain, light-vanquished shadows, fleeing,
  • Leave Man, who was a many-sided mirror,
  • Which could distort to many a shape of error,
  • This true fair world of things, a sea reflecting love;
  • Which over all his kind, as the sun's heaven _385
  • Gliding o'er ocean, smooth, serene, and even,
  • Darting from starry depths radiance and life, doth move:
  • Leave Man, even as a leprous child is left,
  • Who follows a sick beast to some warm cleft
  • Of rocks, through which the might of healing springs is poured; _390
  • Then when it wanders home with rosy smile,
  • Unconscious, and its mother fears awhile
  • It is a spirit, then, weeps on her child restored.
  • Man, oh, not men! a chain of linked thought,
  • Of love and might to be divided not, _395
  • Compelling the elements with adamantine stress;
  • As the sun rules, even with a tyrant's gaze,
  • The unquiet republic of the maze
  • Of planets, struggling fierce towards heaven's free wilderness.
  • Man, one harmonious soul of many a soul, _400
  • Whose nature is its own divine control,
  • Where all things flow to all, as rivers to the sea;
  • Familiar acts are beautiful through love;
  • Labour, and pain, and grief, in life's green grove
  • Sport like tame beasts, none knew how gentle they could be! _405
  • His will, with all mean passions, bad delights,
  • And selfish cares, its trembling satellites,
  • A spirit ill to guide, but mighty to obey,
  • Is as a tempest-winged ship, whose helm
  • Love rules, through waves which dare not overwhelm, _410
  • Forcing life's wildest shores to own its sovereign sway.
  • All things confess his strength. Through the cold mass
  • Of marble and of colour his dreams pass;
  • Bright threads whence mothers weave the robes their children wear;
  • Language is a perpetual Orphic song, _415
  • Which rules with Daedal harmony a throng
  • Of thoughts and forms, which else senseless and shapeless were.
  • The lightning is his slave; heaven's utmost deep
  • Gives up her stars, and like a flock of sheep
  • They pass before his eye, are numbered, and roll on! _420
  • The tempest is his steed, he strides the air;
  • And the abyss shouts from her depth laid bare,
  • Heaven, hast thou secrets? Man unveils me; I have none.
  • NOTE:
  • _387 life B; light 1820.
  • THE MOON:
  • The shadow of white death has passed
  • From my path in heaven at last, _425
  • A clinging shroud of solid frost and sleep;
  • And through my newly-woven bowers,
  • Wander happy paramours,
  • Less mighty, but as mild as those who keep
  • Thy vales more deep. _430
  • THE EARTH:
  • As the dissolving warmth of dawn may fold
  • A half unfrozen dew-globe, green, and gold,
  • And crystalline, till it becomes a winged mist,
  • And wanders up the vault of the blue day,
  • Outlives the noon, and on the sun's last ray _435
  • Hangs o'er the sea, a fleece of fire and amethyst.
  • NOTE:
  • _432 unfrozen B, edition 1839; infrozen 1820.
  • THE MOON:
  • Thou art folded, thou art lying
  • In the light which is undying
  • Of thine own joy, and heaven's smile divine;
  • All suns and constellations shower _440
  • On thee a light, a life, a power
  • Which doth array thy sphere; thou pourest thine
  • On mine, on mine!
  • THE EARTH:
  • I spin beneath my pyramid of night,
  • Which points into the heavens dreaming delight, _445
  • Murmuring victorious joy in my enchanted sleep;
  • As a youth lulled in love-dreams faintly sighing,
  • Under the shadow of his beauty lying,
  • Which round his rest a watch of light and warmth doth keep.
  • THE MOON:
  • As in the soft and sweet eclipse, _450
  • When soul meets soul on lovers' lips,
  • High hearts are calm, and brightest eyes are dull;
  • So when thy shadow falls on me,
  • Then am I mute and still, by thee
  • Covered; of thy love, Orb most beautiful, _455
  • Full, oh, too full!
  • Thou art speeding round the sun
  • Brightest world of many a one;
  • Green and azure sphere which shinest
  • With a light which is divinest _460
  • Among all the lamps of Heaven
  • To whom life and light is given;
  • I, thy crystal paramour
  • Borne beside thee by a power
  • Like the polar Paradise, _465
  • Magnet-like of lovers' eyes;
  • I, a most enamoured maiden
  • Whose weak brain is overladen
  • With the pleasure of her love,
  • Maniac-like around thee move
  • Gazing, an insatiate bride, _470
  • On thy form from every side
  • Like a Maenad, round the cup
  • Which Agave lifted up
  • In the weird Cadmaean forest. _475
  • Brother, wheresoe'er thou soarest
  • I must hurry, whirl and follow
  • Through the heavens wide and hollow,
  • Sheltered by the warm embrace
  • Of thy soul from hungry space, _480
  • Drinking from thy sense and sight
  • Beauty, majesty, and might,
  • As a lover or a chameleon
  • Grows like what it looks upon,
  • As a violet's gentle eye _485
  • Gazes on the azure sky
  • Until its hue grows like what it beholds,
  • As a gray and watery mist
  • Glows like solid amethyst
  • Athwart the western mountain it enfolds, _490
  • When the sunset sleeps
  • Upon its snow--
  • THE EARTH:
  • And the weak day weeps
  • That it should be so.
  • Oh, gentle Moon, the voice of thy delight _495
  • Falls on me like thy clear and tender light
  • Soothing the seaman, borne the summer night,
  • Through isles for ever calm;
  • Oh, gentle Moon, thy crystal accents pierce
  • The caverns of my pride's deep universe, _500
  • Charming the tiger joy, whose tramplings fierce
  • Made wounds which need thy balm.
  • PANTHEA:
  • I rise as from a bath of sparkling water,
  • A bath of azure light, among dark rocks,
  • Out of the stream of sound.
  • IONE:
  • Ah me! sweet sister, _505
  • The stream of sound has ebbed away from us,
  • And you pretend to rise out of its wave,
  • Because your words fall like the clear, soft dew
  • Shaken from a bathing wood-nymph's limbs and hair.
  • PANTHEA:
  • Peace! peace! a mighty Power, which is as darkness, _510
  • Is rising out of Earth, and from the sky
  • Is showered like night, and from within the air
  • Bursts, like eclipse which had been gathered up
  • Into the pores of sunlight: the bright visions,
  • Wherein the singing spirits rode and shone, _515
  • Gleam like pale meteors through a watery night.
  • IONE:
  • There is a sense of words upon mine ear.
  • PANTHEA:
  • An universal sound like words: Oh, list!
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Thou, Earth, calm empire of a happy soul,
  • Sphere of divinest shapes and harmonies, _520
  • Beautiful orb! gathering as thou dost roll
  • The love which paves thy path along the skies:
  • THE EARTH:
  • I hear: I am as a drop of dew that dies.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Thou, Moon, which gazest on the nightly Earth
  • With wonder, as it gazes upon thee; _525
  • Whilst each to men, and beasts, and the swift birth
  • Of birds, is beauty, love, calm, harmony:
  • THE MOON:
  • I hear: I am a leaf shaken by thee!
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Ye Kings of suns and stars, Daemons and Gods,
  • Ethereal Dominations, who possess _530
  • Elysian, windless, fortunate abodes
  • Beyond Heaven's constellated wilderness:
  • A VOICE FROM ABOVE:
  • Our great Republic hears: we are blest, and bless.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Ye happy Dead, whom beams of brightest verse
  • Are clouds to hide, not colours to portray, _535
  • Whether your nature is that universe
  • Which once ye saw and suffered--
  • A VOICE: FROM BENEATH:
  • Or as they
  • Whom we have left, we change and pass away.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Ye elemental Genii, who have homes
  • From man's high mind even to the central stone _540
  • Of sullen lead; from heaven's star-fretted domes
  • To the dull weed some sea-worm battens on:
  • A CONFUSED VOICE:
  • We hear: thy words waken Oblivion.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Spirits, whose homes are flesh; ye beasts and birds,
  • Ye worms and fish; ye living leaves and buds; _545
  • Lightning and wind; and ye untameable herds,
  • Meteors and mists, which throng air's solitudes:--
  • NOTE:
  • _547 throng 1820, 1839; cancelled for feed B.
  • A VOICE:
  • Thy voice to us is wind among still woods.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • Man, who wert once a despot and a slave;
  • A dupe and a deceiver; a decay; _550
  • A traveller from the cradle to the grave
  • Through the dim night of this immortal day:
  • ALL:
  • Speak: thy strong words may never pass away.
  • DEMOGORGON:
  • This is the day, which down the void abysm
  • At the Earth-born's spell yawns for Heaven's despotism, _555
  • And Conquest is dragged captive through the deep:
  • Love, from its awful throne of patient power
  • In the wise heart, from the last giddy hour
  • Of dread endurance, from the slippery, steep,
  • And narrow verge of crag-like agony, springs _560
  • And folds over the world its healing wings.
  • Gentleness, Virtue, Wisdom, and Endurance,
  • These are the seals of that most firm assurance
  • Which bars the pit over Destruction's strength;
  • And if, with infirm hand, Eternity, _565
  • Mother of many acts and hours, should free
  • The serpent that would clasp her with his length;
  • These are the spells by which to reassume
  • An empire o'er the disentangled doom.
  • To suffer woes which Hope thinks infinite; _570
  • To forgive wrongs darker than death or night;
  • To defy Power, which seems omnipotent;
  • To love, and bear; to hope till Hope creates
  • From its own wreck the thing it contemplates;
  • Neither to change, nor falter, nor repent; _575
  • This, like thy glory, Titan, is to be
  • Good, great and joyous, beautiful and free;
  • This is alone Life, Joy, Empire, and Victory!
  • NOTES:
  • _559 dread B, edition 1839; dead 1820.
  • _575 falter B, edition 1839; flatter 1820.
  • CANCELLED FRAGMENTS OF "PROMETHEUS UNBOUND".
  • [First printed by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination of the Shelley
  • Manuscripts at the Bodleian Library", 1903, pages 33-7.]
  • (following 1._37.)
  • When thou descendst each night with open eyes
  • In torture, for a tyrant seldom sleeps,
  • Thou never; ...
  • ...
  • (following 1._195.)
  • Which thou henceforth art doomed to interweave
  • ...
  • (following the first two words of 1._342.)
  • [Of Hell:] I placed it in his choice to be
  • The crown, or trampled refuse of the world
  • With but one law itself a glorious boon--
  • I gave--
  • ...
  • (following 1._707.)
  • SECOND SPIRIT:
  • I leaped on the wings of the Earth-star damp
  • As it rose on the steam of a slaughtered camp--
  • The sleeping newt heard not our tramp
  • As swift as the wings of fire may pass--
  • We threaded the points of long thick grass
  • Which hide the green pools of the morass
  • But shook a water-serpent's couch
  • In a cleft skull, of many such
  • The widest; at the meteor's touch
  • The snake did seem to see in dream
  • Thrones and dungeons overthrown
  • Visions how unlike his own...
  • 'Twas the hope the prophecy
  • Which begins and ends in thee
  • ...
  • (following 2.1._110.)
  • Lift up thine eyes Panthea--they pierce they burn
  • PANTHEA:
  • Alas! I am consumed--I melt away
  • The fire is in my heart--
  • ASIA:
  • Thine eyes burn burn!--
  • Hide them within thine hair--
  • PANTHEA:
  • O quench thy lips
  • I sink I perish
  • ASIA:
  • Shelter me now--they burn
  • It is his spirit in their orbs...my life
  • Is ebbing fast--I cannot speak--
  • PANTHEA:
  • Rest, rest!
  • Sleep death annihilation pain! aught else
  • ...
  • (following 2.4._27.)
  • Or looks which tell that while the lips are calm
  • And the eyes cold, the spirit weeps within
  • Tears like the sanguine sweat of agony;
  • ...
  • UNCANCELLED PASSAGE.
  • (following 2.5._71.)
  • ASIA:
  • You said that spirits spoke, but it was thee
  • Sweet sister, for even now thy curved lips
  • Tremble as if the sound were dying there
  • Not dead
  • PANTHEA:
  • Alas it was Prometheus spoke
  • Within me, and I know it must be so
  • I mixed my own weak nature with his love
  • ...And my thoughts
  • Are like the many forests of a vale
  • Through which the might of whirlwind and of rain
  • Had passed--they rest rest through the evening light
  • As mine do now in thy beloved smile.
  • CANCELLED STAGE DIRECTIONS.
  • (following 1._221.)
  • [THE SOUND BENEATH AS OF EARTHQUAKE AND THE DRIVING OF WHIRLWINDS--THE
  • RAVINE IS SPLIT, AND THE PHANTASM OF JUPITER RISES, SURROUNDED BY
  • HEAVY CLOUDS WHICH DART FORTH LIGHTNING.]
  • (following 1._520.)
  • [ENTER RUSHING BY GROUPS OF HORRIBLE FORMS; THEY SPEAK AS THEY PASS IN
  • CHORUS.]
  • (following 1._552.)
  • [A SHADOW PASSES OVER THE SCENE, AND A PIERCING SHRIEK IS HEARD.]
  • NOTE ON "PROMETHEUS UNBOUND", BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • On the 12th of March, 1818, Shelley quitted England, never to return.
  • His principal motive was the hope that his health would be improved by
  • a milder climate; he suffered very much during the winter previous to
  • his emigration, and this decided his vacillating purpose. In December,
  • 1817, he had written from Marlow to a friend, saying:
  • 'My health has been materially worse. My feelings at intervals are of
  • a deadly and torpid kind, or awakened to such a state of unnatural and
  • keen excitement that, only to instance the organ of sight, I find the
  • very blades of grass and the boughs of distant trees present
  • themselves to me with microscopic distinctness. Towards evening I sink
  • into a state of lethargy and inanimation, and often remain for hours
  • on the sofa between sleep and waking, a prey to the most painful
  • irritability of thought. Such, with little intermission, is my
  • condition. The hours devoted to study are selected with vigilant
  • caution from among these periods of endurance. It is not for this that
  • I think of travelling to Italy, even if I knew that Italy would
  • relieve me. But I have experienced a decisive pulmonary attack; and
  • although at present it has passed away without any considerable
  • vestige of its existence, yet this symptom sufficiently shows the true
  • nature of my disease to be consumptive. It is to my advantage that
  • this malady is in its nature slow, and, if one is sufficiently alive
  • to its advances, is susceptible of cure from a warm climate. In the
  • event of its assuming any decided shape, IT WOULD BE MY DUTY to go to
  • Italy without delay. It is not mere health, but life, that I should
  • seek, and that not for my own sake--I feel I am capable of trampling
  • on all such weakness; but for the sake of those to whom my life may be
  • a source of happiness, utility, security, and honour, and to some of
  • whom my death might be all that is the reverse.'
  • In almost every respect his journey to Italy was advantageous. He left
  • behind friends to whom he was attached; but cares of a thousand kinds,
  • many springing from his lavish generosity, crowded round him in his
  • native country, and, except the society of one or two friends, he had
  • no compensation. The climate caused him to consume half his existence
  • in helpless suffering. His dearest pleasure, the free enjoyment of the
  • scenes of Nature, was marred by the same circumstance.
  • He went direct to Italy, avoiding even Paris, and did not make any
  • pause till he arrived at Milan. The first aspect of Italy enchanted
  • Shelley; it seemed a garden of delight placed beneath a clearer and
  • brighter heaven than any he had lived under before. He wrote long
  • descriptive letters during the first year of his residence in Italy,
  • which, as compositions, are the most beautiful in the world, and show
  • how truly he appreciated and studied the wonders of Nature and Art in
  • that divine land.
  • The poetical spirit within him speedily revived with all the power and
  • with more than all the beauty of his first attempts. He meditated
  • three subjects as the groundwork for lyrical dramas. One was the story
  • of Tasso; of this a slight fragment of a song of Tasso remains. The
  • other was one founded on the Book of Job, which he never abandoned in
  • idea, but of which no trace remains among his papers. The third was
  • the "Prometheus Unbound". The Greek tragedians were now his most
  • familiar companions in his wanderings, and the sublime majesty of
  • Aeschylus filled him with wonder and delight. The father of Greek
  • tragedy does not possess the pathos of Sophocles, nor the variety and
  • tenderness of Euripides; the interest on which he founds his dramas is
  • often elevated above human vicissitudes into the mighty passions and
  • throes of gods and demi-gods: such fascinated the abstract imagination
  • of Shelley.
  • We spent a month at Milan, visiting the Lake of Como during that
  • interval. Thence we passed in succession to Pisa, Leghorn, the Baths
  • of Lucca, Venice, Este, Rome, Naples, and back again to Rome, whither
  • we returned early in March, 1819. During all this time Shelley
  • meditated the subject of his drama, and wrote portions of it. Other
  • poems were composed during this interval, and while at the Bagni di
  • Lucca he translated Plato's "Symposium". But, though he diversified
  • his studies, his thoughts centred in the Prometheus. At last, when at
  • Rome, during a bright and beautiful Spring, he gave up his whole time
  • to the composition. The spot selected for his study was, as he
  • mentions in his preface, the mountainous ruins of the Baths of
  • Caracalla. These are little known to the ordinary visitor at Rome. He
  • describes them in a letter, with that poetry and delicacy and truth of
  • description which render his narrated impressions of scenery of
  • unequalled beauty and interest.
  • At first he completed the drama in three acts. It was not till several
  • months after, when at Florence, that he conceived that a fourth act, a
  • sort of hymn of rejoicing in the fulfilment of the prophecies with
  • regard to Prometheus, ought to be added to complete the composition.
  • The prominent feature of Shelley's theory of the destiny of the human
  • species was that evil is not inherent in the system of the creation,
  • but an accident that might be expelled. This also forms a portion of
  • Christianity: God made earth and man perfect, till he, by his fall,
  • 'Brought death into the world and all our woe.'
  • Shelley believed that mankind had only to will that there should be no
  • evil, and there would be none. It is not my part in these Notes to
  • notice the arguments that have been urged against this opinion, but to
  • mention the fact that he entertained it, and was indeed attached to it
  • with fervent enthusiasm. That man could be so perfectionized as to be
  • able to expel evil from his own nature, and from the greater part of
  • the creation, was the cardinal point of his system. And the subject he
  • loved best to dwell on was the image of One warring with the Evil
  • Principle, oppressed not only by it, but by all--even the good, who
  • were deluded into considering evil a necessary portion of humanity; a
  • victim full of fortitude and hope and the spirit of triumph emanating
  • from a reliance in the ultimate omnipotence of Good. Such he had
  • depicted in his last poem, when he made Laon the enemy and the victim
  • of tyrants. He now took a more idealized image of the same subject. He
  • followed certain classical authorities in figuring Saturn as the good
  • principle, Jupiter the usurping evil one, and Prometheus as the
  • regenerator, who, unable to bring mankind back to primitive innocence,
  • used knowledge as a weapon to defeat evil, by leading mankind, beyond
  • the state wherein they are sinless through ignorance, to that in which
  • they are virtuous through wisdom. Jupiter punished the temerity of the
  • Titan by chaining him to a rock of Caucasus, and causing a vulture to
  • devour his still-renewed heart. There was a prophecy afloat in heaven
  • portending the fall of Jove, the secret of averting which was known
  • only to Prometheus; and the god offered freedom from torture on
  • condition of its being communicated to him. According to the
  • mythological story, this referred to the offspring of Thetis, who was
  • destined to be greater than his father. Prometheus at last bought
  • pardon for his crime of enriching mankind with his gifts, by revealing
  • the prophecy. Hercules killed the vulture, and set him free; and
  • Thetis was married to Peleus, the father of Achilles.
  • Shelley adapted the catastrophe of this story to his peculiar views.
  • The son greater than his father, born of the nuptials of Jupiter and
  • Thetis, was to dethrone Evil, and bring back a happier reign than that
  • of Saturn. Prometheus defies the power of his enemy, and endures
  • centuries of torture; till the hour arrives when Jove, blind to the
  • real event, but darkly guessing that some great good to himself will
  • flow, espouses Thetis. At the moment, the Primal Power of the world
  • drives him from his usurped throne, and Strength, in the person of
  • Hercules, liberates Humanity, typified in Prometheus, from the
  • tortures generated by evil done or suffered. Asia, one of the
  • Oceanides, is the wife of Prometheus--she was, according to other
  • mythological interpretations, the same as Venus and Nature. When the
  • benefactor of mankind is liberated, Nature resumes the beauty of her
  • prime, and is united to her husband, the emblem of the human race, in
  • perfect and happy union. In the Fourth Act, the Poet gives further
  • scope to his imagination, and idealizes the forms of creation--such as
  • we know them, instead of such as they appeared to the Greeks. Maternal
  • Earth, the mighty parent, is superseded by the Spirit of the Earth,
  • the guide of our planet through the realms of sky; while his fair and
  • weaker companion and attendant, the Spirit of the Moon, receives bliss
  • from the annihilation of Evil in the superior sphere.
  • Shelley develops, more particularly in the lyrics of this drama, his
  • abstruse and imaginative theories with regard to the Creation. It
  • requires a mind as subtle and penetrating as his own to understand the
  • mystic meanings scattered throughout the poem. They elude the ordinary
  • reader by their abstraction and delicacy of distinction, but they are
  • far from vague. It was his design to write prose metaphysical essays
  • on the nature of Man, which would have served to explain much of what
  • is obscure in his poetry; a few scattered fragments of observations
  • and remarks alone remain. He considered these philosophical views of
  • Mind and Nature to be instinct with the intensest spirit of poetry.
  • More popular poets clothe the ideal with familiar and sensible
  • imagery. Shelley loved to idealize the real--to gift the mechanism of
  • the material universe with a soul and a voice, and to bestow such also
  • on the most delicate and abstract emotions and thoughts of the mind.
  • Sophocles was his great master in this species of imagery.
  • I find in one of his manuscript books some remarks on a line in the
  • "Oedipus Tyrannus", which show at once the critical subtlety of
  • Shelley's mind, and explain his apprehension of those 'minute and
  • remote distinctions of feeling, whether relative to external nature or
  • the living beings which surround us,' which he pronounces, in the
  • letter quoted in the note to the "Revolt of Islam", to comprehend all
  • that is sublime in man.
  • 'In the Greek Shakespeare, Sophocles, we find the image,
  • Pollas d' odous elthonta phrontidos planois:
  • a line of almost unfathomable depth of poetry; yet how simple are the
  • images in which it is arrayed!
  • "Coming to many ways in the wanderings of careful thought."
  • If the words odous and planois had not been used, the line might have
  • been explained in a metaphorical instead of an absolute sense, as we
  • say "WAYS and means," and "wanderings" for error and confusion. But
  • they meant literally paths or roads, such as we tread with our feet;
  • and wanderings, such as a man makes when he loses himself in a desert,
  • or roams from city to city--as Oedipus, the speaker of this verse, was
  • destined to wander, blind and asking charity. What a picture does this
  • line suggest of the mind as a wilderness of intricate paths, wide as
  • the universe, which is here made its symbol; a world within a world
  • which he who seeks some knowledge with respect to what he ought to do
  • searches throughout, as he would search the external universe for some
  • valued thing which was hidden from him upon its surface.'
  • In reading Shelley's poetry, we often find similar verses, resembling,
  • but not imitating the Greek in this species of imagery; for, though he
  • adopted the style, he gifted it with that originality of form and
  • colouring which sprung from his own genius.
  • In the "Prometheus Unbound", Shelley fulfils the promise quoted from a
  • letter in the Note on the "Revolt of Islam". (While correcting the
  • proof-sheets of that poem, it struck me that the poet had indulged in
  • an exaggerated view of the evils of restored despotism; which, however
  • injurious and degrading, were less openly sanguinary than the triumph
  • of anarchy, such as it appeared in France at the close of the last
  • century. But at this time a book, "Scenes of Spanish Life", translated
  • by Lieutenant Crawford from the German of Dr. Huber, of Rostock, fell
  • into my hands. The account of the triumph of the priests and the
  • serviles, after the French invasion of Spain in 1823, bears a strong
  • and frightful resemblance to some of the descriptions of the massacre
  • of the patriots in the "Revolt of Islam".) The tone of the composition
  • is calmer and more majestic, the poetry more perfect as a whole, and
  • the imagination displayed at once more pleasingly beautiful and more
  • varied and daring. The description of the Hours, as they are seen in
  • the cave of Demogorgon, is an instance of this--it fills the mind as
  • the most charming picture--we long to see an artist at work to bring
  • to our view the
  • 'cars drawn by rainbow-winged steeds
  • Which trample the dim winds: in each there stands
  • A wild-eyed charioteer urging their flight.
  • Some look behind, as fiends pursued them there,
  • And yet I see no shapes but the keen stars:
  • Others, with burning eyes, lean forth, and drink
  • With eager lips the wind of their own speed,
  • As if the thing they loved fled on before,
  • And now, even now, they clasped it. Their bright locks
  • Stream like a comet's flashing hair: they all
  • Sweep onward.'
  • Through the whole poem there reigns a sort of calm and holy spirit of
  • love; it soothes the tortured, and is hope to the expectant, till the
  • prophecy is fulfilled, and Love, untainted by any evil, becomes the
  • law of the world.
  • England had been rendered a painful residence to Shelley, as much by
  • the sort of persecution with which in those days all men of liberal
  • opinions were visited, and by the injustice he had lately endured in
  • the Court of Chancery, as by the symptoms of disease which made him
  • regard a visit to Italy as necessary to prolong his life. An exile,
  • and strongly impressed with the feeling that the majority of his
  • countrymen regarded him with sentiments of aversion such as his own
  • heart could experience towards none, he sheltered himself from such
  • disgusting and painful thoughts in the calm retreats of poetry, and
  • built up a world of his own--with the more pleasure, since he hoped to
  • induce some one or two to believe that the earth might become such,
  • did mankind themselves consent. The charm of the Roman climate helped
  • to clothe his thoughts in greater beauty than they had ever worn
  • before. And, as he wandered among the ruins made one with Nature in
  • their decay, or gazed on the Praxitelean shapes that throng the
  • Vatican, the Capitol, and the palaces of Rome, his soul imbibed forms
  • of loveliness which became a portion of itself. There are many
  • passages in the "Prometheus" which show the intense delight he
  • received from such studies, and give back the impression with a beauty
  • of poetical description peculiarly his own. He felt this, as a poet
  • must feel when he satisfies himself by the result of his labours; and
  • he wrote from Rome, 'My "Prometheus Unbound" is just finished, and in
  • a month or two I shall send it. It is a drama, with characters and
  • mechanism of a kind yet unattempted; and I think the execution is
  • better than any of my former attempts.'
  • I may mention, for the information of the more critical reader, that
  • the verbal alterations in this edition of "Prometheus" are made from a
  • list of errata written by Shelley himself.
  • ***
  • THE CENCI.
  • A TRAGEDY IN FIVE ACTS.
  • [Composed at Rome and near Leghorn (Villa Valsovano), May-August 5,
  • 1819; published 1820 (spring) by C. & J. Ollier, London. This edition
  • of two hundred and fifty copies was printed in Italy 'because,' writes
  • Shelley to Peacock, September 21, 1819, 'it costs, with all duties and
  • freightage, about half what it would cost in London.' A Table of
  • Errata in Mrs. Shelley's handwriting is printed by Forman in "The
  • Shelley Library", page 91. A second edition, published by Ollier in
  • 1821 (C.H. Reynell, printer), embodies the corrections indicated in
  • this Table. No manuscript of "The Cenci" is known to exist. Our text
  • follows that of the second edition (1821); variations of the first
  • (Italian) edition, the title-page of which bears date 1819, are given
  • in the footnotes. The text of the "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st and 2nd
  • editions (Mrs. Shelley), follows for the most part that of the editio
  • princeps of 1819.]
  • DEDICATION, TO LEIGH HUNT, ESQ.
  • Mv dear friend--
  • I inscribe with your name, from a distant country, and after an
  • absence whose months have seemed years, this the latest of my literary
  • efforts.
  • Those writings which I have hitherto published, have been little else
  • than visions which impersonate my own apprehensions of the beautiful
  • and the just. I can also perceive in them the literary defects
  • incidental to youth and impatience; they are dreams of what ought to
  • be, or may be. The drama which I now present to you is a sad reality.
  • I lay aside the presumptuous attitude of an instructor, and am content
  • to paint, with such colours as my own heart furnishes, that which has
  • been.
  • Had I known a person more highly endowed than yourself with all that
  • it becomes a man to possess, I had solicited for this work the
  • ornament of his name. One more gentle, honourable, innocent and brave;
  • one of more exalted toleration for all who do and think evil, and yet
  • himself more free from evil; one who knows better how to receive, and
  • how to confer a benefit, though he must ever confer far more than he
  • can receive; one of simpler, and, in the highest sense of the word, of
  • purer life and manners I never knew: and I had already been fortunate
  • in friendships when your name was added to the list.
  • In that patient and irreconcilable enmity with domestic and political
  • tyranny and imposture which the tenor of your life has illustrated,
  • and which, had I health and talents, should illustrate mine, let us,
  • comforting each other in our task, live and die.
  • All happiness attend you! Your affectionate friend,
  • PERCY B. SHELLEY.
  • Rome, May 29, 1819.
  • THE CENCI.
  • PREFACE.
  • A manuscript was communicated to me during my travels in Italy, which
  • was copied from the archives of the Cenci Palace at Rome, and contains
  • a detailed account of the horrors which ended in the extinction of one
  • of the noblest and richest families of that city during the
  • Pontificate of Clement VIII, in the year 1599. The story is, that an
  • old man having spent his life in debauchery and wickedness, conceived
  • at length an implacable hatred towards his children; which showed
  • itself towards one daughter under the form of an incestuous passion,
  • aggravated by every circumstance of cruelty and violence. This
  • daughter, after long and vain attempts to escape from what she
  • considered a perpetual contamination both of body and mind, at length
  • plotted with her mother-in-law and brother to murder their common
  • tyrant. The young maiden, who was urged to this tremendous deed by an
  • impulse which overpowered its horror, was evidently a most gentle and
  • amiable being, a creature formed to adorn and be admired, and thus
  • violently thwarted from her nature by the necessity of circumstance
  • and opinion. The deed was quickly discovered, and, in spite of the
  • most earnest prayers made to the Pope by the highest persons in Rome,
  • the criminals were put to death. The old man had during his life
  • repeatedly bought his pardon from the Pope for capital crimes of the
  • most enormous and unspeakable kind, at the price of a hundred thousand
  • crowns; the death therefore of his victims can scarcely be accounted
  • for by the love of justice. The Pope, among other motives for
  • severity, probably felt that whoever killed the Count Cenci deprived
  • his treasury of a certain and copious source of revenue. (The Papal
  • Government formerly took the most extraordinary precautions against
  • the publicity of facts which offer so tragical a demonstration of its
  • own wickedness and weakness; so that the communication of the
  • manuscript had become, until very lately, a matter of some
  • difficulty.) Such a story, if told so as to present to the reader all
  • the feelings of those who once acted it, their hopes and fears, their
  • confidences and misgivings, their various interests, passions, and
  • opinions, acting upon and with each other, yet all conspiring to one
  • tremendous end, would be as a light to make apparent some of the most
  • dark and secret caverns of the human heart.
  • On my arrival at Rome I found that the story of the Cenci was a
  • subject not to be mentioned in Italian society without awakening a
  • deep and breathless interest; and that the feelings of the company
  • never failed to incline to a romantic pity for the wrongs, and a
  • passionate exculpation of the horrible deed to which they urged her,
  • who has been mingled two centuries with the common dust. All ranks of
  • people knew the outlines of this history, and participated in the
  • overwhelming interest which it seems to have the magic of exciting in
  • the human heart. I had a copy of Guido's picture of Beatrice which is
  • preserved in the Colonna Palace, and my servant instantly recognized
  • it as the portrait of La Cenci.
  • This national and universal interest which the story produces and has
  • produced for two centuries and among all ranks of people in a great
  • City, where the imagination is kept for ever active and awake, first
  • suggested to me the conception of its fitness for a dramatic purpose.
  • In fact it is a tragedy which has already received, from its capacity
  • of awakening and sustaining the sympathy of men, approbation and
  • success. Nothing remained as I imagined, but to clothe it to the
  • apprehensions of my countrymen in such language and action as would
  • bring it home to their hearts. The deepest and the sublimest tragic
  • compositions, King Lear and the two plays in which the tale of Oedipus
  • is told, were stories which already existed in tradition, as matters
  • of popular belief and interest, before Shakspeare and Sophocles made
  • them familiar to the sympathy of all succeeding generations of
  • mankind.
  • This story of the Cenci is indeed eminently fearful and monstrous:
  • anything like a dry exhibition of it on the stage would be
  • insupportable. The person who would treat such a subject must increase
  • the ideal, and diminish the actual horror of the events, so that the
  • pleasure which arises from the poetry which exists in these
  • tempestuous sufferings and crimes may mitigate the pain of the
  • contemplation of the moral deformity from which they spring. There
  • must also be nothing attempted to make the exhibition subservient to
  • what is vulgarly termed a moral purpose. The highest moral purpose
  • aimed at in the highest species of the drama, is the teaching the
  • human heart, through its sympathies and antipathies, the knowledge of
  • itself; in proportion to the possession of which knowledge, every
  • human being is wise, just, sincere, tolerant and kind. If dogmas can
  • do more, it is well: but a drama is no fit place for the enforcement
  • of them. Undoubtedly, no person can be truly dishonoured by the act of
  • another; and the fit return to make to the most enormous injuries is
  • kindness and forbearance, and a resolution to convert the injurer from
  • his dark passions by peace and love. Revenge, retaliation, atonement,
  • are pernicious mistakes. If Beatrice had thought in this manner she
  • would have been wiser and better; but she would never have been a
  • tragic character: the few whom such an exhibition would have
  • interested, could never have been sufficiently interested for a
  • dramatic purpose, from the want of finding sympathy in their interest
  • among the mass who surround them. It is in the restless and
  • anatomizing casuistry with which men seek the justification of
  • Beatrice, yet feel that she has done what needs justification; it is
  • in the superstitious horror with which they contemplate alike her
  • wrongs and their revenge, that the dramatic character of what she did
  • and suffered, consists.
  • I have endeavoured as nearly as possible to represent the characters
  • as they probably were, and have sought to avoid the error of making
  • them actuated by my own conceptions of right or wrong, false or true:
  • thus under a thin veil converting names and actions of the sixteenth
  • century into cold impersonations of my own mind. They are represented
  • as Catholics, and as Catholics deeply tinged with religion. To a
  • Protestant apprehension there will appear something unnatural in the
  • earnest and perpetual sentiment of the relations between God and men
  • which pervade the tragedy of the Cenci. It will especially be startled
  • at the combination of an undoubting persuasion of the truth of the
  • popular religion with a cool and determined perseverance in enormous
  • guilt. But religion in Italy is not, as in Protestant countries, a
  • cloak to be worn on particular days; or a passport which those who do
  • not wish to be railed at carry with them to exhibit; or a gloomy
  • passion for penetrating the impenetrable mysteries of our being, which
  • terrifies its possessor at the darkness of the abyss to the brink of
  • which it has conducted him. Religion coexists, as it were, in the mind
  • of an Italian Catholic, with a faith in that of which all men have the
  • most certain knowledge. It is interwoven with the whole fabric of
  • life. It is adoration, faith, submission, penitence, blind admiration;
  • not a rule for moral conduct. It has no necessary connection with any
  • one virtue. The most atrocious villain may be rigidly devout, and
  • without any shock to established faith, confess himself to be so.
  • Religion pervades intensely the whole frame of society, and is
  • according to the temper of the mind which it inhabits, a passion, a
  • persuasion, an excuse, a refuge; never a check. Cenci himself built a
  • chapel in the court of his Palace, and dedicated it to St. Thomas the
  • Apostle, and established masses for the peace of his soul. Thus in the
  • first scene of the fourth act Lucretia's design in exposing herself to
  • the consequences of an expostulation with Cenci after having
  • administered the opiate, was to induce him by a feigned tale to
  • confess himself before death; this being esteemed by Catholics as
  • essential to salvation; and she only relinquishes her purpose when she
  • perceives that her perseverance would expose Beatrice to new outrages.
  • I have avoided with great care in writing this play the introduction
  • of what is commonly called mere poetry, and I imagine there will
  • scarcely be found a detached simile or a single isolated description,
  • unless Beatrice's description of the chasm appointed for her father's
  • murder should be judged to be of that nature. (An idea in this speech
  • was suggested by a most sublime passage in "El Purgaterio de San
  • Patricio" of Calderon; the only plagiarism which I have intentionally
  • committed in the whole piece.)
  • In a dramatic composition the imagery and the passion should
  • interpenetrate one another, the former being reserved simply for the
  • full development and illustration of the latter. Imagination is as the
  • immortal God which should assume flesh for the redemption of mortal
  • passion. It is thus that the most remote and the most familiar imagery
  • may alike be fit for dramatic purposes when employed in the
  • illustration of strong feeling, which raises what is low, and levels
  • to the apprehension that which is lofty, casting over all the shadow
  • of its own greatness. In other respects, I have written more
  • carelessly; that is, without an over-fastidious and learned choice of
  • words. In this respect I entirely agree with those modern critics who
  • assert that in order to move men to true sympathy we must use the
  • familiar language of men, and that our great ancestors the ancient
  • English poets are the writers, a study of whom might incite us to do
  • that for our own age which they have done for theirs. But it must be
  • the real language of men in general and not that of any particular
  • class to whose society the writer happens to belong. So much for what
  • I have attempted; I need not be assured that success is a very
  • different matter; particularly for one whose attention has but newly
  • been awakened to the study of dramatic literature.
  • I endeavoured whilst at Rome to observe such monuments of this story
  • as might be accessible to a stranger. The portrait of Beatrice at the
  • Colonna Palace is admirable as a work of art: it was taken by Guido
  • during her confinement in prison. But it is most interesting as a just
  • representation of one of the loveliest specimens of the workmanship of
  • Nature. There is a fixed and pale composure upon the features: she
  • seems sad and stricken down in spirit, yet the despair thus expressed
  • is lightened by the patience of gentleness. Her head is bound with
  • folds of white drapery from which the yellow strings of her golden
  • hair escape, and fall about her neck. The moulding of her face is
  • exquisitely delicate; the eyebrows are distinct and arched: the lips
  • have that permanent meaning of imagination and sensibility which
  • suffering has not repressed and which it seems as if death scarcely
  • could extinguish. Her forehead is large and clear; her eyes, which we
  • are told were remarkable for their vivacity, are swollen with weeping
  • and lustreless, but beautifully tender and serene. In the whole mien
  • there is a simplicity and dignity which, united with her exquisite
  • loveliness and deep sorrow, are inexpressibly pathetic. Beatrice Cenci
  • appears to have been one of those rare persons in whom energy and
  • gentleness dwell together without destroying one another: her nature
  • was simple and profound. The crimes and miseries in which she was an
  • actor and a sufferer are as the mask and the mantle in which
  • circumstances clothed her for her impersonation on the scene of the
  • world.
  • The Cenci Palace is of great extent; and though in part modernized,
  • there yet remains a vast and gloomy pile of feudal architecture in the
  • same state as during the dreadful scenes which are the subject of this
  • tragedy. The Palace is situated in an obscure corner of Rome, near the
  • quarter of the Jews, and from the upper windows you see the immense
  • ruins of Mount Palatine half hidden under their profuse overgrowth of
  • trees. There is a court in one part of the Palace (perhaps that in
  • which Cenci built the Chapel to St. Thomas), supported by granite
  • columns and adorned with antique friezes of fine workmanship, and
  • built up, according to the ancient Italian fashion, with balcony over
  • balcony of open-work. One of the gates of the Palace formed of immense
  • stones and leading through a passage, dark and lofty and opening into
  • gloomy subterranean chambers, struck me particularly.
  • Of the Castle of Petrella, I could obtain no further information than
  • that which is to be found in the manuscript.
  • THE CENCI: A TRAGEDY IN FIVE ACTS.
  • DRAMATIS PERSONAE:
  • COUNT FRANCESCO CENCI.
  • GIACOMO, BERNARDO, HIS SONS.
  • CARDINAL CAMILLO.
  • PRINCE COLONNA.
  • ORSINO, A PRELATE.
  • SAVELLA, THE POPE'S LEGATE.
  • OLIMPIO, MARZIO, ASSASSINS.
  • ANDREA, SERVANT TO CENCI.
  • NOBLES. JUDGES. GUARDS, SERVANTS.
  • LUCRETIA, WIFE OF CENCI AND STEP-MOTHER OF HIS CHILDREN.
  • BEATRICE, HIS DAUGHTER.
  • THE SCENE LIES PRINCIPALLY IN ROME, BUT CHANGES DURING THE FOURTH
  • ACT TO PETRELLA, A CASTLE AMONG THE APULIAN APENNINES.
  • TIME. DURING THE PONTIFICATE OF CLEMENT VIII.
  • ACT 1.
  • SCENE 1.1:
  • AN APARTMENT IN THE CENCI PALACE.
  • ENTER COUNT CENCI AND CARDINAL CAMILLO.
  • CAMILLO:
  • That matter of the murder is hushed up
  • If you consent to yield his Holiness
  • Your fief that lies beyond the Pincian gate.--
  • It needed all my interest in the conclave
  • To bend him to this point; he said that you _5
  • Bought perilous impunity with your gold;
  • That crimes like yours if once or twice compounded
  • Enriched the Church, and respited from hell
  • An erring soul which might repent and live: --
  • But that the glory and the interest _10
  • Of the high throne he fills, little consist
  • With making it a daily mart of guilt
  • As manifold and hideous as the deeds
  • Which you scarce hide from men's revolted eyes.
  • CENCI:
  • The third of my possessions--let it go! _15
  • Ay, I once heard the nephew of the Pope
  • Had sent his architect to view the ground,
  • Meaning to build a villa on my vines
  • The next time I compounded with his uncle:
  • I little thought he should outwit me so! _20
  • Henceforth no witness--not the lamp--shall see
  • That which the vassal threatened to divulge
  • Whose throat is choked with dust for his reward.
  • The deed he saw could not have rated higher
  • Than his most worthless life:--it angers me! _25
  • Respited me from Hell! So may the Devil
  • Respite their souls from Heaven! No doubt Pope Clement,
  • And his most charitable nephews, pray
  • That the Apostle Peter and the Saints
  • Will grant for their sake that I long enjoy _30
  • Strength, wealth, and pride, and lust, and length of days
  • Wherein to act the deeds which are the stewards
  • Of their revenue.--But much yet remains
  • To which they show no title.
  • CAMILLO:
  • Oh, Count Cenci!
  • So much that thou mightst honourably live _35
  • And reconcile thyself with thine own heart
  • And with thy God, and with the offended world.
  • How hideously look deeds of lust and blood
  • Through those snow white and venerable hairs!--
  • Your children should be sitting round you now, _40
  • But that you fear to read upon their looks
  • The shame and misery you have written there.
  • Where is your wife? Where is your gentle daughter?
  • Methinks her sweet looks, which make all things else
  • Beauteous and glad, might kill the fiend within you. _45
  • Why is she barred from all society
  • But her own strange and uncomplaining wrongs?
  • Talk with me, Count,--you know I mean you well.
  • I stood beside your dark and fiery youth
  • Watching its bold and bad career, as men _50
  • Watch meteors, but it vanished not--I marked
  • Your desperate and remorseless manhood; now
  • Do I behold you in dishonoured age
  • Charged with a thousand unrepented crimes.
  • Yet I have ever hoped you would amend, _55
  • And in that hope have saved your life three times.
  • CENCI:
  • For which Aldobrandino owes you now
  • My fief beyond the Pincian.--Cardinal,
  • One thing, I pray you, recollect henceforth,
  • And so we shall converse with less restraint. _60
  • A man you knew spoke of my wife and daughter--
  • He was accustomed to frequent my house;
  • So the next day HIS wife and daughter came
  • And asked if I had seen him; and I smiled:
  • I think they never saw him any more. _65
  • CAMILLO:
  • Thou execrable man, beware!--
  • CENCI:
  • Of thee?
  • Nay, this is idle: --We should know each other.
  • As to my character for what men call crime
  • Seeing I please my senses as I list,
  • And vindicate that right with force or guile, _70
  • It is a public matter, and I care not
  • If I discuss it with you. I may speak
  • Alike to you and my own conscious heart--
  • For you give out that you have half reformed me,
  • Therefore strong vanity will keep you silent _75
  • If fear should not; both will, I do not doubt.
  • All men delight in sensual luxury,
  • All men enjoy revenge; and most exult
  • Over the tortures they can never feel--
  • Flattering their secret peace with others' pain. _80
  • But I delight in nothing else. I love
  • The sight of agony, and the sense of joy,
  • When this shall be another's, and that mine.
  • And I have no remorse and little fear,
  • Which are, I think, the checks of other men. _85
  • This mood has grown upon me, until now
  • Any design my captious fancy makes
  • The picture of its wish, and it forms none
  • But such as men like you would start to know,
  • Is as my natural food and rest debarred _90
  • Until it be accomplished.
  • CAMILLO:
  • Art thou not
  • Most miserable?
  • CENCI:
  • Why miserable?--
  • No.--I am what your theologians call
  • Hardened;--which they must be in impudence,
  • So to revile a man's peculiar taste. _95
  • True, I was happier than I am, while yet
  • Manhood remained to act the thing I thought;
  • While lust was sweeter than revenge; and now
  • Invention palls:--Ay, we must all grow old--
  • And but that there remains a deed to act _100
  • Whose horror might make sharp an appetite
  • Duller than mine--I'd do,--I know not what.
  • When I was young I thought of nothing else
  • But pleasure; and I fed on honey sweets:
  • Men, by St. Thomas! cannot live like bees, _105
  • And I grew tired:--yet, till I killed a foe,
  • And heard his groans, and heard his children's groans,
  • Knew I not what delight was else on earth,
  • Which now delights me little. I the rather
  • Look on such pangs as terror ill conceals, _110
  • The dry fixed eyeball; the pale, quivering lip,
  • Which tell me that the spirit weeps within
  • Tears bitterer than the bloody sweat of Christ.
  • I rarely kill the body, which preserves,
  • Like a strong prison, the soul within my power, _115
  • Wherein I feed it with the breath of fear
  • For hourly pain.
  • NOTE:
  • _100 And but that edition 1821; But that editions 1819, 1839.
  • CAMILLO:
  • Hell's most abandoned fiend
  • Did never, in the drunkenness of guilt,
  • Speak to his heart as now you speak to me;
  • I thank my God that I believe you not. _120
  • [ENTER ANDREA.]
  • ANDREA:
  • My Lord, a gentleman from Salamanca
  • Would speak with you.
  • CENCI:
  • Bid him attend me
  • In the grand saloon.
  • [EXIT ANDREA.]
  • CAMILLO:
  • Farewell; and I will pray
  • Almighty God that thy false, impious words
  • Tempt not his spirit to abandon thee. _125
  • [EXIT CAMILLO.]
  • CENCI:
  • The third of my possessions! I must use
  • Close husbandry, or gold, the old man's sword,
  • Falls from my withered hand. But yesterday
  • There came an order from the Pope to make
  • Fourfold provision for my cursed sons; _130
  • Whom I had sent from Rome to Salamanca,
  • Hoping some accident might cut them off;
  • And meaning if I could to starve them there.
  • I pray thee, God, send some quick death upon them!
  • Bernardo and my wife could not be worse _135
  • If dead and damned:--then, as to Beatrice--
  • [LOOKING AROUND HIM SUSPICIOUSLY.]
  • I think they cannot hear me at that door;
  • What if they should? And yet I need not speak
  • Though the heart triumphs with itself in words.
  • O, thou most silent air, that shalt not hear _140
  • What now I think! Thou, pavement, which I tread
  • Towards her chamber,--let your echoes talk
  • Of my imperious step scorning surprise,
  • But not of my intent!--Andrea!
  • NOTES:
  • _131 Whom I had edition 1821; Whom I have editions 1819, 1839.
  • _140 that shalt edition 1821; that shall editions 1819, 1839.
  • [ENTER ANDREA.]
  • ANDREA:
  • My lord?
  • CENCI:
  • Bid Beatrice attend me in her chamber _145
  • This evening:--no, at midnight and alone.
  • [EXEUNT.]
  • SCENE 1.2:
  • A GARDEN OF THE CENCI PALACE.
  • ENTER BEATRICE AND ORSINO, AS IN CONVERSATION.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Pervert not truth,
  • Orsino. You remember where we held
  • That conversation;--nay, we see the spot
  • Even from this cypress;--two long years are past
  • Since, on an April midnight, underneath _5
  • The moonlight ruins of Mount Palatine,
  • I did confess to you my secret mind.
  • ORSINO:
  • You said you loved me then.
  • BEATRICE:
  • You are a Priest.
  • Speak to me not of love.
  • ORSINO:
  • I may obtain
  • The dispensation of the Pope to marry. _10
  • Because I am a Priest do you believe
  • Your image, as the hunter some struck deer,
  • Follows me not whether I wake or sleep?
  • BEATRICE:
  • As I have said, speak to me not of love;
  • Had you a dispensation I have not; _15
  • Nor will I leave this home of misery
  • Whilst my poor Bernard, and that gentle lady
  • To whom I owe life, and these virtuous thoughts,
  • Must suffer what I still have strength to share.
  • Alas, Orsino! All the love that once _20
  • I felt for you, is turned to bitter pain.
  • Ours was a youthful contract, which you first
  • Broke, by assuming vows no Pope will loose.
  • And thus I love you still, but holily,
  • Even as a sister or a spirit might; _25
  • And so I swear a cold fidelity.
  • And it is well perhaps we shall not marry.
  • You have a sly, equivocating vein
  • That suits me not.--Ah, wretched that I am!
  • Where shall I turn? Even now you look on me _30
  • As you were not my friend, and as if you
  • Discovered that I thought so, with false smiles
  • Making my true suspicion seem your wrong.
  • Ah, no! forgive me; sorrow makes me seem
  • Sterner than else my nature might have been; _35
  • I have a weight of melancholy thoughts,
  • And they forebode,--but what can they forebode
  • Worse than I now endure?
  • NOTE:
  • _24 And thus editions 1821, 1839; And yet edition 1819.
  • ORSINO:
  • All will be well.
  • Is the petition yet prepared? You know
  • My zeal for all you wish, sweet Beatrice; _40
  • Doubt not but I will use my utmost skill
  • So that the Pope attend to your complaint.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Your zeal for all I wish;--Ah me, you are cold!
  • Your utmost skill...speak but one word...
  • [ASIDE.]
  • Alas!
  • Weak and deserted creature that I am, _45
  • Here I stand bickering with my only friend!
  • [TO ORSINO.]
  • This night my father gives a sumptuous feast,
  • Orsino; he has heard some happy news
  • From Salamanca, from my brothers there,
  • And with this outward show of love he mocks _50
  • His inward hate. 'Tis bold hypocrisy,
  • For he would gladlier celebrate their deaths,
  • Which I have heard him pray for on his knees:
  • Great God! that such a father should be mine!
  • But there is mighty preparation made, _55
  • And all our kin, the Cenci, will be there,
  • And all the chief nobility of Rome.
  • And he has bidden me and my pale Mother
  • Attire ourselves in festival array.
  • Poor lady! She expects some happy change _60
  • In his dark spirit from this act; I none.
  • At supper I will give you the petition:
  • Till when--farewell.
  • ORSINO:
  • Farewell.
  • [EXIT BEATRICE.]
  • I know the Pope
  • Will ne'er absolve me from my priestly vow
  • But by absolving me from the revenue _65
  • Of many a wealthy see; and, Beatrice,
  • I think to win thee at an easier rate.
  • Nor shall he read her eloquent petition:
  • He might bestow her on some poor relation
  • Of his sixth cousin, as he did her sister, _70
  • And I should be debarred from all access.
  • Then as to what she suffers from her father,
  • In all this there is much exaggeration:--
  • Old men are testy and will have their way;
  • A man may stab his enemy, or his vassal, _75
  • And live a free life as to wine or women,
  • And with a peevish temper may return
  • To a dull home, and rate his wife and children;
  • Daughters and wives call this foul tyranny.
  • I shall be well content if on my conscience _80
  • There rest no heavier sin than what they suffer
  • From the devices of my love--a net
  • From which he shall escape not. Yet I fear
  • Her subtle mind, her awe-inspiring gaze,
  • Whose beams anatomize me nerve by nerve _85
  • And lay me bare, and make me blush to see
  • My hidden thoughts.--Ah, no! A friendless girl
  • Who clings to me, as to her only hope:--
  • I were a fool, not less than if a panther
  • Were panic-stricken by the antelope's eye, _90
  • If she escape me.
  • NOTE:
  • _75 vassal edition 1821; slave edition 1819.
  • [EXIT.]
  • SCENE 1.3:
  • A MAGNIFICENT HALL IN THE CENCI PALACE.
  • A BANQUET.
  • ENTER CENCI, LUCRETIA, BEATRICE, ORSINO, CAMILLO, NOBLES.
  • CENCI:
  • Welcome, my friends and kinsmen; welcome ye,
  • Princes and Cardinals, pillars of the church,
  • Whose presence honours our festivity.
  • I have too long lived like an anchorite,
  • And in my absence from your merry meetings _5
  • An evil word is gone abroad of me;
  • But I do hope that you, my noble friends,
  • When you have shared the entertainment here,
  • And heard the pious cause for which 'tis given,
  • And we have pledged a health or two together, _10
  • Will think me flesh and blood as well as you;
  • Sinful indeed, for Adam made all so,
  • But tender-hearted, meek and pitiful.
  • FIRST GUEST:
  • In truth, my Lord, you seem too light of heart,
  • Too sprightly and companionable a man, _15
  • To act the deeds that rumour pins on you.
  • [TO HIS COMPANION.]
  • I never saw such blithe and open cheer
  • In any eye!
  • SECOND GUEST:
  • Some most desired event,
  • In which we all demand a common joy,
  • Has brought us hither; let us hear it, Count. _20
  • CENCI:
  • It is indeed a most desired event.
  • If when a parent from a parent's heart
  • Lifts from this earth to the great Father of all
  • A prayer, both when he lays him down to sleep,
  • And when he rises up from dreaming it; _25
  • One supplication, one desire, one hope,
  • That he would grant a wish for his two sons,
  • Even all that he demands in their regard--
  • And suddenly beyond his dearest hope
  • It is accomplished, he should then rejoice, _30
  • And call his friends and kinsmen to a feast,
  • And task their love to grace his merriment,--
  • Then honour me thus far--for I am he.
  • BEATRICE [TO LUCRETIA]:
  • Great God! How horrible! some dreadful ill
  • Must have befallen my brothers.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Fear not, child, _35
  • He speaks too frankly.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Ah! My blood runs cold.
  • I fear that wicked laughter round his eye,
  • Which wrinkles up the skin even to the hair.
  • CENCI:
  • Here are the letters brought from Salamanca;
  • Beatrice, read them to your mother. God! _40
  • I thank thee! In one night didst thou perform,
  • By ways inscrutable, the thing I sought.
  • My disobedient and rebellious sons
  • Are dead!--Why, dead!--What means this change of cheer?
  • You hear me not, I tell you they are dead; _45
  • And they will need no food or raiment more:
  • The tapers that did light them the dark way
  • Are their last cost. The Pope, I think, will not
  • Expect I should maintain them in their coffins.
  • Rejoice with me--my heart is wondrous glad. _50
  • [LUCRETIA SINKS, HALF FAINTING; BEATRICE SUPPORTS HER.]
  • BEATRICE :
  • It is not true!--Dear Lady, pray look up.
  • Had it been true, there is a God in Heaven,
  • He would not live to boast of such a boon.
  • Unnatural man, thou knowest that it is false.
  • CENCI:
  • Ay, as the word of God; whom here I call _55
  • To witness that I speak the sober truth;--
  • And whose most favouring Providence was shown
  • Even in the manner of their deaths. For Rocco
  • Was kneeling at the mass, with sixteen others,
  • When the church fell and crushed him to a mummy, _60
  • The rest escaped unhurt. Cristofano
  • Was stabbed in error by a jealous man,
  • Whilst she he loved was sleeping with his rival;
  • All in the self-same hour of the same night;
  • Which shows that Heaven has special care of me. _65
  • I beg those friends who love me, that they mark
  • The day a feast upon their calendars.
  • It was the twenty-seventh of December:
  • Ay, read the letters if you doubt my oath.
  • [THE ASSEMBLY APPEARS CONFUSED; SEVERAL OF THE GUESTS RISE.]
  • FIRST GUEST:
  • Oh, horrible! I will depart--
  • SECOND GUEST:
  • And I.--
  • THIRD GUEST:
  • No, stay! _70
  • I do believe it is some jest; though faith!
  • 'Tis mocking us somewhat too solemnly.
  • I think his son has married the Infanta,
  • Or found a mine of gold in El Dorado.
  • 'Tis but to season some such news; stay, stay! _75
  • I see 'tis only raillery by his smile.
  • CENCI [FILLING A BOWL OF WINE, AND LIFTING IT UP]:
  • Oh, thou bright wine whose purple splendour leaps
  • And bubbles gaily in this golden bowl
  • Under the lamplight, as my spirits do,
  • To hear the death of my accursed sons! _80
  • Could I believe thou wert their mingled blood,
  • Then would I taste thee like a sacrament,
  • And pledge with thee the mighty Devil in Hell,
  • Who, if a father's curses, as men say,
  • Climb with swift wings after their children's souls, _85
  • And drag them from the very throne of Heaven,
  • Now triumphs in my triumph!--But thou art
  • Superfluous; I have drunken deep of joy,
  • And I will taste no other wine to-night.
  • Here, Andrea! Bear the bowl around.
  • A GUEST [RISING]:
  • Thou wretch! _90
  • Will none among this noble company
  • Check the abandoned villain?
  • CAMILLO:
  • For God's sake,
  • Let me dismiss the guests! You are insane,
  • Some ill will come of this.
  • SECOND GUEST:
  • Seize, silence him!
  • FIRST GUEST:
  • I will!
  • THIRD GUEST:
  • And I!
  • CENCI [ADDRESSING THOSE WHO RISE WITH A THREATENING GESTURE]:
  • Who moves? Who speaks?
  • [TURNING TO THE COMPANY.]
  • 'tis nothing, _95
  • Enjoy yourselves.--Beware! For my revenge
  • Is as the sealed commission of a king
  • That kills, and none dare name the murderer.
  • [THE BANQUET IS BROKEN UP; SEVERAL OF THE GUESTS ARE DEPARTING.]
  • BEATRICE:
  • I do entreat you, go not, noble guests;
  • What, although tyranny and impious hate _100
  • Stand sheltered by a father's hoary hair?
  • What if 'tis he who clothed us in these limbs
  • Who tortures them, and triumphs? What, if we,
  • The desolate and the dead, were his own flesh,
  • His children and his wife, whom he is bound _105
  • To love and shelter? Shall we therefore find
  • No refuge in this merciless wide world?
  • O think what deep wrongs must have blotted out
  • First love, then reverence in a child's prone mind,
  • Till it thus vanquish shame and fear! O think! _110
  • I have borne much, and kissed the sacred hand
  • Which crushed us to the earth, and thought its stroke
  • Was perhaps some paternal chastisement!
  • Have excused much, doubted; and when no doubt
  • Remained, have sought by patience, love, and tears _115
  • To soften him, and when this could not be
  • I have knelt down through the long sleepless nights
  • And lifted up to God, the Father of all,
  • Passionate prayers: and when these were not heard
  • I have still borne,--until I meet you here, _120
  • Princes and kinsmen, at this hideous feast
  • Given at my brothers' deaths. Two yet remain,
  • His wife remains and I, whom if ye save not,
  • Ye may soon share such merriment again
  • As fathers make over their children's graves. _125
  • O Prince Colonna, thou art our near kinsman,
  • Cardinal, thou art the Pope's chamberlain,
  • Camillo, thou art chief justiciary,
  • Take us away!
  • CENCI [HE HAS BEEN CONVERSING WITH CAMILLO DURING THE FIRST PART OF
  • BEATRICE'S SPEECH; HE HEARS THE CONCLUSION, AND NOW ADVANCES]:
  • I hope my good friends here
  • Will think of their own daughters--or perhaps _130
  • Of their own throats--before they lend an ear
  • To this wild girl.
  • BEATRICE [NOT NOTICING THE WORDS OF CENCI]:
  • Dare no one look on me?
  • None answer? Can one tyrant overbear
  • The sense of many best and wisest men?
  • Or is it that I sue not in some form _135
  • Of scrupulous law, that ye deny my suit?
  • O God! That I were buried with my brothers!
  • And that the flowers of this departed spring
  • Were fading on my grave! And that my father
  • Were celebrating now one feast for all! _140
  • NOTE:
  • _132 no edition 1821; not edition 1819.
  • CAMILLO:
  • A bitter wish for one so young and gentle.
  • Can we do nothing?
  • COLONNA:
  • Nothing that I see.
  • Count Cenci were a dangerous enemy:
  • Yet I would second any one.
  • A CARDINAL:
  • And I.
  • CENCI:
  • Retire to your chamber, insolent girl! _145
  • BEATRICE:
  • Retire thou, impious man! Ay, hide thyself
  • Where never eye can look upon thee more!
  • Wouldst thou have honour and obedience
  • Who art a torturer? Father, never dream,
  • Though thou mayst overbear this company, _150
  • But ill must come of ill.--Frown not on me!
  • Haste, hide thyself, lest with avenging looks
  • My brothers' ghosts should hunt thee from thy seat!
  • Cover thy face from every living eye,
  • And start if thou but hear a human step: _155
  • Seek out some dark and silent corner, there,
  • Bow thy white head before offended God,
  • And we will kneel around, and fervently
  • Pray that he pity both ourselves and thee.
  • CENCI:
  • My friends, I do lament this insane girl _160
  • Has spoilt the mirth of our festivity.
  • Good night, farewell; I will not make you longer
  • Spectators of our dull domestic quarrels.
  • Another time.--
  • [EXEUNT ALL BUT CENCI AND BEATRICE.]
  • My brain is swimming round;
  • Give me a bowl of wine!
  • [TO BEATRICE.]
  • Thou painted viper! _165
  • Beast that thou art! Fair and yet terrible!
  • I know a charm shall make thee meek and tame,
  • Now get thee from my sight!
  • [EXIT BEATRICE.]
  • Here, Andrea,
  • Fill up this goblet with Greek wine. I said
  • I would not drink this evening; but I must; _170
  • For, strange to say, I feel my spirits fail
  • With thinking what I have decreed to do.--
  • [DRINKING THE WINE.]
  • Be thou the resolution of quick youth
  • Within my veins, and manhood's purpose stern,
  • And age's firm, cold, subtle villainy; _175
  • As if thou wert indeed my children's blood
  • Which I did thirst to drink! The charm works well;
  • It must be done; it shall be done, I swear!
  • [EXIT.]
  • END OF ACT 1.
  • ACT 2.
  • SCENE 2.1:
  • AN APARTMENT IN THE CENCI PALACE.
  • ENTER LUCRETIA AND BERNARDO.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Weep not, my gentle boy; he struck but me
  • Who have borne deeper wrongs. In truth, if he
  • Had killed me, he had done a kinder deed.
  • O God Almighty, do Thou look upon us,
  • We have no other friend but only Thee! _5
  • Yet weep not; though I love you as my own,
  • I am not your true mother.
  • BERNARDO:
  • Oh, more, more,
  • Than ever mother was to any child,
  • That have you been to me! Had he not been
  • My father, do you think that I should weep! _10
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Alas! Poor boy, what else couldst thou have done?
  • [ENTER BEATRICE.]
  • BEATRICE [IN A HURRIED VOICE]:
  • Did he pass this way? Have you seen him, brother?
  • Ah, no! that is his step upon the stairs;
  • 'Tis nearer now; his hand is on the door;
  • Mother, if I to thee have ever been _15
  • A duteous child, now save me! Thou, great God,
  • Whose image upon earth a father is,
  • Dost thou indeed abandon me? He comes;
  • The door is opening now; I see his face;
  • He frowns on others, but he smiles on me, _20
  • Even as he did after the feast last night.
  • [ENTER A SERVANT.]
  • Almighty God, how merciful Thou art!
  • 'Tis but Orsino's servant.--Well, what news?
  • SERVANT:
  • My master bids me say, the Holy Father
  • Has sent back your petition thus unopened. _25
  • [GIVING A PAPER.]
  • And he demands at what hour 'twere secure
  • To visit you again?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • At the Ave Mary.
  • [EXIT SERVANT.]
  • So, daughter, our last hope has failed. Ah me!
  • How pale you look; you tremble, and you stand
  • Wrapped in some fixed and fearful meditation, _30
  • As if one thought were over strong for you:
  • Your eyes have a chill glare; O, dearest child!
  • Are you gone mad? If not, pray speak to me.
  • BEATRICE:
  • You see I am not mad: I speak to you.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • You talked of something that your father did _35
  • After that dreadful feast? Could it be worse
  • Than when he smiled, and cried, 'My sons are dead!'
  • And every one looked in his neighbour's face
  • To see if others were as white as he?
  • At the first word he spoke I felt the blood _40
  • Rush to my heart, and fell into a trance;
  • And when it passed I sat all weak and wild;
  • Whilst you alone stood up, and with strong words
  • Checked his unnatural pride; and I could see
  • The devil was rebuked that lives in him. _45
  • Until this hour thus you have ever stood
  • Between us and your father's moody wrath
  • Like a protecting presence; your firm mind
  • Has been our only refuge and defence:
  • What can have thus subdued it? What can now _50
  • Have given you that cold melancholy look,
  • Succeeding to your unaccustomed fear?
  • BEATRICE:
  • What is it that you say? I was just thinking
  • 'Twere better not to struggle any more.
  • Men, like my father, have been dark and bloody, _55
  • Yet never--Oh! Before worse comes of it
  • 'Twere wise to die: it ends in that at last.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Oh, talk not so, dear child! Tell me at once
  • What did your father do or say to you?
  • He stayed not after that accursed feast _60
  • One moment in your chamber.--Speak to me.
  • BERNARDO:
  • Oh, sister, sister, prithee, speak to us!
  • BEATRICE [SPEAKING VERY SLOWLY, WITH A FORCED CALMNESS]:
  • It was one word, Mother, one little word;
  • One look, one smile.
  • [WILDLY.]
  • Oh! He has trampled me
  • Under his feet, and made the blood stream down _65
  • My pallid cheeks. And he has given us all
  • Ditch-water, and the fever-stricken flesh
  • Of buffaloes, and bade us eat or starve,
  • And we have eaten.--He has made me look
  • On my beloved Bernardo, when the rust _70
  • Of heavy chains has gangrened his sweet limbs,
  • And I have never yet despaired--but now!
  • What could I say?
  • [RECOVERING HERSELF.]
  • Ah, no! 'tis nothing new.
  • The sufferings we all share have made me wild:
  • He only struck and cursed me as he passed; _75
  • He said, he looked, he did;--nothing at all
  • Beyond his wont, yet it disordered me.
  • Alas! I am forgetful of my duty,
  • I should preserve my senses for your sake.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Nay, Beatrice; have courage, my sweet girl. _80
  • If any one despairs it should be I
  • Who loved him once, and now must live with him
  • Till God in pity call for him or me.
  • For you may, like your sister, find some husband,
  • And smile, years hence, with children round your knees; _85
  • Whilst I, then dead, and all this hideous coil
  • Shall be remembered only as a dream.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Talk not to me, dear lady, of a husband.
  • Did you not nurse me when my mother died?
  • Did you not shield me and that dearest boy? _90
  • And had we any other friend but you
  • In infancy, with gentle words and looks,
  • To win our father not to murder us?
  • And shall I now desert you? May the ghost
  • Of my dead Mother plead against my soul _95
  • If I abandon her who filled the place
  • She left, with more, even, than a mother's love!
  • BERNARDO:
  • And I am of my sister's mind. Indeed
  • I would not leave you in this wretchedness,
  • Even though the Pope should make me free to live _100
  • In some blithe place, like others of my age,
  • With sports, and delicate food, and the fresh air.
  • Oh, never think that I will leave you, Mother!
  • LUCRETIA:
  • My dear, dear children!
  • [ENTER CENCI, SUDDENLY.]
  • CENCI:
  • What! Beatrice here!
  • Come hither!
  • [SHE SHRINKS BACK, AND COVERS HER FACE.]
  • Nay, hide not your face, 'tis fair; _105
  • Look up! Why, yesternight you dared to look
  • With disobedient insolence upon me,
  • Bending a stern and an inquiring brow
  • On what I meant; whilst I then sought to hide
  • That which I came to tell you--but in vain. _110
  • BEATRICE [WILDLY STAGGERING TOWARDS THE DOOR]:
  • Oh, that the earth would gape! Hide me, O God!
  • CENCI:
  • Then it was I whose inarticulate words
  • Fell from my lips, and who with tottering steps
  • Fled from your presence, as you now from mine.
  • Stay, I command you--from this day and hour _115
  • Never again, I think, with fearless eye,
  • And brow superior, and unaltered cheek,
  • And that lip made for tenderness or scorn,
  • Shalt thou strike dumb the meanest of mankind;
  • Me least of all. Now get thee to thy chamber! _120
  • Thou too, loathed image of thy cursed mother,
  • [TO BERNARDO.]
  • Thy milky, meek face makes me sick with hate!
  • [EXEUNT BEATRICE AND BERNARDO.]
  • [ASIDE.]
  • So much has passed between us as must make
  • Me bold, her fearful.--'Tis an awful thing
  • To touch such mischief as I now conceive: _125
  • So men sit shivering on the dewy bank,
  • And try the chill stream with their feet; once in...
  • How the delighted spirit pants for joy!
  • LUCRETIA [ADVANCING TIMIDLY TOWARDS HIM]:
  • O husband! Pray forgive poor Beatrice.
  • She meant not any ill.
  • CENCI:
  • Nor you perhaps? _130
  • Nor that young imp, whom you have taught by rote
  • Parricide with his alphabet? Nor Giacomo?
  • Nor those two most unnatural sons, who stirred
  • Enmity up against me with the Pope?
  • Whom in one night merciful God cut off: _135
  • Innocent lambs! They thought not any ill.
  • You were not here conspiring? You said nothing
  • Of how I might be dungeoned as a madman;
  • Or be condemned to death for some offence,
  • And you would be the witnesses?--This failing, _140
  • How just it were to hire assassins, or
  • Put sudden poison in my evening drink?
  • Or smother me when overcome by wine?
  • Seeing we had no other judge but God,
  • And He had sentenced me, and there were none _145
  • But you to be the executioners
  • Of His decree enregistered in heaven?
  • Oh, no! You said not this?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • So help me God,
  • I never thought the things you charge me with!
  • CENCI:
  • If you dare to speak that wicked lie again _150
  • I'll kill you. What! It was not by your counsel
  • That Beatrice disturbed the feast last night?
  • You did not hope to stir some enemies
  • Against me, and escape, and laugh to scorn
  • What every nerve of you now trembles at? _155
  • You judged that men were bolder than they are;
  • Few dare to stand between their grave and me.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Look not so dreadfully! By my salvation
  • I knew not aught that Beatrice designed;
  • Nor do I think she designed any thing _160
  • Until she heard you talk of her dead brothers.
  • CENCI:
  • Blaspheming liar! You are damned for this!
  • But I will take you where you may persuade
  • The stones you tread on to deliver you:
  • For men shall there be none but those who dare _165
  • All things--not question that which I command.
  • On Wednesday next I shall set out: you know
  • That savage rock, the Castle of Petrella:
  • 'Tis safely walled, and moated round about:
  • Its dungeons underground, and its thick towers _170
  • Never told tales; though they have heard and seen
  • What might make dumb things speak.--Why do you linger?
  • Make speediest preparation for the journey!
  • [EXIT LUCRETIA.]
  • The all-beholding sun yet shines; I hear
  • A busy stir of men about the streets; _175
  • I see the bright sky through the window panes:
  • It is a garish, broad, and peering day;
  • Loud, light, suspicious, full of eyes and ears,
  • And every little corner, nook, and hole
  • Is penetrated with the insolent light. _180
  • Come darkness! Yet, what is the day to me?
  • And wherefore should I wish for night, who do
  • A deed which shall confound both night and day?
  • 'Tis she shall grope through a bewildering mist
  • Of horror: if there be a sun in heaven _185
  • She shall not dare to look upon its beams;
  • Nor feel its warmth. Let her then wish for night;
  • The act I think shall soon extinguish all
  • For me: I bear a darker deadlier gloom
  • Than the earth's shade, or interlunar air, _190
  • Or constellations quenched in murkiest cloud,
  • In which I walk secure and unbeheld
  • Towards my purpose.--Would that it were done!
  • [EXIT.]
  • SCENE 2.2:
  • A CHAMBER IN THE VATICAN.
  • ENTER CAMILLO AND GIACOMO, IN CONVERSATION.
  • CAMILLO:
  • There is an obsolete and doubtful law
  • By which you might obtain a bare provision
  • Of food and clothing--
  • GIACOMO:
  • Nothing more? Alas!
  • Bare must be the provision which strict law
  • Awards, and aged, sullen avarice pays. _5
  • Why did my father not apprentice me
  • To some mechanic trade? I should have then
  • Been trained in no highborn necessities
  • Which I could meet not by my daily toil.
  • The eldest son of a rich nobleman _10
  • Is heir to all his incapacities;
  • He has wide wants, and narrow powers. If you,
  • Cardinal Camillo, were reduced at once
  • From thrice-driven beds of down, and delicate food,
  • An hundred servants, and six palaces, _15
  • To that which nature doth indeed require?--
  • CAMILLO:
  • Nay, there is reason in your plea; 'twere hard.
  • GIACOMO:
  • 'Tis hard for a firm man to bear: but I
  • Have a dear wife, a lady of high birth,
  • Whose dowry in ill hour I lent my father _20
  • Without a bond or witness to the deed:
  • And children, who inherit her fine senses,
  • The fairest creatures in this breathing world;
  • And she and they reproach me not. Cardinal,
  • Do you not think the Pope would interpose _25
  • And stretch authority beyond the law?
  • CAMILLO:
  • Though your peculiar case is hard, I know
  • The Pope will not divert the course of law.
  • After that impious feast the other night
  • I spoke with him, and urged him then to check _30
  • Your father's cruel hand; he frowned and said,
  • 'Children are disobedient, and they sting
  • Their fathers' hearts to madness and despair,
  • Requiting years of care with contumely.
  • I pity the Count Cenci from my heart; _35
  • His outraged love perhaps awakened hate,
  • And thus he is exasperated to ill.
  • In the great war between the old and young
  • I, who have white hairs and a tottering body,
  • Will keep at least blameless neutrality.' _40
  • [ENTER ORSINO.]
  • You, my good Lord Orsino, heard those words.
  • ORSINO:
  • What words?
  • GIACOMO:
  • Alas, repeat them not again!
  • There then is no redress for me, at least
  • None but that which I may achieve myself,
  • Since I am driven to the brink.--But, say, _45
  • My innocent sister and my only brother
  • Are dying underneath my father's eye.
  • The memorable torturers of this land,
  • Galeaz Visconti, Borgia, Ezzelin,
  • Never inflicted on their meanest slave _50
  • What these endure; shall they have no protection?
  • CAMILLO:
  • Why, if they would petition to the Pope
  • I see not how he could refuse it--yet
  • He holds it of most dangerous example
  • In aught to weaken the paternal power, _55
  • Being, as 'twere, the shadow of his own.
  • I pray you now excuse me. I have business
  • That will not bear delay.
  • [EXIT CAMILLO.]
  • GIACOMO:
  • But you, Orsino,
  • Have the petition: wherefore not present it?
  • ORSINO:
  • I have presented it, and backed it with _60
  • My earnest prayers, and urgent interest;
  • It was returned unanswered. I doubt not
  • But that the strange and execrable deeds
  • Alleged in it--in truth they might well baffle
  • Any belief--have turned the Pope's displeasure _65
  • Upon the accusers from the criminal:
  • So I should guess from what Camillo said.
  • GIACOMO:
  • My friend, that palace-walking devil Gold
  • Has whispered silence to his Holiness:
  • And we are left, as scorpions ringed with fire. _70
  • What should we do but strike ourselves to death?
  • For he who is our murderous persecutor
  • Is shielded by a father's holy name,
  • Or I would--
  • [STOPS ABRUPTLY.]
  • ORSINO:
  • What? Fear not to speak your thought.
  • Words are but holy as the deeds they cover: _75
  • A priest who has forsworn the God he serves;
  • A judge who makes Truth weep at his decree;
  • A friend who should weave counsel, as I now,
  • But as the mantle of some selfish guile;
  • A father who is all a tyrant seems, _80
  • Were the profaner for his sacred name.
  • NOTE:
  • _77 makes Truth edition 1821; makes the truth editions 1819, 1839.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Ask me not what I think; the unwilling brain
  • Feigns often what it would not; and we trust
  • Imagination with such fantasies
  • As the tongue dares not fashion into words, _85
  • Which have no words, their horror makes them dim
  • To the mind's eye.--My heart denies itself
  • To think what you demand.
  • ORSINO:
  • But a friend's bosom
  • Is as the inmost cave of our own mind
  • Where we sit shut from the wide gaze of day, _90
  • And from the all-communicating air.
  • You look what I suspected--
  • GIACOMO:
  • Spare me now!
  • I am as one lost in a midnight wood,
  • Who dares not ask some harmless passenger
  • The path across the wilderness, lest he, _95
  • As my thoughts are, should be--a murderer.
  • I know you are my friend, and all I dare
  • Speak to my soul that will I trust with thee.
  • But now my heart is heavy, and would take
  • Lone counsel from a night of sleepless care. _100
  • Pardon me, that I say farewell--farewell!
  • I would that to my own suspected self
  • I could address a word so full of peace.
  • ORSINO:
  • Farewell!--Be your thoughts better or more bold.
  • [EXIT GIACOMO.]
  • I had disposed the Cardinal Camillo _105
  • To feed his hope with cold encouragement:
  • It fortunately serves my close designs
  • That 'tis a trick of this same family
  • To analyse their own and other minds.
  • Such self-anatomy shall teach the will _110
  • Dangerous secrets: for it tempts our powers,
  • Knowing what must be thought, and may be done.
  • Into the depth of darkest purposes:
  • So Cenci fell into the pit; even I,
  • Since Beatrice unveiled me to myself, _115
  • And made me shrink from what I cannot shun,
  • Show a poor figure to my own esteem,
  • To which I grow half reconciled. I'll do
  • As little mischief as I can; that thought
  • Shall fee the accuser conscience.
  • [AFTER A PAUSE.]
  • Now what harm _120
  • If Cenci should be murdered?--Yet, if murdered,
  • Wherefore by me? And what if I could take
  • The profit, yet omit the sin and peril
  • In such an action? Of all earthly things
  • I fear a man whose blows outspeed his words _125
  • And such is Cenci: and while Cenci lives
  • His daughter's dowry were a secret grave
  • If a priest wins her.--Oh, fair Beatrice!
  • Would that I loved thee not, or loving thee,
  • Could but despise danger and gold and all _130
  • That frowns between my wish and its effect.
  • Or smiles beyond it! There is no escape...
  • Her bright form kneels beside me at the altar,
  • And follows me to the resort of men,
  • And fills my slumber with tumultuous dreams, _135
  • So when I wake my blood seems liquid fire;
  • And if I strike my damp and dizzy head
  • My hot palm scorches it: her very name,
  • But spoken by a stranger, makes my heart
  • Sicken and pant; and thus unprofitably _140
  • I clasp the phantom of unfelt delights
  • Till weak imagination half possesses
  • The self-created shadow. Yet much longer
  • Will I not nurse this life of feverous hours:
  • From the unravelled hopes of Giacomo _145
  • I must work out my own dear purposes.
  • I see, as from a tower, the end of all:
  • Her father dead; her brother bound to me
  • By a dark secret, surer than the grave;
  • Her mother scared and unexpostulating _150
  • From the dread manner of her wish achieved;
  • And she!--Once more take courage, my faint heart;
  • What dares a friendless maiden matched with thee?
  • I have such foresight as assures success:
  • Some unbeheld divinity doth ever, _155
  • When dread events are near, stir up men's minds
  • To black suggestions; and he prospers best,
  • Not who becomes the instrument of ill,
  • But who can flatter the dark spirit, that makes
  • Its empire and its prey of other hearts _160
  • Till it become his slave...as I will do.
  • [EXIT.]
  • END OF ACT 2.
  • ACT 3.
  • SCENE 3.1:
  • AN APARTMENT IN THE CENCI PALACE.
  • LUCRETIA, TO HER ENTER BEATRICE.
  • BEATRICE [SHE ENTERS STAGGERING AND SPEAKS WILDLY]:
  • Reach me that handkerchief!--My brain is hurt;
  • My eyes are full of blood; just wipe them for me...
  • I see but indistinctly...
  • LUCRETIA:
  • My sweet child,
  • You have no wound; 'tis only a cold dew
  • That starts from your dear brow.--Alas! Alas! _5
  • What has befallen?
  • BEATRICE:
  • How comes this hair undone?
  • Its wandering strings must be what blind me so,
  • And yet I tied it fast.--Oh, horrible!
  • The pavement sinks under my feet! The walls
  • Spin round! I see a woman weeping there, _10
  • And standing calm and motionless, whilst I
  • Slide giddily as the world reels...My God!
  • The beautiful blue heaven is flecked with blood!
  • The sunshine on the floor is black! The air
  • Is changed to vapours such as the dead breathe _15
  • In charnel pits! Pah! I am choked! There creeps
  • A clinging, black, contaminating mist
  • About me...'tis substantial, heavy, thick,
  • I cannot pluck it from me, for it glues
  • My fingers and my limbs to one another, _20
  • And eats into my sinews, and dissolves
  • My flesh to a pollution, poisoning
  • The subtle, pure, and inmost spirit of life!
  • My God! I never knew what the mad felt
  • Before; for I am mad beyond all doubt! _25
  • [MORE WILDLY.]
  • No, I am dead! These putrefying limbs
  • Shut round and sepulchre the panting soul
  • Which would burst forth into the wandering air!
  • [A PAUSE.]
  • What hideous thought was that I had even now?
  • 'Tis gone; and yet its burthen remains here _30
  • O'er these dull eyes...upon this weary heart!
  • O, world! O, life! O, day! O, misery!
  • LUCRETIA:
  • What ails thee, my poor child? She answers not:
  • Her spirit apprehends the sense of pain,
  • But not its cause; suffering has dried away _35
  • The source from which it sprung...
  • BEATRICE [FRANTICLY]:
  • Like Parricide...
  • Misery has killed its father: yet its father
  • Never like mine...O, God! What thing am I?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • My dearest child, what has your father done?
  • BEATRICE [DOUBTFULLY]:
  • Who art thou, questioner? I have no father. _40
  • [ASIDE.]
  • She is the madhouse nurse who tends on me,
  • It is a piteous office.
  • [TO LUCRETIA, IN A SLOW, SUBDUED VOICE.]
  • Do you know
  • I thought I was that wretched Beatrice
  • Men speak of, whom her father sometimes hales
  • From hall to hall by the entangled hair; _45
  • At others, pens up naked in damp cells
  • Where scaly reptiles crawl, and starves her there,
  • Till she will eat strange flesh. This woful story
  • So did I overact in my sick dreams,
  • That I imagined...no, it cannot be! _50
  • Horrible things have been in this wide world,
  • Prodigious mixtures, and confusions strange
  • Of good and ill; and worse have been conceived
  • Than ever there was found a heart to do.
  • But never fancy imaged such a deed _55
  • As...
  • [PAUSES, SUDDENLY RECOLLECTING HERSELF.]
  • Who art thou? Swear to me, ere I die
  • With fearful expectation, that indeed
  • Thou art not what thou seemest...Mother!
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Oh!
  • My sweet child, know you...
  • BEATRICE:
  • Yet speak it not:
  • For then if this be truth, that other too _60
  • Must be a truth, a firm enduring truth,
  • Linked with each lasting circumstance of life,
  • Never to change, never to pass away.
  • Why so it is. This is the Cenci Palace;
  • Thou art Lucretia; I am Beatrice. _65
  • I have talked some wild words, but will no more.
  • Mother, come near me: from this point of time,
  • I am...
  • [HER VOICE DIES AWAY FAINTLY.]
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Alas! What has befallen thee, child?
  • What has thy father done?
  • BEATRICE:
  • What have I done?
  • Am I not innocent? Is it my crime _70
  • That one with white hair, and imperious brow,
  • Who tortured me from my forgotten years,
  • As parents only dare, should call himself
  • My father, yet should be!--Oh, what am I?
  • What name, what place, what memory shall be mine? _75
  • What retrospects, outliving even despair?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • He is a violent tyrant, surely, child:
  • We know that death alone can make us free;
  • His death or ours. But what can he have done
  • Of deadlier outrage or worse injury? _80
  • Thou art unlike thyself; thine eyes shoot forth
  • A wandering and strange spirit. Speak to me,
  • Unlock those pallid hands whose fingers twine
  • With one another.
  • BEATRICE:
  • 'Tis the restless life
  • Tortured within them. If I try to speak, _85
  • I shall go mad. Ay, something must be done;
  • What, yet I know not...something which shall make
  • The thing that I have suffered but a shadow
  • In the dread lightning which avenges it;
  • Brief, rapid, irreversible, destroying _90
  • The consequence of what it cannot cure.
  • Some such thing is to be endured or done:
  • When I know what, I shall be still and calm,
  • And never anything will move me more.
  • But now!--O blood, which art my father's blood, _95
  • Circling through these contaminated veins,
  • If thou, poured forth on the polluted earth,
  • Could wash away the crime, and punishment
  • By which I suffer...no, that cannot be!
  • Many might doubt there were a God above _100
  • Who sees and permits evil, and so die:
  • That faith no agony shall obscure in me.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • It must indeed have been some bitter wrong;
  • Yet what, I dare not guess. Oh, my lost child,
  • Hide not in proud impenetrable grief _105
  • Thy sufferings from my fear.
  • BEATRICE:
  • I hide them not.
  • What are the words which yon would have me speak?
  • I, who can feign no image in my mind
  • Of that which has transformed me: I, whose thought
  • Is like a ghost shrouded and folded up _110
  • In its own formless horror: of all words,
  • That minister to mortal intercourse,
  • Which wouldst thou hear? For there is none to tell
  • My misery: if another ever knew
  • Aught like to it, she died as I will die, _115
  • And left it, as I must, without a name.
  • Death, Death! Our law and our religion call thee
  • A punishment and a reward...Oh, which
  • Have I deserved?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • The peace of innocence;
  • Till in your season you be called to heaven. _120
  • Whate'er you may have suffered, you have done
  • No evil. Death must be the punishment
  • Of crime, or the reward of trampling down
  • The thorns which God has strewed upon the path
  • Which leads to immortality.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Ay, death... _125
  • The punishment of crime. I pray thee, God,
  • Let me not be bewildered while I judge.
  • If I must live day after day, and keep
  • These limbs, the unworthy temple of Thy spirit,
  • As a foul den from which what Thou abhorrest _130
  • May mock Thee, unavenged...it shall not be!
  • Self-murder...no, that might be no escape,
  • For Thy decree yawns like a Hell between
  • Our will and it:--O! In this mortal world
  • There is no vindication and no law _135
  • Which can adjudge and execute the doom
  • Of that through which I suffer.
  • [ENTER ORSINO.]
  • [SHE APPROACHES HIM SOLEMNLY.]
  • Welcome, Friend!
  • I have to tell you that, since last we met,
  • I have endured a wrong so great and strange,
  • That neither life nor death can give me rest. _140
  • Ask me not what it is, for there are deeds
  • Which have no form, sufferings which have no tongue.
  • NOTE:
  • _140 nor edition 1821; or editions 1819, 1839 (1st).
  • ORSINO:
  • And what is he who has thus injured you?
  • BEATRICE:
  • The man they call my father: a dread name.
  • ORSINO:
  • It cannot be...
  • BEATRICE:
  • What it can be, or not, _145
  • Forbear to think. It is, and it has been;
  • Advise me how it shall not be again.
  • I thought to die; but a religious awe
  • Restrains me, and the dread lest death itself
  • Might be no refuge from the consciousness _150
  • Of what is yet unexpiated. Oh, speak!
  • ORSINO:
  • Accuse him of the deed, and let the law
  • Avenge thee.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Oh, ice-hearted counsellor!
  • If I could find a word that might make known
  • The crime of my destroyer; and that done, _155
  • My tongue should like a knife tear out the secret
  • Which cankers my heart's core; ay, lay all bare,
  • So that my unpolluted fame should be
  • With vilest gossips a stale mouthed story;
  • A mock, a byword, an astonishment:-- _160
  • If this were done, which never shall be done,
  • Think of the offender's gold, his dreaded hate,
  • And the strange horror of the accuser's tale,
  • Baffling belief, and overpowering speech;
  • Scarce whispered, unimaginable, wrapped _165
  • In hideous hints...Oh, most assured redress!
  • ORSINO:
  • You will endure it then?
  • BEATRICE:
  • Endure!--Orsino,
  • It seems your counsel is small profit.
  • [TURNS FROM HIM, AND SPEAKS HALF TO HERSELF.]
  • Ay,
  • All must be suddenly resolved and done.
  • What is this undistinguishable mist _170
  • Of thoughts, which rise, like shadow after shadow,
  • Darkening each other?
  • ORSINO:
  • Should the offender live?
  • Triumph in his misdeed? and make, by use,
  • His crime, whate'er it is, dreadful no doubt,
  • Thine element; until thou mayest become _175
  • Utterly lost; subdued even to the hue
  • Of that which thou permittest?
  • BEATRICE [TO HERSELF]:
  • Mighty death!
  • Thou double-visaged shadow! Only judge!
  • Rightfullest arbiter!
  • [SHE RETIRES, ABSORBED IN THOUGHT.]
  • LUCRETIA:
  • If the lightning
  • Of God has e'er descended to avenge... _180
  • ORSINO:
  • Blaspheme not! His high Providence commits
  • Its glory on this earth, and their own wrongs
  • Into the hands of men; if they neglect
  • To punish crime...
  • LUCRETIA:
  • But if one, like this wretch,
  • Should mock, with gold, opinion, law, and power? _185
  • If there be no appeal to that which makes
  • The guiltiest tremble? If because our wrongs,
  • For that they are unnatural, strange and monstrous,
  • Exceed all measure of belief? O God!
  • If, for the very reasons which should make _190
  • Redress most swift and sure, our injurer triumphs?
  • And we, the victims, bear worse punishment
  • Than that appointed for their torturer?
  • ORSINO:
  • Think not
  • But that there is redress where there is wrong,
  • So we be bold enough to seize it.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • How? _195
  • If there were any way to make all sure,
  • I know not...but I think it might be good
  • To...
  • ORSINO:
  • Why, his late outrage to Beatrice;
  • For it is such, as I but faintly guess,
  • As makes remorse dishonour, and leaves her _200
  • Only one duty, how she may avenge:
  • You, but one refuge from ills ill endured;
  • Me, but one counsel...
  • LUCRETIA:
  • For we cannot hope
  • That aid, or retribution, or resource
  • Will arise thence, where every other one _205
  • Might find them with less need.
  • [BEATRICE ADVANCES.]
  • ORSINO:
  • Then...
  • BEATRICE:
  • Peace, Orsino!
  • And, honoured Lady, while I speak, I pray,
  • That you put off, as garments overworn,
  • Forbearance and respect, remorse and fear,
  • And all the fit restraints of daily life, _210
  • Which have been borne from childhood, but which now
  • Would be a mockery to my holier plea.
  • As I have said, I have endured a wrong,
  • Which, though it be expressionless, is such
  • As asks atonement; both for what is past, _215
  • And lest I be reserved, day after day,
  • To load with crimes an overburthened soul,
  • And be...what ye can dream not. I have prayed
  • To God, and I have talked with my own heart,
  • And have unravelled my entangled will, _220
  • And have at length determined what is right.
  • Art thou my friend, Orsino? False or true?
  • Pledge thy salvation ere I speak.
  • ORSINO:
  • I swear
  • To dedicate my cunning, and my strength,
  • My silence, and whatever else is mine, _225
  • To thy commands.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • You think we should devise
  • His death?
  • BEATRICE:
  • And execute what is devised,
  • And suddenly. We must be brief and bold.
  • ORSINO:
  • And yet most cautious.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • For the jealous laws
  • Would punish us with death and infamy _230
  • For that which it became themselves to do.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Be cautious as ye may, but prompt. Orsino,
  • What are the means?
  • ORSINO:
  • I know two dull, fierce outlaws,
  • Who think man's spirit as a worm's, and they
  • Would trample out, for any slight caprice, _235
  • The meanest or the noblest life. This mood
  • Is marketable here in Rome. They sell
  • What we now want.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • To-morrow before dawn,
  • Cenci will take us to that lonely rock,
  • Petrella, in the Apulian Apennines. _240
  • If he arrive there...
  • BEATRICE:
  • He must not arrive.
  • ORSINO:
  • Will it be dark before you reach the tower?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • The sun will scarce be set.
  • BEATRICE:
  • But I remember
  • Two miles on this side of the fort, the road
  • Crosses a deep ravine; 'tis rough and narrow, _245
  • And winds with short turns down the precipice;
  • And in its depth there is a mighty rock,
  • Which has, from unimaginable years,
  • Sustained itself with terror and with toil
  • Over a gulf, and with the agony _250
  • With which it clings seems slowly coming down;
  • Even as a wretched soul hour after hour,
  • Clings to the mass of life; yet, clinging, leans;
  • And leaning, makes more dark the dread abyss
  • In which it fears to fall: beneath this crag _255
  • Huge as despair, as if in weariness,
  • The melancholy mountain yawns...below,
  • You hear but see not an impetuous torrent
  • Raging among the caverns, and a bridge
  • Crosses the chasm; and high above there grow, _260
  • With intersecting trunks, from crag to crag,
  • Cedars, and yews, and pines; whose tangled hair
  • Is matted in one solid roof of shade
  • By the dark ivy's twine. At noonday here
  • 'Tis twilight, and at sunset blackest night. _265
  • ORSINO:
  • Before you reach that bridge make some excuse
  • For spurring on your mules, or loitering
  • Until...
  • BEATRICE:
  • What sound is that?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Hark! No, it cannot be a servant's step
  • It must be Cenci, unexpectedly _270
  • Returned...Make some excuse for being here.
  • BEATRICE [TO ORSINO AS SHE GOES OUT]:
  • That step we hear approach must never pass
  • The bridge of which we spoke.
  • [EXEUNT LUCRETIA AND BEATRICE.]
  • ORSINO:
  • What shall I do?
  • Cenci must find me here, and I must bear
  • The imperious inquisition of his looks _275
  • As to what brought me hither: let me mask
  • Mine own in some inane and vacant smile.
  • [ENTER GIACOMO, IN A HURRIED MANNER.]
  • How! Have you ventured hither? Know you then
  • That Cenci is from home?
  • NOTE:
  • _278 hither edition 1821; thither edition 1819.
  • GIACOMO:
  • I sought him here;
  • And now must wait till he returns.
  • ORSINO:
  • Great God! _280
  • Weigh you the danger of this rashness?
  • GIACOMO:
  • Ay!
  • Does my destroyer know his danger? We
  • Are now no more, as once, parent and child,
  • But man to man; the oppressor to the oppressed;
  • The slanderer to the slandered; foe to foe: _285
  • He has cast Nature off, which was his shield,
  • And Nature casts him off, who is her shame;
  • And I spurn both. Is it a father's throat
  • Which I will shake, and say, I ask not gold;
  • I ask not happy years; nor memories _290
  • Of tranquil childhood; nor home-sheltered love;
  • Though all these hast thou torn from me, and more;
  • But only my fair fame; only one hoard
  • Of peace, which I thought hidden from thy hate,
  • Under the penury heaped on me by thee, _295
  • Or I will...God can understand and pardon,
  • Why should I speak with man?
  • ORSINO:
  • Be calm, dear friend.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Well, I will calmly tell you what he did.
  • This old Francesco Cenci, as you know,
  • Borrowed the dowry of my wife from me, _300
  • And then denied the loan; and left me so
  • In poverty, the which I sought to mend
  • By holding a poor office in the state.
  • It had been promised to me, and already
  • I bought new clothing for my ragged babes, _305
  • And my wife smiled; and my heart knew repose.
  • When Cenci's intercession, as I found,
  • Conferred this office on a wretch, whom thus
  • He paid for vilest service. I returned
  • With this ill news, and we sate sad together _310
  • Solacing our despondency with tears
  • Of such affection and unbroken faith
  • As temper life's worst bitterness; when he,
  • As he is wont, came to upbraid and curse,
  • Mocking our poverty, and telling us _315
  • Such was God's scourge for disobedient sons.
  • And then, that I might strike him dumb with shame,
  • I spoke of my wife's dowry; but he coined
  • A brief yet specious tale, how I had wasted
  • The sum in secret riot; and he saw _320
  • My wife was touched, and he went smiling forth.
  • And when I knew the impression he had made,
  • And felt my wife insult with silent scorn
  • My ardent truth, and look averse and cold,
  • I went forth too: but soon returned again; _325
  • Yet not so soon but that my wife had taught
  • My children her harsh thoughts, and they all cried,
  • 'Give us clothes, father! Give us better food!
  • What you in one night squander were enough
  • For months!' I looked, and saw that home was hell. _330
  • And to that hell will I return no more
  • Until mine enemy has rendered up
  • Atonement, or, as he gave life to me
  • I will, reversing Nature's law...
  • ORSINO:
  • Trust me,
  • The compensation which thou seekest here _335
  • Will be denied.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Then...Are you not my friend?
  • Did you not hint at the alternative,
  • Upon the brink of which you see I stand,
  • The other day when we conversed together?
  • My wrongs were then less. That word parricide, _340
  • Although I am resolved, haunts me like fear.
  • ORSINO:
  • It must be fear itself, for the bare word
  • Is hollow mockery. Mark, how wisest God
  • Draws to one point the threads of a just doom,
  • So sanctifying it: what you devise _345
  • Is, as it were, accomplished.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Is he dead?
  • ORSINO:
  • His grave is ready. Know that since we met
  • Cenci has done an outrage to his daughter.
  • GIACOMO:
  • What outrage?
  • ORSINO:
  • That she speaks not, but you may
  • Conceive such half conjectures as I do, _350
  • From her fixed paleness, and the lofty grief
  • Of her stern brow bent on the idle air,
  • And her severe unmodulated voice,
  • Drowning both tenderness and dread; and last
  • From this; that whilst her step-mother and I, _355
  • Bewildered in our horror, talked together
  • With obscure hints; both self-misunderstood
  • And darkly guessing, stumbling, in our talk,
  • Over the truth, and yet to its revenge,
  • She interrupted us, and with a look _360
  • Which told, before she spoke it, he must die:...
  • GIACOMO:
  • It is enough. My doubts are well appeased;
  • There is a higher reason for the act
  • Than mine; there is a holier judge than me,
  • A more unblamed avenger. Beatrice, _365
  • Who in the gentleness of thy sweet youth
  • Hast never trodden on a worm, or bruised
  • A living flower, but thou hast pitied it
  • With needless tears! Fair sister, thou in whom
  • Men wondered how such loveliness and wisdom _370
  • Did not destroy each other! Is there made
  • Ravage of thee? O, heart, I ask no more
  • Justification! Shall I wait, Orsino,
  • Till he return, and stab him at the door?
  • ORSINO:
  • Not so; some accident might interpose _375
  • To rescue him from what is now most sure;
  • And you are unprovided where to fly,
  • How to excuse or to conceal. Nay, listen:
  • All is contrived; success is so assured
  • That...
  • [ENTER BEATRICE.]
  • BEATRICE:
  • 'Tis my brother's voice! You know me not?
  • GIACOMO:
  • My sister, my lost sister! _380
  • BEATRICE:
  • Lost indeed!
  • I see Orsino has talked with you, and
  • That you conjecture things too horrible
  • To speak, yet far less than the truth. Now, stay not,
  • He might return: yet kiss me; I shall know _385
  • That then thou hast consented to his death.
  • Farewell, farewell! Let piety to God,
  • Brotherly love, justice and clemency,
  • And all things that make tender hardest hearts
  • Make thine hard, brother. Answer not...farewell. _390
  • [EXEUNT SEVERALLY.]
  • SCENE 3.2:
  • A MEAN APARTMENT IN GIACOMO'S HOUSE.
  • GIACOMO ALONE.
  • GIACOMO:
  • 'Tis midnight, and Orsino comes not yet.
  • [THUNDER, AND THE SOUND OF A STORM.]
  • What! can the everlasting elements
  • Feel with a worm like man? If so, the shaft
  • Of mercy-winged lightning would not fall
  • On stones and trees. My wife and children sleep: _5
  • They are now living in unmeaning dreams:
  • But I must wake, still doubting if that deed
  • Be just which is most necessary. O,
  • Thou unreplenished lamp! whose narrow fire
  • Is shaken by the wind, and on whose edge _10
  • Devouring darkness hovers! Thou small flame,
  • Which, as a dying pulse rises and falls,
  • Still flickerest up and down, how very soon,
  • Did I not feed thee, wouldst thou fail and be
  • As thou hadst never been! So wastes and sinks _15
  • Even now, perhaps, the life that kindled mine:
  • But that no power can fill with vital oil
  • That broken lamp of flesh. Ha! 'tis the blood
  • Which fed these veins that ebbs till all is cold:
  • It is the form that moulded mine that sinks _20
  • Into the white and yellow spasms of death:
  • It is the soul by which mine was arrayed
  • In God's immortal likeness which now stands
  • Naked before Heaven's judgement seat!
  • [A BELL STRIKES.]
  • One! Two!
  • The hours crawl on; and, when my hairs are white, _25
  • My son will then perhaps be waiting thus,
  • Tortured between just hate and vain remorse;
  • Chiding the tardy messenger of news
  • Like those which I expect. I almost wish
  • He be not dead, although my wrongs are great; _30
  • Yet...'tis Orsino's step...
  • [ENTER ORSINO.]
  • Speak!
  • ORSINO:
  • I am come
  • To say he has escaped.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Escaped!
  • ORSINO:
  • And safe
  • Within Petrella. He passed by the spot
  • Appointed for the deed an hour too soon.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Are we the fools of such contingencies? _35
  • And do we waste in blind misgivings thus
  • The hours when we should act? Then wind and thunder,
  • Which seemed to howl his knell, is the loud laughter
  • With which Heaven mocks our weakness! I henceforth
  • Will ne'er repent of aught designed or done _40
  • But my repentance.
  • ORSINO:
  • See, the lamp is out.
  • GIACOMO:
  • If no remorse is ours when the dim air
  • Has drank this innocent flame, why should we quail
  • When Cenci's life, that light by which ill spirits
  • See the worst deeds they prompt, shall sink for ever? _45
  • No, I am hardened.
  • ORSINO:
  • Why, what need of this?
  • Who feared the pale intrusion of remorse
  • In a just deed? Although our first plan failed,
  • Doubt not but he will soon be laid to rest.
  • But light the lamp; let us not talk i' the dark. _50
  • GIACOMO [LIGHTING THE LAMP]:
  • And yet once quenched I cannot thus relume
  • My father's life: do you not think his ghost
  • Might plead that argument with God?
  • ORSINO:
  • Once gone
  • You cannot now recall your sister's peace;
  • Your own extinguished years of youth and hope; _55
  • Nor your wife's bitter words; nor all the taunts
  • Which, from the prosperous, weak misfortune takes;
  • Nor your dead mother; nor...
  • GIACOMO:
  • O, speak no more!
  • I am resolved, although this very hand
  • Must quench the life that animated it. _60
  • ORSINO:
  • There is no need of that. Listen: you know
  • Olimpio, the castellan of Petrella
  • In old Colonna's time; him whom your father
  • Degraded from his post? And Marzio,
  • That desperate wretch, whom he deprived last year _65
  • Of a reward of blood, well earned and due?
  • GIACOMO:
  • I knew Olimpio; and they say he hated
  • Old Cenci so, that in his silent rage
  • His lips grew white only to see him pass.
  • Of Marzio I know nothing.
  • ORSINO:
  • Marzio's hate _70
  • Matches Olimpio's. I have sent these men,
  • But in your name, and as at your request,
  • To talk with Beatrice and Lucretia.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Only to talk?
  • ORSINO:
  • The moments which even now
  • Pass onward to to-morrow's midnight hour _75
  • May memorize their flight with death: ere then
  • They must have talked, and may perhaps have done,
  • And made an end...
  • GIACOMO:
  • Listen! What sound is that?
  • ORSINO:
  • The house-dog moans, and the beams crack: nought else.
  • GIACOMO:
  • It is my wife complaining in her sleep: _80
  • I doubt not she is saying bitter things
  • Of me; and all my children round her dreaming
  • That I deny them sustenance.
  • ORSINO:
  • Whilst he
  • Who truly took it from them, and who fills
  • Their hungry rest with bitterness, now sleeps _85
  • Lapped in bad pleasures, and triumphantly
  • Mocks thee in visions of successful hate
  • Too like the truth of day.
  • GIACOMO:
  • If e'er he wakes
  • Again, I will not trust to hireling hands...
  • ORSINO:
  • Why, that were well. I must be gone; good-night. _90
  • When next we meet--may all be done!
  • NOTE:
  • _91 may all be done!
  • Giacomo: And all edition 1821;
  • Giacomo: May all be done, and all edition 1819.
  • GIACOMO:
  • And all
  • Forgotten: Oh, that I had never been!
  • [EXEUNT.]
  • END OF ACT 3.
  • ACT 4.
  • SCENE 4.1:
  • AN APARTMENT IN THE CASTLE OF PETRELLA.
  • ENTER CENCI.
  • CENCI:
  • She comes not; yet I left her even now
  • Vanquished and faint. She knows the penalty
  • Of her delay: yet what if threats are vain?
  • Am I not now within Petrella's moat?
  • Or fear I still the eyes and ears of Rome? _5
  • Might I not drag her by the golden hair?
  • Stamp on her? keep her sleepless till her brain
  • Be overworn? Tame her with chains and famine?
  • Less would suffice. Yet so to leave undone
  • What I most seek! No, 'tis her stubborn will _10
  • Which by its own consent shall stoop as low
  • As that which drags it down.
  • [ENTER LUCRETIA.]
  • Thou loathed wretch!
  • Hide thee from my abhorrence: fly, begone!
  • Yet stay! Bid Beatrice come hither.
  • NOTE:
  • _4 not now edition 1821; now not edition 1819.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Oh,
  • Husband! I pray, for thine own wretched sake _15
  • Heed what thou dost. A man who walks like thee
  • Through crimes, and through the danger of his crimes,
  • Each hour may stumble o'er a sudden grave.
  • And thou art old; thy hairs are hoary gray;
  • As thou wouldst save thyself from death and hell, _20
  • Pity thy daughter; give her to some friend
  • In marriage: so that she may tempt thee not
  • To hatred, or worse thoughts, if worse there be.
  • CENCI:
  • What! like her sister who has found a home
  • To mock my hate from with prosperity? _25
  • Strange ruin shall destroy both her and thee
  • And all that yet remain. My death may be
  • Rapid, her destiny outspeeds it. Go,
  • Bid her come hither, and before my mood
  • Be changed, lest I should drag her by the hair. _30
  • LUCRETIA:
  • She sent me to thee, husband. At thy presence
  • She fell, as thou dost know, into a trance;
  • And in that trance she heard a voice which said,
  • 'Cenci must die! Let him confess himself!
  • Even now the accusing Angel waits to hear _35
  • If God, to punish his enormous crimes,
  • Harden his dying heart!'
  • CENCI:
  • Why--such things are...
  • No doubt divine revealings may be made.
  • 'Tis plain I have been favoured from above,
  • For when I cursed my sons they died.--Ay...so... _40
  • As to the right or wrong, that's talk...repentance...
  • Repentance is an easy moment's work
  • And more depends on God than me. Well...well...
  • I must give up the greater point, which was
  • To poison and corrupt her soul.
  • [A PAUSE, LUCRETIA APPROACHES ANXIOUSLY,
  • AND THEN SHRINKS BACK AS HE SPEAKS.]
  • One, two; _45
  • Ay...Rocco and Cristofano my curse
  • Strangled: and Giacomo, I think, will find
  • Life a worse Hell than that beyond the grave:
  • Beatrice shall, if there be skill in hate,
  • Die in despair, blaspheming: to Bernardo, _50
  • He is so innocent, I will bequeath
  • The memory of these deeds, and make his youth
  • The sepulchre of hope, where evil thoughts
  • Shall grow like weeds on a neglected tomb.
  • When all is done, out in the wide Campagna, _55
  • I will pile up my silver and my gold;
  • My costly robes, paintings, and tapestries;
  • My parchments and all records of my wealth,
  • And make a bonfire in my joy, and leave
  • Of my possessions nothing but my name; _60
  • Which shall be an inheritance to strip
  • Its wearer bare as infamy. That done,
  • My soul, which is a scourge, will I resign
  • Into the hands of him who wielded it;
  • Be it for its own punishment or theirs, _65
  • He will not ask it of me till the lash
  • Be broken in its last and deepest wound;
  • Until its hate be all inflicted. Yet,
  • Lest death outspeed my purpose, let me make
  • Short work and sure...
  • [GOING.]
  • LUCRETIA [STOPS HIM]:
  • Oh, stay! It was a feint: _70
  • She had no vision, and she heard no voice.
  • I said it but to awe thee.
  • CENCI:
  • That is well.
  • Vile palterer with the sacred truth of God,
  • Be thy soul choked with that blaspheming lie!
  • For Beatrice worse terrors are in store _75
  • To bend her to my will.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Oh! to what will?
  • What cruel sufferings more than she has known
  • Canst thou inflict?
  • CENCI:
  • Andrea! Go call my daughter,
  • And if she comes not tell her that I come.
  • What sufferings? I will drag her, step by step, _80
  • Through infamies unheard of among men:
  • She shall stand shelterless in the broad noon
  • Of public scorn, for acts blazoned abroad,
  • One among which shall be...What? Canst thou guess?
  • She shall become (for what she most abhors _85
  • Shall have a fascination to entrap
  • Her loathing will) to her own conscious self
  • All she appears to others; and when dead,
  • As she shall die unshrived and unforgiven,
  • A rebel to her father and her God, _90
  • Her corpse shall be abandoned to the hounds;
  • Her name shall be the terror of the earth;
  • Her spirit shall approach the throne of God
  • Plague-spotted with my curses. I will make
  • Body and soul a monstrous lump of ruin. _95
  • [ENTER ANDREA.]
  • ANDREA:
  • The Lady Beatrice...
  • CENCI:
  • Speak, pale slave! What
  • Said she?
  • ANDREA:
  • My Lord, 'twas what she looked; she said:
  • 'Go tell my father that I see the gulf
  • Of Hell between us two, which he may pass,
  • I will not.'
  • [EXIT ANDREA.]
  • CENCI:
  • Go thou quick, Lucretia, _100
  • Tell her to come; yet let her understand
  • Her coming is consent: and say, moreover,
  • That if she come not I will curse her.
  • [EXIT LUCRETIA.]
  • Ha!
  • With what but with a father's curse doth God
  • Panic-strike armed victory, and make pale _105
  • Cities in their prosperity? The world's Father
  • Must grant a parent's prayer against his child,
  • Be he who asks even what men call me.
  • Will not the deaths of her rebellious brothers
  • Awe her before I speak? For I on them _110
  • Did imprecate quick ruin, and it came.
  • [ENTER LUCRETIA.]
  • Well; what? Speak, wretch!
  • LUCRETIA:
  • She said, 'I cannot come;
  • Go tell my father that I see a torrent
  • Of his own blood raging between us.'
  • CENCI [KNEELING]:
  • God,
  • Hear me! If this most specious mass of flesh, _115
  • Which Thou hast made my daughter; this my blood,
  • This particle of my divided being;
  • Or rather, this my bane and my disease,
  • Whose sight infects and poisons me; this devil
  • Which sprung from me as from a hell, was meant _120
  • To aught good use; if her bright loveliness
  • Was kindled to illumine this dark world;
  • If nursed by Thy selectest dew of love
  • Such virtues blossom in her as should make
  • The peace of life, I pray Thee for my sake, _125
  • As Thou the common God and Father art
  • Of her, and me, and all; reverse that doom!
  • Earth, in the name of God, let her food be
  • Poison, until she be encrusted round
  • With leprous stains! Heaven, rain upon her head _130
  • The blistering drops of the Maremma's dew,
  • Till she be speckled like a toad; parch up
  • Those love-enkindled lips, warp those fine limbs
  • To loathed lameness! All-beholding sun,
  • Strike in thine envy those life-darting eyes _135
  • With thine own blinding beams!
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Peace! Peace!
  • For thine own sake unsay those dreadful words.
  • When high God grants He punishes such prayers.
  • CENCI [LEAPING UP, AND THROWING HIS RIGHT HAND TOWARDS HEAVEN]:
  • He does his will, I mine! This in addition,
  • That if she have a child...
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Horrible thought! _140
  • CENCI:
  • That if she ever have a child; and thou,
  • Quick Nature! I adjure thee by thy God,
  • That thou be fruitful in her, and increase
  • And multiply, fulfilling his command,
  • And my deep imprecation! May it be _145
  • A hideous likeness of herself, that as
  • From a distorting mirror, she may see
  • Her image mixed with what she most abhors,
  • Smiling upon her from her nursing breast.
  • And that the child may from its infancy _150
  • Grow, day by day, more wicked and deformed,
  • Turning her mother's love to misery:
  • And that both she and it may live until
  • It shall repay her care and pain with hate,
  • Or what may else be more unnatural. _155
  • So he may hunt her through the clamorous scoffs
  • Of the loud world to a dishonoured grave.
  • Shall I revoke this curse? Go, bid her come,
  • Before my words are chronicled in Heaven.
  • [EXIT LUCRETIA.]
  • I do not feel as if I were a man, _160
  • But like a fiend appointed to chastise
  • The offences of some unremembered world.
  • My blood is running up and down my veins;
  • A fearful pleasure makes it prick and tingle:
  • I feel a giddy sickness of strange awe; _165
  • My heart is beating with an expectation
  • Of horrid joy.
  • [ENTER LUCRETIA.]
  • What? Speak!
  • LUCRETIA:
  • She bids thee curse;
  • And if thy curses, as they cannot do,
  • Could kill her soul...
  • CENCI:
  • She would not come. 'Tis well,
  • I can do both; first take what I demand, _170
  • And then extort concession. To thy chamber!
  • Fly ere I spurn thee; and beware this night
  • That thou cross not my footsteps. It were safer
  • To come between the tiger and his prey.
  • [EXIT LUCRETIA.]
  • It must be late; mine eyes grow weary dim _175
  • With unaccustomed heaviness of sleep.
  • Conscience! Oh, thou most insolent of lies!
  • They say that sleep, that healing dew of Heaven,
  • Steeps not in balm the foldings of the brain
  • Which thinks thee an impostor. I will go _180
  • First to belie thee with an hour of rest,
  • Which will be deep and calm, I feel: and then...
  • O, multitudinous Hell, the fiends will shake
  • Thine arches with the laughter of their joy!
  • There shall be lamentation heard in Heaven _185
  • As o'er an angel fallen; and upon Earth
  • All good shall droop and sicken, and ill things
  • Shall with a spirit of unnatural life,
  • Stir and be quickened...even as I am now.
  • [EXIT.]
  • SCENE 4.2:
  • BEFORE THE CASTLE OF PETRELLA.
  • ENTER BEATRICE AND LUCRETIA ABOVE ON THE RAMPARTS.
  • BEATRICE:
  • They come not yet.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • 'Tis scarce midnight.
  • BEATRICE:
  • How slow
  • Behind the course of thought, even sick with speed,
  • Lags leaden-footed time!
  • LUCRETIA:
  • The minutes pass...
  • If he should wake before the deed is done?
  • BEATRICE:
  • O, mother! He must never wake again. _5
  • What thou hast said persuades me that our act
  • Will but dislodge a spirit of deep hell
  • Out of a human form.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • 'Tis true he spoke
  • Of death and judgement with strange confidence
  • For one so wicked; as a man believing _10
  • In God, yet recking not of good or ill.
  • And yet to die without confession!...
  • BEATRICE:
  • Oh!
  • Believe that Heaven is merciful and just,
  • And will not add our dread necessity
  • To the amount of his offences.
  • [ENTER OLIMPIO AND MARZIO BELOW.]
  • LUCRETIA:
  • See, _15
  • They come.
  • BEATRICE:
  • All mortal things must hasten thus
  • To their dark end. Let us go down.
  • [EXEUNT LUCRETIA AND BEATRICE FROM ABOVE.]
  • OLIMPIO:
  • How feel you to this work?
  • MARZIO:
  • As one who thinks
  • A thousand crowns excellent market price
  • For an old murderer's life. Your cheeks are pale. _20
  • OLIMPIO:
  • It is the white reflection of your own,
  • Which you call pale.
  • MARZIO:
  • Is that their natural hue?
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Or 'tis my hate and the deferred desire
  • To wreak it, which extinguishes their blood.
  • MARZIO:
  • You are inclined then to this business?
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Ay, _25
  • If one should bribe me with a thousand crowns
  • To kill a serpent which had stung my child,
  • I could not be more willing.
  • [ENTER BEATRICE AND LUCRETIA BELOW.]
  • Noble ladies!
  • BEATRICE:
  • Are ye resolved?
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Is he asleep?
  • MARZIO:
  • Is all
  • Quiet?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • I mixed an opiate with his drink: _30
  • He sleeps so soundly...
  • BEATRICE:
  • That his death will be
  • But as a change of sin-chastising dreams,
  • A dark continuance of the Hell within him,
  • Which God extinguish! But ye are resolved?
  • Ye know it is a high and holy deed? _35
  • OLIMPIO:
  • We are resolved.
  • MARZIO:
  • As to the how this act
  • Be warranted, it rests with you.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Well, follow!
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Hush! Hark! What noise is that?
  • MARZIO:
  • Ha! some one comes!
  • BEATRICE:
  • Ye conscience-stricken cravens, rock to rest
  • Your baby hearts. It is the iron gate, _40
  • Which ye left open, swinging to the wind,
  • That enters whistling as in scorn. Come, follow!
  • And be your steps like mine, light, quick and bold.
  • [EXEUNT.]
  • SCENE 4.3:
  • AN APARTMENT IN THE CASTLE.
  • ENTER BEATRICE AND LUCRETIA.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • They are about it now.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Nay, it is done.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • I have not heard him groan.
  • BEATRICE:
  • He will not groan.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • What sound is that?
  • BEATRICE:
  • List! 'tis the tread of feet
  • About his bed.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • My God!
  • If he be now a cold, stiff corpse...
  • BEATRICE:
  • O, fear not _5
  • What may be done, but what is left undone:
  • The act seals all.
  • [ENTER OLIMPIO AND MARZIO.]
  • Is it accomplished?
  • MARZIO:
  • What?
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Did you not call?
  • BEATRICE:
  • When?
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Now.
  • BEATRICE:
  • I ask if all is over?
  • OLIMPIO:
  • We dare not kill an old and sleeping man;
  • His thin gray hair, his stern and reverend brow, _10
  • His veined hands crossed on his heaving breast,
  • And the calm innocent sleep in which he lay,
  • Quelled me. Indeed, indeed, I cannot do it.
  • NOTE:
  • _10 reverend]reverent all editions.
  • MARZIO:
  • But I was bolder; for I chid Olimpio,
  • And bade him bear his wrongs to his own grave _15
  • And leave me the reward. And now my knife
  • Touched the loose wrinkled throat, when the old man
  • Stirred in his sleep, and said, 'God! hear, O, hear,
  • A father's curse! What, art Thou not our Father?'
  • And then he laughed. I knew it was the ghost _20
  • Of my dead father speaking through his lips,
  • And could not kill him.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Miserable slaves!
  • Where, if ye dare not kill a sleeping man,
  • Found ye the boldness to return to me
  • With such a deed undone? Base palterers! _25
  • Cowards and traitors! Why, the very conscience
  • Which ye would sell for gold and for revenge
  • Is an equivocation: it sleeps over
  • A thousand daily acts disgracing men;
  • And when a deed where mercy insults Heaven... _30
  • Why do I talk?
  • [SNATCHING A DAGGER FROM ONE OF THEM, AND RAISING IT.]
  • Hadst thou a tongue to say,
  • 'She murdered her own father!'--I must do it!
  • But never dream ye shall outlive him long!
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Stop, for God's sake!
  • MARZIO:
  • I will go back and kill him.
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Give me the weapon, we must do thy will. _35
  • BEATRICE:
  • Take it! Depart! Return!
  • [EXEUNT OLIMPIO AND MARZIO.]
  • How pale thou art!
  • We do but that which 'twere a deadly crime
  • To leave undone.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Would it were done!
  • BEATRICE:
  • Even whilst
  • That doubt is passing through your mind, the world
  • Is conscious of a change. Darkness and Hell _40
  • Have swallowed up the vapour they sent forth
  • To blacken the sweet light of life. My breath
  • Comes, methinks, lighter, and the jellied blood
  • Runs freely through my veins. Hark!
  • [ENTER OLIMPIO AND MARZIO.]
  • He is...
  • OLIMPIO:
  • Dead!
  • MARZIO:
  • We strangled him that there might be no blood; _45
  • And then we threw his heavy corpse i' the garden
  • Under the balcony; 'twill seem it fell.
  • BEATRICE [GIVING THEM A BAG OF COIN]:
  • Here, take this gold, and hasten to your homes.
  • And, Marzio, because thou wast only awed
  • By that which made me tremble, wear thou this! _50
  • [CLOTHES HIM IN A RICH MANTLE.]
  • It was the mantle which my grandfather
  • Wore in his high prosperity, and men
  • Envied his state: so may they envy thine.
  • Thou wert a weapon in the hand of God
  • To a just use. Live long and thrive! And, mark, _55
  • If thou hast crimes, repent: this deed is none.
  • [A HORN IS SOUNDED.]
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Hark, 'tis the castle horn: my God! it sounds
  • Like the last trump.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Some tedious guest is coming.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • The drawbridge is let down; there is a tramp
  • Of horses in the court; fly, hide yourselves! _60
  • [EXEUNT OLIMPIO AND MARZIO.]
  • BEATRICE:
  • Let us retire to counterfeit deep rest;
  • I scarcely need to counterfeit it now:
  • The spirit which doth reign within these limbs
  • Seems strangely undisturbed. I could even sleep
  • Fearless and calm: all ill is surely past. _65
  • [EXEUNT.]
  • SCENE 4.4:
  • ANOTHER APARTMENT IN THE CASTLE.
  • ENTER ON ONE SIDE THE LEGATE SAVELLA,
  • INTRODUCED BY A SERVANT,
  • AND ON THE OTHER LUCRETIA AND BERNARDO.
  • SAVELLA:
  • Lady, my duty to his Holiness
  • Be my excuse that thus unseasonably
  • I break upon your rest. I must speak with
  • Count Cenci; doth he sleep?
  • LUCRETIA [IN A HURRIED AND CONFUSED MANNER]:
  • I think he sleeps;
  • Yet, wake him not, I pray, spare me awhile, _5
  • He is a wicked and a wrathful man;
  • Should he be roused out of his sleep to-night,
  • Which is, I know, a hell of angry dreams,
  • It were not well; indeed it were not well.
  • Wait till day break...
  • [ASIDE.]
  • Oh, I am deadly sick! _10
  • NOTE:
  • _6 a wrathful edition 1821; wrathful editions 1819, 1839.
  • SAVELLA:
  • I grieve thus to distress you, but the Count
  • Must answer charges of the gravest import,
  • And suddenly; such my commission is.
  • LUCRETIA [WITH INCREASED AGITATION]:
  • I dare not rouse him: I know none who dare...
  • 'Twere perilous;...you might as safely waken _15
  • A serpent; or a corpse in which some fiend
  • Were laid to sleep.
  • SAVELLA:
  • Lady, my moments here
  • Are counted. I must rouse him from his sleep,
  • Since none else dare.
  • LUCRETIA [ASIDE]:
  • O, terror! O, despair!
  • [TO BERNARDO.]
  • Bernardo, conduct you the Lord Legate to _20
  • Your father's chamber.
  • [EXEUNT SAVELLA AND BERNARDO.]
  • [ENTER BEATRICE.]
  • BEATRICE:
  • 'Tis a messenger
  • Come to arrest the culprit who now stands
  • Before the throne of unappealable God.
  • Both Earth and Heaven, consenting arbiters,
  • Acquit our deed.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Oh, agony of fear! _25
  • Would that he yet might live! Even now I heard
  • The Legate's followers whisper as they passed
  • They had a warrant for his instant death.
  • All was prepared by unforbidden means
  • Which we must pay so dearly, having done. _30
  • Even now they search the tower, and find the body;
  • Now they suspect the truth; now they consult
  • Before they come to tax us with the fact;
  • O, horrible, 'tis all discovered!
  • BEATRICE:
  • Mother,
  • What is done wisely, is done well. Be bold _35
  • As thou art just. 'Tis like a truant child
  • To fear that others know what thou hast done,
  • Even from thine own strong consciousness, and thus
  • Write on unsteady eyes and altered cheeks
  • All thou wouldst hide. Be faithful to thyself, _40
  • And fear no other witness but thy fear.
  • For if, as cannot be, some circumstance
  • Should rise in accusation, we can blind
  • Suspicion with such cheap astonishment,
  • Or overbear it with such guiltless pride, _45
  • As murderers cannot feign. The deed is done,
  • And what may follow now regards not me.
  • I am as universal as the light;
  • Free as the earth-surrounding air; as firm
  • As the world's centre. Consequence, to me, _50
  • Is as the wind which strikes the solid rock,
  • But shakes it not.
  • [A CRY WITHIN AND TUMULT.]
  • VOICES:
  • Murder! Murder! Murder!
  • [ENTER BERNARDO AND SAVELLA.]
  • SAVELLA [TO HIS FOLLOWERS]:
  • Go search the castle round; sound the alarm;
  • Look to the gates, that none escape!
  • BEATRICE:
  • What now?
  • BERNARDO:
  • I know not what to say...my father's dead. _55
  • BEATRICE:
  • How; dead! he only sleeps; you mistake, brother.
  • His sleep is very calm, very like death;
  • 'Tis wonderful how well a tyrant sleeps.
  • He is not dead?
  • BERNARDO:
  • Dead; murdered.
  • LUCRETIA [WITH EXTREME AGITATION]:
  • Oh no, no!
  • He is not murdered though he may be dead; _60
  • I have alone the keys of those apartments.
  • SAVELLA:
  • Ha! Is it so?
  • BEATRICE:
  • My Lord, I pray excuse us;
  • We will retire; my mother is not well:
  • She seems quite overcome with this strange horror.
  • [EXEUNT LUCRETIA AND BEATRICE.]
  • SAVELLA:
  • Can you suspect who may have murdered him? _65
  • BERNARDO:
  • I know not what to think.
  • SAVELLA:
  • Can you name any
  • Who had an interest in his death?
  • BERNARDO:
  • Alas!
  • I can name none who had not, and those most
  • Who most lament that such a deed is done;
  • My mother, and my sister, and myself. _70
  • SAVELLA:
  • 'Tis strange! There were clear marks of violence.
  • I found the old man's body in the moonlight
  • Hanging beneath the window of his chamber,
  • Among the branches of a pine: he could not
  • Have fallen there, for all his limbs lay heaped _75
  • And effortless; 'tis true there was no blood...
  • Favour me, Sir; it much imports your house
  • That all should be made clear; to tell the ladies
  • That I request their presence.
  • [EXIT BERNARDO.]
  • [ENTER GUARDS, BRINGING IN MARZIO.]
  • GUARD:
  • We have one.
  • OFFICER:
  • My Lord, we found this ruffian and another _80
  • Lurking among the rocks; there is no doubt
  • But that they are the murderers of Count Cenci:
  • Each had a bag of coin; this fellow wore
  • A gold-inwoven robe, which, shining bright
  • Under the dark rocks to the glimmering moon _85
  • Betrayed them to our notice: the other fell
  • Desperately fighting.
  • SAVELLA:
  • What does he confess?
  • OFFICER:
  • He keeps firm silence; but these lines found on him
  • May speak.
  • SAVELLA:
  • Their language is at least sincere.
  • [READS.]
  • 'To the Lady Beatrice. _90
  • That the atonement of what my nature sickens to conjecture may soon
  • arrive, I send thee, at thy brother's desire, those who will speak and
  • do more than I dare write...
  • 'Thy devoted servant, Orsino.'
  • [ENTER LUCRETIA, BEATRICE, AND BERNARDO.]
  • Knowest thou this writing, Lady?
  • BEATRICE:
  • No.
  • SAVELLA:
  • Nor thou? _95
  • LUCRETIA [HER CONDUCT THROUGHOUT THE SCENE IS MARKED BY EXTREME AGITATION]:
  • Where was it found? What is it? It should be
  • Orsino's hand! It speaks of that strange horror
  • Which never yet found utterance, but which made
  • Between that hapless child and her dead father
  • A gulf of obscure hatred.
  • SAVELLA:
  • Is it so? _100
  • Is it true, Lady, that thy father did
  • Such outrages as to awaken in thee
  • Unfilial hate?
  • BEATRICE:
  • Not hate, 'twas more than hate:
  • This is most true, yet wherefore question me?
  • SAVELLA:
  • There is a deed demanding question done; _105
  • Thou hast a secret which will answer not.
  • BEATRICE:
  • What sayest? My Lord, your words are bold and rash.
  • SAVELLA:
  • I do arrest all present in the name
  • Of the Pope's Holiness. You must to Rome.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • O, not to Rome! Indeed we are not guilty. _110
  • BEATRICE:
  • Guilty! Who dares talk of guilt? My Lord,
  • I am more innocent of parricide
  • Than is a child born fatherless...Dear mother,
  • Your gentleness and patience are no shield
  • For this keen-judging world, this two-edged lie, _115
  • Which seems, but is not. What! will human laws,
  • Rather will ye who are their ministers,
  • Bar all access to retribution first,
  • And then, when Heaven doth interpose to do
  • What ye neglect, arming familiar things _120
  • To the redress of an unwonted crime,
  • Make ye the victims who demanded it
  • Culprits? 'Tis ye are culprits! That poor wretch
  • Who stands so pale, and trembling, and amazed,
  • If it be true he murdered Cenci, was _125
  • A sword in the right hand of justest God.
  • Wherefore should I have wielded it? Unless
  • The crimes which mortal tongue dare never name
  • God therefore scruples to avenge.
  • SAVELLA:
  • You own
  • That you desired his death?
  • BEATRICE:
  • It would have been _130
  • A crime no less than his, if for one moment
  • That fierce desire had faded in my heart.
  • 'Tis true I did believe, and hope, and pray,
  • Ay, I even knew...for God is wise and just,
  • That some strange sudden death hung over him. _135
  • 'Tis true that this did happen, and most true
  • There was no other rest for me on earth,
  • No other hope in Heaven...now what of this?
  • SAVELLA:
  • Strange thoughts beget strange deeds; and here are both:
  • I judge thee not.
  • BEATRICE:
  • And yet, if you arrest me, _140
  • You are the judge and executioner
  • Of that which is the life of life: the breath
  • Of accusation kills an innocent name,
  • And leaves for lame acquittal the poor life
  • Which is a mask without it. 'Tis most false _145
  • That I am guilty of foul parricide;
  • Although I must rejoice, for justest cause,
  • That other hands have sent my father's soul
  • To ask the mercy he denied to me.
  • Now leave us free; stain not a noble house _150
  • With vague surmises of rejected crime;
  • Add to our sufferings and your own neglect
  • No heavier sum: let them have been enough:
  • Leave us the wreck we have.
  • SAVELLA:
  • I dare not, Lady.
  • I pray that you prepare yourselves for Rome: _155
  • There the Pope's further pleasure will be known.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • O, not to Rome! O, take us not to Rome!
  • BEATRICE:
  • Why not to Rome, dear mother? There as here
  • Our innocence is as an armed heel
  • To trample accusation. God is there _160
  • As here, and with His shadow ever clothes
  • The innocent, the injured and the weak;
  • And such are we. Cheer up, dear Lady, lean
  • On me; collect your wandering thoughts. My Lord,
  • As soon as you have taken some refreshment, _165
  • And had all such examinations made
  • Upon the spot, as may be necessary
  • To the full understanding of this matter,
  • We shall be ready. Mother; will you come?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Ha! they will bind us to the rack, and wrest _170
  • Self-accusation from our agony!
  • Will Giacomo be there? Orsino? Marzio?
  • All present; all confronted; all demanding
  • Each from the other's countenance the thing
  • Which is in every heart! O, misery! _175
  • [SHE FAINTS, AND IS BORNE OUT.]
  • SAVELLA:
  • She faints: an ill appearance this.
  • BEATRICE:
  • My Lord,
  • She knows not yet the uses of the world.
  • She fears that power is as a beast which grasps
  • And loosens not: a snake whose look transmutes
  • All things to guilt which is its nutriment. _180
  • She cannot know how well the supine slaves
  • Of blind authority read the truth of things
  • When written on a brow of guilelessness:
  • She sees not yet triumphant Innocence
  • Stand at the judgement-seat of mortal man, _185
  • A judge and an accuser of the wrong
  • Which drags it there. Prepare yourself, my Lord;
  • Our suite will join yours in the court below.
  • [EXEUNT.]
  • END OF ACT 4.
  • ACT 5.
  • SCENE 5.1:
  • AN APARTMENT IN ORSINO'S PALACE.
  • ENTER ORSINO AND GIACOMO.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Do evil deeds thus quickly come to end?
  • O, that the vain remorse which must chastise
  • Crimes done, had but as loud a voice to warn
  • As its keen sting is mortal to avenge!
  • O, that the hour when present had cast off _5
  • The mantle of its mystery, and shown
  • The ghastly form with which it now returns
  • When its scared game is roused, cheering the hounds
  • Of conscience to their prey! Alas! Alas!
  • It was a wicked thought, a piteous deed, _10
  • To kill an old and hoary-headed father.
  • ORSINO:
  • It has turned out unluckily, in truth.
  • GIACOMO:
  • To violate the sacred doors of sleep;
  • To cheat kind Nature of the placid death
  • Which she prepares for overwearied age; _15
  • To drag from Heaven an unrepentant soul
  • Which might have quenched in reconciling prayers
  • A life of burning crimes...
  • ORSINO:
  • You cannot say
  • I urged you to the deed.
  • GIACOMO:
  • O, had I never
  • Found in thy smooth and ready countenance _20
  • The mirror of my darkest thoughts; hadst thou
  • Never with hints and questions made me look
  • Upon the monster of my thought, until
  • It grew familiar to desire...
  • ORSINO:
  • 'Tis thus
  • Men cast the blame of their unprosperous acts _25
  • Upon the abettors of their own resolve;
  • Or anything but their weak, guilty selves.
  • And yet, confess the truth, it is the peril
  • In which you stand that gives you this pale sickness
  • Of penitence; confess 'tis fear disguised _30
  • From its own shame that takes the mantle now
  • Of thin remorse. What if we yet were safe?
  • GIACOMO:
  • How can that be? Already Beatrice,
  • Lucretia and the murderer are in prison.
  • I doubt not officers are, whilst we speak, _35
  • Sent to arrest us.
  • ORSINO:
  • I have all prepared
  • For instant flight. We can escape even now,
  • So we take fleet occasion by the hair.
  • GIACOMO:
  • Rather expire in tortures, as I may.
  • What! will you cast by self-accusing flight _40
  • Assured conviction upon Beatrice?
  • She, who alone in this unnatural work,
  • Stands like God's angel ministered upon
  • By fiends; avenging such a nameless wrong
  • As turns black parricide to piety; _45
  • Whilst we for basest ends...I fear, Orsino,
  • While I consider all your words and looks,
  • Comparing them with your proposal now,
  • That you must be a villain. For what end
  • Could you engage in such a perilous crime, _50
  • Training me on with hints, and signs, and smiles,
  • Even to this gulf? Thou art no liar? No,
  • Thou art a lie! Traitor and murderer!
  • Coward and slave! But no, defend thyself;
  • [DRAWING.]
  • Let the sword speak what the indignant tongue _55
  • Disdains to brand thee with.
  • ORSINO:
  • Put up your weapon.
  • Is it the desperation of your fear
  • Makes you thus rash and sudden with a friend,
  • Now ruined for your sake? If honest anger
  • Have moved you, know, that what I just proposed _60
  • Was but to try you. As for me, I think,
  • Thankless affection led me to this point,
  • From which, if my firm temper could repent,
  • I cannot now recede. Even whilst we speak
  • The ministers of justice wait below: _65
  • They grant me these brief moments. Now if you
  • Have any word of melancholy comfort
  • To speak to your pale wife, 'twere best to pass
  • Out at the postern, and avoid them so.
  • NOTE:
  • _58 a friend edition 1821; your friend edition 1839.
  • GIACOMO:
  • O, generous friend! How canst thou pardon me? _70
  • Would that my life could purchase thine!
  • ORSINO:
  • That wish
  • Now comes a day too late. Haste; fare thee well!
  • Hear'st thou not steps along the corridor?
  • [EXIT GIACOMO.]
  • I'm sorry for it; but the guards are waiting
  • At his own gate, and such was my contrivance _75
  • That I might rid me both of him and them.
  • I thought to act a solemn comedy
  • Upon the painted scene of this new world,
  • And to attain my own peculiar ends
  • By some such plot of mingled good and ill _80
  • As others weave; but there arose a Power
  • Which grasped and snapped the threads of my device
  • And turned it to a net of ruin...Ha!
  • [A SHOUT IS HEARD.]
  • Is that my name I hear proclaimed abroad?
  • But I will pass, wrapped in a vile disguise; _85
  • Rags on my back, and a false innocence
  • Upon my face, through the misdeeming crowd
  • Which judges by what seems. 'Tis easy then
  • For a new name and for a country new,
  • And a new life, fashioned on old desires, _90
  • To change the honours of abandoned Rome.
  • And these must be the masks of that within,
  • Which must remain unaltered...Oh, I fear
  • That what is past will never let me rest!
  • Why, when none else is conscious, but myself, _95
  • Of my misdeeds, should my own heart's contempt
  • Trouble me? Have I not the power to fly
  • My own reproaches? Shall I be the slave
  • Of...what? A word? which those of this false world
  • Employ against each other, not themselves; _100
  • As men wear daggers not for self-offence.
  • But if I am mistaken, where shall I
  • Find the disguise to hide me from myself,
  • As now I skulk from every other eye?
  • [EXIT.]
  • SCENE 5.2:
  • A HALL OF JUSTICE.
  • CAMILLO, JUDGES, ETC., ARE DISCOVERED SEATED;
  • MARZIO IS LED IN.
  • FIRST JUDGE:
  • Accused, do you persist in your denial?
  • I ask you, are you innocent, or guilty?
  • I demand who were the participators
  • In your offence? Speak truth, and the whole truth.
  • MARZIO:
  • My God! I did not kill him; I know nothing; _5
  • Olimpio sold the robe to me from which
  • You would infer my guilt.
  • SECOND JUDGE:
  • Away with him!
  • FIRST JUDGE:
  • Dare you, with lips yet white from the rack's kiss
  • Speak false? Is it so soft a questioner,
  • That you would bandy lover's talk with it _10
  • Till it wind out your life and soul? Away!
  • MARZIO:
  • Spare me! O, spare! I will confess.
  • FIRST JUDGE:
  • Then speak.
  • MARZIO:
  • I strangled him in his sleep.
  • FIRST JUDGE:
  • Who urged you to it?
  • MARZIO:
  • His own son Giacomo, and the young prelate
  • Orsino sent me to Petrella; there _15
  • The ladies Beatrice and Lucretia
  • Tempted me with a thousand crowns, and I
  • And my companion forthwith murdered him.
  • Now let me die.
  • FIRST JUDGE:
  • This sounds as bad as truth. Guards, there,
  • Lead forth the prisoner!
  • [ENTER LUCRETIA, BEATRICE AND GIACOMO, GUARDED.]
  • Look upon this man; _20
  • When did you see him last?
  • BEATRICE:
  • We never saw him.
  • MARZIO:
  • You know me too well, Lady Beatrice.
  • BEATRICE:
  • I know thee! How? where? when?
  • MARZIO:
  • You know 'twas I
  • Whom you did urge with menaces and bribes
  • To kill your father. When the thing was done _25
  • You clothed me in a robe of woven gold
  • And bade me thrive: how I have thriven, you see.
  • You, my Lord Giacomo, Lady Lucretia,
  • You know that what I speak is true.
  • [BEATRICE ADVANCES TOWARDS HIM;
  • HE COVERS HIS FACE, AND SHRINKS BACK.]
  • Oh, dart
  • The terrible resentment of those eyes _30
  • On the dead earth! Turn them away from me!
  • They wound: 'twas torture forced the truth. My Lords,
  • Having said this let me be led to death.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Poor wretch, I pity thee: yet stay awhile.
  • CAMILLO:
  • Guards, lead him not away.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Cardinal Camillo, _35
  • You have a good repute for gentleness
  • And wisdom: can it be that you sit here
  • To countenance a wicked farce like this?
  • When some obscure and trembling slave is dragged
  • From sufferings which might shake the sternest heart _40
  • And bade to answer, not as he believes,
  • But as those may suspect or do desire
  • Whose questions thence suggest their own reply:
  • And that in peril of such hideous torments
  • As merciful God spares even the damned. Speak now _45
  • The thing you surely know, which is that you,
  • If your fine frame were stretched upon that wheel,
  • And you were told: 'Confess that you did poison
  • Your little nephew; that fair blue-eyed child
  • Who was the lodestar of your life:'--and though _50
  • All see, since his most swift and piteous death,
  • That day and night, and heaven and earth, and time,
  • And all the things hoped for or done therein
  • Are changed to you, through your exceeding grief,
  • Yet you would say, 'I confess anything:' _55
  • And beg from your tormentors, like that slave,
  • The refuge of dishonourable death.
  • I pray thee, Cardinal, that thou assert
  • My innocence.
  • CAMILLO [MUCH MOVED]:
  • What shall we think, my Lords?
  • Shame on these tears! I thought the heart was frozen _60
  • Which is their fountain. I would pledge my soul
  • That she is guiltless.
  • JUDGE:
  • Yet she must be tortured.
  • CAMILLO:
  • I would as soon have tortured mine own nephew
  • (If he now lived he would be just her age;
  • His hair, too, was her colour, and his eyes _65
  • Like hers in shape, but blue and not so deep)
  • As that most perfect image of God's love
  • That ever came sorrowing upon the earth.
  • She is as pure as speechless infancy!
  • JUDGE:
  • Well, be her purity on your head, my Lord, _70
  • If you forbid the rack. His Holiness
  • Enjoined us to pursue this monstrous crime
  • By the severest forms of law; nay even
  • To stretch a point against the criminals.
  • The prisoners stand accused of parricide _75
  • Upon such evidence as justifies
  • Torture.
  • BEATRICE:
  • What evidence? This man's?
  • JUDGE:
  • Even so.
  • BEATRICE [TO MARZIO]:
  • Come near. And who art thou thus chosen forth
  • Out of the multitude of living men
  • To kill the innocent?
  • MARZIO:
  • I am Marzio, _80
  • Thy father's vassal.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Fix thine eyes on mine;
  • Answer to what I ask.
  • [TURNING TO THE JUDGES.]
  • I prithee mark
  • His countenance: unlike bold calumny
  • Which sometimes dares not speak the thing it looks,
  • He dares not look the thing he speaks, but bends _85
  • His gaze on the blind earth.
  • [TO MARZIO.]
  • What! wilt thou say
  • That I did murder my own father?
  • MARZIO:
  • Oh!
  • Spare me! My brain swims round...I cannot speak...
  • It was that horrid torture forced the truth.
  • Take me away! Let her not look on me! _90
  • I am a guilty miserable wretch;
  • I have said all I know; now, let me die!
  • BEATRICE:
  • My Lords, if by my nature I had been
  • So stern, as to have planned the crime alleged,
  • Which your suspicions dictate to this slave, _95
  • And the rack makes him utter, do you think
  • I should have left this two-edged instrument
  • Of my misdeed; this man, this bloody knife
  • With my own name engraven on the heft,
  • Lying unsheathed amid a world of foes, _100
  • For my own death? That with such horrible need
  • For deepest silence, I should have neglected
  • So trivial a precaution, as the making
  • His tomb the keeper of a secret written
  • On a thief's memory? What is his poor life? _105
  • What are a thousand lives? A parricide
  • Had trampled them like dust; and, see, he lives!
  • [TURNING TO MARZIO.]
  • And thou...
  • MARZIO:
  • Oh, spare me! Speak to me no more!
  • That stern yet piteous look, those solemn tones,
  • Wound worse than torture.
  • [TO THE JUDGES.]
  • I have told it all; _110
  • For pity's sake lead me away to death.
  • CAMILLO:
  • Guards, lead him nearer the Lady Beatrice;
  • He shrinks from her regard like autumn's leaf
  • From the keen breath of the serenest north.
  • BEATRICE:
  • O thou who tremblest on the giddy verge _115
  • Of life and death, pause ere thou answerest me;
  • So mayst thou answer God with less dismay:
  • What evil have we done thee? I, alas!
  • Have lived but on this earth a few sad years,
  • And so my lot was ordered, that a father _120
  • First turned the moments of awakening life
  • To drops, each poisoning youth's sweet hope; and then
  • Stabbed with one blow my everlasting soul;
  • And my untainted fame; and even that peace
  • Which sleeps within the core of the heart's heart; _125
  • But the wound was not mortal; so my hate
  • Became the only worship I could lift
  • To our great father, who in pity and love,
  • Armed thee, as thou dost say, to cut him off;
  • And thus his wrong becomes my accusation; _130
  • And art thou the accuser? If thou hopest
  • Mercy in heaven, show justice upon earth:
  • Worse than a bloody hand is a hard heart.
  • If thou hast done murders, made thy life's path
  • Over the trampled laws of God and man, _135
  • Rush not before thy Judge, and say: 'My maker,
  • I have done this and more; for there was one
  • Who was most pure and innocent on earth;
  • And because she endured what never any
  • Guilty or innocent endured before: _140
  • Because her wrongs could not be told, not thought;
  • Because thy hand at length did rescue her;
  • I with my words killed her and all her kin.'
  • Think, I adjure you, what it is to slay
  • The reverence living in the minds of men _145
  • Towards our ancient house, and stainless fame!
  • Think what it is to strangle infant pity,
  • Cradled in the belief of guileless looks,
  • Till it become a crime to suffer. Think
  • What 'tis to blot with infamy and blood _150
  • All that which shows like innocence, and is,
  • Hear me, great God! I swear, most innocent,
  • So that the world lose all discrimination
  • Between the sly, fierce, wild regard of guilt,
  • And that which now compels thee to reply _155
  • To what I ask: Am I, or am I not
  • A parricide?
  • MARZIO:
  • Thou art not!
  • JUDGE:
  • What is this?
  • MARZIO:
  • I here declare those whom I did accuse
  • Are innocent. 'Tis I alone am guilty.
  • JUDGE:
  • Drag him away to torments; let them be _160
  • Subtle and long drawn out, to tear the folds
  • Of the heart's inmost cell. Unbind him not
  • Till he confess.
  • MARZIO:
  • Torture me as ye will:
  • A keener pang has wrung a higher truth
  • From my last breath. She is most innocent! _165
  • Bloodhounds, not men, glut yourselves well with me;
  • I will not give you that fine piece of nature
  • To rend and ruin.
  • NOTE:
  • _164 pang edition 1821; pain editions 1819, 1839.
  • [EXIT MARZIO, GUARDED.]
  • CAMILLO:
  • What say ye now, my Lords?
  • JUDGE:
  • Let tortures strain the truth till it be white
  • As snow thrice sifted by the frozen wind. _170
  • CAMILLO:
  • Yet stained with blood.
  • JUDGE [TO BEATRICE]:
  • Know you this paper, Lady?
  • BEATRICE:
  • Entrap me not with questions. Who stands here
  • As my accuser? Ha! wilt thou be he,
  • Who art my judge? Accuser, witness, judge,
  • What, all in one? Here is Orsino's name; _175
  • Where is Orsino? Let his eye meet mine.
  • What means this scrawl? Alas! ye know not what,
  • And therefore on the chance that it may be
  • Some evil, will ye kill us?
  • [ENTER AN OFFICER.]
  • OFFICER:
  • Marzio's dead.
  • JUDGE:
  • What did he say?
  • OFFICER:
  • Nothing. As soon as we _180
  • Had bound him on the wheel, he smiled on us,
  • As one who baffles a deep adversary;
  • And holding his breath, died.
  • JUDGE:
  • There remains nothing
  • But to apply the question to those prisoners,
  • Who yet remain stubborn.
  • CAMILLO:
  • I overrule _185
  • Further proceedings, and in the behalf
  • Of these most innocent and noble persons
  • Will use my interest with the Holy Father.
  • JUDGE:
  • Let the Pope's pleasure then be done. Meanwhile
  • Conduct these culprits each to separate cells; _190
  • And be the engines ready; for this night
  • If the Pope's resolution be as grave,
  • Pious, and just as once, I'll wring the truth
  • Out of those nerves and sinews, groan by groan.
  • [EXEUNT.]
  • SCENE 5.3:
  • THE CELL OF A PRISON.
  • BEATRICE IS DISCOVERED ASLEEP ON A COUCH.
  • ENTER BERNARDO.
  • BERNARDO:
  • How gently slumber rests upon her face,
  • Like the last thoughts of some day sweetly spent
  • Closing in night and dreams, and so prolonged.
  • After such torments as she bore last night,
  • How light and soft her breathing comes. Ay me! _5
  • Methinks that I shall never sleep again.
  • But I must shake the heavenly dew of rest
  • From this sweet folded flower, thus...wake, awake!
  • What, sister, canst thou sleep?
  • BEATRICE [AWAKING]:
  • I was just dreaming
  • That we were all in Paradise. Thou knowest _10
  • This cell seems like a kind of Paradise
  • After our father's presence.
  • BERNARDO:
  • Dear, dear sister,
  • Would that thy dream were not a dream! O God!
  • How shall I tell?
  • BEATRICE:
  • What wouldst thou tell, sweet brother?
  • BERNARDO:
  • Look not so calm and happy, or even whilst _15
  • I stand considering what I have to say
  • My heart will break.
  • BEATRICE:
  • See now, thou mak'st me weep:
  • How very friendless thou wouldst be, dear child,
  • If I were dead. Say what thou hast to say.
  • BERNARDO:
  • They have confessed; they could endure no more _20
  • The tortures...
  • BEATRICE:
  • Ha! What was there to confess?
  • They must have told some weak and wicked lie
  • To flatter their tormentors. Have they said
  • That they were guilty? O white innocence,
  • That thou shouldst wear the mask of guilt to hide _25
  • Thine awful and serenest countenance
  • From those who know thee not!
  • [ENTER JUDGE WITH LUCRETIA AND GIACOMO, GUARDED.]
  • Ignoble hearts!
  • For some brief spasms of pain, which are at least
  • As mortal as the limbs through which they pass,
  • Are centuries of high splendour laid in dust? _30
  • And that eternal honour which should live
  • Sunlike, above the reek of mortal fame,
  • Changed to a mockery and a byword? What!
  • Will you give up these bodies to be dragged
  • At horses' heels, so that our hair should sweep _35
  • The footsteps of the vain and senseless crowd,
  • Who, that they may make our calamity
  • Their worship and their spectacle, will leave
  • The churches and the theatres as void
  • As their own hearts? Shall the light multitude _40
  • Fling, at their choice, curses or faded pity,
  • Sad funeral flowers to deck a living corpse,
  • Upon us as we pass to pass away,
  • And leave...what memory of our having been?
  • Infamy, blood, terror, despair? O thou, _45
  • Who wert a mother to the parentless,
  • Kill not thy child! Let not her wrongs kill thee!
  • Brother, lie down with me upon the rack,
  • And let us each be silent as a corpse;
  • It soon will be as soft as any grave. _50
  • 'Tis but the falsehood it can wring from fear
  • Makes the rack cruel.
  • GIACOMO:
  • They will tear the truth
  • Even from thee at last, those cruel pains:
  • For pity's sake say thou art guilty now.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Oh, speak the truth! Let us all quickly die; _55
  • And after death, God is our judge, not they;
  • He will have mercy on us.
  • BERNARDO:
  • If indeed
  • It can be true, say so, dear sister mine;
  • And then the Pope will surely pardon you,
  • And all be well.
  • JUDGE:
  • Confess, or I will warp _60
  • Your limbs with such keen tortures...
  • BEATRICE:
  • Tortures! Turn
  • The rack henceforth into a spinning-wheel!
  • Torture your dog, that he may tell when last
  • He lapped the blood his master shed...not me!
  • My pangs are of the mind, and of the heart, _65
  • And of the soul; ay, of the inmost soul,
  • Which weeps within tears as of burning gall
  • To see, in this ill world where none are true,
  • My kindred false to their deserted selves.
  • And with considering all the wretched life _70
  • Which I have lived, and its now wretched end,
  • And the small justice shown by Heaven and Earth
  • To me or mine; and what a tyrant thou art,
  • And what slaves these; and what a world we make,
  • The oppressor and the oppressed...such pangs compel _75
  • My answer. What is it thou wouldst with me?
  • JUDGE:
  • Art thou not guilty of thy father's death?
  • BEATRICE:
  • Or wilt thou rather tax high-judging God
  • That He permitted such an act as that
  • Which I have suffered, and which He beheld; _80
  • Made it unutterable, and took from it
  • All refuge, all revenge, all consequence,
  • But that which thou hast called my father's death?
  • Which is or is not what men call a crime,
  • Which either I have done, or have not done; _85
  • Say what ye will. I shall deny no more.
  • If ye desire it thus, thus let it be,
  • And so an end of all. Now do your will;
  • No other pains shall force another word.
  • JUDGE:
  • She is convicted, but has not confessed. _90
  • Be it enough. Until their final sentence
  • Let none have converse with them. You, young Lord,
  • Linger not here!
  • BEATRICE:
  • Oh, tear him not away!
  • JUDGE:
  • Guards! do your duty.
  • BERNARDO [EMBRACING BEATRICE]:
  • Oh! would ye divide
  • Body from soul?
  • OFFICER:
  • That is the headsman's business. _95
  • [EXEUNT ALL BUT LUCRETIA, BEATRICE, AND GIACOMO.]
  • GIACOMO:
  • Have I confessed? Is it all over now?
  • No hope! No refuge! O weak, wicked tongue
  • Which hast destroyed me, would that thou hadst been
  • Cut out and thrown to dogs first! To have killed
  • My father first, and then betrayed my sister; _100
  • Ay, thee! the one thing innocent and pure
  • In this black, guilty world, to that which I
  • So well deserve! My wife! my little ones!
  • Destitute, helpless, and I...Father! God!
  • Canst Thou forgive even the unforgiving, _105
  • When their full hearts break thus, thus!...
  • [COVERS HIS FACE AND WEEPS.]
  • LUCRETIA:
  • O my child!
  • To what a dreadful end are we all come!
  • Why did I yield? Why did I not sustain
  • Those torments? Oh, that I were all dissolved
  • Into these fast and unavailing tears, _110
  • Which flow and feel not!
  • BEATRICE:
  • What 'twas weak to do,
  • 'Tis weaker to lament, once being done;
  • Take cheer! The God who knew my wrong, and made
  • Our speedy act the angel of His wrath,
  • Seems, and but seems, to have abandoned us. _115
  • Let us not think that we shall die for this.
  • Brother, sit near me; give me your firm hand,
  • You had a manly heart. Bear up! Bear up!
  • O dearest Lady, put your gentle head
  • Upon my lap, and try to sleep awhile: _120
  • Your eyes look pale, hollow, and overworn,
  • With heaviness of watching and slow grief.
  • Come, I will sing you some low, sleepy tune,
  • Not cheerful, nor yet sad; some dull old thing,
  • Some outworn and unused monotony, _125
  • Such as our country gossips sing and spin,
  • Till they almost forget they live: lie down!
  • So, that will do. Have I forgot the words?
  • Faith! They are sadder than I thought they were.
  • SONG:
  • False friend, wilt thou smile or weep _130
  • When my life is laid asleep?
  • Little cares for a smile or a tear,
  • The clay-cold corpse upon the bier!
  • Farewell! Heighho!
  • What is this whispers low? _135
  • There is a snake in thy smile, my dear;
  • And bitter poison within thy tear.
  • Sweet sleep, were death like to thee,
  • Or if thou couldst mortal be,
  • I would close these eyes of pain; _140
  • When to wake? Never again.
  • O World! Farewell!
  • Listen to the passing bell!
  • It says, thou and I must part,
  • With a light and a heavy heart. _145
  • [THE SCENE CLOSES.]
  • SCENE 5.4:
  • A HALL OF THE PRISON.
  • ENTER CAMILLO AND BERNARDO.
  • CAMILLO:
  • The Pope is stern; not to be moved or bent.
  • He looked as calm and keen as is the engine
  • Which tortures and which kills, exempt itself
  • From aught that it inflicts; a marble form,
  • A rite, a law, a custom: not a man. _5
  • He frowned, as if to frown had been the trick
  • Of his machinery, on the advocates
  • Presenting the defences, which he tore
  • And threw behind, muttering with hoarse, harsh voice:
  • 'Which among ye defended their old father _10
  • Killed in his sleep?' Then to another: 'Thou
  • Dost this in virtue of thy place; 'tis well.'
  • He turned to me then, looking deprecation,
  • And said these three words, coldly: 'They must die.'
  • BERNARDO:
  • And yet you left him not?
  • CAMILLO:
  • I urged him still; _15
  • Pleading, as I could guess, the devilish wrong
  • Which prompted your unnatural parent's death.
  • And he replied: 'Paolo Santa Croce
  • Murdered his mother yester evening,
  • And he is fled. Parricide grows so rife _20
  • That soon, for some just cause no doubt, the young
  • Will strangle us all, dozing in our chairs.
  • Authority, and power, and hoary hair
  • Are grown crimes capital. You are my nephew,
  • You come to ask their pardon; stay a moment; _25
  • Here is their sentence; never see me more
  • Till, to the letter, it be all fulfilled.'
  • BERNARDO:
  • O God, not so! I did believe indeed
  • That all you said was but sad preparation
  • For happy news. Oh, there are words and looks _30
  • To bend the sternest purpose! Once I knew them,
  • Now I forget them at my dearest need.
  • What think you if I seek him out, and bathe
  • His feet and robe with hot and bitter tears?
  • Importune him with prayers, vexing his brain _35
  • With my perpetual cries, until in rage
  • He strike me with his pastoral cross, and trample
  • Upon my prostrate head, so that my blood
  • May stain the senseless dust on which he treads,
  • And remorse waken mercy? I will do it! _40
  • Oh, wait till I return!
  • [RUSHES OUT.]
  • CAMILLO:
  • Alas, poor boy!
  • A wreck-devoted seaman thus might pray
  • To the deaf sea.
  • [ENTER LUCRETIA, BEATRICE, AND GIACOMO, GUARDED.]
  • BEATRICE:
  • I hardly dare to fear
  • That thou bring'st other news than a just pardon.
  • CAMILLO:
  • May God in heaven be less inexorable _45
  • To the Pope's prayers than he has been to mine.
  • Here is the sentence and the warrant.
  • BEATRICE [WILDLY]:
  • O
  • My God! Can it be possible I have
  • To die so suddenly? So young to go
  • Under the obscure, cold, rotting, wormy ground! _50
  • To be nailed down into a narrow place;
  • To see no more sweet sunshine; hear no more
  • Blithe voice of living thing; muse not again
  • Upon familiar thoughts, sad, yet thus lost--
  • How fearful! to be nothing! Or to be... _55
  • What? Oh, where am I? Let me not go mad!
  • Sweet Heaven, forgive weak thoughts! If there should be
  • No God, no Heaven, no Earth in the void world;
  • The wide, gray, lampless, deep, unpeopled world!
  • If all things then should be...my father's spirit, _60
  • His eye, his voice, his touch surrounding me;
  • The atmosphere and breath of my dead life!
  • If sometimes, as a shape more like himself,
  • Even the form which tortured me on earth,
  • Masked in gray hairs and wrinkles, he should come _65
  • And wind me in his hellish arms, and fix
  • His eyes on mine, and drag me down, down, down!
  • For was he not alone omnipotent
  • On Earth, and ever present? Even though dead,
  • Does not his spirit live in all that breathe, _70
  • And work for me and mine still the same ruin,
  • Scorn, pain, despair? Who ever yet returned
  • To teach the laws of Death's untrodden realm?
  • Unjust perhaps as those which drive us now,
  • Oh, whither, whither?
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Trust in God's sweet love, _75
  • The tender promises of Christ: ere night,
  • Think, we shall be in Paradise.
  • BEATRICE:
  • 'Tis past!
  • Whatever comes, my heart shall sink no more.
  • And yet, I know not why, your words strike chill:
  • How tedious, false, and cold seem all things. I _80
  • Have met with much injustice in this world;
  • No difference has been made by God or man,
  • Or any power moulding my wretched lot,
  • 'Twixt good or evil, as regarded me.
  • I am cut off from the only world I know, _85
  • From light, and life, and love, in youth's sweet prime.
  • You do well telling me to trust in God;
  • I hope I do trust in him. In whom else
  • Can any trust? And yet my heart is cold.
  • [DURING THE LATTER SPEECHES GIACOMO HAS RETIRED CONVERSING WITH
  • CAMILLO, WHO NOW GOES OUT;
  • GIACOMO ADVANCES.]
  • GIACOMO:
  • Know you not, Mother...Sister, know you not? _90
  • Bernardo even now is gone to implore
  • The Pope to grant our pardon.
  • LUCRETIA:
  • Child, perhaps
  • It will be granted. We may all then live
  • To make these woes a tale for distant years:
  • Oh, what a thought! It gushes to my heart _95
  • Like the warm blood.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Yet both will soon be cold.
  • Oh, trample out that thought! Worse than despair,
  • Worse than the bitterness of death, is hope:
  • It is the only ill which can find place
  • Upon the giddy, sharp, and narrow hour _100
  • Tottering beneath us. Plead with the swift frost
  • That it should spare the eldest flower of spring:
  • Plead with awakening earthquake, o'er whose couch
  • Even now a city stands, strong, fair, and free;
  • Now stench and blackness yawn, like death. Oh, plead _105
  • With famine, or wind-walking Pestilence,
  • Blind lightning, or the deaf sea, not with man!
  • Cruel, cold, formal man; righteous in words,
  • In deeds a Cain. No, Mother, we must die:
  • Since such is the reward of innocent lives; _110
  • Such the alleviation of worst wrongs.
  • And whilst our murderers live, and hard, cold men,
  • Smiling and slow, walk through a world of tears
  • To death as to life's sleep; 'twere just the grave
  • Were some strange joy for us. Come, obscure Death, _115
  • And wind me in thine all-embracing arms!
  • Like a fond mother hide me in thy bosom,
  • And rock me to the sleep from which none wake.
  • Live ye, who live, subject to one another
  • As we were once, who now...
  • NOTE:
  • _105 yawn edition 1821; yawns editions 1819, 1839.
  • [BERNARDO RUSHES IN.]
  • BERNARDO:
  • Oh, horrible! _120
  • That tears, that looks, that hope poured forth in prayer,
  • Even till the heart is vacant and despairs,
  • Should all be vain! The ministers of death
  • Are waiting round the doors. I thought I saw
  • Blood on the face of one...What if 'twere fancy? _125
  • Soon the heart's blood of all I love on earth
  • Will sprinkle him, and he will wipe it off
  • As if 'twere only rain. O life! O world!
  • Cover me! let me be no more! To see
  • That perfect mirror of pure innocence _130
  • Wherein I gazed, and grew happy and good,
  • Shivered to dust! To see thee, Beatrice,
  • Who made all lovely thou didst look upon...
  • Thee, light of life ... dead, dark! while I say, sister,
  • To hear I have no sister; and thou, Mother, _135
  • Whose love was as a bond to all our loves...
  • Dead! The sweet bond broken!
  • [ENTER CAMILLO AND GUARDS.]
  • They come! Let me
  • Kiss those warm lips before their crimson leaves
  • Are blighted...white...cold. Say farewell, before
  • Death chokes that gentle voice! Oh, let me hear _140
  • You speak!
  • NOTE:
  • _136 was as a Rossetti cj.; was a editions 1819, 1821, 1839.
  • BEATRICE:
  • Farewell, my tender brother. Think
  • Of our sad fate with gentleness, as now:
  • And let mild, pitying thoughts lighten for thee
  • Thy sorrow's load. Err not in harsh despair,
  • But tears and patience. One thing more, my child: _145
  • For thine own sake be constant to the love
  • Thou bearest us; and to the faith that I,
  • Though wrapped in a strange cloud of crime and shame,
  • Lived ever holy and unstained. And though
  • Ill tongues shall wound me, and our common name _150
  • Be as a mark stamped on thine innocent brow
  • For men to point at as they pass, do thou
  • Forbear, and never think a thought unkind
  • Of those, who perhaps love thee in their graves.
  • So mayest thou die as I do; fear and pain _155
  • Being subdued. Farewell! Farewell! Farewell!
  • BERNARDO:
  • I cannot say, farewell!
  • CAMILLO:
  • Oh, Lady Beatrice!
  • BEATRICE:
  • Give yourself no unnecessary pain,
  • My dear Lord Cardinal. Here, Mother, tie
  • My girdle for me, and bind up this hair _160
  • In any simple knot; ay, that does well.
  • And yours I see is coming down. How often
  • Have we done this for one another; now
  • We shall not do it any more. My Lord,
  • We are quite ready. Well, 'tis very well. _165
  • THE END.
  • NOTE ON THE CENCI, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • The sort of mistake that Shelley made as to the extent of his own
  • genius and powers, which led him deviously at first, but lastly into
  • the direct track that enabled him fully to develop them, is a curious
  • instance of his modesty of feeling, and of the methods which the human
  • mind uses at once to deceive itself, and yet, in its very delusion, to
  • make its way out of error into the path which Nature has marked out as
  • its right one. He often incited me to attempt the writing a tragedy:
  • he conceived that I possessed some dramatic talent, and he was always
  • most earnest and energetic in his exhortations that I should cultivate
  • any talent I possessed, to the utmost. I entertained a truer estimate
  • of my powers; and above all (though at that time not exactly aware of
  • the fact) I was far too young to have any chance of succeeding, even
  • moderately, in a species of composition that requires a greater scope
  • of experience in, and sympathy with, human passion than could then
  • have fallen to my lot,--or than any perhaps, except Shelley, ever
  • possessed, even at the age of twenty-six, at which he wrote The Cenci.
  • On the other hand, Shelley most erroneously conceived himself to be
  • destitute of this talent. He believed that one of the first requisites
  • was the capacity of forming and following-up a story or plot. He
  • fancied himself to he defective in this portion of imagination: it was
  • that which gave him least pleasure in the writings of others, though
  • he laid great store by it as the proper framework to support the
  • sublimest efforts of poetry. He asserted that he was too metaphysical
  • and abstract, too fond of the theoretical and the ideal, to succeed as
  • a tragedian. It perhaps is not strange that I shared this opinion with
  • himself; for he had hitherto shown no inclination for, nor given any
  • specimen of his powers in framing and supporting the interest of a
  • story, either in prose or verse. Once or twice, when he attempted
  • such, he had speedily thrown it aside, as being even disagreeable to
  • him as an occupation.
  • The subject he had suggested for a tragedy was Charles I: and he had
  • written to me: 'Remember, remember Charles I. I have been already
  • imagining how you would conduct some scenes. The second volume of "St.
  • Leon" begins with this proud and true sentiment: "There is nothing
  • which the human mind can conceive which it may not execute."
  • Shakespeare was only a human being.' These words were written in 1818,
  • while we were in Lombardy, when he little thought how soon a work of
  • his own would prove a proud comment on the passage he quoted. When in
  • Rome, in 1819, a friend put into our hands the old manuscript account
  • of the story of the Cenci. We visited the Colonna and Doria palaces,
  • where the portraits of Beatrice were to be found; and her beauty cast
  • the reflection of its own grace over her appalling story. Shelley's
  • imagination became strongly excited, and he urged the subject to me as
  • one fitted for a tragedy. More than ever I felt my incompetence; but I
  • entreated him to write it instead; and he began, and proceeded
  • swiftly, urged on by intense sympathy with the sufferings of the human
  • beings whose passions, so long cold in the tomb, he revived, and
  • gifted with poetic language. This tragedy is the only one of his works
  • that he communicated to me during its progress. We talked over the
  • arrangement of the scenes together. I speedily saw the great mistake
  • we had made, and triumphed in the discovery of the new talent brought
  • to light from that mine of wealth (never, alas, through his untimely
  • death, worked to its depths)--his richly gifted mind.
  • We suffered a severe affliction in Rome by the loss of our eldest
  • child, who was of such beauty and promise as to cause him deservedly
  • to be the idol of our hearts. We left the capital of the world,
  • anxious for a time to escape a spot associated too intimately with his
  • presence and loss. (Such feelings haunted him when, in "The Cenci", he
  • makes Beatrice speak to Cardinal Camillo of
  • 'that fair blue-eyed child
  • Who was the lodestar of your life:'--and say--
  • All see, since his most swift and piteous death,
  • That day and night, and heaven and earth, and time,
  • And all the things hoped for or done therein
  • Are changed to you, through your exceeding grief.')
  • Some friends of ours were residing in the neighbourhood of Leghorn,
  • and we took a small house, Villa Valsovano, about half-way between the
  • town and Monte Nero, where we remained during the summer. Our villa
  • was situated in the midst of a podere; the peasants sang as they
  • worked beneath our windows, during the heats of a very hot season, and
  • in the evening the water-wheel creaked as the process of irrigation
  • went on, and the fireflies flashed from among the myrtle hedges:
  • Nature was bright, sunshiny, and cheerful, or diversified by storms of
  • a majestic terror, such as we had never before witnessed.
  • At the top of the house there was a sort of terrace. There is often
  • such in Italy, generally roofed: this one was very small, yet not only
  • roofed but glazed. This Shelley made his study; it looked out on a
  • wide prospect of fertile country, and commanded a view of the near
  • sea. The storms that sometimes varied our day showed themselves most
  • picturesquely as they were driven across the ocean; sometimes the dark
  • lurid clouds dipped towards the waves, and became water-spouts that
  • churned up the waters beneath, as they were chased onward and
  • scattered by the tempest. At other times the dazzling sunlight and
  • heat made it almost intolerable to every other; but Shelley basked in
  • both, and his health and spirits revived under their influence. In
  • this airy cell he wrote the principal part of "The Cenci". He was
  • making a study of Calderon at the time, reading his best tragedies
  • with an accomplished lady living near us, to whom his letter from
  • Leghorn was addressed during the following year. He admired Calderon,
  • both for his poetry and his dramatic genius; but it shows his
  • judgement and originality that, though greatly struck by his first
  • acquaintance with the Spanish poet, none of his peculiarities crept
  • into the composition of "The Cenci"; and there is no trace of his new
  • studies, except in that passage to which he himself alludes as
  • suggested by one in "El Purgatorio de San Patricio".
  • Shelley wished "The Cenci" to be acted. He was not a playgoer, being
  • of such fastidious taste that he was easily disgusted by the bad
  • filling-up of the inferior parts. While preparing for our departure
  • from England, however, he saw Miss O'Neil several times. She was then
  • in the zenith of her glory; and Shelley was deeply moved by her
  • impersonation of several parts, and by the graceful sweetness, the
  • intense pathos, the sublime vehemence of passion she displayed. She
  • was often in his thoughts as he wrote: and, when he had finished, he
  • became anxious that his tragedy should be acted, and receive the
  • advantage of having this accomplished actress to fill the part of the
  • heroine. With this view he wrote the following letter to a friend in
  • London:
  • 'The object of the present letter us to ask a favour of you. I have
  • written a tragedy on a story well known in Italy, and, in my
  • conception, eminently dramatic. I have taken some pains to make my
  • play fit for representation, and those who have already seen it judge
  • favourably. It is written without any of the peculiar feelings and
  • opinions which characterize my other compositions; I have attended
  • simply to the impartial development of such characters as it is
  • probable the persons represented really were, together with the
  • greatest degree of popular effect to be produced by such a
  • development. I send you a translation of the Italian manuscript on
  • which my play is founded; the chief circumstance of which I have
  • touched very delicately; for my principal doubt as to whether it would
  • succeed as an acting play hangs entirely on the question as to whether
  • any such a thing as incest in this shape, however treated, would be
  • admitted on the stage. I think, however, it will form no objection;
  • considering, first, that the facts are matter of history, and,
  • secondly, the peculiar delicacy with which I have treated it. (In
  • speaking of his mode of treating this main incident, Shelley said that
  • it might be remarked that, in the course of the play, he had never
  • mentioned expressly Cenci's worst crime. Every one knew what it must
  • be, but it was never imaged in words--the nearest allusion to it being
  • that portion of Cenci's curse beginning--
  • "That, if she have a child," etc.)
  • 'I am exceedingly interested in the question of whether this attempt
  • of mine will succeed or not. I am strongly inclined to the affirmative
  • at present; founding my hopes on this--that, as a composition, it is
  • certainly not inferior to any of the modern plays that have been
  • acted, with the exception of "Remorse"; that the interest of the plot
  • is incredibly greater and more real; and that there is nothing beyond
  • what the multitude are contented to believe that they can understand,
  • either in imagery, opinion, or sentiment. I wish to preserve a
  • complete incognito, and can trust to you that, whatever else you do,
  • you will at least favour me on this point. Indeed, this is essential,
  • deeply essential, to its success. After it had been acted, and
  • successfully (could I hope for such a thing), I would own it if I
  • pleased, and use the celebrity it might acquire to my own purposes.
  • 'What I want you to do is to procure for me its presentation at Covent
  • Garden. The principal character, Beatrice, is precisely fitted for
  • Miss O'Neil, and it might even seem to have been written for her (God
  • forbid that I should see her play it--it would tear my nerves to
  • pieces); and in all respects it is fitted only for Covent Garden. The
  • chief male character I confess I should be very unwilling that any one
  • but Kean should play. That is impossible, and I must be contented with
  • an inferior actor.'
  • The play was accordingly sent to Mr. Harris. He pronounced the subject
  • to be so objectionable that he could not even submit the part to Miss
  • O'Neil for perusal, but expressed his desire that the author would
  • write a tragedy on some other subject, which he would gladly accept.
  • Shelley printed a small edition at Leghorn, to ensure its correctness;
  • as he was much annoyed by the many mistakes that crept into his text
  • when distance prevented him from correcting the press.
  • Universal approbation soon stamped "The Cenci" as the best tragedy of
  • modern times. Writing concerning it, Shelley said: 'I have been
  • cautious to avoid the introducing faults of youthful composition;
  • diffuseness, a profusion of inapplicable imagery, vagueness,
  • generality, and, as Hamlet says, "words, words".' There is nothing
  • that is not purely dramatic throughout; and the character of Beatrice,
  • proceeding, from vehement struggle, to horror, to deadly resolution,
  • and lastly to the elevated dignity of calm suffering, joined to
  • passionate tenderness and pathos, is touched with hues so vivid and so
  • beautiful that the poet seems to have read intimately the secrets of
  • the noble heart imaged in the lovely countenance of the unfortunate
  • girl. The Fifth Act is a masterpiece. It is the finest thing he ever
  • wrote, and may claim proud comparison not only with any contemporary,
  • but preceding, poet. The varying feelings of Beatrice are expressed
  • with passionate, heart-reaching eloquence. Every character has a voice
  • that echoes truth in its tones. It is curious, to one acquainted with
  • the written story, to mark the success with which the poet has inwoven
  • the real incidents of the tragedy into his scenes, and yet, through
  • the power of poetry, has obliterated all that would otherwise have
  • shown too harsh or too hideous in the picture. His success was a
  • double triumph; and often after he was earnestly entreated to write
  • again in a style that commanded popular favour, while it was not less
  • instinct with truth and genius. But the bent of his mind went the
  • other way; and, even when employed on subjects whose interest depended
  • on character and incident, he would start off in another direction,
  • and leave the delineations of human passion, which he could depict in
  • so able a manner, for fantastic creations of his fancy, or the
  • expression of those opinions and sentiments, with regard to human
  • nature and its destiny, a desire to diffuse which was the master
  • passion of his soul.
  • ***
  • THE MASK OF ANARCHY.
  • WRITTEN ON THE OCCASION OF THE MASSACRE AT MANCHESTER.
  • [Composed at the Villa Valsovano near Leghorn--or possibly later,
  • during Shelley's sojourn at Florence--in the autumn of 1819, shortly
  • after the Peterloo riot at Manchester, August 16; edited with Preface
  • by Leigh Hunt, and published under the poet's name by Edward Moxon,
  • 1832 (Bradbury & Evans, printers). Two manuscripts are extant: a
  • transcript by Mrs. Shelley with Shelley's autograph corrections, known
  • as the 'Hunt manuscript'; and an earlier draft, not quite complete, in
  • the poet's handwriting, presented by Mrs. Shelley to (Sir) John
  • Bowring in 1826, and now in the possession of Mr. Thomas J. Wise (the
  • 'Wise manuscript'). Mrs. Shelley's copy was sent to Leigh Hunt in 1819
  • with view to its publication in "The Examiner"; hence the name 'Hunt
  • manuscript.' A facsimile of the Wise manuscript was published by the
  • Shelley Society in 1887. Sources of the text are (1) the Hunt
  • manuscript; (2) the Wise manuscript; (3) the editio princeps, editor
  • Leigh Hunt, 1832; (4) Mrs. Shelley's two editions ("Poetical Works")
  • of 1839. Of the two manuscripts Mrs. Shelley's transcript is the later
  • and more authoritative.]
  • 1.
  • As I lay asleep in Italy
  • There came a voice from over the Sea,
  • And with great power it forth led me
  • To walk in the visions of Poesy.
  • 2.
  • I met Murder on the way-- _5
  • He had a mask like Castlereagh--
  • Very smooth he looked, yet grim;
  • Seven blood-hounds followed him:
  • 3.
  • All were fat; and well they might
  • Be in admirable plight, _10
  • For one by one, and two by two,
  • He tossed them human hearts to chew
  • Which from his wide cloak he drew.
  • 4.
  • Next came Fraud, and he had on,
  • Like Eldon, an ermined gown; _15
  • His big tears, for he wept well,
  • Turned to mill-stones as they fell.
  • 5.
  • And the little children, who
  • Round his feet played to and fro,
  • Thinking every tear a gem, _20
  • Had their brains knocked out by them.
  • 6.
  • Clothed with the Bible, as with light,
  • And the shadows of the night,
  • Like Sidmouth, next, Hypocrisy
  • On a crocodile rode by. _25
  • 7.
  • And many more Destructions played
  • In this ghastly masquerade,
  • All disguised, even to the eyes,
  • Like Bishops, lawyers, peers, or spies.
  • 8.
  • Last came Anarchy: he rode _30
  • On a white horse, splashed with blood;
  • He was pale even to the lips,
  • Like Death in the Apocalypse.
  • 9.
  • And he wore a kingly crown;
  • And in his grasp a sceptre shone; _35
  • On his brow this mark I saw--
  • 'I AM GOD, AND KING, AND LAW!'
  • 10.
  • With a pace stately and fast,
  • Over English land he passed,
  • Trampling to a mire of blood _40
  • The adoring multitude.
  • 11.
  • And a mighty troop around,
  • With their trampling shook the ground,
  • Waving each a bloody sword,
  • For the service of their Lord. _45
  • 12.
  • And with glorious triumph, they
  • Rode through England proud and gay,
  • Drunk as with intoxication
  • Of the wine of desolation.
  • 13.
  • O'er fields and towns, from sea to sea, _50
  • Passed the Pageant swift and free,
  • Tearing up, and trampling down;
  • Till they came to London town.
  • 14.
  • And each dweller, panic-stricken,
  • Felt his heart with terror sicken _55
  • Hearing the tempestuous cry
  • Of the triumph of Anarchy.
  • 15.
  • For with pomp to meet him came,
  • Clothed in arms like blood and flame,
  • The hired murderers, who did sing _60
  • 'Thou art God, and Law, and King.
  • 16.
  • 'We have waited, weak and lone
  • For thy coming, Mighty One!
  • Our purses are empty, our swords are cold,
  • Give us glory, and blood, and gold.' _65
  • 17.
  • Lawyers and priests, a motley crowd,
  • To the earth their pale brows bowed;
  • Like a bad prayer not over loud,
  • Whispering--'Thou art Law and God.'--
  • 18.
  • Then all cried with one accord, _70
  • 'Thou art King, and God, and Lord;
  • Anarchy, to thee we bow,
  • Be thy name made holy now!'
  • 19.
  • And Anarchy, the Skeleton,
  • Bowed and grinned to every one, _75
  • As well as if his education
  • Had cost ten millions to the nation.
  • 20.
  • For he knew the Palaces
  • Of our Kings were rightly his;
  • His the sceptre, crown, and globe, _80
  • And the gold-inwoven robe.
  • 21.
  • So he sent his slaves before
  • To seize upon the Bank and Tower,
  • And was proceeding with intent
  • To meet his pensioned Parliament _85
  • 22.
  • When one fled past, a maniac maid,
  • And her name was Hope, she said:
  • But she looked more like Despair,
  • And she cried out in the air:
  • 23.
  • 'My father Time is weak and gray _90
  • With waiting for a better day;
  • See how idiot-like he stands,
  • Fumbling with his palsied hands!
  • 24.
  • 'He has had child after child,
  • And the dust of death is piled _95
  • Over every one but me--
  • Misery, oh, Misery!'
  • 25.
  • Then she lay down in the street,
  • Right before the horses' feet,
  • Expecting, with a patient eye, _100
  • Murder, Fraud, and Anarchy.
  • 26.
  • When between her and her foes
  • A mist, a light, an image rose,
  • Small at first, and weak, and frail
  • Like the vapour of a vale: _105
  • 27.
  • Till as clouds grow on the blast,
  • Like tower-crowned giants striding fast,
  • And glare with lightnings as they fly,
  • And speak in thunder to the sky,
  • 28.
  • It grew--a Shape arrayed in mail _110
  • Brighter than the viper's scale,
  • And upborne on wings whose grain
  • Was as the light of sunny rain.
  • 29.
  • On its helm, seen far away,
  • A planet, like the Morning's, lay; _115
  • And those plumes its light rained through
  • Like a shower of crimson dew.
  • 30.
  • With step as soft as wind it passed
  • O'er the heads of men--so fast
  • That they knew the presence there, _120
  • And looked,--but all was empty air.
  • 31.
  • As flowers beneath May's footstep waken,
  • As stars from Night's loose hair are shaken,
  • As waves arise when loud winds call,
  • Thoughts sprung where'er that step did fall. _125
  • 32.
  • And the prostrate multitude
  • Looked--and ankle-deep in blood,
  • Hope, that maiden most serene,
  • Was walking with a quiet mien:
  • 33.
  • And Anarchy, the ghastly birth, _130
  • Lay dead earth upon the earth;
  • The Horse of Death tameless as wind
  • Fled, and with his hoofs did grind
  • To dust the murderers thronged behind.
  • 34.
  • A rushing light of clouds and splendour, _135
  • A sense awakening and yet tender
  • Was heard and felt--and at its close
  • These words of joy and fear arose
  • 35.
  • As if their own indignant Earth
  • Which gave the sons of England birth _140
  • Had felt their blood upon her brow,
  • And shuddering with a mother's throe
  • 36.
  • Had turned every drop of blood
  • By which her face had been bedewed
  • To an accent unwithstood,-- _145
  • As if her heart had cried aloud:
  • 37.
  • 'Men of England, heirs of Glory,
  • Heroes of unwritten story,
  • Nurslings of one mighty Mother,
  • Hopes of her, and one another; _150
  • 38.
  • 'Rise like Lions after slumber
  • In unvanquishable number,
  • Shake your chains to earth like dew
  • Which in sleep had fallen on you--
  • Ye are many--they are few. _155
  • 39.
  • 'What is Freedom?--ye can tell
  • That which slavery is, too well--
  • For its very name has grown
  • To an echo of your own.
  • 40.
  • ''Tis to work and have such pay _160
  • As just keeps life from day to day
  • In your limbs, as in a cell
  • For the tyrants' use to dwell,
  • 41.
  • 'So that ye for them are made
  • Loom, and plough, and sword, and spade, _165
  • With or without your own will bent
  • To their defence and nourishment.
  • 42.
  • ''Tis to see your children weak
  • With their mothers pine and peak,
  • When the winter winds are bleak,-- _170
  • They are dying whilst I speak.
  • 43.
  • ''Tis to hunger for such diet
  • As the rich man in his riot
  • Casts to the fat dogs that lie
  • Surfeiting beneath his eye; _175
  • 44.
  • ''Tis to let the Ghost of Gold
  • Take from Toil a thousandfold
  • More than e'er its substance could
  • In the tyrannies of old.
  • 45.
  • 'Paper coin--that forgery _180
  • Of the title-deeds, which ye
  • Hold to something of the worth
  • Of the inheritance of Earth.
  • 46.
  • ''Tis to be a slave in soul
  • And to hold no strong control _185
  • Over your own wills, but be
  • All that others make of ye.
  • 47.
  • 'And at length when ye complain
  • With a murmur weak and vain
  • 'Tis to see the Tyrant's crew _190
  • Ride over your wives and you
  • Blood is on the grass like dew.
  • 48.
  • 'Then it is to feel revenge
  • Fiercely thirsting to exchange
  • Blood for blood--and wrong for wrong-- _195
  • Do not thus when ye are strong.
  • 49.
  • 'Birds find rest, in narrow nest
  • When weary of their winged quest;
  • Beasts find fare, in woody lair
  • When storm and snow are in the air. _200
  • 50.
  • 'Asses, swine, have litter spread
  • And with fitting food are fed;
  • All things have a home but one--
  • Thou, Oh, Englishman, hast none!
  • 51.
  • 'This is Slavery--savage men, _205
  • Or wild beasts within a den
  • Would endure not as ye do--
  • But such ills they never knew.
  • 52.
  • 'What art thou Freedom? O! could slaves
  • Answer from their living graves _210
  • This demand--tyrants would flee
  • Like a dream's dim imagery:
  • 53.
  • 'Thou art not, as impostors say,
  • A shadow soon to pass away,
  • A superstition, and a name _215
  • Echoing from the cave of Fame.
  • 54.
  • 'For the labourer thou art bread,
  • And a comely table spread
  • From his daily labour come
  • In a neat and happy home. _220
  • 55.
  • Thou art clothes, and fire, and food
  • For the trampled multitude--
  • No--in countries that are free
  • Such starvation cannot be
  • As in England now we see. _225
  • 56.
  • 'To the rich thou art a check,
  • When his foot is on the neck
  • Of his victim, thou dost make
  • That he treads upon a snake.
  • 57.
  • Thou art Justice--ne'er for gold _230
  • May thy righteous laws be sold
  • As laws are in England--thou
  • Shield'st alike the high and low.
  • 58.
  • 'Thou art Wisdom--Freemen never
  • Dream that God will damn for ever _235
  • All who think those things untrue
  • Of which Priests make such ado.
  • 59.
  • 'Thou art Peace--never by thee
  • Would blood and treasure wasted be
  • As tyrants wasted them, when all _240
  • Leagued to quench thy flame in Gaul.
  • 60.
  • 'What if English toil and blood
  • Was poured forth, even as a flood?
  • It availed, Oh, Liberty,
  • To dim, but not extinguish thee. _245
  • 61.
  • 'Thou art Love--the rich have kissed
  • Thy feet, and like him following Christ,
  • Give their substance to the free
  • And through the rough world follow thee,
  • 62.
  • 'Or turn their wealth to arms, and make _250
  • War for thy beloved sake
  • On wealth, and war, and fraud--whence they
  • Drew the power which is their prey.
  • 63.
  • 'Science, Poetry, and Thought
  • Are thy lamps; they make the lot _255
  • Of the dwellers in a cot
  • So serene, they curse it not.
  • 64.
  • 'Spirit, Patience, Gentleness,
  • All that can adorn and bless
  • Art thou--let deeds, not words, express _260
  • Thine exceeding loveliness.
  • 65.
  • 'Let a great Assembly be
  • Of the fearless and the free
  • On some spot of English ground
  • Where the plains stretch wide around. _265
  • 66.
  • 'Let the blue sky overhead,
  • The green earth on which ye tread,
  • All that must eternal be
  • Witness the solemnity.
  • 67.
  • 'From the corners uttermost _270
  • Of the bounds of English coast;
  • From every hut, village, and town
  • Where those who live and suffer moan
  • For others' misery or their own,
  • 68.
  • 'From the workhouse and the prison
  • Where pale as corpses newly risen,
  • Women, children, young and old _277
  • Groan for pain, and weep for cold--
  • 69.
  • 'From the haunts of daily life
  • Where is waged the daily strife _280
  • With common wants and common cares
  • Which sows the human heart with tares--
  • 70.
  • 'Lastly from the palaces
  • Where the murmur of distress
  • Echoes, like the distant sound _285
  • Of a wind alive around
  • 71.
  • 'Those prison halls of wealth and fashion,
  • Where some few feel such compassion
  • For those who groan, and toil, and wail
  • As must make their brethren pale--
  • 72.
  • 'Ye who suffer woes untold, _291
  • Or to feel, or to behold
  • Your lost country bought and sold
  • With a price of blood and gold--
  • 73.
  • 'Let a vast assembly be, _295
  • And with great solemnity
  • Declare with measured words that ye
  • Are, as God has made ye, free--
  • 74.
  • 'Be your strong and simple words
  • Keen to wound as sharpened swords, _300
  • And wide as targes let them be,
  • With their shade to cover ye.
  • 75.
  • 'Let the tyrants pour around
  • With a quick and startling sound,
  • Like the loosening of a sea, _305
  • Troops of armed emblazonry.
  • 76.
  • 'Let the charged artillery drive
  • Till the dead air seems alive
  • With the clash of clanging wheels,
  • And the tramp of horses' heels. _310
  • 77.
  • 'Let the fixed bayonet
  • Gleam with sharp desire to wet
  • Its bright point in English blood
  • Looking keen as one for food.
  • 78.
  • Let the horsemen's scimitars _315
  • Wheel and flash, like sphereless stars
  • Thirsting to eclipse their burning
  • In a sea of death and mourning.
  • 79.
  • 'Stand ye calm and resolute,
  • Like a forest close and mute, _320
  • With folded arms and looks which are
  • Weapons of unvanquished war,
  • 80.
  • 'And let Panic, who outspeeds
  • The career of armed steeds
  • Pass, a disregarded shade _325
  • Through your phalanx undismayed.
  • 81.
  • 'Let the laws of your own land,
  • Good or ill, between ye stand
  • Hand to hand, and foot to foot,
  • Arbiters of the dispute, _330
  • 82.
  • 'The old laws of England--they
  • Whose reverend heads with age are gray,
  • Children of a wiser day;
  • And whose solemn voice must be
  • Thine own echo--Liberty! _335
  • 83.
  • 'On those who first should violate
  • Such sacred heralds in their state
  • Rest the blood that must ensue,
  • And it will not rest on you.
  • 84.
  • 'And if then the tyrants dare _340
  • Let them ride among you there,
  • Slash, and stab, and maim, and hew,--
  • What they like, that let them do.
  • 85.
  • 'With folded arms and steady eyes,
  • And little fear, and less surprise, _345
  • Look upon them as they slay
  • Till their rage has died away.
  • 86.
  • Then they will return with shame
  • To the place from which they came,
  • And the blood thus shed will speak _350
  • In hot blushes on their cheek.
  • 87.
  • 'Every woman in the land
  • Will point at them as they stand--
  • They will hardly dare to greet
  • Their acquaintance in the street. _355
  • 88.
  • 'And the bold, true warriors
  • Who have hugged Danger in wars
  • Will turn to those who would be free,
  • Ashamed of such base company.
  • 89.
  • 'And that slaughter to the Nation _360
  • Shall steam up like inspiration,
  • Eloquent, oracular;
  • A volcano heard afar.
  • 90.
  • 'And these words shall then become
  • Like Oppression's thundered doom _365
  • Ringing through each heart and brain,
  • Heard again--again--again--
  • 91.
  • 'Rise like Lions after slumber
  • In unvanquishable number--
  • Shake your chains to earth like dew _370
  • Which in sleep had fallen on you--
  • Ye are many--they are few.'
  • NOTES:
  • _15. Like Eldon Hunt manuscript; Like Lord Eldon Wise manuscript.
  • _15. ermined Hunt manuscript, Wise manuscript edition 1832;
  • ermine editions 1839.
  • _23 shadows]shadow editions 1839 only.
  • _29 or]and Wise manuscript only.
  • _35 And in his grasp Hunt manuscript, edition 1882;
  • In his hand Wise manuscript,
  • Hunt manuscript cancelled, edition 1839.
  • _36 On his]And on his edition 1832 only.
  • _51 the Hunt manuscript, edition 1832; that Wise manuscript.
  • _56 tempestuous]tremendous editions 1839 only.
  • _58 For with pomp]For from... Hunt manuscript, Wise manuscript.
  • _71 God]Law editions 1839 only.
  • _79 rightly Wise manuscript; nightly Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839.
  • _93 Fumbling] Trembling editions 1839 only.
  • _105 a vale Hunt manuscript, Wise manuscript; the vale editions 1832, 1839.
  • _113 as]like editions 1839 only.
  • _116 its Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript; it editions 1832, 1839.
  • _121 but Wise MS; and Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839.
  • _122 May's footstep Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript;
  • the footstep edition 1832; May's footsteps editions 1839.
  • _132-4 omit Wise manuscript.
  • _146 had cried Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839;
  • cried out Wise manuscript.
  • _155 omit edition 1832 only.
  • _182 of]from Wise manuscript only.
  • _186 wills Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839; will Wise manuscript.
  • _198 their Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
  • the edition 1832.
  • _216 cave Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
  • caves edition 1832, Hunt manuscript cancelled.
  • _220 In Wise manuscript, editions 1832, 1839; To Hunt manuscript.
  • (Note at stanza 49: The following stanza is found in the Wise
  • manuscript and in editions 1839, but is wanting in the Hunt manuscript
  • and in edition 1832:--
  • 'Horses, oxen, have a home,
  • When from daily toil they come;
  • Household dogs, when the wind roars,
  • Find a home within warm doors.')
  • _233 the Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839; both Wise manuscript.
  • _234 Freemen Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
  • Freedom edition 1832.
  • _235 Dream Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
  • Dreams edition 1832. damn]doom editions 1839 only.
  • _248 Give Hunt manuscript, edition 1832;
  • Given Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript cancelled, editions 1839.
  • _249 follow]followed editions 1839 only.
  • _250 Or Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript; Oh editions 1832, 1839.
  • _254 Science, Poetry, Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript;
  • Science, and Poetry editions 1832, 1839.
  • _257 So Hunt manuscript, edition 1832;
  • Such they curse their Maker not Wise manuscript, editions 1839.
  • _263 and]of edition 1832 only.
  • _274 or]and edition 1832 only.
  • (Note to end of stanza 67: The following stanza is found (cancelled)
  • at this place in the Wise manuscript:--
  • 'From the cities where from caves,
  • Like the dead from putrid graves,
  • Troops of starvelings gliding come,
  • Living Tenants of a tomb.'
  • _282 sows Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript;
  • sow editions 1832, 1839.
  • _297 measured Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, edition 1832;
  • ne'er-said editions 1839.
  • _322 of unvanquished Wise manuscript;
  • of an unvanquished Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839.
  • _346 slay Wise manuscript; Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
  • stay edition 1832.
  • _357 in wars Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, edition 1832;
  • in the wars editions 1839.
  • NOTE ON THE MASK OF ANARCHY, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • Though Shelley's first eager desire to excite his countrymen to resist
  • openly the oppressions existent during 'the good old times' had faded
  • with early youth, still his warmest sympathies were for the people. He
  • was a republican, and loved a democracy. He looked on all human beings
  • as inheriting an equal right to possess the dearest privileges of our
  • nature; the necessaries of life when fairly earned by labour, and
  • intellectual instruction. His hatred of any despotism that looked upon
  • the people as not to be consulted, or protected from want and
  • ignorance, was intense. He was residing near Leghorn, at Villa
  • Valsovano, writing "The Cenci", when the news of the Manchester
  • Massacre reached us; it roused in him violent emotions of indignation
  • and compassion. The great truth that the many, if accordant and
  • resolute, could control the few, as was shown some years after, made
  • him long to teach his injured countrymen how to resist. Inspired by
  • these feelings, he wrote the "Mask of Anarchy", which he sent to his
  • friend Leigh Hunt, to be inserted in the Examiner, of which he was
  • then the Editor.
  • 'I did not insert it,' Leigh Hunt writes in his valuable and
  • interesting preface to this poem, when he printed it in 1832, 'because
  • I thought that the public at large had not become sufficiently
  • discerning to do justice to the sincerity and kind-heartedness of the
  • spirit that walked in this flaming robe of verse.' Days of outrage
  • have passed away, and with them the exasperation that would cause such
  • an appeal to the many to be injurious. Without being aware of them,
  • they at one time acted on his suggestions, and gained the day. But
  • they rose when human life was respected by the Minister in power; such
  • was not the case during the Administration which excited Shelley's
  • abhorrence.
  • The poem was written for the people, and is therefore in a more
  • popular tone than usual: portions strike as abrupt and unpolished, but
  • many stanzas are all his own. I heard him repeat, and admired, those
  • beginning
  • 'My Father Time is old and gray,'
  • before I knew to what poem they were to belong. But the most touching
  • passage is that which describes the blessed effects of liberty; it
  • might make a patriot of any man whose heart was not wholly closed
  • against his humbler fellow-creatures.
  • ***
  • PETER BELL THE THIRD.
  • BY MICHING MALLECHO, ESQ.
  • Is it a party in a parlour,
  • Crammed just as they on earth were crammed,
  • Some sipping punch--some sipping tea;
  • But, as you by their faces see,
  • All silent, and all--damned!
  • "Peter Bell", by W. WORDSWORTH.
  • OPHELIA.--What means this, my lord?
  • HAMLET.--Marry, this is Miching Mallecho; it means mischief.
  • SHAKESPEARE.
  • [Composed at Florence, October, 1819, and forwarded to Hunt (November
  • 2) to be published by C. & J. Ollier without the author's name;
  • ultimately printed by Mrs. Shelley in the second edition of the
  • "Poetical Works", 1839. A skit by John Hamilton Reynolds, "Peter Bell,
  • a Lyrical Ballad", had already appeared (April, 1819), a few days
  • before the publication of Wordsworth's "Peter Bell, a Tale". These
  • productions were reviewed in Leigh Hunt's "Examiner" (April 26, May 3,
  • 1819); and to the entertainment derived from his perusal of Hunt's
  • criticisms the composition of Shelley's "Peter Bell the Third" is
  • chiefly owing.]
  • DEDICATION.
  • TO THOMAS BROWN, ESQ., THE YOUNGER, H.F.
  • Dear Tom,
  • Allow me to request you to introduce Mr. Peter Bell to the respectable
  • family of the Fudges. Although he may fall short of those very
  • considerable personages in the more active properties which
  • characterize the Rat and the Apostate, I suspect that even you, their
  • historian, will confess that he surpasses them in the more peculiarly
  • legitimate qualification of intolerable dulness.
  • You know Mr. Examiner Hunt; well--it was he who presented me to two of
  • the Mr. Bells. My intimacy with the younger Mr. Bell naturally sprung
  • from this introduction to his brothers. And in presenting him to you,
  • I have the satisfaction of being able to assure you that he is
  • considerably the dullest of the three.
  • There is this particular advantage in an acquaintance with any one of
  • the Peter Bells, that if you know one Peter Bell, you know three Peter
  • Bells; they are not one, but three; not three, but one. An awful
  • mystery, which, after having caused torrents of blood, and having been
  • hymned by groans enough to deafen the music of the spheres, is at
  • length illustrated to the satisfaction of all parties in the
  • theological world, by the nature of Mr. Peter Bell.
  • Peter is a polyhedric Peter, or a Peter with many sides. He changes
  • colours like a chameleon, and his coat like a snake. He is a Proteus
  • of a Peter. He was at first sublime, pathetic, impressive, profound;
  • then dull; then prosy and dull; and now dull--oh so very dull! it is
  • an ultra-legitimate dulness.
  • You will perceive that it is not necessary to consider Hell and the
  • Devil as supernatural machinery. The whole scene of my epic is in
  • 'this world which is'--so Peter informed us before his conversion to
  • "White Obi"--
  • 'The world of all of us, AND WHERE
  • WE FIND OUR HAPPINESS, OR NOT AT ALL.'
  • Let me observe that I have spent six or seven days in composing this
  • sublime piece; the orb of my moonlike genius has made the fourth part
  • of its revolution round the dull earth which you inhabit, driving you
  • mad, while it has retained its calmness and its splendour, and I have
  • been fitting this its last phase 'to occupy a permanent station in the
  • literature of my country.'
  • Your works, indeed, dear Tom, sell better; but mine are far superior.
  • The public is no judge; posterity sets all to rights.
  • Allow me to observe that so much has been written of Peter Bell, that
  • the present history can be considered only, like the Iliad, as a
  • continuation of that series of cyclic poems, which have already been
  • candidates for bestowing immortality upon, at the same time that they
  • receive it from, his character and adventures. In this point of view I
  • have violated no rule of syntax in beginning my composition with a
  • conjunction; the full stop which closes the poem continued by me
  • being, like the full stops at the end of the Iliad and Odyssey, a full
  • stop of a very qualified import.
  • Hoping that the immortality which you have given to the Fudges, you
  • will receive from them; and in the firm expectation, that when London
  • shall be an habitation of bitterns; when St. Paul's and Westminster
  • Abbey shall stand, shapeless and nameless ruins, in the midst of an
  • unpeopled marsh; when the piers of Waterloo Bridge shall become the
  • nuclei of islets of reeds and osiers, and cast the jagged shadows of
  • their broken arches on the solitary stream, some transatlantic
  • commentator will be weighing in the scales of some new and now
  • unimagined system of criticism, the respective merits of the Bells and
  • the Fudges, and their historians. I remain, dear Tom, yours sincerely,
  • MICHING MALLECHO.
  • December 1, 1819.
  • P.S.--Pray excuse the date of place; so soon as the profits of the
  • publication come in, I mean to hire lodgings in a more respectable
  • street.
  • PROLOGUE.
  • Peter Bells, one, two and three,
  • O'er the wide world wandering be.--
  • First, the antenatal Peter,
  • Wrapped in weeds of the same metre,
  • The so-long-predestined raiment _5
  • Clothed in which to walk his way meant
  • The second Peter; whose ambition
  • Is to link the proposition,
  • As the mean of two extremes--
  • (This was learned from Aldric's themes) _10
  • Shielding from the guilt of schism
  • The orthodoxal syllogism;
  • The First Peter--he who was
  • Like the shadow in the glass
  • Of the second, yet unripe, _15
  • His substantial antitype.--
  • Then came Peter Bell the Second,
  • Who henceforward must be reckoned
  • The body of a double soul,
  • And that portion of the whole _20
  • Without which the rest would seem
  • Ends of a disjointed dream.--
  • And the Third is he who has
  • O'er the grave been forced to pass
  • To the other side, which is,-- _25
  • Go and try else,--just like this.
  • Peter Bell the First was Peter
  • Smugger, milder, softer, neater,
  • Like the soul before it is
  • Born from THAT world into THIS. _30
  • The next Peter Bell was he,
  • Predevote, like you and me,
  • To good or evil as may come;
  • His was the severer doom,--
  • For he was an evil Cotter, _35
  • And a polygamic Potter.
  • And the last is Peter Bell,
  • Damned since our first parents fell,
  • Damned eternally to Hell--
  • Surely he deserves it well! _40
  • NOTES:
  • _10 Aldric's] i.e. Aldrich's--a spelling adopted here by Woodberry.
  • (_36 The oldest scholiasts read--
  • A dodecagamic Potter.
  • This is at once more descriptive and more megalophonous,--but the
  • alliteration of the text had captivated the vulgar ear of the herd of
  • later commentators.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • PART 1.
  • DEATH.
  • 1.
  • And Peter Bell, when he had been
  • With fresh-imported Hell-fire warmed,
  • Grew serious--from his dress and mien
  • 'Twas very plainly to be seen
  • Peter was quite reformed. _5
  • 2.
  • His eyes turned up, his mouth turned down;
  • His accent caught a nasal twang;
  • He oiled his hair; there might be heard
  • The grace of God in every word
  • Which Peter said or sang. _10
  • 3.
  • But Peter now grew old, and had
  • An ill no doctor could unravel:
  • His torments almost drove him mad;--
  • Some said it was a fever bad--
  • Some swore it was the gravel. _15
  • 4.
  • His holy friends then came about,
  • And with long preaching and persuasion
  • Convinced the patient that, without
  • The smallest shadow of a doubt,
  • He was predestined to damnation. _20
  • 5.
  • They said--'Thy name is Peter Bell;
  • Thy skin is of a brimstone hue;
  • Alive or dead--ay, sick or well--
  • The one God made to rhyme with hell;
  • The other, I think, rhymes with you. _25
  • 6.
  • Then Peter set up such a yell!--
  • The nurse, who with some water gruel
  • Was climbing up the stairs, as well
  • As her old legs could climb them--fell,
  • And broke them both--the fall was cruel. _30
  • 7.
  • The Parson from the casement lept
  • Into the lake of Windermere--
  • And many an eel--though no adept
  • In God's right reason for it--kept
  • Gnawing his kidneys half a year. _35
  • 8.
  • And all the rest rushed through the door
  • And tumbled over one another,
  • And broke their skulls.--Upon the floor
  • Meanwhile sat Peter Bell, and swore,
  • And cursed his father and his mother; _40
  • 9.
  • And raved of God, and sin, and death,
  • Blaspheming like an infidel;
  • And said, that with his clenched teeth
  • He'd seize the earth from underneath,
  • And drag it with him down to hell. _45
  • 10.
  • As he was speaking came a spasm,
  • And wrenched his gnashing teeth asunder;
  • Like one who sees a strange phantasm
  • He lay,--there was a silent chasm
  • Between his upper jaw and under. _50
  • 11.
  • And yellow death lay on his face;
  • And a fixed smile that was not human
  • Told, as I understand the case,
  • That he was gone to the wrong place:--
  • I heard all this from the old woman. _55
  • 12.
  • Then there came down from Langdale Pike
  • A cloud, with lightning, wind and hail;
  • It swept over the mountains like
  • An ocean,--and I heard it strike
  • The woods and crags of Grasmere vale. _60
  • 13.
  • And I saw the black storm come
  • Nearer, minute after minute;
  • Its thunder made the cataracts dumb;
  • With hiss, and clash, and hollow hum,
  • It neared as if the Devil was in it. _65
  • 14.
  • The Devil WAS in it:--he had bought
  • Peter for half-a-crown; and when
  • The storm which bore him vanished, nought
  • That in the house that storm had caught
  • Was ever seen again. _70
  • 15.
  • The gaping neighbours came next day--
  • They found all vanished from the shore:
  • The Bible, whence he used to pray,
  • Half scorched under a hen-coop lay;
  • Smashed glass--and nothing more! _75
  • PART 2.
  • THE DEVIL.
  • 1.
  • The Devil, I safely can aver,
  • Has neither hoof, nor tail, nor sting;
  • Nor is he, as some sages swear,
  • A spirit, neither here nor there,
  • In nothing--yet in everything. _80
  • 2.
  • He is--what we are; for sometimes
  • The Devil is a gentleman;
  • At others a bard bartering rhymes
  • For sack; a statesman spinning crimes;
  • A swindler, living as he can; _85
  • 3.
  • A thief, who cometh in the night,
  • With whole boots and net pantaloons,
  • Like some one whom it were not right
  • To mention;--or the luckless wight
  • From whom he steals nine silver spoons. _90
  • 4.
  • But in this case he did appear
  • Like a slop-merchant from Wapping,
  • And with smug face, and eye severe,
  • On every side did perk and peer
  • Till he saw Peter dead or napping. _95
  • 5.
  • He had on an upper Benjamin
  • (For he was of the driving schism)
  • In the which he wrapped his skin
  • From the storm he travelled in,
  • For fear of rheumatism. _100
  • 6.
  • He called the ghost out of the corse;--
  • It was exceedingly like Peter,--
  • Only its voice was hollow and hoarse--
  • It had a queerish look of course--
  • Its dress too was a little neater. _105
  • 7.
  • The Devil knew not his name and lot;
  • Peter knew not that he was Bell:
  • Each had an upper stream of thought,
  • Which made all seem as it was not;
  • Fitting itself to all things well. _110
  • 8.
  • Peter thought he had parents dear,
  • Brothers, sisters, cousins, cronies,
  • In the fens of Lincolnshire;
  • He perhaps had found them there
  • Had he gone and boldly shown his _115
  • 9.
  • Solemn phiz in his own village;
  • Where he thought oft when a boy
  • He'd clomb the orchard walls to pillage
  • The produce of his neighbour's tillage,
  • With marvellous pride and joy. _120
  • 10.
  • And the Devil thought he had,
  • 'Mid the misery and confusion
  • Of an unjust war, just made
  • A fortune by the gainful trade
  • Of giving soldiers rations bad-- _125
  • The world is full of strange delusion--
  • 11.
  • That he had a mansion planned
  • In a square like Grosvenor Square,
  • That he was aping fashion, and
  • That he now came to Westmoreland _130
  • To see what was romantic there.
  • 12.
  • And all this, though quite ideal,--
  • Ready at a breath to vanish,--
  • Was a state not more unreal
  • Than the peace he could not feel, _135
  • Or the care he could not banish.
  • 13.
  • After a little conversation,
  • The Devil told Peter, if he chose,
  • He'd bring him to the world of fashion
  • By giving him a situation _140
  • In his own service--and new clothes.
  • 14.
  • And Peter bowed, quite pleased and proud,
  • And after waiting some few days
  • For a new livery--dirty yellow
  • Turned up with black--the wretched fellow _145
  • Was bowled to Hell in the Devil's chaise.
  • PART 3.
  • HELL.
  • 1.
  • Hell is a city much like London--
  • A populous and a smoky city;
  • There are all sorts of people undone,
  • And there is little or no fun done; _150
  • Small justice shown, and still less pity.
  • 2.
  • There is a Castles, and a Canning,
  • A Cobbett, and a Castlereagh;
  • All sorts of caitiff corpses planning
  • All sorts of cozening for trepanning _155
  • Corpses less corrupt than they.
  • 3.
  • There is a ***, who has lost
  • His wits, or sold them, none knows which;
  • He walks about a double ghost,
  • And though as thin as Fraud almost-- _160
  • Ever grows more grim and rich.
  • 4.
  • There is a Chancery Court; a King;
  • A manufacturing mob; a set
  • Of thieves who by themselves are sent
  • Similar thieves to represent; _165
  • An army; and a public debt.
  • 5.
  • Which last is a scheme of paper money,
  • And means--being interpreted--
  • 'Bees, keep your wax--give us the honey,
  • And we will plant, while skies are sunny, _170
  • Flowers, which in winter serve instead.'
  • 6.
  • There is a great talk of revolution--
  • And a great chance of despotism--
  • German soldiers--camps--confusion--
  • Tumults--lotteries--rage--delusion-- _175
  • Gin--suicide--and methodism;
  • 7.
  • Taxes too, on wine and bread,
  • And meat, and beer, and tea, and cheese,
  • From which those patriots pure are fed,
  • Who gorge before they reel to bed _180
  • The tenfold essence of all these.
  • 8.
  • There are mincing women, mewing,
  • (Like cats, who amant misere,)
  • Of their own virtue, and pursuing
  • Their gentler sisters to that ruin, _185
  • Without which--what were chastity?(2)
  • 9.
  • Lawyers--judges--old hobnobbers
  • Are there--bailiffs--chancellors--
  • Bishops--great and little robbers--
  • Rhymesters--pamphleteers--stock-jobbers-- _190
  • Men of glory in the wars,--
  • 10.
  • Things whose trade is, over ladies
  • To lean, and flirt, and stare, and simper,
  • Till all that is divine in woman
  • Grows cruel, courteous, smooth, inhuman, _195
  • Crucified 'twixt a smile and whimper.
  • 11.
  • Thrusting, toiling, wailing, moiling,
  • Frowning, preaching--such a riot!
  • Each with never-ceasing labour,
  • Whilst he thinks he cheats his neighbour, _200
  • Cheating his own heart of quiet.
  • 12.
  • And all these meet at levees;--
  • Dinners convivial and political;--
  • Suppers of epic poets;--teas,
  • Where small talk dies in agonies;-- _205
  • Breakfasts professional and critical;
  • 13.
  • Lunches and snacks so aldermanic
  • That one would furnish forth ten dinners,
  • Where reigns a Cretan-tongued panic,
  • Lest news Russ, Dutch, or Alemannic _210
  • Should make some losers, and some winners--
  • 45.
  • At conversazioni--balls--
  • Conventicles--and drawing-rooms--
  • Courts of law--committees--calls
  • Of a morning--clubs--book-stalls-- _215
  • Churches--masquerades--and tombs.
  • 15.
  • And this is Hell--and in this smother
  • All are damnable and damned;
  • Each one damning, damns the other;
  • They are damned by one another, _220
  • By none other are they damned.
  • 16.
  • 'Tis a lie to say, 'God damns'! (1)
  • Where was Heaven's Attorney General
  • When they first gave out such flams?
  • Let there be an end of shams, _225
  • They are mines of poisonous mineral.
  • 17.
  • Statesmen damn themselves to be
  • Cursed; and lawyers damn their souls
  • To the auction of a fee;
  • Churchmen damn themselves to see _230
  • God's sweet love in burning coals.
  • 18.
  • The rich are damned, beyond all cure,
  • To taunt, and starve, and trample on
  • The weak and wretched; and the poor
  • Damn their broken hearts to endure _235
  • Stripe on stripe, with groan on groan.
  • 19.
  • Sometimes the poor are damned indeed
  • To take,--not means for being blessed,--
  • But Cobbett's snuff, revenge; that weed
  • From which the worms that it doth feed _240
  • Squeeze less than they before possessed.
  • 20.
  • And some few, like we know who,
  • Damned--but God alone knows why--
  • To believe their minds are given
  • To make this ugly Hell a Heaven; _245
  • In which faith they live and die.
  • 21.
  • Thus, as in a town, plague-stricken,
  • Each man be he sound or no
  • Must indifferently sicken;
  • As when day begins to thicken, _250
  • None knows a pigeon from a crow,--
  • 22.
  • So good and bad, sane and mad,
  • The oppressor and the oppressed;
  • Those who weep to see what others
  • Smile to inflict upon their brothers; _255
  • Lovers, haters, worst and best;
  • 23.
  • All are damned--they breathe an air,
  • Thick, infected, joy-dispelling:
  • Each pursues what seems most fair,
  • Mining like moles, through mind, and there _260
  • Scoop palace-caverns vast, where Care
  • In throned state is ever dwelling.
  • PART 4.
  • SIN.
  • 1.
  • Lo. Peter in Hell's Grosvenor Square,
  • A footman in the Devil's service!
  • And the misjudging world would swear _265
  • That every man in service there
  • To virtue would prefer vice.
  • 2.
  • But Peter, though now damned, was not
  • What Peter was before damnation.
  • Men oftentimes prepare a lot _270
  • Which ere it finds them, is not what
  • Suits with their genuine station.
  • 3.
  • All things that Peter saw and felt
  • Had a peculiar aspect to him;
  • And when they came within the belt _275
  • Of his own nature, seemed to melt,
  • Like cloud to cloud, into him.
  • 4.
  • And so the outward world uniting
  • To that within him, he became
  • Considerably uninviting _280
  • To those who, meditation slighting,
  • Were moulded in a different frame.
  • 5.
  • And he scorned them, and they scorned him;
  • And he scorned all they did; and they
  • Did all that men of their own trim _285
  • Are wont to do to please their whim,
  • Drinking, lying, swearing, play.
  • 6.
  • Such were his fellow-servants; thus
  • His virtue, like our own, was built
  • Too much on that indignant fuss _290
  • Hypocrite Pride stirs up in us
  • To bully one another's guilt.
  • 7.
  • He had a mind which was somehow
  • At once circumference and centre
  • Of all he might or feel or know; _295
  • Nothing went ever out, although
  • Something did ever enter.
  • 8.
  • He had as much imagination
  • As a pint-pot;--he never could
  • Fancy another situation, _300
  • From which to dart his contemplation,
  • Than that wherein he stood.
  • 9.
  • Yet his was individual mind,
  • And new created all he saw
  • In a new manner, and refined _305
  • Those new creations, and combined
  • Them, by a master-spirit's law.
  • 10.
  • Thus--though unimaginative--
  • An apprehension clear, intense,
  • Of his mind's work, had made alive _310
  • The things it wrought on; I believe
  • Wakening a sort of thought in sense.
  • 11.
  • But from the first 'twas Peter's drift
  • To be a kind of moral eunuch,
  • He touched the hem of Nature's shift, _315
  • Felt faint--and never dared uplift
  • The closest, all-concealing tunic.
  • 12.
  • She laughed the while, with an arch smile,
  • And kissed him with a sister's kiss,
  • And said--My best Diogenes, _320
  • I love you well--but, if you please,
  • Tempt not again my deepest bliss.
  • 13.
  • ''Tis you are cold--for I, not coy,
  • Yield love for love, frank, warm, and true;
  • And Burns, a Scottish peasant boy-- _325
  • His errors prove it--knew my joy
  • More, learned friend, than you.
  • 14.
  • 'Boeca bacciata non perde ventura,
  • Anzi rinnuova come fa la luna:--
  • So thought Boccaccio, whose sweet words might cure a _330
  • Male prude, like you, from what you now endure, a
  • Low-tide in soul, like a stagnant laguna.
  • 15.
  • Then Peter rubbed his eyes severe.
  • And smoothed his spacious forehead down
  • With his broad palm;--'twixt love and fear, _335
  • He looked, as he no doubt felt, queer,
  • And in his dream sate down.
  • 16.
  • The Devil was no uncommon creature;
  • A leaden-witted thief--just huddled
  • Out of the dross and scum of nature; _340
  • A toad-like lump of limb and feature,
  • With mind, and heart, and fancy muddled.
  • 17.
  • He was that heavy, dull, cold thing,
  • The spirit of evil well may be:
  • A drone too base to have a sting; _345
  • Who gluts, and grimes his lazy wing,
  • And calls lust, luxury.
  • 18.
  • Now he was quite the kind of wight
  • Round whom collect, at a fixed aera,
  • Venison, turtle, hock, and claret,-- _350
  • Good cheer--and those who come to share it--
  • And best East Indian madeira!
  • 19.
  • It was his fancy to invite
  • Men of science, wit, and learning,
  • Who came to lend each other light; _355
  • He proudly thought that his gold's might
  • Had set those spirits burning.
  • 20.
  • And men of learning, science, wit,
  • Considered him as you and I
  • Think of some rotten tree, and sit _360
  • Lounging and dining under it,
  • Exposed to the wide sky.
  • 21.
  • And all the while with loose fat smile,
  • The willing wretch sat winking there,
  • Believing 'twas his power that made _365
  • That jovial scene--and that all paid
  • Homage to his unnoticed chair.
  • 22.
  • Though to be sure this place was Hell;
  • He was the Devil--and all they--
  • What though the claret circled well, _370
  • And wit, like ocean, rose and fell?--
  • Were damned eternally.
  • PART 5.
  • GRACE.
  • 1.
  • Among the guests who often stayed
  • Till the Devil's petits-soupers,
  • A man there came, fair as a maid, _375
  • And Peter noted what he said,
  • Standing behind his master's chair.
  • 2.
  • He was a mighty poet--and
  • A subtle-souled psychologist;
  • All things he seemed to understand, _380
  • Of old or new--of sea or land--
  • But his own mind--which was a mist.
  • 3.
  • This was a man who might have turned
  • Hell into Heaven--and so in gladness
  • A Heaven unto himself have earned; _385
  • But he in shadows undiscerned
  • Trusted.--and damned himself to madness.
  • 4.
  • He spoke of poetry, and how
  • 'Divine it was--a light--a love--
  • A spirit which like wind doth blow _390
  • As it listeth, to and fro;
  • A dew rained down from God above;
  • 5.
  • 'A power which comes and goes like dream,
  • And which none can ever trace--
  • Heaven's light on earth--Truth's brightest beam.' _395
  • And when he ceased there lay the gleam
  • Of those words upon his face.
  • 6.
  • Now Peter, when he heard such talk,
  • Would, heedless of a broken pate,
  • Stand like a man asleep, or balk _400
  • Some wishing guest of knife or fork,
  • Or drop and break his master's plate.
  • 7.
  • At night he oft would start and wake
  • Like a lover, and began
  • In a wild measure songs to make _405
  • On moor, and glen, and rocky lake,
  • And on the heart of man--
  • 8.
  • And on the universal sky--
  • And the wide earth's bosom green,--
  • And the sweet, strange mystery _410
  • Of what beyond these things may lie,
  • And yet remain unseen.
  • 9.
  • For in his thought he visited
  • The spots in which, ere dead and damned,
  • He his wayward life had led; _415
  • Yet knew not whence the thoughts were fed
  • Which thus his fancy crammed.
  • 10.
  • And these obscure remembrances
  • Stirred such harmony in Peter,
  • That, whensoever he should please, _420
  • He could speak of rocks and trees
  • In poetic metre.
  • 11.
  • For though it was without a sense
  • Of memory, yet he remembered well
  • Many a ditch and quick-set fence; _425
  • Of lakes he had intelligence,
  • He knew something of heath and fell.
  • 12.
  • He had also dim recollections
  • Of pedlars tramping on their rounds;
  • Milk-pans and pails; and odd collections _430
  • Of saws, and proverbs; and reflections
  • Old parsons make in burying-grounds.
  • 13.
  • But Peter's verse was clear, and came
  • Announcing from the frozen hearth
  • Of a cold age, that none might tame _435
  • The soul of that diviner flame
  • It augured to the Earth:
  • 14.
  • Like gentle rains, on the dry plains,
  • Making that green which late was gray,
  • Or like the sudden moon, that stains _440
  • Some gloomy chamber's window-panes
  • With a broad light like day.
  • 15.
  • For language was in Peter's hand
  • Like clay while he was yet a potter;
  • And he made songs for all the land, _445
  • Sweet both to feel and understand,
  • As pipkins late to mountain Cotter.
  • 16.
  • And Mr. --, the bookseller,
  • Gave twenty pounds for some;--then scorning
  • A footman's yellow coat to wear, _450
  • Peter, too proud of heart, I fear,
  • Instantly gave the Devil warning.
  • 17.
  • Whereat the Devil took offence,
  • And swore in his soul a great oath then,
  • 'That for his damned impertinence _455
  • He'd bring him to a proper sense
  • Of what was due to gentlemen!'
  • PART 6.
  • DAMNATION.
  • 1.
  • 'O that mine enemy had written
  • A book!'--cried Job:--a fearful curse,
  • If to the Arab, as the Briton, _460
  • 'Twas galling to be critic-bitten:--
  • The Devil to Peter wished no worse.
  • 2.
  • When Peter's next new book found vent,
  • The Devil to all the first Reviews
  • A copy of it slyly sent, _465
  • With five-pound note as compliment,
  • And this short notice--'Pray abuse.'
  • 3.
  • Then seriatim, month and quarter,
  • Appeared such mad tirades.--One said--
  • 'Peter seduced Mrs. Foy's daughter, _470
  • Then drowned the mother in Ullswater,
  • The last thing as he went to bed.'
  • 4.
  • Another--'Let him shave his head!
  • Where's Dr. Willis?--Or is he joking?
  • What does the rascal mean or hope, _475
  • No longer imitating Pope,
  • In that barbarian Shakespeare poking?'
  • 5.
  • One more, 'Is incest not enough?
  • And must there be adultery too?
  • Grace after meat? Miscreant and Liar! _480
  • Thief! Blackguard! Scoundrel! Fool! hell-fire
  • Is twenty times too good for you.
  • 6.
  • 'By that last book of yours WE think
  • You've double damned yourself to scorn;
  • We warned you whilst yet on the brink _485
  • You stood. From your black name will shrink
  • The babe that is unborn.'
  • 7.
  • All these Reviews the Devil made
  • Up in a parcel, which he had
  • Safely to Peter's house conveyed. _490
  • For carriage, tenpence Peter paid--
  • Untied them--read them--went half mad.
  • 8.
  • 'What!' cried he, 'this is my reward
  • For nights of thought, and days, of toil?
  • Do poets, but to be abhorred _495
  • By men of whom they never heard,
  • Consume their spirits' oil?
  • 9.
  • 'What have I done to them?--and who
  • IS Mrs. Foy? 'Tis very cruel
  • To speak of me and Betty so! _500
  • Adultery! God defend me! Oh!
  • I've half a mind to fight a duel.
  • 10.
  • 'Or,' cried he, a grave look collecting,
  • 'Is it my genius, like the moon,
  • Sets those who stand her face inspecting, _505
  • That face within their brain reflecting,
  • Like a crazed bell-chime, out of tune?'
  • 11.
  • For Peter did not know the town,
  • But thought, as country readers do,
  • For half a guinea or a crown, _510
  • He bought oblivion or renown
  • From God's own voice (1) in a review.
  • 12.
  • All Peter did on this occasion
  • Was, writing some sad stuff in prose.
  • It is a dangerous invasion _515
  • When poets criticize; their station
  • Is to delight, not pose.
  • 13.
  • The Devil then sent to Leipsic fair
  • For Born's translation of Kant's book;
  • A world of words, tail foremost, where _520
  • Right--wrong--false--true--and foul--and fair
  • As in a lottery-wheel are shook.
  • 14.
  • Five thousand crammed octavo pages
  • Of German psychologics,--he
  • Who his furor verborum assuages _525
  • Thereon, deserves just seven months' wages
  • More than will e'er be due to me.
  • 15.
  • I looked on them nine several days,
  • And then I saw that they were bad;
  • A friend, too, spoke in their dispraise,-- _530
  • He never read them;--with amaze
  • I found Sir William Drummond had.
  • 16.
  • When the book came, the Devil sent
  • It to P. Verbovale (2), Esquire,
  • With a brief note of compliment, _535
  • By that night's Carlisle mail. It went,
  • And set his soul on fire.
  • 17.
  • Fire, which ex luce praebens fumum,
  • Made him beyond the bottom see
  • Of truth's clear well--when I and you, Ma'am, _540
  • Go, as we shall do, subter humum,
  • We may know more than he.
  • 18.
  • Now Peter ran to seed in soul
  • Into a walking paradox;
  • For he was neither part nor whole, _545
  • Nor good, nor bad--nor knave nor fool;
  • --Among the woods and rocks
  • 19.
  • Furious he rode, where late he ran,
  • Lashing and spurring his tame hobby;
  • Turned to a formal puritan, _550
  • A solemn and unsexual man,--
  • He half believed "White Obi".
  • 20.
  • This steed in vision he would ride,
  • High trotting over nine-inch bridges,
  • With Flibbertigibbet, imp of pride, _555
  • Mocking and mowing by his side--
  • A mad-brained goblin for a guide--
  • Over corn-fields, gates, and hedges.
  • 21.
  • After these ghastly rides, he came
  • Home to his heart, and found from thence _560
  • Much stolen of its accustomed flame;
  • His thoughts grew weak, drowsy, and lame
  • Of their intelligence.
  • 22.
  • To Peter's view, all seemed one hue;
  • He was no Whig, he was no Tory; _565
  • No Deist and no Christian he;--
  • He got so subtle, that to be
  • Nothing, was all his glory.
  • 23.
  • One single point in his belief
  • From his organization sprung, _570
  • The heart-enrooted faith, the chief
  • Ear in his doctrines' blighted sheaf,
  • That 'Happiness is wrong';
  • 24.
  • So thought Calvin and Dominic;
  • So think their fierce successors, who _575
  • Even now would neither stint nor stick
  • Our flesh from off our bones to pick,
  • If they might 'do their do.'
  • 25.
  • His morals thus were undermined:--
  • The old Peter--the hard, old Potter-- _580
  • Was born anew within his mind;
  • He grew dull, harsh, sly, unrefined,
  • As when he tramped beside the Otter. (1)
  • 26.
  • In the death hues of agony
  • Lambently flashing from a fish, _585
  • Now Peter felt amused to see
  • Shades like a rainbow's rise and flee,
  • Mixed with a certain hungry wish(2).
  • 27.
  • So in his Country's dying face
  • He looked--and, lovely as she lay, _590
  • Seeking in vain his last embrace,
  • Wailing her own abandoned case,
  • With hardened sneer he turned away:
  • 28.
  • And coolly to his own soul said;--
  • 'Do you not think that we might make _595
  • A poem on her when she's dead:--
  • Or, no--a thought is in my head--
  • Her shroud for a new sheet I'll take:
  • 29.
  • 'My wife wants one.--Let who will bury
  • This mangled corpse! And I and you, _600
  • My dearest Soul, will then make merry,
  • As the Prince Regent did with Sherry,--'
  • 'Ay--and at last desert me too.'
  • 30.
  • And so his Soul would not be gay,
  • But moaned within him; like a fawn _605
  • Moaning within a cave, it lay
  • Wounded and wasting, day by day,
  • Till all its life of life was gone.
  • 31.
  • As troubled skies stain waters clear,
  • The storm in Peter's heart and mind _610
  • Now made his verses dark and queer:
  • They were the ghosts of what they were,
  • Shaking dim grave-clothes in the wind.
  • 32.
  • For he now raved enormous folly,
  • Of Baptisms, Sunday-schools, and Graves, _615
  • 'Twould make George Colman melancholy
  • To have heard him, like a male Molly,
  • Chanting those stupid staves.
  • 33.
  • Yet the Reviews, who heaped abuse
  • On Peter while he wrote for freedom, _620
  • So soon as in his song they spy
  • The folly which soothes tyranny,
  • Praise him, for those who feed 'em.
  • 34.
  • 'He was a man, too great to scan;--
  • A planet lost in truth's keen rays:-- _625
  • His virtue, awful and prodigious;--
  • He was the most sublime, religious,
  • Pure-minded Poet of these days.'
  • 35.
  • As soon as he read that, cried Peter,
  • 'Eureka! I have found the way _630
  • To make a better thing of metre
  • Than e'er was made by living creature
  • Up to this blessed day.'
  • 36.
  • Then Peter wrote odes to the Devil;--
  • In one of which he meekly said: _635
  • 'May Carnage and Slaughter,
  • Thy niece and thy daughter,
  • May Rapine and Famine,
  • Thy gorge ever cramming,
  • Glut thee with living and dead! _640
  • 37.
  • 'May Death and Damnation,
  • And Consternation,
  • Flit up from Hell with pure intent!
  • Slash them at Manchester,
  • Glasgow, Leeds, and Chester; _645
  • Drench all with blood from Avon to Trent.
  • 38.
  • 'Let thy body-guard yeomen
  • Hew down babes and women,
  • And laugh with bold triumph till Heaven be rent!
  • When Moloch in Jewry _650
  • Munched children with fury,
  • It was thou, Devil, dining with pure intent. (1)
  • PART 7.
  • DOUBLE DAMNATION.
  • 1.
  • The Devil now knew his proper cue.--
  • Soon as he read the ode, he drove
  • To his friend Lord MacMurderchouse's, _655
  • A man of interest in both houses,
  • And said:--'For money or for love,
  • 2.
  • 'Pray find some cure or sinecure;
  • To feed from the superfluous taxes
  • A friend of ours--a poet--fewer _660
  • Have fluttered tamer to the lure
  • Than he.' His lordship stands and racks his
  • 3.
  • Stupid brains, while one might count
  • As many beads as he had boroughs,--
  • At length replies; from his mean front, _665
  • Like one who rubs out an account,
  • Smoothing away the unmeaning furrows:
  • 4.
  • 'It happens fortunately, dear Sir,
  • I can. I hope I need require
  • No pledge from you, that he will stir _670
  • In our affairs;--like Oliver.
  • That he'll be worthy of his hire.'
  • 5.
  • These words exchanged, the news sent off
  • To Peter, home the Devil hied,--
  • Took to his bed; he had no cough, _675
  • No doctor,--meat and drink enough.--
  • Yet that same night he died.
  • 6.
  • The Devil's corpse was leaded down;
  • His decent heirs enjoyed his pelf,
  • Mourning-coaches, many a one, _680
  • Followed his hearse along the town:--
  • Where was the Devil himself?
  • 7.
  • When Peter heard of his promotion,
  • His eyes grew like two stars for bliss:
  • There was a bow of sleek devotion _685
  • Engendering in his back; each motion
  • Seemed a Lord's shoe to kiss.
  • 8.
  • He hired a house, bought plate, and made
  • A genteel drive up to his door,
  • With sifted gravel neatly laid,-- _690
  • As if defying all who said,
  • Peter was ever poor.
  • 9.
  • But a disease soon struck into
  • The very life and soul of Peter--
  • He walked about--slept--had the hue _695
  • Of health upon his cheeks--and few
  • Dug better--none a heartier eater.
  • 10.
  • And yet a strange and horrid curse
  • Clung upon Peter, night and day;
  • Month after month the thing grew worse, _700
  • And deadlier than in this my verse
  • I can find strength to say.
  • 11.
  • Peter was dull--he was at first
  • Dull--oh, so dull--so very dull!
  • Whether he talked, wrote, or rehearsed-- _705
  • Still with this dulness was he cursed--
  • Dull--beyond all conception--dull.
  • 12.
  • No one could read his books--no mortal,
  • But a few natural friends, would hear him;
  • The parson came not near his portal; _710
  • His state was like that of the immortal
  • Described by Swift--no man could bear him.
  • 13.
  • His sister, wife, and children yawned,
  • With a long, slow, and drear ennui,
  • All human patience far beyond; _715
  • Their hopes of Heaven each would have pawned,
  • Anywhere else to be.
  • 14.
  • But in his verse, and in his prose,
  • The essence of his dulness was
  • Concentred and compressed so close, _720
  • 'Twould have made Guatimozin doze
  • On his red gridiron of brass.
  • 15.
  • A printer's boy, folding those pages,
  • Fell slumbrously upon one side;
  • Like those famed Seven who slept three ages. _725
  • To wakeful frenzy's vigil--rages,
  • As opiates, were the same applied.
  • 16.
  • Even the Reviewers who were hired
  • To do the work of his reviewing,
  • With adamantine nerves, grew tired;-- _730
  • Gaping and torpid they retired,
  • To dream of what they should be doing.
  • 17.
  • And worse and worse, the drowsy curse
  • Yawned in him, till it grew a pest--
  • A wide contagious atmosphere, _735
  • Creeping like cold through all things near;
  • A power to infect and to infest.
  • 18.
  • His servant-maids and dogs grew dull;
  • His kitten, late a sportive elf;
  • The woods and lakes, so beautiful, _740
  • Of dim stupidity were full.
  • All grew dull as Peter's self.
  • 19.
  • The earth under his feet--the springs,
  • Which lived within it a quick life,
  • The air, the winds of many wings, _745
  • That fan it with new murmurings,
  • Were dead to their harmonious strife.
  • 20.
  • The birds and beasts within the wood,
  • The insects, and each creeping thing,
  • Were now a silent multitude; _750
  • Love's work was left unwrought--no brood
  • Near Peter's house took wing.
  • 21.
  • And every neighbouring cottager
  • Stupidly yawned upon the other:
  • No jackass brayed; no little cur _755
  • Cocked up his ears;--no man would stir
  • To save a dying mother.
  • 22.
  • Yet all from that charmed district went
  • But some half-idiot and half-knave,
  • Who rather than pay any rent, _760
  • Would live with marvellous content,
  • Over his father's grave.
  • 23.
  • No bailiff dared within that space,
  • For fear of the dull charm, to enter;
  • A man would bear upon his face, _765
  • For fifteen months in any case,
  • The yawn of such a venture.
  • 24.
  • Seven miles above--below--around--
  • This pest of dulness holds its sway;
  • A ghastly life without a sound; _770
  • To Peter's soul the spell is bound--
  • How should it ever pass away?
  • NOTES:
  • (_8 To those who have not duly appreciated the distinction between
  • Whale and Russia oil, this attribute might rather seem to belong to
  • the Dandy than the Evangelic. The effect, when to the windward, is
  • indeed so similar, that it requires a subtle naturalist to
  • discriminate the animals. They belong, however, to distinct
  • genera.--[SHELLEY's NOTE.)
  • (_183 One of the attributes in Linnaeus's description of the Cat. To a
  • similar cause the caterwauling of more than one species of this genus
  • is to be referred;--except, indeed, that the poor quadruped is
  • compelled to quarrel with its own pleasures, whilst the biped is
  • supposed only to quarrel with those of others.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • (_186 What would this husk and excuse for a virtue be without its
  • kernel prostitution, or the kernel prostitution without this husk of a
  • virtue? I wonder the women of the town do not form an association,
  • like the Society for the Suppression of Vice, for the support of what
  • may be called the 'King, Church, and Constitution' of their order. But
  • this subject is almost too horrible for a joke.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • (_222 This libel on our national oath, and this accusation of all our
  • countrymen of being in the daily practice of solemnly asseverating the
  • most enormous falsehood, I fear deserves the notice of a more active
  • Attorney General than that here alluded to.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • _292 one Fleay cj., Rossetti, Forman, Dowden, Woodberry;
  • out 1839, 2nd edition.
  • _500 Betty]Emma 1839, 2nd edition. See letter from Shelley to Ollier,
  • May 14, 1820 (Shelley Memorials, page 139).
  • (_512 Vox populi, vox dei. As Mr. Godwin truly observes of a more
  • famous saying, of some merit as a popular maxim, but totally destitute
  • of philosophical accuracy.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • (_534 Quasi, Qui valet verba:--i.e. all the words which have been,
  • are, or may be expended by, for, against, with, or on him. A
  • sufficient proof of the utility of this history. Peter's progenitor
  • who selected this name seems to have possessed A PURE ANTICIPATED
  • COGNITION of the nature and modesty of this ornament of his
  • posterity.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • _602-3 See Editor's Note.
  • (_583 A famous river in the new Atlantis of the Dynastophylic
  • Pantisocratists.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • (_588 See the description of the beautiful colours produced during the
  • agonizing death of a number of trout, in the fourth part of a long
  • poem in blank verse, published within a few years. ["The Excursion", 8
  • 2 568-71.--Ed.] That poem contains curious evidence of the gradual
  • hardening of a strong but circumscribed sensibility, of the perversion
  • of a penetrating but panic-stricken understanding. The author might
  • have derived a lesson which he had probably forgotten from these sweet
  • and sublime verses:--
  • 'This lesson, Shepherd, let us two divide,
  • Taught both by what she (Nature) shows and what conceals,
  • Never to blend our pleasure or our pride
  • With sorrow of the meanest thing that feels.'--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • (_652 It is curious to observe how often extremes meet. Cobbett and
  • Peter use the same language for a different purpose: Peter is indeed a
  • sort of metrical Cobbett. Cobbett is, however, more mischievous than
  • Peter, because he pollutes a holy and how unconquerable cause with the
  • principles of legitimate murder; whilst the other only makes a bad one
  • ridiculous and odious.
  • If either Peter or Cobbett should see this note, each will feel more
  • indignation at being compared to the other than at any censure implied
  • in the moral perversion laid to their charge.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • NOTE ON PETER BELL THE THIRD, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • In this new edition I have added "Peter Bell the Third". A critique on
  • Wordsworth's "Peter Bell" reached us at Leghorn, which amused Shelley
  • exceedingly, and suggested this poem.
  • I need scarcely observe that nothing personal to the author of "Peter
  • Bell" is intended in this poem. No man ever admired Wordsworth's
  • poetry more;--he read it perpetually, and taught others to appreciate
  • its beauties. This poem is, like all others written by Shelley, ideal.
  • He conceived the idealism of a poet--a man of lofty and creative
  • genius--quitting the glorious calling of discovering and announcing
  • the beautiful and good, to support and propagate ignorant prejudices
  • and pernicious errors; imparting to the unenlightened, not that ardour
  • for truth and spirit of toleration which Shelley looked on as the
  • sources of the moral improvement and happiness of mankind, but false
  • and injurious opinions, that evil was good, and that ignorance and
  • force were the best allies of purity and virtue. His idea was that a
  • man gifted, even as transcendently as the author of "Peter Bell", with
  • the highest qualities of genius, must, if he fostered such errors, be
  • infected with dulness. This poem was written as a warning--not as a
  • narration of the reality. He was unacquainted personally with
  • Wordsworth, or with Coleridge (to whom he alludes in the fifth part of
  • the poem), and therefore, I repeat, his poem is purely ideal;--it
  • contains something of criticism on the compositions of those great
  • poets, but nothing injurious to the men themselves.
  • No poem contains more of Shelley's peculiar views with regard to the
  • errors into which many of the wisest have fallen, and the pernicious
  • effects of certain opinions on society. Much of it is beautifully
  • written: and, though, like the burlesque drama of "Swellfoot", it must
  • be looked on as a plaything, it has so much merit and poetry--so much
  • of HIMSELF in it--that it cannot fail to interest greatly, and by
  • right belongs to the world for whose instruction and benefit it was
  • written.
  • ***
  • LETTER TO MARIA GISBORNE.
  • [Composed during Shelley's occupation of the Gisbornes' house at
  • Leghorn, July, 1820; published in "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Sources of
  • the text are (1) a draft in Shelley's hand, 'partly illegible'
  • (Forman), amongst the Boscombe manuscripts; (2) a transcript by Mrs.
  • Shelley; (3) the editio princeps, 1824; the text in "Poetical Works",
  • 1839, let and 2nd editions. Our text is that of Mrs. Shelley's
  • transcript, modified by the Boscombe manuscript. Here, as elsewhere in
  • this edition, the readings of the editio princeps are preserved in the
  • footnotes.]
  • LEGHORN, July 1, 1820.]
  • The spider spreads her webs, whether she be
  • In poet's tower, cellar, or barn, or tree;
  • The silk-worm in the dark green mulberry leaves
  • His winding sheet and cradle ever weaves;
  • So I, a thing whom moralists call worm, _5
  • Sit spinning still round this decaying form,
  • From the fine threads of rare and subtle thought--
  • No net of words in garish colours wrought
  • To catch the idle buzzers of the day--
  • But a soft cell, where when that fades away, _10
  • Memory may clothe in wings my living name
  • And feed it with the asphodels of fame,
  • Which in those hearts which must remember me
  • Grow, making love an immortality.
  • Whoever should behold me now, I wist, _15
  • Would think I were a mighty mechanist,
  • Bent with sublime Archimedean art
  • To breathe a soul into the iron heart
  • Of some machine portentous, or strange gin,
  • Which by the force of figured spells might win _20
  • Its way over the sea, and sport therein;
  • For round the walls are hung dread engines, such
  • As Vulcan never wrought for Jove to clutch
  • Ixion or the Titan:--or the quick
  • Wit of that man of God, St. Dominic, _25
  • To convince Atheist, Turk, or Heretic,
  • Or those in philanthropic council met,
  • Who thought to pay some interest for the debt
  • They owed to Jesus Christ for their salvation,
  • By giving a faint foretaste of damnation _30
  • To Shakespeare, Sidney, Spenser, and the rest
  • Who made our land an island of the blest,
  • When lamp-like Spain, who now relumes her fire
  • On Freedom's hearth, grew dim with Empire:--
  • With thumbscrews, wheels, with tooth and spike and jag, _35
  • Which fishers found under the utmost crag
  • Of Cornwall and the storm-encompassed isles,
  • Where to the sky the rude sea rarely smiles
  • Unless in treacherous wrath, as on the morn
  • When the exulting elements in scorn, _40
  • Satiated with destroyed destruction, lay
  • Sleeping in beauty on their mangled prey,
  • As panthers sleep;--and other strange and dread
  • Magical forms the brick floor overspread,--
  • Proteus transformed to metal did not make _45
  • More figures, or more strange; nor did he take
  • Such shapes of unintelligible brass,
  • Or heap himself in such a horrid mass
  • Of tin and iron not to be understood;
  • And forms of unimaginable wood, _50
  • To puzzle Tubal Cain and all his brood:
  • Great screws, and cones, and wheels, and grooved blocks,
  • The elements of what will stand the shocks
  • Of wave and wind and time.--Upon the table
  • More knacks and quips there be than I am able _55
  • To catalogize in this verse of mine:--
  • A pretty bowl of wood--not full of wine,
  • But quicksilver; that dew which the gnomes drink
  • When at their subterranean toil they swink,
  • Pledging the demons of the earthquake, who _60
  • Reply to them in lava--cry halloo!
  • And call out to the cities o'er their head,--
  • Roofs, towers, and shrines, the dying and the dead,
  • Crash through the chinks of earth--and then all quaff
  • Another rouse, and hold their sides and laugh. _65
  • This quicksilver no gnome has drunk--within
  • The walnut bowl it lies, veined and thin,
  • In colour like the wake of light that stains
  • The Tuscan deep, when from the moist moon rains
  • The inmost shower of its white fire--the breeze _70
  • Is still--blue Heaven smiles over the pale seas.
  • And in this bowl of quicksilver--for I
  • Yield to the impulse of an infancy
  • Outlasting manhood--I have made to float
  • A rude idealism of a paper boat:-- _75
  • A hollow screw with cogs--Henry will know
  • The thing I mean and laugh at me,--if so
  • He fears not I should do more mischief.--Next
  • Lie bills and calculations much perplexed,
  • With steam-boats, frigates, and machinery quaint _80
  • Traced over them in blue and yellow paint.
  • Then comes a range of mathematical
  • Instruments, for plans nautical and statical,
  • A heap of rosin, a queer broken glass
  • With ink in it;--a china cup that was _85
  • What it will never be again, I think,--
  • A thing from which sweet lips were wont to drink
  • The liquor doctors rail at--and which I
  • Will quaff in spite of them--and when we die
  • We'll toss up who died first of drinking tea, _90
  • And cry out,--'Heads or tails?' where'er we be.
  • Near that a dusty paint-box, some odd hooks,
  • A half-burnt match, an ivory block, three books,
  • Where conic sections, spherics, logarithms,
  • To great Laplace, from Saunderson and Sims, _95
  • Lie heaped in their harmonious disarray
  • Of figures,--disentangle them who may.
  • Baron de Tott's Memoirs beside them lie,
  • And some odd volumes of old chemistry.
  • Near those a most inexplicable thing, _100
  • With lead in the middle--I'm conjecturing
  • How to make Henry understand; but no--
  • I'll leave, as Spenser says, with many mo,
  • This secret in the pregnant womb of time,
  • Too vast a matter for so weak a rhyme. _105
  • And here like some weird Archimage sit I,
  • Plotting dark spells, and devilish enginery,
  • The self-impelling steam-wheels of the mind
  • Which pump up oaths from clergymen, and grind
  • The gentle spirit of our meek reviews _110
  • Into a powdery foam of salt abuse,
  • Ruffling the ocean of their self-content;--
  • I sit--and smile or sigh as is my bent,
  • But not for them--Libeccio rushes round
  • With an inconstant and an idle sound, _115
  • I heed him more than them--the thunder-smoke
  • Is gathering on the mountains, like a cloak
  • Folded athwart their shoulders broad and bare;
  • The ripe corn under the undulating air
  • Undulates like an ocean;--and the vines _120
  • Are trembling wide in all their trellised lines--
  • The murmur of the awakening sea doth fill
  • The empty pauses of the blast;--the hill
  • Looks hoary through the white electric rain,
  • And from the glens beyond, in sullen strain, _125
  • The interrupted thunder howls; above
  • One chasm of Heaven smiles, like the eye of Love
  • On the unquiet world;--while such things are,
  • How could one worth your friendship heed the war
  • Of worms? the shriek of the world's carrion jays, _130
  • Their censure, or their wonder, or their praise?
  • You are not here! the quaint witch Memory sees,
  • In vacant chairs, your absent images,
  • And points where once you sat, and now should be
  • But are not.--I demand if ever we _135
  • Shall meet as then we met;--and she replies.
  • Veiling in awe her second-sighted eyes;
  • 'I know the past alone--but summon home
  • My sister Hope,--she speaks of all to come.'
  • But I, an old diviner, who knew well _140
  • Every false verse of that sweet oracle,
  • Turned to the sad enchantress once again,
  • And sought a respite from my gentle pain,
  • In citing every passage o'er and o'er
  • Of our communion--how on the sea-shore _145
  • We watched the ocean and the sky together,
  • Under the roof of blue Italian weather;
  • How I ran home through last year's thunder-storm,
  • And felt the transverse lightning linger warm
  • Upon my cheek--and how we often made _150
  • Feasts for each other, where good will outweighed
  • The frugal luxury of our country cheer,
  • As well it might, were it less firm and clear
  • Than ours must ever be;--and how we spun
  • A shroud of talk to hide us from the sun _155
  • Of this familiar life, which seems to be
  • But is not:--or is but quaint mockery
  • Of all we would believe, and sadly blame
  • The jarring and inexplicable frame
  • Of this wrong world:--and then anatomize _160
  • The purposes and thoughts of men whose eyes
  • Were closed in distant years;--or widely guess
  • The issue of the earth's great business,
  • When we shall be as we no longer are--
  • Like babbling gossips safe, who hear the war _165
  • Of winds, and sigh, but tremble not;--or how
  • You listened to some interrupted flow
  • Of visionary rhyme,--in joy and pain
  • Struck from the inmost fountains of my brain,
  • With little skill perhaps;--or how we sought _170
  • Those deepest wells of passion or of thought
  • Wrought by wise poets in the waste of years,
  • Staining their sacred waters with our tears;
  • Quenching a thirst ever to be renewed!
  • Or how I, wisest lady! then endued _175
  • The language of a land which now is free,
  • And, winged with thoughts of truth and majesty,
  • Flits round the tyrant's sceptre like a cloud,
  • And bursts the peopled prisons, and cries aloud,
  • 'My name is Legion!'--that majestic tongue _180
  • Which Calderon over the desert flung
  • Of ages and of nations; and which found
  • An echo in our hearts, and with the sound
  • Startled oblivion;--thou wert then to me
  • As is a nurse--when inarticulately _185
  • A child would talk as its grown parents do.
  • If living winds the rapid clouds pursue,
  • If hawks chase doves through the aethereal way,
  • Huntsmen the innocent deer, and beasts their prey,
  • Why should not we rouse with the spirit's blast _190
  • Out of the forest of the pathless past
  • These recollected pleasures?
  • You are now
  • In London, that great sea, whose ebb and flow
  • At once is deaf and loud, and on the shore
  • Vomits its wrecks, and still howls on for more. _195
  • Yet in its depth what treasures! You will see
  • That which was Godwin,--greater none than he
  • Though fallen--and fallen on evil times--to stand
  • Among the spirits of our age and land,
  • Before the dread tribunal of "to come" _200
  • The foremost,--while Rebuke cowers pale and dumb.
  • You will see Coleridge--he who sits obscure
  • In the exceeding lustre and the pure
  • Intense irradiation of a mind,
  • Which, with its own internal lightning blind, _200
  • Flags wearily through darkness and despair--
  • A cloud-encircled meteor of the air,
  • A hooded eagle among blinking owls.--
  • You will see Hunt--one of those happy souls
  • Which are the salt of the earth, and without whom _210
  • This world would smell like what it is--a tomb;
  • Who is, what others seem; his room no doubt
  • Is still adorned with many a cast from Shout,
  • With graceful flowers tastefully placed about;
  • And coronals of bay from ribbons hung, _215
  • And brighter wreaths in neat disorder flung;
  • The gifts of the most learned among some dozens
  • Of female friends, sisters-in-law, and cousins.
  • And there is he with his eternal puns,
  • Which beat the dullest brain for smiles, like duns _220
  • Thundering for money at a poet's door;
  • Alas! it is no use to say, 'I'm poor!'
  • Or oft in graver mood, when he will look
  • Things wiser than were ever read in book,
  • Except in Shakespeare's wisest tenderness.-- _225
  • You will see Hogg,--and I cannot express
  • His virtues,--though I know that they are great,
  • Because he locks, then barricades the gate
  • Within which they inhabit;--of his wit
  • And wisdom, you'll cry out when you are bit. _230
  • He is a pearl within an oyster shell.
  • One of the richest of the deep;--and there
  • Is English Peacock, with his mountain Fair,
  • Turned into a Flamingo;--that shy bird
  • That gleams i' the Indian air--have you not heard _235
  • When a man marries, dies, or turns Hindoo,
  • His best friends hear no more of him?--but you
  • Will see him, and will like him too, I hope,
  • With the milk-white Snowdonian Antelope
  • Matched with this cameleopard--his fine wit _240
  • Makes such a wound, the knife is lost in it;
  • A strain too learned for a shallow age,
  • Too wise for selfish bigots; let his page,
  • Which charms the chosen spirits of the time,
  • Fold itself up for the serener clime _245
  • Of years to come, and find its recompense
  • In that just expectation.--Wit and sense,
  • Virtue and human knowledge; all that might
  • Make this dull world a business of delight,
  • Are all combined in Horace Smith.--And these. _250
  • With some exceptions, which I need not tease
  • Your patience by descanting on,--are all
  • You and I know in London.
  • I recall
  • My thoughts, and bid you look upon the night.
  • As water does a sponge, so the moonlight _255
  • Fills the void, hollow, universal air--
  • What see you?--unpavilioned Heaven is fair,
  • Whether the moon, into her chamber gone,
  • Leaves midnight to the golden stars, or wan
  • Climbs with diminished beams the azure steep; _260
  • Or whether clouds sail o'er the inverse deep,
  • Piloted by the many-wandering blast,
  • And the rare stars rush through them dim and fast:--
  • All this is beautiful in every land.--
  • But what see you beside?--a shabby stand _265
  • Of Hackney coaches--a brick house or wall
  • Fencing some lonely court, white with the scrawl
  • Of our unhappy politics;--or worse--
  • A wretched woman reeling by, whose curse
  • Mixed with the watchman's, partner of her trade, _270
  • You must accept in place of serenade--
  • Or yellow-haired Pollonia murmuring
  • To Henry, some unutterable thing.
  • I see a chaos of green leaves and fruit
  • Built round dark caverns, even to the root _275
  • Of the living stems that feed them--in whose bowers
  • There sleep in their dark dew the folded flowers;
  • Beyond, the surface of the unsickled corn
  • Trembles not in the slumbering air, and borne
  • In circles quaint, and ever-changing dance, _280
  • Like winged stars the fire-flies flash and glance,
  • Pale in the open moonshine, but each one
  • Under the dark trees seems a little sun,
  • A meteor tamed; a fixed star gone astray
  • From the silver regions of the milky way;-- _285
  • Afar the Contadino's song is heard,
  • Rude, but made sweet by distance--and a bird
  • Which cannot be the Nightingale, and yet
  • I know none else that sings so sweet as it
  • At this late hour;--and then all is still-- _290
  • Now--Italy or London, which you will!
  • Next winter you must pass with me; I'll have
  • My house by that time turned into a grave
  • Of dead despondence and low-thoughted care,
  • And all the dreams which our tormentors are; _295
  • Oh! that Hunt, Hogg, Peacock, and Smith were there,
  • With everything belonging to them fair!--
  • We will have books, Spanish, Italian, Greek;
  • And ask one week to make another week
  • As like his father, as I'm unlike mine, _300
  • Which is not his fault, as you may divine.
  • Though we eat little flesh and drink no wine,
  • Yet let's be merry: we'll have tea and toast;
  • Custards for supper, and an endless host
  • Of syllabubs and jellies and mince-pies, _305
  • And other such lady-like luxuries,--
  • Feasting on which we will philosophize!
  • And we'll have fires out of the Grand Duke's wood,
  • To thaw the six weeks' winter in our blood.
  • And then we'll talk;--what shall we talk about? _310
  • Oh! there are themes enough for many a bout
  • Of thought-entangled descant;--as to nerves--
  • With cones and parallelograms and curves
  • I've sworn to strangle them if once they dare
  • To bother me--when you are with me there. _315
  • And they shall never more sip laudanum,
  • From Helicon or Himeros (1);--well, come,
  • And in despite of God and of the devil,
  • We'll make our friendly philosophic revel
  • Outlast the leafless time; till buds and flowers _320
  • Warn the obscure inevitable hours,
  • Sweet meeting by sad parting to renew;--
  • 'To-morrow to fresh woods and pastures new.'
  • NOTES:
  • _13 must Bos. manuscript; most edition 1824.
  • _27 philanthropic Bos. manuscript; philosophic edition 1824.
  • _29 so 1839, 2nd edition; They owed... edition 1824.
  • _36 Which fishers Bos. manuscript; Which fishes edition 1824;
  • With fishes editions 1839.
  • _38 rarely transcript; seldom editions 1824, 1839.
  • _61 lava--cry]lava-cry editions 1824, 1839.
  • _63 towers transcript; towns editions 1824, 1839.
  • _84 queer Bos. manuscript; green transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
  • _92 odd hooks transcript; old books editions 1839 (an evident misprint);
  • old hooks edition 1824.
  • _93 A]An edition 1824.
  • _100 those transcript; them editions 1824, 1839.
  • _101 lead Bos. manuscript; least transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
  • _127 eye Bos. manuscript, transcript, editions 1839; age edition 1824.
  • _140 knew Bos. manuscript; know transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
  • _144 citing Bos. manuscript; acting transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
  • _151 Feasts transcript; Treats editions 1824, 1839.
  • _153 As well it]As it well editions 1824, 1839.
  • _158 believe, and]believe; or editions 1824, 1839.
  • _173 their transcript; the editions 1824, 1839.
  • _188 aethereal transcript; aereal editions 1824, 1839.
  • _197-201 See notes Volume 3.
  • _202 Coleridge]C-- edition 1824. So too H--t l. 209; H-- l. 226;
  • P-- l. 233; H.S. l. 250; H-- -- and -- l. 296.
  • _205 lightning Bos. manuscript, transcript; lustre editions 1824, 1839.
  • _224 read Bos. manuscript; said transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
  • _244 time Bos. manuscript, transcript; age editions 1824, 1839.
  • _245 the transcript: a editions 1824, 1839.
  • _272, _273 found in the 2nd edition of P. W., 1839;
  • wanting in transcript, edition 1824 and 1839, 1st. edition.
  • _276 that transcript; who editions 1824, 1839.
  • _288 the transcript; a editions 1824, 1839.
  • _296 See notes Volume 3.
  • _299, _300 So 1839, 2nd edition; wanting in editions 1824, 1839, 1st.
  • _301 So transcript; wanting in editions 1824, 1839.
  • _317 well, come 1839, 2nd edition; we'll come editions 1824, 1839. 1st.
  • _318 despite of God] transcript; despite of... edition 1824;
  • spite of... editions 1839.
  • (_317 Imeros, from which the river Himera was named, is, with some
  • slight shade of difference, a synonym of Love.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
  • ***
  • THE WITCH OF ATLAS.
  • [Composed at the Baths of San Giuliano, near Pisa, August 14-16, 1820;
  • published in Posthumous Poems, edition Mrs. Shelley, 1824. The
  • dedication To Mas-y first appeared in the Poetical Works, 1839, 1st
  • edition Sources of the text are (1) the editio princeps, 1824; (2)
  • editions 1839 (which agree, and, save in two instances, follow edition
  • 1824); (3) an early and incomplete manuscript in Shelley's handwriting
  • (now at the Bodleian, here, as throughout, cited as B.), carefully
  • collated by Mr. C.D. Locock, who printed the results in his
  • Examination of the Shelley manuscripts, etc., Oxford, Clarendon Press,
  • 1903; (4) a later, yet intermediate, transcript by Mrs. Shelley, the
  • variations of which are noted by Mr. H. Buxton Forman. The original
  • text is modified in many places by variants from the manuscripts, but
  • the readings of edition 1824 are, in every instance, given in the
  • footnotes.]
  • TO MARY
  • (ON HER OBJECTING TO THE FOLLOWING POEM, UPON THE
  • SCORE OF ITS CONTAINING NO HUMAN INTEREST).
  • 1.
  • How, my dear Mary,--are you critic-bitten
  • (For vipers kill, though dead) by some review,
  • That you condemn these verses I have written,
  • Because they tell no story, false or true?
  • What, though no mice are caught by a young kitten, _5
  • May it not leap and play as grown cats do,
  • Till its claws come? Prithee, for this one time,
  • Content thee with a visionary rhyme.
  • 2.
  • What hand would crush the silken-winged fly,
  • The youngest of inconstant April's minions, _10
  • Because it cannot climb the purest sky,
  • Where the swan sings, amid the sun's dominions?
  • Not thine. Thou knowest 'tis its doom to die,
  • When Day shall hide within her twilight pinions
  • The lucent eyes, and the eternal smile, _15
  • Serene as thine, which lent it life awhile.
  • 3.
  • To thy fair feet a winged Vision came,
  • Whose date should have been longer than a day,
  • And o'er thy head did beat its wings for fame,
  • And in thy sight its fading plumes display; _20
  • The watery bow burned in the evening flame.
  • But the shower fell, the swift Sun went his way--
  • And that is dead.--O, let me not believe
  • That anything of mine is fit to live!
  • 4.
  • Wordsworth informs us he was nineteen years _25
  • Considering and retouching Peter Bell;
  • Watering his laurels with the killing tears
  • Of slow, dull care, so that their roots to Hell
  • Might pierce, and their wide branches blot the spheres
  • Of Heaven, with dewy leaves and flowers; this well _30
  • May be, for Heaven and Earth conspire to foil
  • The over-busy gardener's blundering toil.
  • 5.
  • My Witch indeed is not so sweet a creature
  • As Ruth or Lucy, whom his graceful praise
  • Clothes for our grandsons--but she matches Peter, _35
  • Though he took nineteen years, and she three days
  • In dressing. Light the vest of flowing metre
  • She wears; he, proud as dandy with his stays,
  • Has hung upon his wiry limbs a dress
  • Like King Lear's 'looped and windowed raggedness.' _40
  • 6.
  • If you strip Peter, you will see a fellow
  • Scorched by Hell's hyperequatorial climate
  • Into a kind of a sulphureous yellow:
  • A lean mark, hardly fit to fling a rhyme at;
  • In shape a Scaramouch, in hue Othello. _45
  • If you unveil my Witch, no priest nor primate
  • Can shrive you of that sin,--if sin there be
  • In love, when it becomes idolatry.
  • THE WITCH OF ATLAS.
  • 1.
  • Before those cruel Twins, whom at one birth
  • Incestuous Change bore to her father Time, _50
  • Error and Truth, had hunted from the Earth
  • All those bright natures which adorned its prime,
  • And left us nothing to believe in, worth
  • The pains of putting into learned rhyme,
  • A lady-witch there lived on Atlas' mountain _55
  • Within a cavern, by a secret fountain.
  • 2.
  • Her mother was one of the Atlantides:
  • The all-beholding Sun had ne'er beholden
  • In his wide voyage o'er continents and seas
  • So fair a creature, as she lay enfolden _60
  • In the warm shadow of her loveliness;--
  • He kissed her with his beams, and made all golden
  • The chamber of gray rock in which she lay--
  • She, in that dream of joy, dissolved away.
  • 3.
  • 'Tis said, she first was changed into a vapour, _65
  • And then into a cloud, such clouds as flit,
  • Like splendour-winged moths about a taper,
  • Round the red west when the sun dies in it:
  • And then into a meteor, such as caper
  • On hill-tops when the moon is in a fit: _70
  • Then, into one of those mysterious stars
  • Which hide themselves between the Earth and Mars.
  • 4.
  • Ten times the Mother of the Months had bent
  • Her bow beside the folding-star, and bidden
  • With that bright sign the billows to indent _75
  • The sea-deserted sand--like children chidden,
  • At her command they ever came and went--
  • Since in that cave a dewy splendour hidden
  • Took shape and motion: with the living form
  • Of this embodied Power, the cave grew warm. _80
  • 5.
  • A lovely lady garmented in light
  • From her own beauty--deep her eyes, as are
  • Two openings of unfathomable night
  • Seen through a Temple's cloven roof--her hair
  • Dark--the dim brain whirls dizzy with delight. _85
  • Picturing her form; her soft smiles shone afar,
  • And her low voice was heard like love, and drew
  • All living things towards this wonder new.
  • 6.
  • And first the spotted cameleopard came,
  • And then the wise and fearless elephant; _90
  • Then the sly serpent, in the golden flame
  • Of his own volumes intervolved;--all gaunt
  • And sanguine beasts her gentle looks made tame.
  • They drank before her at her sacred fount;
  • And every beast of beating heart grew bold, _95
  • Such gentleness and power even to behold.
  • 7.
  • The brinded lioness led forth her young,
  • That she might teach them how they should forego
  • Their inborn thirst of death; the pard unstrung
  • His sinews at her feet, and sought to know _100
  • With looks whose motions spoke without a tongue
  • How he might be as gentle as the doe.
  • The magic circle of her voice and eyes
  • All savage natures did imparadise.
  • 8.
  • And old Silenus, shaking a green stick _105
  • Of lilies, and the wood-gods in a crew
  • Came, blithe, as in the olive copses thick
  • Cicadae are, drunk with the noonday dew:
  • And Dryope and Faunus followed quick,
  • Teasing the God to sing them something new; _110
  • Till in this cave they found the lady lone,
  • Sitting upon a seat of emerald stone.
  • 9.
  • And universal Pan, 'tis said, was there,
  • And though none saw him,--through the adamant
  • Of the deep mountains, through the trackless air, _115
  • And through those living spirits, like a want,
  • He passed out of his everlasting lair
  • Where the quick heart of the great world doth pant,
  • And felt that wondrous lady all alone,--
  • And she felt him, upon her emerald throne. _120
  • 10.
  • And every nymph of stream and spreading tree,
  • And every shepherdess of Ocean's flocks,
  • Who drives her white waves over the green sea,
  • And Ocean with the brine on his gray locks,
  • And quaint Priapus with his company, _125
  • All came, much wondering how the enwombed rocks
  • Could have brought forth so beautiful a birth;--
  • Her love subdued their wonder and their mirth.
  • 11.
  • The herdsmen and the mountain maidens came,
  • And the rude kings of pastoral Garamant-- _130
  • Their spirits shook within them, as a flame
  • Stirred by the air under a cavern gaunt:
  • Pigmies, and Polyphemes, by many a name,
  • Centaurs, and Satyrs, and such shapes as haunt
  • Wet clefts,--and lumps neither alive nor dead, _135
  • Dog-headed, bosom-eyed, and bird-footed.
  • 12.
  • For she was beautiful--her beauty made
  • The bright world dim, and everything beside
  • Seemed like the fleeting image of a shade:
  • No thought of living spirit could abide, _140
  • Which to her looks had ever been betrayed,
  • On any object in the world so wide,
  • On any hope within the circling skies,
  • But on her form, and in her inmost eyes.
  • 13.
  • Which when the lady knew, she took her spindle _145
  • And twined three threads of fleecy mist, and three
  • Long lines of light, such as the dawn may kindle
  • The clouds and waves and mountains with; and she
  • As many star-beams, ere their lamps could dwindle
  • In the belated moon, wound skilfully; _150
  • And with these threads a subtle veil she wove--
  • A shadow for the splendour of her love.
  • 14.
  • The deep recesses of her odorous dwelling
  • Were stored with magic treasures--sounds of air,
  • Which had the power all spirits of compelling, _155
  • Folded in cells of crystal silence there;
  • Such as we hear in youth, and think the feeling
  • Will never die--yet ere we are aware,
  • The feeling and the sound are fled and gone,
  • And the regret they leave remains alone. _160
  • 15.
  • And there lay Visions swift, and sweet, and quaint,
  • Each in its thin sheath, like a chrysalis,
  • Some eager to burst forth, some weak and faint
  • With the soft burthen of intensest bliss.
  • It was its work to bear to many a saint _165
  • Whose heart adores the shrine which holiest is,
  • Even Love's:--and others white, green, gray, and black,
  • And of all shapes--and each was at her beck.
  • 16.
  • And odours in a kind of aviary
  • Of ever-blooming Eden-trees she kept, _170
  • Clipped in a floating net, a love-sick Fairy
  • Had woven from dew-beams while the moon yet slept;
  • As bats at the wired window of a dairy,
  • They beat their vans; and each was an adept,
  • When loosed and missioned, making wings of winds, _175
  • To stir sweet thoughts or sad, in destined minds.
  • 17.
  • And liquors clear and sweet, whose healthful might
  • Could medicine the sick soul to happy sleep,
  • And change eternal death into a night
  • Of glorious dreams--or if eyes needs must weep, _180
  • Could make their tears all wonder and delight,
  • She in her crystal vials did closely keep:
  • If men could drink of those clear vials, 'tis said
  • The living were not envied of the dead.
  • 18.
  • Her cave was stored with scrolls of strange device, _185
  • The works of some Saturnian Archimage,
  • Which taught the expiations at whose price
  • Men from the Gods might win that happy age
  • Too lightly lost, redeeming native vice;
  • And which might quench the Earth-consuming rage _190
  • Of gold and blood--till men should live and move
  • Harmonious as the sacred stars above;
  • 19.
  • And how all things that seem untameable,
  • Not to be checked and not to be confined,
  • Obey the spells of Wisdom's wizard skill; _195
  • Time, earth, and fire--the ocean and the wind,
  • And all their shapes--and man's imperial will;
  • And other scrolls whose writings did unbind
  • The inmost lore of Love--let the profane
  • Tremble to ask what secrets they contain. _200
  • 20.
  • And wondrous works of substances unknown,
  • To which the enchantment of her father's power
  • Had changed those ragged blocks of savage stone,
  • Were heaped in the recesses of her bower;
  • Carved lamps and chalices, and vials which shone _205
  • In their own golden beams--each like a flower,
  • Out of whose depth a fire-fly shakes his light
  • Under a cypress in a starless night.
  • 21.
  • At first she lived alone in this wild home,
  • And her own thoughts were each a minister, _210
  • Clothing themselves, or with the ocean foam,
  • Or with the wind, or with the speed of fire,
  • To work whatever purposes might come
  • Into her mind; such power her mighty Sire
  • Had girt them with, whether to fly or run, _215
  • Through all the regions which he shines upon.
  • 22.
  • The Ocean-nymphs and Hamadryades,
  • Oreads and Naiads, with long weedy locks,
  • Offered to do her bidding through the seas,
  • Under the earth, and in the hollow rocks, _220
  • And far beneath the matted roots of trees,
  • And in the gnarled heart of stubborn oaks,
  • So they might live for ever in the light
  • Of her sweet presence--each a satellite.
  • 23.
  • 'This may not be,' the wizard maid replied; _225
  • 'The fountains where the Naiades bedew
  • Their shining hair, at length are drained and dried;
  • The solid oaks forget their strength, and strew
  • Their latest leaf upon the mountains wide;
  • The boundless ocean like a drop of dew _230
  • Will be consumed--the stubborn centre must
  • Be scattered, like a cloud of summer dust.
  • 24.
  • 'And ye with them will perish, one by one;--
  • If I must sigh to think that this shall be,
  • If I must weep when the surviving Sun _235
  • Shall smile on your decay--oh, ask not me
  • To love you till your little race is run;
  • I cannot die as ye must--over me
  • Your leaves shall glance--the streams in which ye dwell
  • Shall be my paths henceforth, and so--farewell!'-- _240
  • 25.
  • She spoke and wept:--the dark and azure well
  • Sparkled beneath the shower of her bright tears,
  • And every little circlet where they fell
  • Flung to the cavern-roof inconstant spheres
  • And intertangled lines of light:--a knell _245
  • Of sobbing voices came upon her ears
  • From those departing Forms, o'er the serene
  • Of the white streams and of the forest green.
  • 26.
  • All day the wizard lady sate aloof,
  • Spelling out scrolls of dread antiquity, _250
  • Under the cavern's fountain-lighted roof;
  • Or broidering the pictured poesy
  • Of some high tale upon her growing woof,
  • Which the sweet splendour of her smiles could dye
  • In hues outshining heaven--and ever she _255
  • Added some grace to the wrought poesy.
  • 27.
  • While on her hearth lay blazing many a piece
  • Of sandal wood, rare gums, and cinnamon;
  • Men scarcely know how beautiful fire is--
  • Each flame of it is as a precious stone _260
  • Dissolved in ever-moving light, and this
  • Belongs to each and all who gaze upon.
  • The Witch beheld it not, for in her hand
  • She held a woof that dimmed the burning brand.
  • 28.
  • This lady never slept, but lay in trance _265
  • All night within the fountain--as in sleep.
  • Its emerald crags glowed in her beauty's glance;
  • Through the green splendour of the water deep
  • She saw the constellations reel and dance
  • Like fire-flies--and withal did ever keep _270
  • The tenour of her contemplations calm,
  • With open eyes, closed feet, and folded palm.
  • 29.
  • And when the whirlwinds and the clouds descended
  • From the white pinnacles of that cold hill,
  • She passed at dewfall to a space extended, _275
  • Where in a lawn of flowering asphodel
  • Amid a wood of pines and cedars blended,
  • There yawned an inextinguishable well
  • Of crimson fire--full even to the brim,
  • And overflowing all the margin trim. _280
  • 30.
  • Within the which she lay when the fierce war
  • Of wintry winds shook that innocuous liquor
  • In many a mimic moon and bearded star
  • O'er woods and lawns;--the serpent heard it flicker
  • In sleep, and dreaming still, he crept afar-- _285
  • And when the windless snow descended thicker
  • Than autumn leaves, she watched it as it came
  • Melt on the surface of the level flame.
  • 31.
  • She had a boat, which some say Vulcan wrought
  • For Venus, as the chariot of her star; _290
  • But it was found too feeble to be fraught
  • With all the ardours in that sphere which are,
  • And so she sold it, and Apollo bought
  • And gave it to this daughter: from a car
  • Changed to the fairest and the lightest boat _295
  • Which ever upon mortal stream did float.
  • 32.
  • And others say, that, when but three hours old,
  • The first-born Love out of his cradle lept,
  • And clove dun Chaos with his wings of gold,
  • And like a horticultural adept, _300
  • Stole a strange seed, and wrapped it up in mould,
  • And sowed it in his mother's star, and kept
  • Watering it all the summer with sweet dew,
  • And with his wings fanning it as it grew.
  • 33.
  • The plant grew strong and green, the snowy flower _305
  • Fell, and the long and gourd-like fruit began
  • To turn the light and dew by inward power
  • To its own substance; woven tracery ran
  • Of light firm texture, ribbed and branching, o'er
  • The solid rind, like a leaf's veined fan-- _310
  • Of which Love scooped this boat--and with soft motion
  • Piloted it round the circumfluous ocean.
  • 34.
  • This boat she moored upon her fount, and lit
  • A living spirit within all its frame,
  • Breathing the soul of swiftness into it. _315
  • Couched on the fountain like a panther tame,
  • One of the twain at Evan's feet that sit--
  • Or as on Vesta's sceptre a swift flame--
  • Or on blind Homer's heart a winged thought,--
  • In joyous expectation lay the boat. _320
  • 35.
  • Then by strange art she kneaded fire and snow
  • Together, tempering the repugnant mass
  • With liquid love--all things together grow
  • Through which the harmony of love can pass;
  • And a fair Shape out of her hands did flow-- _325
  • A living Image, which did far surpass
  • In beauty that bright shape of vital stone
  • Which drew the heart out of Pygmalion.
  • 36.
  • A sexless thing it was, and in its growth
  • It seemed to have developed no defect _330
  • Of either sex, yet all the grace of both,--
  • In gentleness and strength its limbs were decked;
  • The bosom swelled lightly with its full youth,
  • The countenance was such as might select
  • Some artist that his skill should never die, _335
  • Imaging forth such perfect purity.
  • 37.
  • From its smooth shoulders hung two rapid wings,
  • Fit to have borne it to the seventh sphere,
  • Tipped with the speed of liquid lightenings,
  • Dyed in the ardours of the atmosphere: _340
  • She led her creature to the boiling springs
  • Where the light boat was moored, and said: 'Sit here!'
  • And pointed to the prow, and took her seat
  • Beside the rudder, with opposing feet.
  • 38.
  • And down the streams which clove those mountains vast, _345
  • Around their inland islets, and amid
  • The panther-peopled forests whose shade cast
  • Darkness and odours, and a pleasure hid
  • In melancholy gloom, the pinnace passed;
  • By many a star-surrounded pyramid _350
  • Of icy crag cleaving the purple sky,
  • And caverns yawning round unfathomably.
  • 39.
  • The silver noon into that winding dell,
  • With slanted gleam athwart the forest tops,
  • Tempered like golden evening, feebly fell; _355
  • A green and glowing light, like that which drops
  • From folded lilies in which glow-worms dwell,
  • When Earth over her face Night's mantle wraps;
  • Between the severed mountains lay on high,
  • Over the stream, a narrow rift of sky. _360
  • 40.
  • And ever as she went, the Image lay
  • With folded wings and unawakened eyes;
  • And o'er its gentle countenance did play
  • The busy dreams, as thick as summer flies,
  • Chasing the rapid smiles that would not stay, _365
  • And drinking the warm tears, and the sweet sighs
  • Inhaling, which, with busy murmur vain,
  • They had aroused from that full heart and brain.
  • 41.
  • And ever down the prone vale, like a cloud
  • Upon a stream of wind, the pinnace went: _370
  • Now lingering on the pools, in which abode
  • The calm and darkness of the deep content
  • In which they paused; now o'er the shallow road
  • Of white and dancing waters, all besprent
  • With sand and polished pebbles:--mortal boat _375
  • In such a shallow rapid could not float.
  • 42.
  • And down the earthquaking cataracts which shiver
  • Their snow-like waters into golden air,
  • Or under chasms unfathomable ever
  • Sepulchre them, till in their rage they tear _380
  • A subterranean portal for the river,
  • It fled--the circling sunbows did upbear
  • Its fall down the hoar precipice of spray,
  • Lighting it far upon its lampless way.
  • 43.
  • And when the wizard lady would ascend _385
  • The labyrinths of some many-winding vale,
  • Which to the inmost mountain upward tend--
  • She called 'Hermaphroditus!'--and the pale
  • And heavy hue which slumber could extend
  • Over its lips and eyes, as on the gale _390
  • A rapid shadow from a slope of grass,
  • Into the darkness of the stream did pass.
  • 44.
  • And it unfurled its heaven-coloured pinions,
  • With stars of fire spotting the stream below;
  • And from above into the Sun's dominions _395
  • Flinging a glory, like the golden glow
  • In which Spring clothes her emerald-winged minions,
  • All interwoven with fine feathery snow
  • And moonlight splendour of intensest rime,
  • With which frost paints the pines in winter time. _400
  • 45.
  • And then it winnowed the Elysian air
  • Which ever hung about that lady bright,
  • With its aethereal vans--and speeding there,
  • Like a star up the torrent of the night,
  • Or a swift eagle in the morning glare _405
  • Breasting the whirlwind with impetuous flight,
  • The pinnace, oared by those enchanted wings,
  • Clove the fierce streams towards their upper springs.
  • 46.
  • The water flashed, like sunlight by the prow
  • Of a noon-wandering meteor flung to Heaven; _410
  • The still air seemed as if its waves did flow
  • In tempest down the mountains; loosely driven
  • The lady's radiant hair streamed to and fro:
  • Beneath, the billows having vainly striven
  • Indignant and impetuous, roared to feel _415
  • The swift and steady motion of the keel.
  • 47.
  • Or, when the weary moon was in the wane,
  • Or in the noon of interlunar night,
  • The lady-witch in visions could not chain
  • Her spirit; but sailed forth under the light _420
  • Of shooting stars, and bade extend amain
  • Its storm-outspeeding wings, the Hermaphrodite;
  • She to the Austral waters took her way,
  • Beyond the fabulous Thamondocana,--
  • 48.
  • Where, like a meadow which no scythe has shaven, _425
  • Which rain could never bend, or whirl-blast shake,
  • With the Antarctic constellations paven,
  • Canopus and his crew, lay the Austral lake--
  • There she would build herself a windless haven
  • Out of the clouds whose moving turrets make _430
  • The bastions of the storm, when through the sky
  • The spirits of the tempest thundered by:
  • 49.
  • A haven beneath whose translucent floor
  • The tremulous stars sparkled unfathomably,
  • And around which the solid vapours hoar, _435
  • Based on the level waters, to the sky
  • Lifted their dreadful crags, and like a shore
  • Of wintry mountains, inaccessibly
  • Hemmed in with rifts and precipices gray,
  • And hanging crags, many a cove and bay. _440
  • 50.
  • And whilst the outer lake beneath the lash
  • Of the wind's scourge, foamed like a wounded thing,
  • And the incessant hail with stony clash
  • Ploughed up the waters, and the flagging wing
  • Of the roused cormorant in the lightning flash _445
  • Looked like the wreck of some wind-wandering
  • Fragment of inky thunder-smoke--this haven
  • Was as a gem to copy Heaven engraven,--
  • 51.
  • On which that lady played her many pranks,
  • Circling the image of a shooting star, _450
  • Even as a tiger on Hydaspes' banks
  • Outspeeds the antelopes which speediest are,
  • In her light boat; and many quips and cranks
  • She played upon the water, till the car
  • Of the late moon, like a sick matron wan, _455
  • To journey from the misty east began.
  • 52.
  • And then she called out of the hollow turrets
  • Of those high clouds, white, golden and vermilion,
  • The armies of her ministering spirits--
  • In mighty legions, million after million, _460
  • They came, each troop emblazoning its merits
  • On meteor flags; and many a proud pavilion
  • Of the intertexture of the atmosphere
  • They pitched upon the plain of the calm mere.
  • 53.
  • They framed the imperial tent of their great Queen _465
  • Of woven exhalations, underlaid
  • With lambent lightning-fire, as may be seen
  • A dome of thin and open ivory inlaid
  • With crimson silk--cressets from the serene
  • Hung there, and on the water for her tread _470
  • A tapestry of fleece-like mist was strewn,
  • Dyed in the beams of the ascending moon.
  • 54.
  • And on a throne o'erlaid with starlight, caught
  • Upon those wandering isles of aery dew,
  • Which highest shoals of mountain shipwreck not, _475
  • She sate, and heard all that had happened new
  • Between the earth and moon, since they had brought
  • The last intelligence--and now she grew
  • Pale as that moon, lost in the watery night--
  • And now she wept, and now she laughed outright. _480
  • 55.
  • These were tame pleasures; she would often climb
  • The steepest ladder of the crudded rack
  • Up to some beaked cape of cloud sublime,
  • And like Arion on the dolphin's back
  • Ride singing through the shoreless air;--oft-time _485
  • Following the serpent lightning's winding track,
  • She ran upon the platforms of the wind,
  • And laughed to bear the fire-balls roar behind.
  • 56.
  • And sometimes to those streams of upper air
  • Which whirl the earth in its diurnal round, _490
  • She would ascend, and win the spirits there
  • To let her join their chorus. Mortals found
  • That on those days the sky was calm and fair,
  • And mystic snatches of harmonious sound
  • Wandered upon the earth where'er she passed, _495
  • And happy thoughts of hope, too sweet to last.
  • 57.
  • But her choice sport was, in the hours of sleep,
  • To glide adown old Nilus, where he threads
  • Egypt and Aethiopia, from the steep
  • Of utmost Axume, until he spreads, _500
  • Like a calm flock of silver-fleeced sheep,
  • His waters on the plain: and crested heads
  • Of cities and proud temples gleam amid,
  • And many a vapour-belted pyramid.
  • 58.
  • By Moeris and the Mareotid lakes, _505
  • Strewn with faint blooms like bridal chamber floors,
  • Where naked boys bridling tame water-snakes,
  • Or charioteering ghastly alligators,
  • Had left on the sweet waters mighty wakes
  • Of those huge forms--within the brazen doors _510
  • Of the great Labyrinth slept both boy and beast,
  • Tired with the pomp of their Osirian feast.
  • 59.
  • And where within the surface of the river
  • The shadows of the massy temples lie,
  • And never are erased--but tremble ever _515
  • Like things which every cloud can doom to die,
  • Through lotus-paven canals, and wheresoever
  • The works of man pierced that serenest sky
  • With tombs, and towers, and fanes, 'twas her delight
  • To wander in the shadow of the night. _520
  • 60.
  • With motion like the spirit of that wind
  • Whose soft step deepens slumber, her light feet
  • Passed through the peopled haunts of humankind.
  • Scattering sweet visions from her presence sweet,
  • Through fane, and palace-court, and labyrinth mined _525
  • With many a dark and subterranean street
  • Under the Nile, through chambers high and deep
  • She passed, observing mortals in their sleep.
  • 61.
  • A pleasure sweet doubtless it was to see
  • Mortals subdued in all the shapes of sleep. _530
  • Here lay two sister twins in infancy;
  • There, a lone youth who in his dreams did weep;
  • Within, two lovers linked innocently
  • In their loose locks which over both did creep
  • Like ivy from one stem;--and there lay calm _535
  • Old age with snow-bright hair and folded palm.
  • 62.
  • But other troubled forms of sleep she saw,
  • Not to be mirrored in a holy song--
  • Distortions foul of supernatural awe,
  • And pale imaginings of visioned wrong; _540
  • And all the code of Custom's lawless law
  • Written upon the brows of old and young:
  • 'This,' said the wizard maiden, 'is the strife
  • Which stirs the liquid surface of man's life.'
  • 63.
  • And little did the sight disturb her soul.-- _545
  • We, the weak mariners of that wide lake
  • Where'er its shores extend or billows roll,
  • Our course unpiloted and starless make
  • O'er its wild surface to an unknown goal:--
  • But she in the calm depths her way could take, _550
  • Where in bright bowers immortal forms abide
  • Beneath the weltering of the restless tide.
  • 64.
  • And she saw princes couched under the glow
  • Of sunlike gems; and round each temple-court
  • In dormitories ranged, row after row, _555
  • She saw the priests asleep--all of one sort--
  • For all were educated to be so.--
  • The peasants in their huts, and in the port
  • The sailors she saw cradled on the waves,
  • And the dead lulled within their dreamless graves. _560
  • 65.
  • And all the forms in which those spirits lay
  • Were to her sight like the diaphanous
  • Veils, in which those sweet ladies oft array
  • Their delicate limbs, who would conceal from us
  • Only their scorn of all concealment: they _565
  • Move in the light of their own beauty thus.
  • But these and all now lay with sleep upon them,
  • And little thought a Witch was looking on them.
  • 66.
  • She, all those human figures breathing there,
  • Beheld as living spirits--to her eyes _570
  • The naked beauty of the soul lay bare,
  • And often through a rude and worn disguise
  • She saw the inner form most bright and fair--
  • And then she had a charm of strange device,
  • Which, murmured on mute lips with tender tone, _575
  • Could make that spirit mingle with her own.
  • 67.
  • Alas! Aurora, what wouldst thou have given
  • For such a charm when Tithon became gray?
  • Or how much, Venus, of thy silver heaven
  • Wouldst thou have yielded, ere Proserpina _580
  • Had half (oh! why not all?) the debt forgiven
  • Which dear Adonis had been doomed to pay,
  • To any witch who would have taught you it?
  • The Heliad doth not know its value yet.
  • 68.
  • 'Tis said in after times her spirit free _585
  • Knew what love was, and felt itself alone--
  • But holy Dian could not chaster be
  • Before she stooped to kiss Endymion,
  • Than now this lady--like a sexless bee
  • Tasting all blossoms, and confined to none, _590
  • Among those mortal forms, the wizard-maiden
  • Passed with an eye serene and heart unladen.
  • 69.
  • To those she saw most beautiful, she gave
  • Strange panacea in a crystal bowl:--
  • They drank in their deep sleep of that sweet wave, _595
  • And lived thenceforward as if some control,
  • Mightier than life, were in them; and the grave
  • Of such, when death oppressed the weary soul,
  • Was as a green and overarching bower
  • Lit by the gems of many a starry flower. _600
  • 70.
  • For on the night when they were buried, she
  • Restored the embalmers' ruining, and shook
  • The light out of the funeral lamps, to be
  • A mimic day within that deathy nook;
  • And she unwound the woven imagery _605
  • Of second childhood's swaddling bands, and took
  • The coffin, its last cradle, from its niche,
  • And threw it with contempt into a ditch.
  • 71.
  • And there the body lay, age after age.
  • Mute, breathing, beating, warm, and undecaying, _610
  • Like one asleep in a green hermitage,
  • With gentle smiles about its eyelids playing,
  • And living in its dreams beyond the rage
  • Of death or life; while they were still arraying
  • In liveries ever new, the rapid, blind _615
  • And fleeting generations of mankind.
  • 72.
  • And she would write strange dreams upon the brain
  • Of those who were less beautiful, and make
  • All harsh and crooked purposes more vain
  • Than in the desert is the serpent's wake _620
  • Which the sand covers--all his evil gain
  • The miser in such dreams would rise and shake
  • Into a beggar's lap;--the lying scribe
  • Would his own lies betray without a bribe.
  • 73.
  • The priests would write an explanation full, _625
  • Translating hieroglyphics into Greek,
  • How the God Apis really was a bull,
  • And nothing more; and bid the herald stick
  • The same against the temple doors, and pull
  • The old cant down; they licensed all to speak _630
  • Whate'er they thought of hawks, and cats, and geese,
  • By pastoral letters to each diocese.
  • 74.
  • The king would dress an ape up in his crown
  • And robes, and seat him on his glorious seat,
  • And on the right hand of the sunlike throne _635
  • Would place a gaudy mock-bird to repeat
  • The chatterings of the monkey.--Every one
  • Of the prone courtiers crawled to kiss the feet
  • Of their great Emperor, when the morning came,
  • And kissed--alas, how many kiss the same! _640
  • 75.
  • The soldiers dreamed that they were blacksmiths, and
  • Walked out of quarters in somnambulism;
  • Round the red anvils you might see them stand
  • Like Cyclopses in Vulcan's sooty abysm,
  • Beating their swords to ploughshares;--in a band _645
  • The gaolers sent those of the liberal schism
  • Free through the streets of Memphis, much, I wis,
  • To the annoyance of king Amasis.
  • 76.
  • And timid lovers who had been so coy,
  • They hardly knew whether they loved or not, _650
  • Would rise out of their rest, and take sweet joy,
  • To the fulfilment of their inmost thought;
  • And when next day the maiden and the boy
  • Met one another, both, like sinners caught,
  • Blushed at the thing which each believed was done _655
  • Only in fancy--till the tenth moon shone;
  • 77.
  • And then the Witch would let them take no ill:
  • Of many thousand schemes which lovers find,
  • The Witch found one,--and so they took their fill
  • Of happiness in marriage warm and kind. _660
  • Friends who, by practice of some envious skill,
  • Were torn apart--a wide wound, mind from mind!--
  • She did unite again with visions clear
  • Of deep affection and of truth sincere.
  • 80.
  • These were the pranks she played among the cities _665
  • Of mortal men, and what she did to Sprites
  • And Gods, entangling them in her sweet ditties
  • To do her will, and show their subtle sleights,
  • I will declare another time; for it is
  • A tale more fit for the weird winter nights _670
  • Than for these garish summer days, when we
  • Scarcely believe much more than we can see.
  • NOTES:
  • _2 dead]deaf cj. A.C. Bradley, who cps. "Adonais" 317.
  • _65 first was transcript, B.; was first edition 1824.
  • _84 Temple's transcript, B.; tempest's edition 1824.
  • _165 was its transcript, B.; is its edition 1824.
  • _184 envied so all manuscripts and editions;
  • envious cj. James Thomson ('B. V.').
  • _262 upon so all manuscripts and editions: thereon cj. Rossetti.
  • _333 swelled lightly edition 1824, B.;
  • lightly swelled editions 1839;
  • swelling lightly with its full growth transcript.
  • _339 lightenings B., editions 1839; lightnings edition 1824, transcript.
  • _422 Its transcript; His edition 1824, B.
  • _424 Thamondocana transcript, B.; Thamondocona edition 1824.
  • _442 wind's transcript, B.; winds' edition 1834.
  • _493 where transcript, B.; when edition 1824.
  • _596 thenceforward B.;
  • thence forth edition 1824; henceforward transcript.
  • _599 Was as a B.; Was a edition 1824.
  • _601 night when transcript; night that edition 1824, B.
  • _612 smiles transcript, B.; sleep edition 1824.
  • NOTE ON THE WITCH OF ATLAS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • We spent the summer of 1820 at the Baths of San Giuliano, four miles
  • from Pisa. These baths were of great use to Shelley in soothing his
  • nervous irritability. We made several excursions in the neighbourhood.
  • The country around is fertile, and diversified and rendered
  • picturesque by ranges of near hills and more distant mountains. The
  • peasantry are a handsome intelligent race; and there was a gladsome
  • sunny heaven spread over us, that rendered home and every scene we
  • visited cheerful and bright. During some of the hottest days of
  • August, Shelley made a solitary journey on foot to the summit of Monte
  • San Pellegrino--a mountain of some height, on the top of which there
  • is a chapel, the object, during certain days of the year, of many
  • pilgrimages. The excursion delighted him while it lasted; though he
  • exerted himself too much, and the effect was considerable lassitude
  • and weakness on his return. During the expedition he conceived the
  • idea, and wrote, in the three days immediately succeeding to his
  • return, the "Witch of Atlas". This poem is peculiarly characteristic
  • of his tastes--wildly fanciful, full of brilliant imagery, and
  • discarding human interest and passion, to revel in the fantastic ideas
  • that his imagination suggested.
  • The surpassing excellence of "The Cenci" had made me greatly desire
  • that Shelley should increase his popularity by adopting subjects that
  • would more suit the popular taste than a poem conceived in the
  • abstract and dreamy spirit of the "Witch of Atlas". It was not only
  • that I wished him to acquire popularity as redounding to his fame; but
  • I believed that he would obtain a greater mastery over his own powers,
  • and greater happiness in his mind, if public applause crowned his
  • endeavours. The few stanzas that precede the poem were addressed to me
  • on my representing these ideas to him. Even now I believe that I was
  • in the right. Shelley did not expect sympathy and approbation from the
  • public; but the want of it took away a portion of the ardour that
  • ought to have sustained him while writing. He was thrown on his own
  • resources, and on the inspiration of his own soul; and wrote because
  • his mind overflowed, without the hope of being appreciated. I had not
  • the most distant wish that he should truckle in opinion, or submit his
  • lofty aspirations for the human race to the low ambition and pride of
  • the many; but I felt sure that, if his poems were more addressed to
  • the common feelings of men, his proper rank among the writers of the
  • day would be acknowledged, and that popularity as a poet would enable
  • his countrymen to do justice to his character and virtues, which in
  • those days it was the mode to attack with the most flagitious
  • calumnies and insulting abuse. That he felt these things deeply cannot
  • be doubted, though he armed himself with the consciousness of acting
  • from a lofty and heroic sense of right. The truth burst from his heart
  • sometimes in solitude, and he would writes few unfinished verses that
  • showed that he felt the sting; among such I find the following:--
  • 'Alas! this is not what I thought Life was.
  • I knew that there were crimes and evil men,
  • Misery and hate; nor did I hope to pass
  • Untouched by suffering through the rugged glen.
  • In mine own heart I saw as in a glass
  • The hearts of others...And, when
  • I went among my kind, with triple brass
  • Of calm endurance my weak breast I armed,
  • To bear scorn, fear, and hate--a woful mass!'
  • I believed that all this morbid feeling would vanish if the chord of
  • sympathy between him and his countrymen were touched. But my
  • persuasions were vain, the mind could not be bent from its natural
  • inclination. Shelley shrunk instinctively from portraying human
  • passion, with its mixture of good and evil, of disappointment and
  • disquiet. Such opened again the wounds of his own heart; and he loved
  • to shelter himself rather in the airiest flights of fancy, forgetting
  • love and hate, and regret and lost hope, in such imaginations as
  • borrowed their hues from sunrise or sunset, from the yellow moonshine
  • or paly twilight, from the aspect of the far ocean or the shadows of
  • the woods,--which celebrated the singing of the winds among the pines,
  • the flow of a murmuring stream, and the thousand harmonious sounds
  • which Nature creates in her solitudes. These are the materials which
  • form the "Witch of Atlas": it is a brilliant congregation of ideas
  • such as his senses gathered, and his fancy coloured, during his
  • rambles in the sunny land he so much loved.
  • ***
  • OEDIPUS TYRANNUS
  • OR
  • SWELLFOOT THE TYRANT.
  • A TRAGEDY IN TWO ACTS
  • TRANSLATED FROM THE ORIGINAL DORIC.
  • 'Choose Reform or Civil War,
  • When through thy streets, instead of hare with dogs,
  • A CONSORT-QUEEN shall hunt a king with hogs,
  • Riding on the IONIAN MINOTAUR.'
  • [Begun at the Baths of San Giuliano, near Pisa, August 24, 1819;
  • published anonymously by J. Johnston, Cheapside (imprint C.F.
  • Seyfang), 1820. On a threat of prosecution the publisher surrendered
  • the whole impression, seven copies--the total number sold--excepted.
  • "Oedipus" does not appear in the first edition of the "Poetical
  • Works", 1839, but it was included by Mrs. Shelley in the second
  • edition of that year. Our text is that of the editio princeps, 1820,
  • save in three places, where the reading of edition 1820 will be found
  • in the notes.]
  • ADVERTISEMENT.
  • This Tragedy is one of a triad, or system of three Plays (an
  • arrangement according to which the Greeks were accustomed to connect
  • their dramatic representations), elucidating the wonderful and
  • appalling fortunes of the SWELLFOOT dynasty. It was evidently written
  • by some LEARNED THEBAN, and, from its characteristic dulness,
  • apparently before the duties on the importation of ATTIC SALT had been
  • repealed by the Boeotarchs. The tenderness with which he treats the
  • PIGS proves him to have been a sus Boeotiae; possibly Epicuri de grege
  • porcus; for, as the poet observes,
  • 'A fellow feeling makes us wondrous kind.'
  • No liberty has been taken with the translation of this remarkable
  • piece of antiquity, except the suppressing a seditious and blasphemous
  • Chorus of the Pigs and Bulls at the last Act. The work Hoydipouse (or
  • more properly Oedipus) has been rendered literally SWELLFOOT, without
  • its having been conceived necessary to determine whether a swelling of
  • the hind or the fore feet of the Swinish Monarch is particularly
  • indicated.
  • Should the remaining portions of this Tragedy be found, entitled,
  • "Swellfoot in Angaria", and "Charite", the Translator might be tempted
  • to give them to the reading Public.
  • DRAMATIS PERSONAE.
  • TYRANT SWELLFOOT, KING OF THEBES.
  • IONA TAURINA, HIS QUEEN.
  • MAMMON, ARCH-PRIEST OF FAMINE.
  • PURGANAX, DAKRY, LAOCTONOS--WIZARDS, MINISTERS OF SWELLFOOT.
  • THE GADFLY.
  • THE LEECH.
  • THE RAT.
  • MOSES, THE SOW-GELDER.
  • SOLOMON, THE PORKMAN.
  • ZEPHANIAH, PIG-BUTCHER.
  • THE MINOTAUR.
  • CHORUS OF THE SWINISH MULTITUDE.
  • GUARDS, ATTENDANTS, PRIESTS, ETC., ETC.
  • SCENE.--THEBES.
  • ACT 1.
  • SCENE 1.1.--A MAGNIFICENT TEMPLE, BUILT OF THIGH-BONES AND
  • DEATH'S-HEADS, AND TILED WITH SCALPS. OVER THE ALTAR THE STATUE OF
  • FAMINE, VEILED; A NUMBER OF BOARS, SOWS, AND SUCKING-PIGS, CROWNED
  • WITH THISTLE, SHAMROCK, AND OAK, SITTING ON THE STEPS, AND CLINGING
  • ROUND THE ALTAR OF THE TEMPLE.
  • ENTER SWELLFOOT, IN HIS ROYAL ROBES, WITHOUT PERCEIVING THE PIGS.
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Thou supreme Goddess! by whose power divine
  • These graceful limbs are clothed in proud array
  • [HE CONTEMPLATES HIMSELF WITH SATISFACTION.]
  • Of gold and purple, and this kingly paunch
  • Swells like a sail before a favouring breeze,
  • And these most sacred nether promontories _5
  • Lie satisfied with layers of fat; and these
  • Boeotian cheeks, like Egypt's pyramid,
  • (Nor with less toil were their foundations laid),
  • Sustain the cone of my untroubled brain,
  • That point, the emblem of a pointless nothing! _10
  • Thou to whom Kings and laurelled Emperors,
  • Radical-butchers, Paper-money-millers,
  • Bishops and Deacons, and the entire army
  • Of those fat martyrs to the persecution
  • Of stifling turtle-soup, and brandy-devils, _15
  • Offer their secret vows! Thou plenteous Ceres
  • Of their Eleusis, hail!
  • NOTE:
  • (_8 See Universal History for an account of the number of people who
  • died, and the immense consumption of garlic by the wretched Egyptians,
  • who made a sepulchre for the name as well as the bodies of their
  • tyrants.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • SWINE:
  • Eigh! eigh! eigh! eigh!
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Ha! what are ye,
  • Who, crowned with leaves devoted to the Furies,
  • Cling round this sacred shrine?
  • SWINE:
  • Aigh! aigh! aigh!
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • What! ye that are
  • The very beasts that, offered at her altar _20
  • With blood and groans, salt-cake, and fat, and inwards,
  • Ever propitiate her reluctant will
  • When taxes are withheld?
  • SWINE:
  • Ugh! ugh! ugh!
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • What! ye who grub
  • With filthy snouts my red potatoes up
  • In Allan's rushy bog? Who eat the oats _25
  • Up, from my cavalry in the Hebrides?
  • Who swill the hog-wash soup my cooks digest
  • From bones, and rags, and scraps of shoe-leather,
  • Which should be given to cleaner Pigs than you?
  • SWINE--SEMICHORUS 1:
  • The same, alas! the same; _30
  • Though only now the name
  • Of Pig remains to me.
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • If 'twere your kingly will
  • Us wretched Swine to kill,
  • What should we yield to thee? _35
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Why, skin and bones, and some few hairs for mortar.
  • CHORUS OF SWINE:
  • I have heard your Laureate sing,
  • That pity was a royal thing;
  • Under your mighty ancestors, we Pigs
  • Were bless'd as nightingales on myrtle sprigs, _40
  • Or grasshoppers that live on noonday dew,
  • And sung, old annals tell, as sweetly too;
  • But now our sties are fallen in, we catch
  • The murrain and the mange, the scab and itch;
  • Sometimes your royal dogs tear down our thatch, _45
  • And then we seek the shelter of a ditch;
  • Hog-wash or grains, or ruta-baga, none
  • Has yet been ours since your reign begun.
  • FIRST SOW:
  • My Pigs, 'tis in vain to tug.
  • SECOND SOW:
  • I could almost eat my litter. _50
  • FIRST PIG:
  • I suck, but no milk will come from the dug.
  • SECOND PIG:
  • Our skin and our bones would be bitter.
  • THE BOARS:
  • We fight for this rag of greasy rug,
  • Though a trough of wash would be fitter.
  • SEMICHORUS:
  • Happier Swine were they than we, _55
  • Drowned in the Gadarean sea--
  • I wish that pity would drive out the devils,
  • Which in your royal bosom hold their revels,
  • And sink us in the waves of thy compassion!
  • Alas! the Pigs are an unhappy nation! _60
  • Now if your Majesty would have our bristles
  • To bind your mortar with, or fill our colons
  • With rich blood, or make brawn out of our gristles,
  • In policy--ask else your royal Solons--
  • You ought to give us hog-wash and clean straw, _65
  • And sties well thatched; besides it is the law!
  • NOTE:
  • _59 thy edition 1820; your edition 1839.
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • This is sedition, and rank blasphemy!
  • Ho! there, my guards!
  • [ENTER A GUARD.]
  • GUARD:
  • Your sacred Majesty.
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Call in the Jews, Solomon the court porkman,
  • Moses the sow-gelder, and Zephaniah _70
  • The hog-butcher.
  • GUARD:
  • They are in waiting, Sire.
  • [ENTER SOLOMON, MOSES, AND ZEPHANIAH.]
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Out with your knife, old Moses, and spay those Sows
  • [THE PIGS RUN ABOUT IN CONSTERNATION.]
  • That load the earth with Pigs; cut close and deep.
  • Moral restraint I see has no effect,
  • Nor prostitution, nor our own example, _75
  • Starvation, typhus-fever, war, nor prison--
  • This was the art which the arch-priest of Famine
  • Hinted at in his charge to the Theban clergy--
  • Cut close and deep, good Moses.
  • MOSES:
  • Let your Majesty
  • Keep the Boars quiet, else--
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Zephaniah, cut _80
  • That fat Hog's throat, the brute seems overfed;
  • Seditious hunks! to whine for want of grains.
  • ZEPHANIAH:
  • Your sacred Majesty, he has the dropsy;--
  • We shall find pints of hydatids in 's liver,
  • He has not half an inch of wholesome fat _85
  • Upon his carious ribs--
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • 'Tis all the same,
  • He'll serve instead of riot money, when
  • Our murmuring troops bivouac in Thebes' streets
  • And January winds, after a day
  • Of butchering, will make them relish carrion. _90
  • Now, Solomon, I'll sell you in a lump
  • The whole kit of them.
  • SOLOMON:
  • Why, your Majesty,
  • I could not give--
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Kill them out of the way,
  • That shall be price enough, and let me hear
  • Their everlasting grunts and whines no more! _95
  • [EXEUNT, DRIVING IN THE SWINE.
  • ENTER MAMM0N, THE ARCH-PRIEST,
  • AND PURGANAX, CHIEF OF THE COUNCIL OF WIZARDS.]
  • PURGANAX:
  • The future looks as black as death, a cloud,
  • Dark as the frown of Hell, hangs over it--
  • The troops grow mutinous--the revenue fails--
  • There's something rotten in us--for the level _100
  • Of the State slopes, its very bases topple,
  • The boldest turn their backs upon themselves!
  • MAMMON:
  • Why what's the matter, my dear fellow, now?
  • Do the troops mutiny?--decimate some regiments;
  • Does money fail?--come to my mint--coin paper,
  • Till gold be at a discount, and ashamed _105
  • To show his bilious face, go purge himself,
  • In emulation of her vestal whiteness.
  • PURGANAX:
  • Oh, would that this were all! The oracle!!
  • MAMMON:
  • Why it was I who spoke that oracle,
  • And whether I was dead drunk or inspired, _110
  • I cannot well remember; nor, in truth,
  • The oracle itself!
  • PURGANAX:
  • The words went thus:--
  • 'Boeotia, choose reform or civil war!
  • When through the streets, instead of hare with dogs,
  • A Consort Queen shall hunt a King with Hogs, _115
  • Riding on the Ionian Minotaur.'
  • MAMMON:
  • Now if the oracle had ne'er foretold
  • This sad alternative, it must arrive,
  • Or not, and so it must now that it has;
  • And whether I was urged by grace divine _120
  • Or Lesbian liquor to declare these words,
  • Which must, as all words must, he false or true,
  • It matters not: for the same Power made all,
  • Oracle, wine, and me and you--or none--
  • 'Tis the same thing. If you knew as much _125
  • Of oracles as I do--
  • PURGANAX:
  • You arch-priests
  • Believe in nothing; if you were to dream
  • Of a particular number in the Lottery,
  • You would not buy the ticket?
  • MAMMON:
  • Yet our tickets
  • Are seldom blanks. But what steps have you taken? _130
  • For prophecies, when once they get abroad,
  • Like liars who tell the truth to serve their ends,
  • Or hypocrites who, from assuming virtue,
  • Do the same actions that the virtuous do,
  • Contrive their own fulfilment. This Iona-- _135
  • Well--you know what the chaste Pasiphae did,
  • Wife to that most religious King of Crete,
  • And still how popular the tale is here;
  • And these dull Swine of Thebes boast their descent
  • From the free Minotaur. You know they still _140
  • Call themselves Bulls, though thus degenerate,
  • And everything relating to a Bull
  • Is popular and respectable in Thebes.
  • Their arms are seven Bulls in a field gules;
  • They think their strength consists in eating beef,-- _145
  • Now there were danger in the precedent
  • If Queen Iona--
  • NOTES:
  • _114 the edition 1820; thy cj. Forman;
  • cf. Motto below Title, and II. i, 153-6. ticket? edition 1820;
  • ticket! edition 1839.
  • _135 their own Mrs. Shelley, later editions;
  • their editions 1820 and 1839.
  • PURGANAX:
  • I have taken good care
  • That shall not be. I struck the crust o' the earth
  • With this enchanted rod, and Hell lay bare!
  • And from a cavern full of ugly shapes _150
  • I chose a LEECH, a GADFLY, and a RAT.
  • The Gadfly was the same which Juno sent
  • To agitate Io, and which Ezekiel mentions
  • That the Lord whistled for out of the mountains
  • Of utmost Aethiopia, to torment _155
  • Mesopotamian Babylon. The beast
  • Has a loud trumpet like the scarabee,
  • His crooked tail is barbed with many stings,
  • Each able to make a thousand wounds, and each
  • Immedicable; from his convex eyes _160
  • He sees fair things in many hideous shapes,
  • And trumpets all his falsehood to the world.
  • Like other beetles he is fed on dung--
  • He has eleven feet with which he crawls,
  • Trailing a blistering slime, and this foul beast _165
  • Has tracked Iona from the Theban limits,
  • From isle to isle, from city unto city,
  • Urging her flight from the far Chersonese
  • To fabulous Solyma, and the Aetnean Isle,
  • Ortygia, Melite, and Calypso's Rock, _170
  • And the swart tribes of Garamant and Fez,
  • Aeolia and Elysium, and thy shores,
  • Parthenope, which now, alas! are free!
  • And through the fortunate Saturnian land,
  • Into the darkness of the West.
  • NOTES:
  • (_153 (Io) The Promethetes Bound of Aeschylus.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • (_153 (Ezekiel) And the Lord whistled for the gadfly out of Aethiopia,
  • and for the bee of Egypt, etc.--EZEKIEL.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • MAMMON:
  • But if _175
  • This Gadfly should drive Iona hither?
  • PURGANAX:
  • Gods! what an IF! but there is my gray RAT:
  • So thin with want, he can crawl in and out
  • Of any narrow chink and filthy hole,
  • And he shall creep into her dressing-room, _180
  • And--
  • MAMMON:
  • My dear friend, where are your wits? as if
  • She does not always toast a piece of cheese
  • And bait the trap? and rats, when lean enough
  • To crawl through SUCH chinks--
  • PURGANAX:
  • But my LEECH--a leech
  • Fit to suck blood, with lubricous round rings, _185
  • Capaciously expatiative, which make
  • His little body like a red balloon,
  • As full of blood as that of hydrogen,
  • Sucked from men's hearts; insatiably he sucks
  • And clings and pulls--a horse-leech, whose deep maw _190
  • The plethoric King Swellfoot could not fill,
  • And who, till full, will cling for ever.
  • MAMMON:
  • This
  • For Queen Jona would suffice, and less;
  • But 'tis the Swinish multitude I fear,
  • And in that fear I have--
  • PURGANAX:
  • Done what?
  • MAMMON:
  • Disinherited _195
  • My eldest son Chrysaor, because he
  • Attended public meetings, and would always
  • Stand prating there of commerce, public faith,
  • Economy, and unadulterate coin,
  • And other topics, ultra-radical; _200
  • And have entailed my estate, called the Fool's Paradise,
  • And funds in fairy-money, bonds, and bills,
  • Upon my accomplished daughter Banknotina,
  • And married her to the gallows. [1]
  • NOTE:
  • (_204 'If one should marry a gallows, and beget young gibbets, I never
  • saw one so prone.--CYMBELINE.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
  • PURGANAX:
  • A good match!
  • MAMMON:
  • A high connexion, Purganax. The bridegroom _205
  • Is of a very ancient family,
  • Of Hounslow Heath, Tyburn, and the New Drop,
  • And has great influence in both Houses;--oh!
  • He makes the fondest husband; nay, TOO fond,--
  • New-married people should not kiss in public; _210
  • But the poor souls love one another so!
  • And then my little grandchildren, the gibbets,
  • Promising children as you ever saw,--
  • The young playing at hanging, the elder learning
  • How to hold radicals. They are well taught too, _215
  • For every gibbet says its catechism
  • And reads a select chapter in the Bible
  • Before it goes to play.
  • [A MOST TREMENDOUS HUMMING IS HEARD.]
  • PURGANAX:
  • Ha! what do I hear?
  • [ENTER THE GADFLY.]
  • MAMMON:
  • Your Gadfly, as it seems, is tired of gadding.
  • GADFLY:
  • Hum! hum! hum! _220
  • From the lakes of the Alps, and the cold gray scalps
  • Of the mountains, I come!
  • Hum! hum! hum!
  • From Morocco and Fez, and the high palaces
  • Of golden Byzantium; _225
  • From the temples divine of old Palestine,
  • From Athens and Rome,
  • With a ha! and a hum!
  • I come! I come!
  • All inn-doors and windows _230
  • Were open to me:
  • I saw all that sin does,
  • Which lamps hardly see
  • That burn in the night by the curtained bed,--
  • The impudent lamps! for they blushed not red, _235
  • Dinging and singing,
  • From slumber I rung her,
  • Loud as the clank of an ironmonger;
  • Hum! hum! hum!
  • Far, far, far! _240
  • With the trump of my lips, and the sting at my hips,
  • I drove her--afar!
  • Far, far, far!
  • From city to city, abandoned of pity,
  • A ship without needle or star;-- _245
  • Homeless she passed, like a cloud on the blast,
  • Seeking peace, finding war;--
  • She is here in her car,
  • From afar, and afar;--
  • Hum! hum! _250
  • I have stung her and wrung her,
  • The venom is working;--
  • And if you had hung her
  • With canting and quirking,
  • She could not be deader than she will be soon;-- _255
  • I have driven her close to you, under the moon,
  • Night and day, hum! hum! ha!
  • I have hummed her and drummed her
  • From place to place, till at last I have dumbed her,
  • Hum! hum! hum! _260
  • NOTE:
  • _260 Edd. 1820, 1839 have no stage direction after this line.
  • [ENTER THE LEECH AND THE RAT.]
  • LEECH:
  • I will suck
  • Blood or muck!
  • The disease of the state is a plethory,
  • Who so fit to reduce it as I?
  • RAT:
  • I'll slily seize and _265
  • Let blood from her weasand,--
  • Creeping through crevice, and chink, and cranny,
  • With my snaky tail, and my sides so scranny.
  • PURGANAX:
  • Aroint ye! thou unprofitable worm!
  • [TO THE LEECH.]
  • And thou, dull beetle, get thee back to hell! _270
  • [TO THE GADFLY.]
  • To sting the ghosts of Babylonian kings,
  • And the ox-headed Io--
  • SWINE (WITHIN):
  • Ugh, ugh, ugh!
  • Hail! Iona the divine,
  • We will be no longer Swine,
  • But Bulls with horns and dewlaps.
  • RAT:
  • For, _275
  • You know, my lord, the Minotaur--
  • PURGANAX (FIERCELY):
  • Be silent! get to hell! or I will call
  • The cat out of the kitchen. Well, Lord Mammon,
  • This is a pretty business.
  • [EXIT THE RAT.]
  • MAMMON:
  • I will go
  • And spell some scheme to make it ugly then.-- _280
  • [EXIT.]
  • [ENTER SWELLFOOT.]
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • She is returned! Taurina is in Thebes,
  • When Swellfoot wishes that she were in hell!
  • Oh, Hymen, clothed in yellow jealousy,
  • And waving o'er the couch of wedded kings
  • The torch of Discord with its fiery hair; _285
  • This is thy work, thou patron saint of queens!
  • Swellfoot is wived! though parted by the sea,
  • The very name of wife had conjugal rights;
  • Her cursed image ate, drank, slept with me,
  • And in the arms of Adiposa oft 290
  • Her memory has received a husband's--
  • [A LOUD TUMULT, AND CRIES OF 'IONA FOR EVER --NO SWELLFOOT!']
  • Hark!
  • How the Swine cry Iona Taurina;
  • I suffer the real presence; Purganax,
  • Off with her head!
  • PURGANAX:
  • But I must first impanel
  • A jury of the Pigs.
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Pack them then. _295
  • PURGANAX:
  • Or fattening some few in two separate sties.
  • And giving them clean straw, tying some bits
  • Of ribbon round their legs--giving their Sows
  • Some tawdry lace, and bits of lustre glass,
  • And their young Boars white and red rags, and tails _300
  • Of cows, and jay feathers, and sticking cauliflowers
  • Between the ears of the old ones; and when
  • They are persuaded, that by the inherent virtue
  • Of these things, they are all imperial Pigs,
  • Good Lord! they'd rip each other's bellies up, _305
  • Not to say, help us in destroying her.
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • This plan might be tried too;--where's General Laoctonos?
  • [ENTER LAOCTONOS AND DAKRY.]
  • It is my royal pleasure
  • That you, Lord General, bring the head and body,
  • If separate it would please me better, hither _310
  • Of Queen Iona.
  • LAOCTONOS:
  • That pleasure I well knew,
  • And made a charge with those battalions bold,
  • Called, from their dress and grin, the royal apes,
  • Upon the Swine, who in a hollow square
  • Enclosed her, and received the first attack _315
  • Like so many rhinoceroses, and then
  • Retreating in good order, with bare tusks
  • And wrinkled snouts presented to the foe,
  • Bore her in triumph to the public sty.
  • What is still worse, some Sows upon the ground _320
  • Have given the ape-guards apples, nuts, and gin,
  • And they all whisk their tails aloft, and cry,
  • 'Long live Iona! down with Swellfoot!'
  • PURGANAX:
  • Hark!
  • THE SWINE (WITHOUT):
  • Long live Iona! down with Swellfoot!
  • DAKRY:
  • I
  • Went to the garret of the swineherd's tower, _325
  • Which overlooks the sty, and made a long
  • Harangue (all words) to the assembled Swine,
  • Of delicacy mercy, judgement, law,
  • Morals, and precedents, and purity,
  • Adultery, destitution, and divorce, _330
  • Piety, faith, and state necessity,
  • And how I loved the Queen!--and then I wept
  • With the pathos of my own eloquence,
  • And every tear turned to a mill-stone, which
  • Brained many a gaping Pig, and there was made _335
  • A slough of blood and brains upon the place,
  • Greased with the pounded bacon; round and round
  • The mill-stones rolled, ploughing the pavement up,
  • And hurling Sucking-Pigs into the air,
  • With dust and stones.--
  • [ENTER MAMMON.]
  • MAMMON:
  • I wonder that gray wizards _340
  • Like you should be so beardless in their schemes;
  • It had been but a point of policy
  • To keep Iona and the Swine apart.
  • Divide and rule! but ye have made a junction
  • Between two parties who will govern you _345
  • But for my art.--Behold this BAG! it is
  • The poison BAG of that Green Spider huge,
  • On which our spies skulked in ovation through
  • The streets of Thebes, when they were paved with dead:
  • A bane so much the deadlier fills it now _350
  • As calumny is worse than death,--for here
  • The Gadfly's venom, fifty times distilled,
  • Is mingled with the vomit of the Leech,
  • In due proportion, and black ratsbane, which
  • That very Rat, who, like the Pontic tyrant, _355
  • Nurtures himself on poison, dare not touch;--
  • All is sealed up with the broad seal of Fraud,
  • Who is the Devil's Lord High Chancellor,
  • And over it the Primate of all Hell
  • Murmured this pious baptism:--'Be thou called _360
  • The GREEN BAG; and this power and grace be thine:
  • That thy contents, on whomsoever poured,
  • Turn innocence to guilt, and gentlest looks
  • To savage, foul, and fierce deformity.
  • Let all baptized by thy infernal dew _365
  • Be called adulterer, drunkard, liar, wretch!
  • No name left out which orthodoxy loves,
  • Court Journal or legitimate Review!--
  • Be they called tyrant, beast, fool, glutton, lover
  • Of other wives and husbands than their own-- _370
  • The heaviest sin on this side of the Alps!
  • Wither they to a ghastly caricature
  • Of what was human!--let not man or beast
  • Behold their face with unaverted eyes!
  • Or hear their names with ears that tingle not _375
  • With blood of indignation, rage, and shame!'--
  • This is a perilous liquor;--good my Lords.--
  • [SWELLFOOT APPROACHES TO TOUCH THE GREEN BAG.]
  • Beware! for God's sake, beware!-if you should break
  • The seal, and touch the fatal liquor--
  • NOTE:
  • _373 or edition 1820; nor edition 1839.
  • PURGANAX:
  • There,
  • Give it to me. I have been used to handle _380
  • All sorts of poisons. His dread Majesty
  • Only desires to see the colour of it.
  • MAMMON:
  • Now, with a little common sense, my Lords,
  • Only undoing all that has been done
  • (Yet so as it may seem we but confirm it), _385
  • Our victory is assured. We must entice
  • Her Majesty from the sty, and make the Pigs
  • Believe that the contents of the GREEN BAG
  • Are the true test of guilt or innocence.
  • And that, if she be guilty, 'twill transform her _390
  • To manifest deformity like guilt.
  • If innocent, she will become transfigured
  • Into an angel, such as they say she is;
  • And they will see her flying through the air,
  • So bright that she will dim the noonday sun; _395
  • Showering down blessings in the shape of comfits.
  • This, trust a priest, is just the sort of thing
  • Swine will believe. I'll wager you will see them
  • Climbing upon the thatch of their low sties,
  • With pieces of smoked glass, to watch her sail _400
  • Among the clouds, and some will hold the flaps
  • Of one another's ears between their teeth,
  • To catch the coming hail of comfits in.
  • You, Purganax, who have the gift o' the gab,
  • Make them a solemn speech to this effect: _405
  • I go to put in readiness the feast
  • Kept to the honour of our goddess Famine,
  • Where, for more glory, let the ceremony
  • Take place of the uglification of the Queen.
  • DAKRY (TO SWELLFOOT):
  • I, as the keeper of your sacred conscience, _410
  • Humbly remind your Majesty that the care
  • Of your high office, as Man-milliner
  • To red Bellona, should not be deferred.
  • PURGANAX:
  • All part, in happier plight to meet again.
  • [EXEUNT.]
  • END OF THE ACT 1.
  • ACT 2.
  • SCENE 1.2:
  • THE PUBLIC STY.
  • THE B0ARS IN FULL ASSEMBLY.
  • ENTER PUEGANAX.
  • PURGANAX:
  • Grant me your patience, Gentlemen and Boars,
  • Ye, by whose patience under public burthens
  • The glorious constitution of these sties
  • Subsists, and shall subsist. The Lean-Pig rates
  • Grow with the growing populace of Swine, _5
  • The taxes, that true source of Piggishness
  • (How can I find a more appropriate term
  • To include religion, morals, peace, and plenty,
  • And all that fit Boeotia as a nation
  • To teach the other nations how to live?), _10
  • Increase with Piggishness itself; and still
  • Does the revenue, that great spring of all
  • The patronage, and pensions, and by-payments,
  • Which free-born Pigs regard with jealous eyes,
  • Diminish, till at length, by glorious steps, _15
  • All the land's produce will be merged in taxes,
  • And the revenue will amount to--nothing!
  • The failure of a foreign market for
  • Sausages, bristles, and blood-puddings,
  • And such home manufactures, is but partial; _20
  • And, that the population of the Pigs,
  • Instead of hog-wash, has been fed on straw
  • And water, is a fact which is--you know--
  • That is--it is a state-necessity--
  • Temporary, of course. Those impious Pigs, _25
  • Who, by frequent squeaks, have dared impugn
  • The settled Swellfoot system, or to make
  • Irreverent mockery of the genuflexions
  • Inculcated by the arch-priest, have been whipped
  • Into a loyal and an orthodox whine. _30
  • Things being in this happy state, the Queen
  • Iona--
  • NOTE:
  • _16 land's]lands edition 1820.
  • A LOUD CRY FROM THE PIGS:
  • She is innocent! most innocent!
  • PURGANAX:
  • That is the very thing that I was saying,
  • Gentlemen Swine; the Queen Iona being
  • Most innocent, no doubt, returns to Thebes, _35
  • And the lean Sows and Bears collect about her,
  • Wishing to make her think that WE believe
  • (I mean those more substantial Pigs, who swill
  • Rich hog-wash, while the others mouth damp straw)
  • That she is guilty; thus, the Lean-Pig faction _40
  • Seeks to obtain that hog-wash, which has been
  • Your immemorial right, and which I will
  • Maintain you in to the last drop of--
  • A BOAR (INTERRUPTING HIM):
  • What
  • Does any one accuse her of?
  • PURGANAX:
  • Why, no one
  • Makes ANY positive accusation;--but _45
  • There were hints dropped, and so the privy wizards
  • Conceived that it became them to advise
  • His Majesty to investigate their truth;--
  • Not for his own sake; he could be content
  • To let his wife play any pranks she pleased, _50
  • If, by that sufferance, HE could please the Pigs;
  • But then he fears the morals of the Swine,
  • The Sows especially, and what effect
  • It might produce upon the purity and
  • Religion of the rising generation _55
  • Of Sucking-Pigs, if it could be suspected
  • That Queen Iona--
  • [A PAUSE.]
  • FIRST BOAR:
  • Well, go on; we long
  • To hear what she can possibly have done.
  • PURGANAX:
  • Why, it is hinted, that a certain Bull--
  • Thus much is KNOWN:--the milk-white Bulls that feed _60
  • Beside Clitumnus and the crystal lakes
  • Of the Cisalpine mountains, in fresh dews
  • Of lotus-grass and blossoming asphodel
  • Sleeking their silken hair, and with sweet breath
  • Loading the morning winds until they faint _65
  • With living fragrance, are so beautiful!--
  • Well, _I_ say nothing;--but Europa rode
  • On such a one from Asia into Crete,
  • And the enamoured sea grew calm beneath
  • His gliding beauty. And Pasiphae, _70
  • Iona's grandmother,--but SHE is innocent!
  • And that both you and I, and all assert.
  • FIRST BOAR:
  • Most innocent!
  • PURGANAX:
  • Behold this BAG; a bag--
  • SECOND BOAR:
  • Oh! no GREEN BAGS!! Jealousy's eyes are green,
  • Scorpions are green, and water-snakes, and efts, _75
  • And verdigris, and--
  • PURGANAX:
  • Honourable Swine,
  • In Piggish souls can prepossessions reign?
  • Allow me to remind you, grass is green--
  • All flesh is grass;--no bacon but is flesh--
  • Ye are but bacon. This divining BAG _80
  • (Which is not green, but only bacon colour)
  • Is filled with liquor, which if sprinkled o'er
  • A woman guilty of--we all know what--
  • Makes her so hideous, till she finds one blind
  • She never can commit the like again. _85
  • If innocent, she will turn into an angel,
  • And rain down blessings in the shape of comfits
  • As she flies up to heaven. Now, my proposal
  • Is to convert her sacred Majesty
  • Into an angel (as I am sure we shall do), _90
  • By pouring on her head this mystic water.
  • [SHOWING THE BAG.]
  • I know that she is innocent; I wish
  • Only to prove her so to all the world.
  • FIRST BOAR:
  • Excellent, just, and noble Purganax.
  • SECOND BOAR:
  • How glorious it will be to see her Majesty _95
  • Flying above our heads, her petticoats
  • Streaming like--like--like--
  • THIRD BOAR:
  • Anything.
  • PURGANAX:
  • Oh no!
  • But like a standard of an admiral's ship,
  • Or like the banner of a conquering host,
  • Or like a cloud dyed in the dying day, _100
  • Unravelled on the blast from a white mountain;
  • Or like a meteor, or a war-steed's mane,
  • Or waterfall from a dizzy precipice
  • Scattered upon the wind.
  • FIRST BOAR:
  • Or a cow's tail.
  • SECOND BOAR:
  • Or ANYTHING, as the learned Boar observed. _105
  • PURGANAX:
  • Gentlemen Boars, I move a resolution,
  • That her most sacred Majesty should be
  • Invited to attend the feast of Famine,
  • And to receive upon her chaste white body
  • Dews of Apotheosis from this BAG. _110
  • [A GREAT CONFUSION IS HEARD OF THE PIGS OUT OF DOORS, WHICH
  • COMMUNICATES ITSELF TO THOSE WITHIN. DURING THE FIRST STROPHE, THE
  • DOORS OF THE STY ARE STAVED IN, AND A NUMBER OF EXCEEDINGLY LEAN PIGS
  • AND SOWS AND BOARS RUSH IN.]
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • No! Yes!
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Yes! No!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • A law!
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • A flaw!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Porkers, we shall lose our wash, _115
  • Or must share it with the Lean-Pigs!
  • FIRST BOAR:
  • Order! order! be not rash!
  • Was there ever such a scene, Pigs!
  • AN OLD SOW (RUSHING IN):
  • I never saw so fine a dash
  • Since I first began to wean Pigs. _120
  • SECOND BOAR (SOLEMNLY):
  • The Queen will be an angel time enough.
  • I vote, in form of an amendment, that
  • Purganax rub a little of that stuff
  • Upon his face.
  • PURGANAX [HIS HEART IS SEEN TO BEAT THROUGH HIS WAISTCOAT]:
  • Gods! What would ye be at?
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Purganax has plainly shown a _125
  • Cloven foot and jackdaw feather.
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • I vote Swellfoot and Iona
  • Try the magic test together;
  • Whenever royal spouses bicker,
  • Both should try the magic liquor. _130
  • AN OLD BOAR [ASIDE]:
  • A miserable state is that of Pigs,
  • For if their drivers would tear caps and wigs,
  • The Swine must bite each other's ear therefore.
  • AN OLD SOW [ASIDE]:
  • A wretched lot Jove has assigned to Swine,
  • Squabbling makes Pig-herds hungry, and they dine _135
  • On bacon, and whip Sucking-Pigs the more.
  • CHORUS:
  • Hog-wash has been ta'en away:
  • If the Bull-Queen is divested,
  • We shall be in every way
  • Hunted, stripped, exposed, molested; _140
  • Let us do whate'er we may,
  • That she shall not be arrested.
  • QUEEN, we entrench you with walls of brawn,
  • And palisades of tusks, sharp as a bayonet:
  • Place your most sacred person here. We pawn _145
  • Our lives that none a finger dare to lay on it.
  • Those who wrong you, wrong us;
  • Those who hate you, hate us;
  • Those who sting you, sting us;
  • Those who bait you, bait us; _150
  • The ORACLE is now about to be
  • Fulfilled by circumvolving destiny;
  • Which says: 'Thebes, choose REFORM or CIVIL WAR,
  • When through your streets, instead of hare with dogs,
  • A CONSORT QUEEN shall hunt a KING with Hogs, _155
  • Riding upon the IONIAN MINOTAUR.'
  • NOTE:
  • _154 streets instead edition 1820.
  • [ENTER IONA TAURINA.]
  • IONA TAURINA (COMING FORWARD):
  • Gentlemen Swine, and gentle Lady-Pigs,
  • The tender heart of every Boar acquits
  • Their QUEEN, of any act incongruous
  • With native Piggishness, and she, reposing _160
  • With confidence upon the grunting nation,
  • Has thrown herself, her cause, her life, her all,
  • Her innocence, into their Hoggish arms;
  • Nor has the expectation been deceived
  • Of finding shelter there. Yet know, great Boars, _165
  • (For such whoever lives among you finds you,
  • And so do I), the innocent are proud!
  • I have accepted your protection only
  • In compliment of your kind love and care,
  • Not for necessity. The innocent _170
  • Are safest there where trials and dangers wait;
  • Innocent Queens o'er white-hot ploughshares tread
  • Unsinged, and ladies, Erin's laureate sings it,
  • Decked with rare gems, and beauty rarer still,
  • Walked from Killarney to the Giant's Causeway, _175
  • Through rebels, smugglers, troops of yeomanry,
  • White-boys and Orange-boys, and constables,
  • Tithe-proctors, and excise people, uninjured!
  • Thus I!--
  • Lord Purganax, I do commit myself _180
  • Into your custody, and am prepared
  • To stand the test, whatever it may be!
  • NOTE:
  • (_173 'Rich and rare were the gems she wore.' See Moore's "Irish
  • Melodies".-- [SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
  • PURGANAX:
  • This magnanimity in your sacred Majesty
  • Must please the Pigs. You cannot fail of being
  • A heavenly angel. Smoke your bits of glass, _185
  • Ye loyal Swine, or her transfiguration
  • Will blind your wondering eyes.
  • AN OLD BOAR [ASIDE]:
  • Take care, my Lord,
  • They do not smoke you first.
  • PURGANAX:
  • At the approaching feast
  • Of Famine, let the expiation be.
  • SWINE:
  • Content! content!
  • IONA TAURINA [ASIDE]:
  • I, most content of all, _190
  • Know that my foes even thus prepare their fall!
  • [EXEUNT OMNES.]
  • SCENE 2.2:
  • THE INTERIOR OF THE TEMPLE OF FAMINE.
  • THE STATUE OF THE GODDESS, A SKELETON CLOTHED IN PARTI-COLOURED RAGS,
  • SEATED UPON A HEAP OF SKULLS AND LOAVES INTERMINGLED.
  • A NUMBER OF EXCEEDINGLY FAT PRIESTS IN BLACK GARMENTS ARRAYED ON EACH
  • SIDE, WITH MARROW-BONES AND CLEAVERS IN THEIR HANDS.
  • [SOLOMON, THE COURT PORKMAN.]
  • A FLOURISH OF TRUMPETS.
  • ENTER MAMMON AS ARCH-PRIEST, SWELLFOOT, DAKRY, PURGANAX, LAOCTONOS,
  • FOLLOWED BY IONA TAURINA GUARDED.
  • ON THE OTHER SIDE ENTER THE SWINE.
  • CHORUS OF PRIESTS, ACCOMPANIED BY THE COURT PORKMAN ON MARROW-BONES
  • AND CLEAVERS:
  • GODDESS bare, and gaunt, and pale,
  • Empress of the world, all hail!
  • What though Cretans old called thee
  • City-crested Cybele?
  • We call thee FAMINE! _5
  • Goddess of fasts and feasts, starving and cramming!
  • Through thee, for emperors, kings, and priests and lords,
  • Who rule by viziers, sceptres, bank-notes, words,
  • The earth pours forth its plenteous fruits,
  • Corn, wool, linen, flesh, and roots-- _10
  • Those who consume these fruits through thee grow fat,
  • Those who produce these fruits through thee grow lean,
  • Whatever change takes place, oh, stick to that!
  • And let things be as they have ever been;
  • At least while we remain thy priests, _15
  • And proclaim thy fasts and feasts.
  • Through thee the sacred SWELLF00T dynasty
  • Is based upon a rock amid that sea
  • Whose waves are Swine--so let it ever be!
  • [SWELLFOOT, ETC., SEAT THEMSELVES AT A TABLE MAGNIFICENTLY COVERED AT
  • THE UPPER END OF THE TEMPLE.
  • ATTENDANTS PASS OVER THE STAGE WITH HOG-WASH IN PAILS.
  • A NUMBER OF PIGS, EXCEEDINGLY LEAN, FOLLOW THEM LICKING UP THE WASH.]
  • MAMMON:
  • I fear your sacred Majesty has lost _20
  • The appetite which you were used to have.
  • Allow me now to recommend this dish--
  • A simple kickshaw by your Persian cook,
  • Such as is served at the great King's second table.
  • The price and pains which its ingredients cost _25
  • Might have maintained some dozen families
  • A winter or two--not more--so plain a dish
  • Could scarcely disagree.--
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • After the trial,
  • And these fastidious Pigs are gone, perhaps
  • I may recover my lost appetite,-- _30
  • I feel the gout flying about my stomach--
  • Give me a glass of Maraschino punch.
  • PURGANAX (FILLING HIS GLASS, AND STANDING UP):
  • The glorious Constitution of the Pigs!
  • ALL:
  • A toast! a toast! stand up, and three times three!
  • DAKRY:
  • No heel-taps--darken daylights! --
  • LAOCTONOS:
  • Claret, somehow, _35
  • Puts me in mind of blood, and blood of claret!
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • Laoctonos is fishing for a compliment,
  • But 'tis his due. Yes, you have drunk more wine,
  • And shed more blood, than any man in Thebes.
  • [TO PURGANAX.]
  • For God's sake stop the grunting of those Pigs! _40
  • PURGANAX:
  • We dare not, Sire, 'tis Famine's privilege.
  • CHORUS OF SWINE:
  • Hail to thee, hail to thee, Famine!
  • Thy throne is on blood, and thy robe is of rags;
  • Thou devil which livest on damning;
  • Saint of new churches, and cant, and GREEN BAGS, _45
  • Till in pity and terror thou risest,
  • Confounding the schemes of the wisest;
  • When thou liftest thy skeleton form,
  • When the loaves and the skulls roll about,
  • We will greet thee-the voice of a storm _50
  • Would be lost in our terrible shout!
  • Then hail to thee, hail to thee, Famine!
  • Hail to thee, Empress of Earth!
  • When thou risest, dividing possessions;
  • When thou risest, uprooting oppressions, _55
  • In the pride of thy ghastly mirth;
  • Over palaces, temples, and graves,
  • We will rush as thy minister-slaves,
  • Trampling behind in thy train,
  • Till all be made level again! _60
  • MAMMON:
  • I hear a crackling of the giant bones
  • Of the dread image, and in the black pits
  • Which once were eyes, I see two livid flames.
  • These prodigies are oracular, and show
  • The presence of the unseen Deity. _65
  • Mighty events are hastening to their doom!
  • SWELLFOOT:
  • I only hear the lean and mutinous Swine
  • Grunting about the temple.
  • DAKRY:
  • In a crisis
  • Of such exceeding delicacy, I think
  • We ought to put her Majesty, the QUEEN, _70
  • Upon her trial without delay.
  • MAMMON:
  • THE BAG
  • Is here.
  • PURGANAX:
  • I have rehearsed the entire scene
  • With an ox-bladder and some ditchwater,
  • On Lady P--; it cannot fail.
  • [TAKING UP THE BAG.]
  • Your Majesty
  • [TO SWELLFOOT.]
  • In such a filthy business had better _75
  • Stand on one side, lest it should sprinkle you.
  • A spot or two on me would do no harm,
  • Nay, it might hide the blood, which the sad Genius
  • Of the Green Isle has fixed, as by a spell,
  • Upon my brow--which would stain all its seas, _80
  • But which those seas could never wash away!
  • IONA TAURINA:
  • My Lord, I am ready--nay, I am impatient
  • To undergo the test.
  • [A GRACEFUL FIGURE IN A SEMI-TRANSPARENT VEIL PASSES UNNOTICED THROUGH
  • THE TEMPLE; THE WORD "LIBERTY" IS SEEN THROUGH THE VEIL, AS IF IT WERE
  • WRITTEN IN FIRE UPON ITS FOREHEAD. ITS WORDS ARE ALMOST DROWNED IN THE
  • FURIOUS GRUNTING OF THE PIGS, AND THE BUSINESS OF THE TRIAL. SHE
  • KNEELS ON THE STEPS OF THE ALTAR, AND SPEAKS IN TONES AT FIRST FAINT
  • AND LOW, BUT WHICH EVER BECOME LOUDER AND LOUDER.]
  • Mighty Empress! Death's white wife!
  • Ghastly mother-in-law of Life! _85
  • By the God who made thee such,
  • By the magic of thy touch,
  • By the starving and the cramming
  • Of fasts and feasts! by thy dread self, O Famine!
  • I charge thee! when thou wake the multitude, _90
  • Thou lead them not upon the paths of blood.
  • The earth did never mean her foison
  • For those who crown life's cup with poison
  • Of fanatic rage and meaningless revenge--
  • But for those radiant spirits, who are still _95
  • The standard-bearers in the van of Change.
  • Be they th' appointed stewards, to fill
  • The lap of Pain, and Toil, and Age!--
  • Remit, O Queen! thy accustomed rage!
  • Be what thou art not! In voice faint and low _100
  • FREEDOM calls "Famine",--her eternal foe,
  • To brief alliance, hollow truce.--Rise now!
  • [WHILST THE VEILED FIGURE HAS BEEN CHANTING THIS STROPHE, MAMMON,
  • DAKRY, LAOCTONOS, AND SWELLFOOT, HAVE SURROUNDED IONA TAURINA, WHO,
  • WITH HER HANDS FOLDED ON HER BREAST, AND HER EYES LIFTED TO HEAVEN,
  • STANDS, AS WITH SAINT-LIKE RESIGNATION, TO WAIT THE ISSUE OF THE
  • BUSINESS, IN PERFECT CONFIDENCE OF HER INNOCENCE.]
  • [PURGANAX, AFTER UNSEALING THE GREEN BAG, IS GRAVELY ABOUT TO POUR THE
  • LIQUOR UPON HER HEAD, WHEN SUDDENLY THE WHOLE EXPRESSION OF HER FIGURE
  • AND COUNTENANCE CHANGES; SHE SNATCHES IT FROM HIS HAND WITH A LOUD
  • LAUGH OF TRIUMPH, AND EMPTIES IT OVER SWELLFOOT AND HIS WHOLE COURT,
  • WHO ARE INSTANTLY CHANGED INTO A NUMBER OF FILTHY AND UGLY ANIMALS,
  • AND RUSH OUT OF THE TEMPLE. THE IMAGE OF FAMINE THEN ARISES WITH A
  • TREMENDOUS SOUND, THE PIGS BEGIN SCRAMBLING FOR THE LOAVES, AND ARE
  • TRJPPED UP BY THE SKULLS; ALL THOSE WHO EAT THE LOAVES ARE TURNED INTO
  • BULLS, AND ARRANGE THEMSELVES QUIETLY BEHIND THE ALTAR. THE IMAGE OF
  • FAMINE SINKS THROUGH A CHASM IN THE EARTH, AND A MINOTAUR RISES.]
  • MINOTAUR:
  • I am the Ionian Minotaur, the mightiest
  • Of all Europa's taurine progeny--
  • I am the old traditional Man-Bull; _105
  • And from my ancestors having been Ionian,
  • I am called Ion, which, by interpretation,
  • Is JOHN; in plain Theban, that is to say,
  • My name's JOHN BULL; I am a famous hunter,
  • And can leaf any gate in all Boeotia, _110
  • Even the palings of the royal park,
  • Or double ditch about the new enclosures;
  • And if your Majesty will deign to mount me,
  • At least till you have hunted down your game,
  • I will not throw you. _115
  • IONA TAURINA [DURING THIS SPEECH SHE HAS BEEN PUTTING ON BOOTS AND
  • SPURS, AND A HUNTING-CAP, BUCKISHLY COCKED ON ONE SIDE, AND TUCKING UP
  • HER HAIR, SHE LEAPS NIMBLY ON HIS BACK]:
  • Hoa! hoa! tallyho! tallyho! ho! ho!
  • Come, let us hunt these ugly badgers down,
  • These stinking foxes, these devouring otters,
  • These hares, these wolves, these anything but men.
  • Hey, for a whipper-in! my loyal Pigs
  • Now let your noses be as keen as beagles', _120
  • Your steps as swift as greyhounds', and your cries
  • More dulcet and symphonious than the bells
  • Of village-towers, on sunshine holiday;
  • Wake all the dewy woods with jangling music.
  • Give them no law (are they not beasts of blood?) _125
  • But such as they gave you. Tallyho! ho!
  • Through forest, furze, and bog, and den, and desert,
  • Pursue the ugly beasts! tallyho! ho!
  • FULL CHORUS OF I0NA AND THE SWINE:
  • Tallyho! tallyho!
  • Through rain, hail, and snow, _130
  • Through brake, gorse, and briar,
  • Through fen, flood, and mire,
  • We go! we go!
  • Tallyho! tallyho!
  • Through pond, ditch, and slough, _135
  • Wind them, and find them,
  • Like the Devil behind them,
  • Tallyho! tallyho!
  • [EXEUNT, IN FULL CRY;
  • IONA DRIVING ON THE SWINE, WITH THE EMPTY GEEEN BAG.]
  • THE END.
  • NOTE ON OEDIPUS TYRANNUS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • In the brief journal I kept in those days, I find recorded, in August,
  • 1820, Shelley 'begins "Swellfoot the Tyrant", suggested by the pigs at
  • the fair of San Giuliano.' This was the period of Queen Caroline's
  • landing in England, and the struggles made by George IV to get rid of
  • her claims; which failing, Lord Castlereagh placed the "Green Bag" on
  • the table of the House of Commons, demanding in the King's name that
  • an enquiry should be instituted into his wife's conduct. These
  • circumstances were the theme of all conversation among the English. We
  • were then at the Baths of San Giuliano. A friend came to visit us on
  • the day when a fair was held in the square, beneath our windows:
  • Shelley read to us his "Ode to Liberty"; and was riotously accompanied
  • by the grunting of a quantity of pigs brought for sale to the fair. He
  • compared it to the 'chorus of frogs' in the satiric drama of
  • Aristophanes; and, it being an hour of merriment, and one ludicrous
  • association suggesting another, he imagined a political-satirical
  • drama on the circumstances of the day, to which the pigs would serve
  • as chorus--and "Swellfoot" was begun. When finished, it was
  • transmitted to England, printed, and published anonymously; but
  • stifled at the very dawn of its existence by the Society for the
  • Suppression of Vice, who threatened to prosecute it, if not
  • immediately withdrawn. The friend who had taken the trouble of
  • bringing it out, of course did not think it worth the annoyance and
  • expense of a contest, and it was laid aside.
  • Hesitation of whether it would do honour to Shelley prevented my
  • publishing it at first. But I cannot bring myself to keep back
  • anything he ever wrote; for each word is fraught with the peculiar
  • views and sentiments which he believed to be beneficial to the human
  • race, and the bright light of poetry irradiates every thought. The
  • world has a right to the entire compositions of such a man; for it
  • does not live and thrive by the outworn lesson of the dullard or the
  • hypocrite, but by the original free thoughts of men of genius, who
  • aspire to pluck bright truth
  • 'from the pale-faced moon;
  • Or dive into the bottom of the deep
  • Where fathom-line would never touch the ground,
  • And pluck up drowned'
  • truth. Even those who may dissent from his opinions will consider that
  • he was a man of genius, and that the world will take more interest in
  • his slightest word than in the waters of Lethe which are so eagerly
  • prescribed as medicinal for all its wrongs and woe. This drama,
  • however, must not be judged for more than was meant. It is a mere
  • plaything of the imagination; which even may not excite smiles among
  • many, who will not see wit in those combinations of thought which were
  • full of the ridiculous to the author. But, like everything he wrote,
  • it breathes that deep sympathy for the sorrows of humanity, and
  • indignation against its oppressors, which make it worthy of his name.
  • ***
  • EPIPSYCHIDION.
  • VERSES ADDRESSED TO THE NOBLE AND UNFORTUNATE LADY, EMILIA V--,
  • NOW IMPRISONED IN THE CONVENT OF --.
  • L'anima amante si slancia fuori del creato, e si crea nell' infinito un
  • Mondo tutto per essa, diverso assai da questo oscuro e pauroso baratro.
  • HER OWN WORDS.
  • ["Epipsychidion" was composed at Pisa, January, February, 1821, and
  • published without the author's name, in the following summer, by C. &
  • J. Ollier, London. The poem was included by Mrs. Shelley in the
  • "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions. Amongst the Shelley manuscripts
  • in the Bodleian is a first draft of "Epipsychidion", 'consisting of
  • three versions, more or less complete, of the "Preface
  • [Advertisement]", a version in ink and pencil, much cancelled, of the
  • last eighty lines of the poem, and some additional lines which did not
  • appear in print' ("Examination of the Shelley manuscripts in the
  • Bodleian Library, by C.D. Locock". Oxford, Clarendon Press, 1903, page
  • 3). This draft, the writing of which is 'extraordinarily confused and
  • illegible,' has been carefully deciphered and printed by Mr. Locock in
  • the volume named above. Our text follows that of the editio princeps,
  • 1821.]
  • ADVERTISEMENT.
  • The Writer of the following lines died at Florence, as he was
  • preparing for a voyage to one of the wildest of the Sporades, which he
  • had bought, and where he had fitted up the ruins of an old building,
  • and where it was his hope to have realised a scheme of life, suited
  • perhaps to that happier and better world of which he is now an
  • inhabitant, but hardly practicable in this. His life was singular;
  • less on account of the romantic vicissitudes which diversified it,
  • than the ideal tinge which it received from his own character and
  • feelings. The present Poem, like the "Vita Nuova" of Dante, is
  • sufficiently intelligible to a certain class of readers without a
  • matter-of-fact history of the circumstances to which it relates and to
  • a certain other class it must ever remain incomprehensible, from a
  • defect of a common organ of perception for the ideas of which it
  • treats. Not but that gran vergogna sarebbe a colui, che rimasse cosa
  • sotto veste di figura, o di colore rettorico: e domandato non sapesse
  • denudare le sue parole da cotal veste, in guisa che avessero verace
  • intendimento.
  • The present poem appears to have been intended by the Writer as the
  • dedication to some longer one. The stanza on the opposite page [1] is
  • almost a literal translation from Dante's famous Canzone
  • Voi, ch' intendendo, il terzo ciel movete, etc.
  • The presumptuous application of the concluding lines to his own
  • composition will raise a smile at the expense of my unfortunate
  • friend: be it a smile not of contempt, but pity. S.
  • [1] i.e. the nine lines which follow, beginning, 'My Song, I fear,'
  • etc.--ED.
  • My Song, I fear that thou wilt find but few
  • Who fitly shalt conceive thy reasoning,
  • Of such hard matter dost thou entertain;
  • Whence, if by misadventure, chance should bring
  • Thee to base company (as chance may do), _5
  • Quite unaware of what thou dost contain,
  • I prithee, comfort thy sweet self again,
  • My last delight! tell them that they are dull,
  • And bid them own that thou art beautiful.
  • EPIPSYCHIDION.
  • Sweet Spirit! Sister of that orphan one,
  • Whose empire is the name thou weepest on,
  • In my heart's temple I suspend to thee
  • These votive wreaths of withered memory.
  • Poor captive bird! who, from thy narrow cage, _5
  • Pourest such music, that it might assuage
  • The rugged hearts of those who prisoned thee,
  • Were they not deaf to all sweet melody;
  • This song shall be thy rose: its petals pale
  • Are dead, indeed, my adored Nightingale! _10
  • But soft and fragrant is the faded blossom,
  • And it has no thorn left to wound thy bosom.
  • High, spirit-winged Heart! who dost for ever
  • Beat thine unfeeling bars with vain endeavour,
  • Till those bright plumes of thought, in which arrayed _15
  • It over-soared this low and worldly shade,
  • Lie shattered; and thy panting, wounded breast
  • Stains with dear blood its unmaternal nest!
  • I weep vain tears: blood would less bitter be,
  • Yet poured forth gladlier, could it profit thee. _20
  • Seraph of Heaven! too gentle to be human,
  • Veiling beneath that radiant form of Woman
  • All that is insupportable in thee
  • Of light, and love, and immortality!
  • Sweet Benediction in the eternal Curse! _25
  • Veiled Glory of this lampless Universe!
  • Thou Moon beyond the clouds! Thou living Form
  • Among the Dead! Thou Star above the Storm!
  • Thou Wonder, and thou Beauty, and thou Terror!
  • Thou Harmony of Nature's art! Thou Mirror _30
  • In whom, as in the splendour of the Sun,
  • All shapes look glorious which thou gazest on!
  • Ay, even the dim words which obscure thee now
  • Flash, lightning-like, with unaccustomed glow;
  • I pray thee that thou blot from this sad song _35
  • All of its much mortality and wrong,
  • With those clear drops, which start like sacred dew
  • From the twin lights thy sweet soul darkens through,
  • Weeping, till sorrow becomes ecstasy:
  • Then smile on it, so that it may not die. _40
  • I never thought before my death to see
  • Youth's vision thus made perfect. Emily,
  • I love thee; though the world by no thin name
  • Will hide that love from its unvalued shame.
  • Would we two had been twins of the same mother! _45
  • Or, that the name my heart lent to another
  • Could be a sister's bond for her and thee,
  • Blending two beams of one eternity!
  • Yet were one lawful and the other true,
  • These names, though dear, could paint not, as is due. _50
  • How beyond refuge I am thine. Ah me!
  • I am not thine: I am a part of THEE.
  • Sweet Lamp! my moth-like Muse has burned its wings
  • Or, like a dying swan who soars and sings,
  • Young Love should teach Time, in his own gray style, _55
  • All that thou art. Art thou not void of guile,
  • A lovely soul formed to be blessed and bless?
  • A well of sealed and secret happiness,
  • Whose waters like blithe light and music are,
  • Vanquishing dissonance and gloom? A Star _60
  • Which moves not in the moving heavens, alone?
  • A Smile amid dark frowns? a gentle tone
  • Amid rude voices? a beloved light?
  • A Solitude, a Refuge, a Delight?
  • A Lute, which those whom Love has taught to play _65
  • Make music on, to soothe the roughest day
  • And lull fond Grief asleep? a buried treasure?
  • A cradle of young thoughts of wingless pleasure?
  • A violet-shrouded grave of Woe?--I measure
  • The world of fancies, seeking one like thee, _70
  • And find--alas! mine own infirmity.
  • She met me, Stranger, upon life's rough way,
  • And lured me towards sweet Death; as Night by Day,
  • Winter by Spring, or Sorrow by swift Hope,
  • Led into light, life, peace. An antelope, _75
  • In the suspended impulse of its lightness,
  • Were less aethereally light: the brightness
  • Of her divinest presence trembles through
  • Her limbs, as underneath a cloud of dew
  • Embodied in the windless heaven of June _80
  • Amid the splendour-winged stars, the Moon
  • Burns, inextinguishably beautiful:
  • And from her lips, as from a hyacinth full
  • Of honey-dew, a liquid murmur drops,
  • Killing the sense with passion; sweet as stops _85
  • Of planetary music heard in trance.
  • In her mild lights the starry spirits dance,
  • The sunbeams of those wells which ever leap
  • Under the lightnings of the soul--too deep
  • For the brief fathom-line of thought or sense. _90
  • The glory of her being, issuing thence,
  • Stains the dead, blank, cold air with a warm shade
  • Of unentangled intermixture, made
  • By Love, of light and motion: one intense
  • Diffusion, one serene Omnipresence, _95
  • Whose flowing outlines mingle in their flowing,
  • Around her cheeks and utmost fingers glowing
  • With the unintermitted blood, which there
  • Quivers, (as in a fleece of snow-like air
  • The crimson pulse of living morning quiver,) _100
  • Continuously prolonged, and ending never,
  • Till they are lost, and in that Beauty furled
  • Which penetrates and clasps and fills the world;
  • Scarce visible from extreme loveliness.
  • Warm fragrance seems to fall from her light dress _105
  • And her loose hair; and where some heavy tress
  • The air of her own speed has disentwined,
  • The sweetness seems to satiate the faint wind;
  • And in the soul a wild odour is felt
  • Beyond the sense, like fiery dews that melt _110
  • Into the bosom of a frozen bud.--
  • See where she stands! a mortal shape indued
  • With love and life and light and deity,
  • And motion which may change but cannot die;
  • An image of some bright Eternity; _115
  • A shadow of some golden dream; a Splendour
  • Leaving the third sphere pilotless; a tender
  • Reflection of the eternal Moon of Love
  • Under whose motions life's dull billows move;
  • A Metaphor of Spring and Youth and Morning; _120
  • A Vision like incarnate April, warning,
  • With smiles and tears, Frost the Anatomy
  • Into his summer grave.
  • Ah, woe is me!
  • What have I dared? where am I lifted? how
  • Shall I descend, and perish not? I know _125
  • That Love makes all things equal: I have heard
  • By mine own heart this joyous truth averred:
  • The spirit of the worm beneath the sod
  • In love and worship, blends itself with God.
  • Spouse! Sister! Angel! Pilot of the Fate _130
  • Whose course has been so starless! O too late
  • Beloved! O too soon adored, by me!
  • For in the fields of Immortality
  • My spirit should at first have worshipped thine,
  • A divine presence in a place divine; _135
  • Or should have moved beside it on this earth,
  • A shadow of that substance, from its birth;
  • But not as now:--I love thee; yes, I feel
  • That on the fountain of my heart a seal
  • Is set, to keep its waters pure and bright _140
  • For thee, since in those TEARS thou hast delight.
  • We--are we not formed, as notes of music are,
  • For one another, though dissimilar;
  • Such difference without discord, as can make
  • Those sweetest sounds, in which all spirits shake _145
  • As trembling leaves in a continuous air?
  • Thy wisdom speaks in me, and bids me dare
  • Beacon the rocks on which high hearts are wrecked.
  • I never was attached to that great sect,
  • Whose doctrine is, that each one should select _150
  • Out of the crowd a mistress or a friend,
  • And all the rest, though fair and wise, commend
  • To cold oblivion, though it is in the code
  • Of modern morals, and the beaten road
  • Which those poor slaves with weary footsteps tread, _155
  • Who travel to their home among the dead
  • By the broad highway of the world, and so
  • With one chained friend, perhaps a jealous foe,
  • The dreariest and the longest journey go.
  • True Love in this differs from gold and clay, _160
  • That to divide is not to take away.
  • Love is like understanding, that grows bright,
  • Gazing on many truths; 'tis like thy light,
  • Imagination! which from earth and sky,
  • And from the depths of human fantasy, _165
  • As from a thousand prisms and mirrors, fills
  • The Universe with glorious beams, and kills
  • Error, the worm, with many a sun-like arrow
  • Of its reverberated lightning. Narrow
  • The heart that loves, the brain that contemplates, _170
  • The life that wears, the spirit that creates
  • One object, and one form, and builds thereby
  • A sepulchre for its eternity.
  • Mind from its object differs most in this:
  • Evil from good; misery from happiness; _175
  • The baser from the nobler; the impure
  • And frail, from what is clear and must endure.
  • If you divide suffering and dross, you may
  • Diminish till it is consumed away;
  • If you divide pleasure and love and thought, _180
  • Each part exceeds the whole; and we know not
  • How much, while any yet remains unshared,
  • Of pleasure may be gained, of sorrow spared:
  • This truth is that deep well, whence sages draw
  • The unenvied light of hope; the eternal law _185
  • By which those live, to whom this world of life
  • Is as a garden ravaged, and whose strife
  • Tills for the promise of a later birth
  • The wilderness of this Elysian earth.
  • There was a Being whom my spirit oft _190
  • Met on its visioned wanderings, far aloft,
  • In the clear golden prime of my youth's dawn,
  • Upon the fairy isles of sunny lawn,
  • Amid the enchanted mountains, and the caves
  • Of divine sleep, and on the air-like waves _195
  • Of wonder-level dream, whose tremulous floor
  • Paved her light steps;--on an imagined shore,
  • Under the gray beak of some promontory
  • She met me, robed in such exceeding glory,
  • That I beheld her not. In solitudes _200
  • Her voice came to me through the whispering woods,
  • And from the fountains, and the odours deep
  • Of flowers, which, like lips murmuring in their sleep
  • Of the sweet kisses which had lulled them there,
  • Breathed but of HER to the enamoured air; _205
  • And from the breezes whether low or loud,
  • And from the rain of every passing cloud,
  • And from the singing of the summer-birds,
  • And from all sounds, all silence. In the words
  • Of antique verse and high romance,--in form, _210
  • Sound, colour--in whatever checks that Storm
  • Which with the shattered present chokes the past;
  • And in that best philosophy, whose taste
  • Makes this cold common hell, our life, a doom
  • As glorious as a fiery martyrdom; _215
  • Her Spirit was the harmony of truth.--
  • Then, from the caverns of my dreamy youth
  • I sprang, as one sandalled with plumes of fire,
  • And towards the lodestar of my one desire,
  • I flitted, like a dizzy moth, whose flight _220
  • Is as a dead leaf's in the owlet light,
  • When it would seek in Hesper's setting sphere
  • A radiant death, a fiery sepulchre,
  • As if it were a lamp of earthly flame.--
  • But She, whom prayers or tears then could not tame, _225
  • Passed, like a God throned on a winged planet,
  • Whose burning plumes to tenfold swiftness fan it,
  • Into the dreary cone of our life's shade;
  • And as a man with mighty loss dismayed,
  • I would have followed, though the grave between _230
  • Yawned like a gulf whose spectres are unseen:
  • When a voice said:--'O thou of hearts the weakest,
  • The phantom is beside thee whom thou seekest.'
  • Then I--'Where?'--the world's echo answered 'where?'
  • And in that silence, and in my despair, _235
  • I questioned every tongueless wind that flew
  • Over my tower of mourning, if it knew
  • Whither 'twas fled, this soul out of my soul;
  • And murmured names and spells which have control
  • Over the sightless tyrants of our fate; _240
  • But neither prayer nor verse could dissipate
  • The night which closed on her; nor uncreate
  • That world within this Chaos, mine and me,
  • Of which she was the veiled Divinity,
  • The world I say of thoughts that worshipped her: _245
  • And therefore I went forth, with hope and fear
  • And every gentle passion sick to death,
  • Feeding my course with expectation's breath,
  • Into the wintry forest of our life;
  • And struggling through its error with vain strife, _250
  • And stumbling in my weakness and my haste,
  • And half bewildered by new forms, I passed,
  • Seeking among those untaught foresters
  • If I could find one form resembling hers,
  • In which she might have masked herself from me. _255
  • There,--One, whose voice was venomed melody
  • Sate by a well, under blue nightshade bowers:
  • The breath of her false mouth was like faint flowers,
  • Her touch was as electric poison,--flame
  • Out of her looks into my vitals came, _260
  • And from her living cheeks and bosom flew
  • A killing air, which pierced like honey-dew
  • Into the core of my green heart, and lay
  • Upon its leaves; until, as hair grown gray
  • O'er a young brow, they hid its unblown prime _265
  • With ruins of unseasonable time.
  • In many mortal forms I rashly sought
  • The shadow of that idol of my thought.
  • And some were fair--but beauty dies away:
  • Others were wise--but honeyed words betray: _270
  • And One was true--oh! why not true to me?
  • Then, as a hunted deer that could not flee,
  • I turned upon my thoughts, and stood at bay,
  • Wounded and weak and panting; the cold day
  • Trembled, for pity of my strife and pain. _275
  • When, like a noonday dawn, there shone again
  • Deliverance. One stood on my path who seemed
  • As like the glorious shape which I had d reamed
  • As is the Moon, whose changes ever run
  • Into themselves, to the eternal Sun; _280
  • The cold chaste Moon, the Queen of Heaven's bright isles,
  • Who makes all beautiful on which she smiles,
  • That wandering shrine of soft yet icy flame
  • Which ever is transformed, yet still the same,
  • And warms not but illumines. Young and fair _285
  • As the descended Spirit of that sphere,
  • She hid me, as the Moon may hide the night
  • From its own darkness, until all was bright
  • Between the Heaven and Earth of my calm mind,
  • And, as a cloud charioted by the wind, _290
  • She led me to a cave in that wild place,
  • And sate beside me, with her downward face
  • Illumining my slumbers, like the Moon
  • Waxing and waning o'er Endymion.
  • And I was laid asleep, spirit and limb, _295
  • And all my being became bright or dim
  • As the Moon's image in a summer sea,
  • According as she smiled or frowned on me;
  • And there I lay, within a chaste cold bed:
  • Alas, I then was nor alive nor dead:-- _300
  • For at her silver voice came Death and Life,
  • Unmindful each of their accustomed strife,
  • Masked like twin babes, a sister and a brother,
  • The wandering hopes of one abandoned mother,
  • And through the cavern without wings they flew, _305
  • And cried 'Away, he is not of our crew.'
  • I wept, and though it be a dream, I weep.
  • What storms then shook the ocean of my sleep,
  • Blotting that Moon, whose pale and waning lips
  • Then shrank as in the sickness of eclipse;-- _310
  • And how my soul was as a lampless sea,
  • And who was then its Tempest; and when She,
  • The Planet of that hour, was quenched, what frost
  • Crept o'er those waters, till from coast to coast
  • The moving billows of my being fell _315
  • Into a death of ice, immovable;--
  • And then--what earthquakes made it gape and split,
  • The white Moon smiling all the while on it,
  • These words conceal:--If not, each word would be
  • The key of staunchless tears. Weep not for me! _320
  • At length, into the obscure Forest came
  • The Vision I had sought through grief and shame.
  • Athwart that wintry wilderness of thorns
  • Flashed from her motion splendour like the Morn's,
  • And from her presence life was radiated _325
  • Through the gray earth and branches bare and dead;
  • So that her way was paved, and roofed above
  • With flowers as soft as thoughts of budding love;
  • And music from her respiration spread
  • Like light,--all other sounds were penetrated _330
  • By the small, still, sweet spirit of that sound,
  • So that the savage winds hung mute around;
  • And odours warm and fresh fell from her hair
  • Dissolving the dull cold in the frore air:
  • Soft as an Incarnation of the Sun, _335
  • When light is changed to love, this glorious One
  • Floated into the cavern where I lay,
  • And called my Spirit, and the dreaming clay
  • Was lifted by the thing that dreamed below
  • As smoke by fire, and in her beauty's glow _340
  • I stood, and felt the dawn of my long night
  • Was penetrating me with living light:
  • I knew it was the Vision veiled from me
  • So many years--that it was Emily.
  • Twin Spheres of light who rule this passive Earth, _345
  • This world of loves, this ME; and into birth
  • Awaken all its fruits and flowers, and dart
  • Magnetic might into its central heart;
  • And lift its billows and its mists, and guide
  • By everlasting laws, each wind and tide _350
  • To its fit cloud, and its appointed cave;
  • And lull its storms, each in the craggy grave
  • Which was its cradle, luring to faint bowers
  • The armies of the rainbow-winged showers;
  • And, as those married lights, which from the towers _355
  • Of Heaven look forth and fold the wandering globe
  • In liquid sleep and splendour, as a robe;
  • And all their many-mingled influence blend,
  • If equal, yet unlike, to one sweet end;--
  • So ye, bright regents, with alternate sway _360
  • Govern my sphere of being, night and day!
  • Thou, not disdaining even a borrowed might;
  • Thou, not eclipsing a remoter light;
  • And, through the shadow of the seasons three,
  • From Spring to Autumn's sere maturity, _365
  • Light it into the Winter of the tomb,
  • Where it may ripen to a brighter bloom.
  • Thou too, O Comet beautiful and fierce,
  • Who drew the heart of this frail Universe
  • Towards thine own; till, wrecked in that convulsion, _370
  • Alternating attraction and repulsion,
  • Thine went astray and that was rent in twain;
  • Oh, float into our azure heaven again!
  • Be there Love's folding-star at thy return;
  • The living Sun will feed thee from its urn _375
  • Of golden fire; the Moon will veil her horn
  • In thy last smiles; adoring Even and Morn
  • Will worship thee with incense of calm breath
  • And lights and shadows; as the star of Death
  • And Birth is worshipped by those sisters wild _380
  • Called Hope and Fear--upon the heart are piled
  • Their offerings,--of this sacrifice divine
  • A World shall be the altar.
  • Lady mine,
  • Scorn not these flowers of thought, the fading birth
  • Which from its heart of hearts that plant puts forth _385
  • Whose fruit, made perfect by thy sunny eyes,
  • Will be as of the trees of Paradise.
  • The day is come, and thou wilt fly with me.
  • To whatsoe'er of dull mortality
  • Is mine, remain a vestal sister still; _390
  • To the intense, the deep, the imperishable,
  • Not mine but me, henceforth be thou united
  • Even as a bride, delighting and delighted.
  • The hour is come:--the destined Star has risen
  • Which shall descend upon a vacant prison. _395
  • The walls are high, the gates are strong, thick set
  • The sentinels--but true Love never yet
  • Was thus constrained: it overleaps all fence:
  • Like lightning, with invisible violence
  • Piercing its continents; like Heaven's free breath, _400
  • Which he who grasps can hold not; liker Death,
  • Who rides upon a thought, and makes his way
  • Through temple, tower, and palace, and the array
  • Of arms: more strength has Love than he or they;
  • For it can burst his charnel, and make free _405
  • The limbs in chains, the heart in agony,
  • The soul in dust and chaos.
  • Emily,
  • A ship is floating in the harbour now,
  • A wind is hovering o'er the mountain's brow;
  • There is a path on the sea's azure floor, _410
  • No keel has ever ploughed that path before;
  • The halcyons brood around the foamless isles;
  • The treacherous Ocean has forsworn its wiles;
  • The merry mariners are bold and free:
  • Say, my heart's sister, wilt thou sail with me? _415
  • Our bark is as an albatross, whose nest
  • Is a far Eden of the purple East;
  • And we between her wings will sit, while Night,
  • And Day, and Storm, and Calm, pursue their flight,
  • Our ministers, along the boundless Sea, _420
  • Treading each other's heels, unheededly.
  • It is an isle under Ionian skies,
  • Beautiful as a wreck of Paradise,
  • And, for the harbours are not safe and good,
  • This land would have remained a solitude _425
  • But for some pastoral people native there,
  • Who from the Elysian, clear, and golden air
  • Draw the last spirit of the age of gold,
  • Simple and spirited; innocent and bold.
  • The blue Aegean girds this chosen home, _430
  • With ever-changing sound and light and foam,
  • Kissing the sifted sands, and caverns hoar;
  • And all the winds wandering along the shore
  • Undulate with the undulating tide:
  • There are thick woods where sylvan forms abide; _435
  • And many a fountain, rivulet, and pond,
  • As clear as elemental diamond,
  • Or serene morning air; and far beyond,
  • The mossy tracks made by the goats and deer
  • (Which the rough shepherd treads but once a year) _440
  • Pierce into glades, caverns, and bowers, and halls
  • Built round with ivy, which the waterfalls
  • Illumining, with sound that never fails
  • Accompany the noonday nightingales;
  • And all the place is peopled with sweet airs; _445
  • The light clear element which the isle wears
  • Is heavy with the scent of lemon-flowers,
  • Which floats like mist laden with unseen showers.
  • And falls upon the eyelids like faint sleep;
  • And from the moss violets and jonquils peep, _450
  • And dart their arrowy odour through the brain
  • Till you might faint with that delicious pain.
  • And every motion, odour, beam and tone,
  • With that deep music is in unison:
  • Which is a soul within the soul--they seem _455
  • Like echoes of an antenatal dream.--
  • It is an isle 'twixt Heaven, Air, Earth, and Sea,
  • Cradled, and hung in clear tranquillity;
  • Bright as that wandering Eden Lucifer,
  • Washed by the soft blue Oceans of young air. _460
  • It is a favoured place. Famine or Blight,
  • Pestilence, War and Earthquake, never light
  • Upon its mountain-peaks; blind vultures, they
  • Sail onward far upon their fatal way:
  • The winged storms, chanting their thunder-psalm _465
  • To other lands, leave azure chasms of calm
  • Over this isle, or weep themselves in dew,
  • From which its fields and woods ever renew
  • Their green and golden immortality.
  • And from the sea there rise, and from the sky _470
  • There fall, clear exhalations, soft and bright.
  • Veil after veil, each hiding some delight,
  • Which Sun or Moon or zephyr draw aside,
  • Till the isle's beauty, like a naked bride
  • Glowing at once with love and loveliness, _475
  • Blushes and trembles at its own excess:
  • Yet, like a buried lamp, a Soul no less
  • Burns in the heart of this delicious isle,
  • An atom of th' Eternal, whose own smile
  • Unfolds itself, and may be felt, not seen _480
  • O'er the gray rocks, blue waves, and forests green,
  • Filling their bare and void interstices.--
  • But the chief marvel of the wilderness
  • Is a lone dwelling, built by whom or how
  • None of the rustic island-people know: _485
  • 'Tis not a tower of strength, though with its height
  • It overtops the woods; but, for delight,
  • Some wise and tender Ocean-King, ere crime
  • Had been invented, in the world's young prime,
  • Reared it, a wonder of that simple time, _490
  • An envy of the isles, a pleasure-house
  • Made sacred to his sister and his spouse.
  • It scarce seems now a wreck of human art,
  • But, as it were Titanic; in the heart
  • Of Earth having assumed its form, then grown _495
  • Out of the mountains, from the living stone,
  • Lifting itself in caverns light and high:
  • For all the antique and learned imagery
  • Has been erased, and in the place of it
  • The ivy and the wild-vine interknit _500
  • The volumes of their many-twining stems;
  • Parasite flowers illume with dewy gems
  • The lampless halls, and when they fade, the sky
  • Peeps through their winter-woof of tracery
  • With moonlight patches, or star atoms keen, _505
  • Or fragments of the day's intense serene;--
  • Working mosaic on their Parian floors.
  • And, day and night, aloof, from the high towers
  • And terraces, the Earth and Ocean seem
  • To sleep in one another's arms, and dream _510
  • Of waves, flowers, clouds, woods, rocks, and all that we
  • Read in their smiles, and call reality.
  • This isle and house are mine, and I have vowed
  • Thee to be lady of the solitude.--
  • And I have fitted up some chambers there _515
  • Looking towards the golden Eastern air,
  • And level with the living winds, which flow
  • Like waves above the living waves below.--
  • I have sent books and music there, and all
  • Those instruments with which high Spirits call _520
  • The future from its cradle, and the past
  • Out of its grave, and make the present last
  • In thoughts and joys which sleep, but cannot die,
  • Folded within their own eternity.
  • Our simple life wants little, and true taste _525
  • Hires not the pale drudge Luxury, to waste
  • The scene it would adorn, and therefore still,
  • Nature with all her children haunts the hill.
  • The ring-dove, in the embowering ivy, yet
  • Keeps up her love-lament, and the owls flit _530
  • Round the evening tower, and the young stars glance
  • Between the quick bats in their twilight dance;
  • The spotted deer bask in the fresh moonlight
  • Before our gate, and the slow, silent night
  • Is measured by the pants of their calm sleep. _535
  • Be this our home in life, and when years heap
  • Their withered hours, like leaves, on our decay,
  • Let us become the overhanging day,
  • The living soul of this Elysian isle,
  • Conscious, inseparable, one. Meanwhile _540
  • We two will rise, and sit, and walk together,
  • Under the roof of blue Ionian weather,
  • And wander in the meadows, or ascend
  • The mossy mountains, where the blue heavens bend
  • With lightest winds, to touch their paramour; _545
  • Or linger, where the pebble-paven shore,
  • Under the quick, faint kisses of the sea
  • Trembles and sparkles as with ecstasy,--
  • Possessing and possessed by all that is
  • Within that calm circumference of bliss, _550
  • And by each other, till to love and live
  • Be one:--or, at the noontide hour, arrive
  • Where some old cavern hoar seems yet to keep
  • The moonlight of the expired night asleep,
  • Through which the awakened day can never peep; _555
  • A veil for our seclusion, close as night's,
  • Where secure sleep may kill thine innocent lights:
  • Sleep, the fresh dew of languid love, the rain
  • Whose drops quench kisses till they burn again.
  • And we will talk, until thought's melody _560
  • Become too sweet for utterance, and it die
  • In words, to live again in looks, which dart
  • With thrilling tone into the voiceless heart,
  • Harmonizing silence without a sound.
  • Our breath shall intermix, our bosoms bound, _565
  • And our veins beat together; and our lips
  • With other eloquence than words, eclipse
  • The soul that burns between them, and the wells
  • Which boil under our being's inmost cells,
  • The fountains of our deepest life, shall be _570
  • Confused in Passion's golden purity,
  • As mountain-springs under the morning sun.
  • We shall become the same, we shall be one
  • Spirit within two frames, oh! wherefore two?
  • One passion in twin-hearts, which grows and grew, _575
  • Till like two meteors of expanding flame,
  • Those spheres instinct with it become the same,
  • Touch, mingle, are transfigured; ever still
  • Burning, yet ever inconsumable:
  • In one another's substance finding food, _580
  • Like flames too pure and light and unimbued
  • To nourish their bright lives with baser prey,
  • Which point to Heaven and cannot pass away:
  • One hope within two wills, one will beneath
  • Two overshadowing minds, one life, one death, _585
  • One Heaven, one Hell, one immortality,
  • And one annihilation. Woe is me!
  • The winged words on which my soul would pierce
  • Into the height of Love's rare Universe,
  • Are chains of lead around its flight of fire-- _590
  • I pant, I sink, I tremble, I expire!
  • ...
  • Weak Verses, go, kneel at your Sovereign's feet,
  • And say:--'We are the masters of thy slave;
  • What wouldest thou with us and ours and thine?'
  • Then call your sisters from Oblivion's cave, _595
  • All singing loud: 'Love's very pain is sweet,
  • But its reward is in the world divine
  • Which, if not here, it builds beyond the grave.'
  • So shall ye live when I am there. Then haste
  • Over the hearts of men, until ye meet _600
  • Marina, Vanna, Primus, and the rest,
  • And bid them love each other and be blessed:
  • And leave the troop which errs, and which reproves,
  • And come and be my guest,--for I am Love's.
  • NOTES:
  • _100 morning]morn may Rossetti cj.
  • _118 of]on edition 1839.
  • _405 it]he edition 1839.
  • _501 many-twining]many twining editio prin. 1821.
  • _504 winter-woof]inter-woof Rossetti cj.
  • FRAGMENTS CONNECTED WITH EPIPSYCHIDION.
  • [Of the fragments of verse that follow, lines 1-37, 62-92 were printed
  • by Mrs. Shelley in "Posthumous Works", 1839, 2nd edition; lines 1-174
  • were printed or reprinted by Dr. Garnett in "Relics of Shelley", 1862;
  • and lines 175-186 were printed by Mr. C.D. Locock from the first draft
  • of "Epipsychidion" amongst the Shelley manuscripts in the Bodleian
  • Library. See "Examination, etc.", 1903, pages 12, 13. The three early
  • drafts of the "Preface (Advertisement)" were printed by Mr. Locock in
  • the same volume, pages 4, 5.]
  • THREE EARLY DRAFTS OF THE PREFACE.
  • (ADVERTISEMENT.)
  • PREFACE 1.
  • The following Poem was found amongst other papers in the Portfolio of
  • a young Englishman with whom the Editor had contracted an intimacy at
  • Florence, brief indeed, but sufficiently long to render the
  • Catastrophe by which it terminated one of the most painful events of
  • his life.--
  • The literary merit of the Poem in question may not be considerable;
  • but worse verses are printed every day, &
  • He was an accomplished & amiable person but his error was, thuntos on
  • un thunta phronein,--his fate is an additional proof that 'The tree of
  • Knowledge is not that of Life.'--He had framed to himself certain
  • opinions, founded no doubt upon the truth of things, but built up to a
  • Babel height; they fell by their own weight, & the thoughts that were
  • his architects, became unintelligible one to the other, as men upon
  • whom confusion of tongues has fallen.
  • [These] verses seem to have been written as a sort of dedication of
  • some work to have been presented to the person whom they address: but
  • his papers afford no trace of such a work--The circumstances to which
  • [they] the poem allude, may easily be understood by those to whom
  • [the] spirit of the poem itself is [un]intelligible: a detail of
  • facts, sufficiently romantic in [themselves but] their combinations
  • The melancholy [task] charge of consigning the body of my poor friend
  • to the grave, was committed to me by his desolated family. I caused
  • him to be buried in a spot selected by himself, & on the h
  • PREFACE 2.
  • [Epips] T. E. V. Epipsych
  • Lines addressed to
  • the Noble Lady
  • [Emilia] [E. V.]
  • Emilia
  • [The following Poem was found in the PF. of a young Englishman, who
  • died on his passage from Leghorn to the Levant. He had bought one of
  • the Sporades] He was accompanied by a lady [who might have been]
  • supposed to be his wife, & an effeminate looking youth, to whom he
  • shewed an [attachment] so [singular] excessive an attachment as to
  • give rise to the suspicion, that she was a woman--At his death this
  • suspicion was confirmed;...object speedily found a refuge both from
  • the taunts of the brute multitude, and from the...of her grief in the
  • same grave that contained her lover.--He had bought one of the
  • Sporades, & fitted up a Saracenic castle which accident had preserved
  • in some repair with simple elegance, & it was his intention to
  • dedicate the remainder of his life to undisturbed intercourse with his
  • companions
  • These verses apparently were intended as a dedication of a longer poem
  • or series of poems
  • PREFACE 3.
  • The writer of these lines died at Florence in [January 1820] while he
  • was preparing * * for one wildest of the of the Sporades, where he
  • bought & fitted up the ruins of some old building--His life was
  • singular, less on account of the romantic vicissitudes which
  • diversified it, than the ideal tinge which they received from his own
  • character & feelings--
  • The verses were apparently intended by the writer to accompany some
  • longer poem or collection of poems, of which there* [are no remnants
  • in his] * * * remains [in his] portfolio.--
  • The editor is induced to
  • The present poem, like the vita Nova of Dante, is sufficiently
  • intelligible to a certain class of readers without a matter of fact
  • history of the circumstances to which it relate, & to a certain other
  • class, it must & ought ever to remain incomprehensible--It was
  • evidently intended to be prefixed to a longer poem or series of
  • poems--but among his papers there are no traces of such a collection.
  • PASSAGES OF THE POEM, OR CONNECTED THEREWITH.
  • Here, my dear friend, is a new book for you;
  • I have already dedicated two
  • To other friends, one female and one male,--
  • What you are, is a thing that I must veil;
  • What can this be to those who praise or rail? _5
  • I never was attached to that great sect
  • Whose doctrine is that each one should select
  • Out of the world a mistress or a friend,
  • And all the rest, though fair and wise, commend
  • To cold oblivion--though 'tis in the code _10
  • Of modern morals, and the beaten road
  • Which those poor slaves with weary footsteps tread
  • Who travel to their home among the dead
  • By the broad highway of the world--and so
  • With one sad friend, and many a jealous foe, _15
  • The dreariest and the longest journey go.
  • Free love has this, different from gold and clay,
  • That to divide is not to take away.
  • Like ocean, which the general north wind breaks
  • Into ten thousand waves, and each one makes _20
  • A mirror of the moon--like some great glass,
  • Which did distort whatever form might pass,
  • Dashed into fragments by a playful child,
  • Which then reflects its eyes and forehead mild;
  • Giving for one, which it could ne'er express, _25
  • A thousand images of loveliness.
  • If I were one whom the loud world held wise,
  • I should disdain to quote authorities
  • In commendation of this kind of love:--
  • Why there is first the God in heaven above, _30
  • Who wrote a book called Nature, 'tis to be
  • Reviewed, I hear, in the next Quarterly;
  • And Socrates, the Jesus Christ of Greece,
  • And Jesus Christ Himself, did never cease
  • To urge all living things to love each other, _35
  • And to forgive their mutual faults, and smother
  • The Devil of disunion in their souls.
  • ...
  • I love you!--Listen, O embodied Ray
  • Of the great Brightness; I must pass away
  • While you remain, and these light words must be _40
  • Tokens by which you may remember me.
  • Start not--the thing you are is unbetrayed,
  • If you are human, and if but the shade
  • Of some sublimer spirit...
  • ...
  • And as to friend or mistress, 'tis a form; _45
  • Perhaps I wish you were one. Some declare
  • You a familiar spirit, as you are;
  • Others with a ... more inhuman
  • Hint that, though not my wife, you are a woman;
  • What is the colour of your eyes and hair? _50
  • Why, if you were a lady, it were fair
  • The world should know--but, as I am afraid,
  • The Quarterly would bait you if betrayed;
  • And if, as it will be sport to see them stumble
  • Over all sorts of scandals. hear them mumble _55
  • Their litany of curses--some guess right,
  • And others swear you're a Hermaphrodite;
  • Like that sweet marble monster of both sexes,
  • Which looks so sweet and gentle that it vexes
  • The very soul that the soul is gone _60
  • Which lifted from her limbs the veil of stone.
  • ...
  • It is a sweet thing, friendship, a dear balm,
  • A happy and auspicious bird of calm,
  • Which rides o'er life's ever tumultuous Ocean;
  • A God that broods o'er chaos in commotion; _65
  • A flower which fresh as Lapland roses are,
  • Lifts its bold head into the world's frore air,
  • And blooms most radiantly when others die,
  • Health, hope, and youth, and brief prosperity;
  • And with the light and odour of its bloom, _70
  • Shining within the dun eon and the tomb;
  • Whose coming is as light and music are
  • 'Mid dissonance and gloom--a star
  • Which moves not 'mid the moving heavens alone--
  • A smile among dark frowns--a gentle tone _75
  • Among rude voices, a beloved light,
  • A solitude, a refuge, a delight.
  • If I had but a friend! Why, I have three
  • Even by my own confession; there may be
  • Some more, for what I know, for 'tis my mind _80
  • To call my friends all who are wise and kind,-
  • And these, Heaven knows, at best are very few;
  • But none can ever be more dear than you.
  • Why should they be? My muse has lost her wings,
  • Or like a dying swan who soars and sings, _85
  • I should describe you in heroic style,
  • But as it is, are you not void of guile?
  • A lovely soul, formed to be blessed and bless:
  • A well of sealed and secret happiness;
  • A lute which those whom Love has taught to play _90
  • Make music on to cheer the roughest day,
  • And enchant sadness till it sleeps?...
  • ...
  • To the oblivion whither I and thou,
  • All loving and all lovely, hasten now
  • With steps, ah, too unequal! may we meet _95
  • In one Elysium or one winding-sheet!
  • If any should be curious to discover
  • Whether to you I am a friend or lover,
  • Let them read Shakespeare's sonnets, taking thence
  • A whetstone for their dull intelligence _100
  • That tears and will not cut, or let them guess
  • How Diotima, the wise prophetess,
  • Instructed the instructor, and why he
  • Rebuked the infant spirit of melody
  • On Agathon's sweet lips, which as he spoke _105
  • Was as the lovely star when morn has broke
  • The roof of darkness, in the golden dawn,
  • Half-hidden, and yet beautiful.
  • I'll pawn
  • My hopes of Heaven-you know what they are worth --
  • That the presumptuous pedagogues of Earth, _110
  • If they could tell the riddle offered here
  • Would scorn to be, or being to appear
  • What now they seem and are--but let them chide,
  • They have few pleasures in the world beside;
  • Perhaps we should be dull were we not chidden, _115
  • Paradise fruits are sweetest when forbidden.
  • Folly can season Wisdom, Hatred Love.
  • ...
  • Farewell, if it can be to say farewell
  • To those who
  • ...
  • I will not, as most dedicators do, _120
  • Assure myself and all the world and you,
  • That you are faultless--would to God they were
  • Who taunt me with your love! I then should wear
  • These heavy chains of life with a light spirit,
  • And would to God I were, or even as near it _125
  • As you, dear heart. Alas! what are we? Clouds
  • Driven by the wind in warring multitudes,
  • Which rain into the bosom of the earth,
  • And rise again, and in our death and birth,
  • And through our restless life, take as from heaven _130
  • Hues which are not our own, but which are given,
  • And then withdrawn, and with inconstant glance
  • Flash from the spirit to the countenance.
  • There is a Power, a Love, a Joy, a God
  • Which makes in mortal hearts its brief abode, _135
  • A Pythian exhalation, which inspires
  • Love, only love--a wind which o'er the wires
  • Of the soul's giant harp
  • There is a mood which language faints beneath;
  • You feel it striding, as Almighty Death _140
  • His bloodless steed...
  • ...
  • And what is that most brief and bright delight
  • Which rushes through the touch and through the sight,
  • And stands before the spirit's inmost throne,
  • A naked Seraph? None hath ever known. _145
  • Its birth is darkness, and its growth desire;
  • Untameable and fleet and fierce as fire,
  • Not to be touched but to be felt alone,
  • It fills the world with glory-and is gone.
  • ...
  • It floats with rainbow pinions o'er the stream _150
  • Of life, which flows, like a ... dream
  • Into the light of morning, to the grave
  • As to an ocean...
  • ...
  • What is that joy which serene infancy
  • Perceives not, as the hours content them by, _155
  • Each in a chain of blossoms, yet enjoys
  • The shapes of this new world, in giant toys
  • Wrought by the busy ... ever new?
  • Remembrance borrows Fancy's glass, to show
  • These forms more ... sincere _160
  • Than now they are, than then, perhaps, they were.
  • When everything familiar seemed to be
  • Wonderful, and the immortality
  • Of this great world, which all things must inherit,
  • Was felt as one with the awakening spirit, _165
  • Unconscious of itself, and of the strange
  • Distinctions which in its proceeding change
  • It feels and knows, and mourns as if each were
  • A desolation...
  • ...
  • Were it not a sweet refuge, Emily, _170
  • For all those exiles from the dull insane
  • Who vex this pleasant world with pride and pain,
  • For all that band of sister-spirits known
  • To one another by a voiceless tone?
  • ...
  • If day should part us night will mend division _175
  • And if sleep parts us--we will meet in vision
  • And if life parts us--we will mix in death
  • Yielding our mite [?] of unreluctant breath
  • Death cannot part us--we must meet again
  • In all in nothing in delight in pain: _180
  • How, why or when or where--it matters not
  • So that we share an undivided lot...
  • ...
  • And we will move possessing and possessed
  • Wherever beauty on the earth's bare [?] breast
  • Lies like the shadow of thy soul--till we _185
  • Become one being with the world we see...
  • NOTES:
  • _52-_53 afraid The cj. A.C. Bradley.
  • _54 And as cj. Rossetti, A.C. Bradley.
  • _61 stone... cj. A.C. Bradley.
  • _155 them]trip or troop cj. A.C. Bradley.
  • _157 in]as cj. A.C. Bradley.
  • ***
  • ADONAIS.
  • AN ELEGY ON THE DEATH OF JOHN KEATS,
  • AUTHOR OF ENDYMION, HYPERION, ETC.
  • Aster prin men elampes eni zooisin Eoos
  • nun de thanon lampeis Esperos en phthimenois.--PLATO.
  • ["Adonais" was composed at Pisa during the early days of June, 1821,
  • and printed, with the author's name, at Pisa, 'with the types of
  • Didot,' by July 13, 1821. Part of the impression was sent to the
  • brothers Ollier for sale in London. An exact reprint of this Pisa
  • edition (a few typographical errors only being corrected) was issued
  • in 1829 by Gee & Bridges, Cambridge, at the instance of Arthur Hallam
  • and Richard Monckton Milnes (Lord Houghton). The poem was included in
  • Galignani's edition of "Coleridge, Shelley and Keats", Paris, 1829,
  • and by Mrs. Shelley in the "Poetical Works" of 1839. Mrs. Shelley's
  • text presents three important variations from that of the editio
  • princeps. In 1876 an edition of the "Adonais", with Introduction and
  • Notes, was printed for private circulation by Mr. H. Buxton Forman,
  • C.B. Ten years later a reprint 'in exact facsimile' of the Pisa
  • edition was edited with a Bibliographical Introduction by Mr. T.J.
  • Wise ("Shelley Society Publications", 2nd Series, No. 1, Reeves &
  • Turner, London, 1886). Our text is that of the editio princeps, Pisa,
  • 1821, modified by Mrs. Shelley's text of 1839. The readings of the
  • editio princeps, wherever superseded, are recorded in the footnotes.
  • The Editor's Notes at the end of the Volume 3 should be consulted.]
  • PREFACE.
  • Pharmakon elthe, Bion, poti son stoma, pharmakon eides.
  • pos ten tois cheilessi potesrame, kouk eglukanthe;
  • tis de Brotos tossouton anameros, e kerasai toi,
  • e dounai laleonti to pharmakon; ekphugen odan.
  • --MOSCHUS, EPITAPH. BION.
  • It is my intention to subjoin to the London edition of this poem a
  • criticism upon the claims of its lamented object to be classed among
  • the writers of the highest genius who have adorned our age. My known
  • repugnance to the narrow principles of taste on which several of his
  • earlier compositions were modelled prove at least that I am an
  • impartial judge. I consider the fragment of "Hyperion" as second to
  • nothing that was ever produced by a writer of the same years.
  • John Keats died at Rome of a consumption, in his twenty-fourth year,
  • on the -- of -- 1821; and was buried in the romantic and lonely
  • cemetery of the Protestants in that city, under the pyramid which is
  • the tomb of Cestius, and the massy walls and towers, now mouldering
  • and desolate, which formed the circuit of ancient Rome. The cemetery
  • is an open space among the ruins, covered in winter with violets and
  • daisies. It might make one in love with death, to think that one
  • should be buried in so sweet a place.
  • The genius of the lamented person to whose memory I have dedicated
  • these unworthy verses was not less delicate and fragile than it was
  • beautiful; and where cankerworms abound, what wonder if its young
  • flower was blighted in the bud? The savage criticism on his
  • "Endymion", which appeared in the "Quarterly Review", produced the
  • most violent effect on his susceptible mind; the agitation thus
  • originated ended in the rupture of a blood-vessel in the lungs; a
  • rapid consumption ensued, and the succeeding acknowledgements from
  • more candid critics of the true greatness of his powers were
  • ineffectual to heal the wound thus wantonly inflicted.
  • It may be well said that these wretched men know not what they do.
  • They scatter their insults and their slanders without heed as to
  • whether the poisoned shaft lights on a heart made callous by many
  • blows or one like Keats's composed of more penetrable stuff. One of
  • their associates is, to my knowledge, a most base and unprincipled
  • calumniator. As to "Endymion", was it a poem, whatever might be its
  • defects, to be treated contemptuously by those who had celebrated,
  • with various degrees of complacency and panegyric, "Paris", and
  • "Woman", and a "Syrian Tale", and Mrs. Lefanu, and Mr. Barrett, and
  • Mr. Howard Payne, and a long list of the illustrious obscure? Are
  • these the men who in their venal good nature presumed to draw a
  • parallel between the Reverend Mr. Milman and Lord Byron? What gnat did
  • they strain at here, after having swallowed all those camels? Against
  • what woman taken in adultery dares the foremost of these literary
  • prostitutes to cast his opprobrious stone? Miserable man! you, one of
  • the meanest, have wantonly defaced one of the noblest specimens of the
  • workmanship of God. Nor shall it be your excuse, that, murderer as you
  • are, you have spoken daggers, but used none.
  • The circumstances of the closing scene of poor Keats's life were not
  • made known to me until the "Elegy" was ready for the press. I am given
  • to understand that the wound which his sensitive spirit had received
  • from the criticism of "Endymion" was exasperated by the bitter sense
  • of unrequited benefits; the poor fellow seems to have been hooted from
  • the stage of life, no less by those on whom he had wasted the promise
  • of his genius, than those on whom he had lavished his fortune and his
  • care. He was accompanied to Rome, and attended in his last illness by
  • Mr. Severn, a young artist of the highest promise, who, I have been
  • informed, 'almost risked his own life, and sacrificed every prospect
  • to unwearied attendance upon his dying friend.' Had I known these
  • circumstances before the completion of my poem, I should have been
  • tempted to add my feeble tribute of applause to the more solid
  • recompense which the virtuous man finds in the recollection of his own
  • motives. Mr. Severn can dispense with a reward from 'such stuff as
  • dreams are made of.' His conduct is a golden augury of the success of
  • his future career--may the unextinguished Spirit of his illustrious
  • friend animate the creations of his pencil, and plead against Oblivion
  • for his name!
  • ***
  • ADONAIS.
  • I weep for Adonais--he is dead!
  • O, weep for Adonais! though our tears
  • Thaw not the frost which binds so dear a head!
  • And thou, sad Hour, selected from all years
  • To mourn our loss, rouse thy obscure compeers, _5
  • And teach them thine own sorrow, say: "With me
  • Died Adonais; till the Future dares
  • Forget the Past, his fate and fame shall be
  • An echo and a light unto eternity!"
  • 2.
  • Where wert thou, mighty Mother, when he lay, _10
  • When thy Son lay, pierced by the shaft which flies
  • In darkness? where was lorn Urania
  • When Adonais died? With veiled eyes,
  • 'Mid listening Echoes, in her Paradise
  • She sate, while one, with soft enamoured breath, _15
  • Rekindled all the fading melodies,
  • With which, like flowers that mock the corse beneath,
  • He had adorned and hid the coming bulk of Death.
  • 3.
  • Oh, weep for Adonais--he is dead!
  • Wake, melancholy Mother, wake and weep! _20
  • Yet wherefore? Quench within their burning bed
  • Thy fiery tears, and let thy loud heart keep
  • Like his, a mute and uncomplaining sleep;
  • For he is gone, where all things wise and fair
  • Descend;--oh, dream not that the amorous Deep _25
  • Will yet restore him to the vital air;
  • Death feeds on his mute voice, and laughs at our despair.
  • 4.
  • Most musical of mourners, weep again!
  • Lament anew, Urania!--He died,
  • Who was the Sire of an immortal strain, _30
  • Blind, old and lonely, when his country's pride,
  • The priest, the slave, and the liberticide,
  • Trampled and mocked with many a loathed rite
  • Of lust and blood; he went, unterrified,
  • Into the gulf of death; but his clear Sprite _35
  • Yet reigns o'er earth; the third among the sons of light.
  • 5.
  • Most musical of mourners, weep anew!
  • Not all to that bright station dared to climb;
  • And happier they their happiness who knew,
  • Whose tapers yet burn through that night of time _40
  • In which suns perished; others more sublime,
  • Struck by the envious wrath of man or god,
  • Have sunk, extinct in their refulgent prime;
  • And some yet live, treading the thorny road,
  • Which leads, through toil and hate, to Fame's serene abode. _45
  • 6.
  • But now, thy youngest, dearest one, has perished--
  • The nursling of thy widowhood, who grew,
  • Like a pale flower by some sad maiden cherished,
  • And fed with true-love tears, instead of dew;
  • Most musical of mourners, weep anew! _50
  • Thy extreme hope, the loveliest and the last,
  • The bloom, whose petals nipped before they blew
  • Died on the promise of the fruit, is waste;
  • The broken lily lies--the storm is overpast.
  • 7.
  • To that high Capital, where kingly Death _55
  • Keeps his pale court in beauty and decay,
  • He came; and bought, with price of purest breath,
  • A grave among the eternal.--Come away!
  • Haste, while the vault of blue Italian day
  • Is yet his fitting charnel-roof! while still _60
  • He lies, as if in dewy sleep he lay;
  • Awake him not! surely he takes his fill
  • Of deep and liquid rest, forgetful of all ill.
  • 8.
  • He will awake no more, oh, never more!--
  • Within the twilight chamber spreads apace _65
  • The shadow of white Death, and at the door
  • Invisible Corruption waits to trace
  • His extreme way to her dim dwelling-place;
  • The eternal Hunger sits, but pity and awe
  • Soothe her pale rage, nor dares she to deface _70
  • So fair a prey, till darkness and the law
  • Of change, shall o'er his sleep the mortal curtain draw.
  • 9.
  • Oh, weep for Adonais!--The quick Dreams,
  • The passion-winged Ministers of thought,
  • Who were his flocks, whom near the living streams _75
  • Of his young spirit he fed, and whom he taught
  • The love which was its music, wander not,--
  • Wander no more, from kindling brain to brain,
  • But droop there, whence they sprung; and mourn their lot
  • Round the cold heart, where, after their sweet pain, _80
  • They ne'er will gather strength, or find a home again.
  • 10.
  • And one with trembling hands clasps his cold head,
  • And fans him with her moonlight wings, and cries;
  • 'Our love, our hope, our sorrow, is not dead;
  • See, on the silken fringe of his faint eyes, _85
  • Like dew upon a sleeping flower, there lies
  • A tear some Dream has loosened from his brain.'
  • Lost Angel of a ruined Paradise!
  • She knew not 'twas her own; as with no stain
  • She faded, like a cloud which had outwept its rain. _90
  • 11.
  • One from a lucid urn of starry dew
  • Washed his light limbs as if embalming them;
  • Another clipped her profuse locks, and threw
  • The wreath upon him, like an anadem,
  • Which frozen tears instead of pearls begem; _95
  • Another in her wilful grief would break
  • Her bow and winged reeds, as if to stem
  • A greater loss with one which was more weak;
  • And dull the barbed fire against his frozen cheek.
  • 12.
  • Another Splendour on his mouth alit, _100
  • That mouth, whence it was wont to draw the breath
  • Which gave it strength to pierce the guarded wit,
  • And pass into the panting heart beneath
  • With lightning and with music: the damp death
  • Quenched its caress upon his icy lips; _105
  • And, as a dying meteor stains a wreath
  • Of moonlight vapour, which the cold night clips,
  • It flushed through his pale limbs, and passed to its eclipse.
  • 13.
  • And others came...Desires and Adorations,
  • Winged Persuasions and veiled Destinies, _110
  • Splendours, and Glooms, and glimmering Incarnations
  • Of hopes and fears, and twilight Phantasies;
  • And Sorrow, with her family of Sighs,
  • And Pleasure, blind with tears, led by the gleam
  • Of her own dying smile instead of eyes, _115
  • Came in slow pomp;--the moving pomp might seem
  • Like pageantry of mist on an autumnal stream.
  • 14.
  • All he had loved, and moulded into thought,
  • From shape, and hue, and odour, and sweet sound,
  • Lamented Adonais. Morning sought _120
  • Her eastern watch-tower, and her hair unbound,
  • Wet with the tears which should adorn the ground,
  • Dimmed the aereal eyes that kindle day;
  • Afar the melancholy thunder moaned,
  • Pale Ocean in unquiet slumber lay, _125
  • And the wild Winds flew round, sobbing in their dismay.
  • 15.
  • Lost Echo sits amid the voiceless mountains,
  • And feeds her grief with his remembered lay,
  • And will no more reply to winds or fountains,
  • Or amorous birds perched on the young green spray, _130
  • Or herdsman's horn, or bell at closing day;
  • Since she can mimic not his lips, more dear
  • Than those for whose disdain she pined away
  • Into a shadow of all sounds:--a drear
  • Murmur, between their songs, is all the woodmen hear. _135
  • 16.
  • Grief made the young Spring wild, and she threw down
  • Her kindling buds, as if she Autumn were,
  • Or they dead leaves; since her delight is flown,
  • For whom should she have waked the sullen year?
  • To Phoebus was not Hyacinth so dear _140
  • Nor to himself Narcissus, as to both
  • Thou, Adonais: wan they stand and sere
  • Amid the faint companions of their youth,
  • With dew all turned to tears; odour, to sighing ruth.
  • 17.
  • Thy spirit's sister, the lorn nightingale _145
  • Mourns not her mate with such melodious pain;
  • Not so the eagle, who like thee could scale
  • Heaven, and could nourish in the sun's domain
  • Her mighty youth with morning, doth complain,
  • Soaring and screaming round her empty nest, _150
  • As Albion wails for thee: the curse of Cain
  • Light on his head who pierced thy innocent breast,
  • And scared the angel soul that was its earthly guest!
  • 18.
  • Ah, woe is me! Winter is come and gone,
  • But grief returns with the revolving year; _155
  • The airs and streams renew their joyous tone;
  • The ants, the bees, the swallows reappear;
  • Fresh leaves and flowers deck the dead Seasons' bier;
  • The amorous birds now pair in every brake,
  • And build their mossy homes in field and brere; _160
  • And the green lizard, and the golden snake,
  • Like unimprisoned flames, out of their trance awake.
  • 19.
  • Through wood and stream and field and hill and Ocean
  • A quickening life from the Earth's heart has burst
  • As it has ever done, with change and motion, _165
  • From the great morning of the world when first
  • God dawned on Chaos; in its stream immersed,
  • The lamps of Heaven flash with a softer light;
  • All baser things pant with life's sacred thirst;
  • Diffuse themselves; and spend in love's delight, _170
  • The beauty and the joy of their renewed might.
  • 20.
  • The leprous corpse, touched by this spirit tender,
  • Exhales itself in flowers of gentle breath;
  • Like incarnations of the stars, when splendour
  • Is changed to fragrance, they illumine death _175
  • And mock the merry worm that wakes beneath;
  • Nought we know, dies. Shall that alone which knows
  • Be as a sword consumed before the sheath
  • By sightless lightning?--the intense atom glows
  • A moment, then is quenched in a most cold repose. _180
  • 21.
  • Alas! that all we loved of him should be,
  • But for our grief, as if it had not been,
  • And grief itself be mortal! Woe is me!
  • Whence are we, and why are we? of what scene
  • The actors or spectators? Great and mean _185
  • Meet massed in death, who lends what life must borrow.
  • As long as skies are blue, and fields are green,
  • Evening must usher night, night urge the morrow,
  • Month follow month with woe, and year wake year to sorrow.
  • 22.
  • HE will awake no more, oh, never more! _190
  • 'Wake thou,' cried Misery, 'childless Mother, rise
  • Out of thy sleep, and slake, in thy heart's core,
  • A wound more fierce than his, with tears and sighs.'
  • And all the Dreams that watched Urania's eyes,
  • And all the Echoes whom their sister's song _195
  • Had held in holy silence, cried: 'Arise!'
  • Swift as a Thought by the snake Memory stung,
  • From her ambrosial rest the fading Splendour sprung.
  • 23.
  • She rose like an autumnal Night, that springs
  • Out of the East, and follows wild and drear _200
  • The golden Day, which, on eternal wings,
  • Even as a ghost abandoning a bier,
  • Had left the Earth a corpse. Sorrow and fear
  • So struck, so roused, so rapped Urania;
  • So saddened round her like an atmosphere _205
  • Of stormy mist; so swept her on her way
  • Even to the mournful place where Adonais lay.
  • 24.
  • Out of her secret Paradise she sped,
  • Through camps and cities rough with stone, and steel,
  • And human hearts, which to her aery tread _210
  • Yielding not, wounded the invisible
  • Palms of her tender feet where'er they fell:
  • And barbed tongues, and thoughts more sharp than they,
  • Rent the soft Form they never could repel,
  • Whose sacred blood, like the young tears of May, _215
  • Paved with eternal flowers that undeserving way.
  • 25.
  • In the death-chamber for a moment Death,
  • Shamed by the presence of that living Might,
  • Blushed to annihilation, and the breath
  • Revisited those lips, and Life's pale light _220
  • Flashed through those limbs, so late her dear delight.
  • 'Leave me not wild and drear and comfortless,
  • As silent lightning leaves the starless night!
  • Leave me not!' cried Urania: her distress
  • Roused Death: Death rose and smiled, and met her vain caress. _225
  • 26.
  • 'Stay yet awhile! speak to me once again;
  • Kiss me, so long but as a kiss may live;
  • And in my heartless breast and burning brain
  • That word, that kiss, shall all thoughts else survive,
  • With food of saddest memory kept alive, _230
  • Now thou art dead, as if it were a part
  • Of thee, my Adonais! I would give
  • All that I am to be as thou now art!
  • But I am chained to Time, and cannot thence depart!
  • 27.
  • 'O gentle child, beautiful as thou wert, _235
  • Why didst thou leave the trodden paths of men
  • Too soon, and with weak hands though mighty heart
  • Dare the unpastured dragon in his den?
  • Defenceless as thou wert, oh, where was then
  • Wisdom the mirrored shield, or scorn the spear? _240
  • Or hadst thou waited the full cycle, when
  • Thy spirit should have filled its crescent sphere,
  • The monsters of life's waste had fled from thee like deer.
  • 28.
  • 'The herded wolves, bold only to pursue;
  • The obscene ravens, clamorous o'er the dead; _245
  • The vultures to the conqueror's banner true
  • Who feed where Desolation first has fed,
  • And whose wings rain contagion;--how they fled,
  • When, like Apollo, from his golden bow
  • The Pythian of the age one arrow sped _250
  • And smiled!--The spoilers tempt no second blow,
  • They fawn on the proud feet that spurn them lying low.
  • 29.
  • 'The sun comes forth, and many reptiles spawn;
  • He sets, and each ephemeral insect then
  • Is gathered into death without a dawn, _255
  • And the immortal stars awake again;
  • So is it in the world of living men:
  • A godlike mind soars forth, in its delight
  • Making earth bare and veiling heaven, and when
  • It sinks, the swarms that dimmed or shared its light _260
  • Leave to its kindred lamps the spirit's awful night.'
  • 30.
  • Thus ceased she: and the mountain shepherds came,
  • Their garlands sere, their magic mantles rent;
  • The Pilgrim of Eternity, whose fame
  • Over his living head like Heaven is bent, _265
  • An early but enduring monument,
  • Came, veiling all the lightnings of his song
  • In sorrow; from her wilds Ierne sent
  • The sweetest lyrist of her saddest wrong,
  • And Love taught Grief to fall like music from his tongue. _270
  • 31.
  • Midst others of less note, came one frail Form,
  • A phantom among men; companionless
  • As the last cloud of an expiring storm
  • Whose thunder is its knell; he, as I guess,
  • Had gazed on Nature's naked loveliness, _275
  • Actaeon-like, and now he fled astray
  • With feeble steps o'er the world's wilderness,
  • And his own thoughts, along that rugged way,
  • Pursued, like raging hounds, their father and their prey.
  • 32.
  • A pardlike Spirit beautiful and swift-- _280
  • A Love in desolation masked;--a Power
  • Girt round with weakness;--it can scarce uplift
  • The weight of the superincumbent hour;
  • It is a dying lamp, a falling shower,
  • A breaking billow;--even whilst we speak _285
  • Is it not broken? On the withering flower
  • The killing sun smiles brightly: on a cheek
  • The life can burn in blood, even while the heart may break.
  • 33.
  • His head was bound with pansies overblown,
  • And faded violets, white, and pied, and blue; _290
  • And a light spear topped with a cypress cone,
  • Round whose rude shaft dark ivy-tresses grew
  • Yet dripping with the forest's noonday dew,
  • Vibrated, as the ever-beating heart
  • Shook the weak hand that grasped it; of that crew _295
  • He came the last, neglected and apart;
  • A herd-abandoned deer struck by the hunter's dart.
  • 34.
  • All stood aloof, and at his partial moan
  • Smiled through their tears; well knew that gentle band
  • Who in another's fate now wept his own, _300
  • As in the accents of an unknown land
  • He sung new sorrow; sad Urania scanned
  • The Stranger's mien, and murmured: 'Who art thou?'
  • He answered not, but with a sudden hand
  • Made bare his branded and ensanguined brow, _305
  • Which was like Cain's or Christ's--oh! that it should be so!
  • 35.
  • What softer voice is hushed over the dead?
  • Athwart what brow is that dark mantle thrown?
  • What form leans sadly o'er the white death-bed,
  • In mockery of monumental stone, _310
  • The heavy heart heaving without a moan?
  • If it be He, who, gentlest of the wise,
  • Taught, soothed, loved, honoured the departed one,
  • Let me not vex, with inharmonious sighs,
  • The silence of that heart's accepted sacrifice. _315
  • 36.
  • Our Adonais has drunk poison--oh!
  • What deaf and viperous murderer could crown
  • Life's early cup with such a draught of woe?
  • The nameless worm would now itself disown:
  • It felt, yet could escape, the magic tone _320
  • Whose prelude held all envy, hate and wrong,
  • But what was howling in one breast alone,
  • Silent with expectation of the song,
  • Whose master's hand is cold, whose silver lyre unstrung.
  • 37.
  • Live thou, whose infamy is not thy fame! _325
  • Live! fear no heavier chastisement from me,
  • Thou noteless blot on a remembered name!
  • But be thyself, and know thyself to be!
  • And ever at thy season be thou free
  • To spill the venom when thy fangs o'erflow; _330
  • Remorse and Self-contempt shall cling to thee;
  • Hot Shame shall burn upon thy secret brow,
  • And like a beaten hound tremble thou shalt--as now.
  • 38.
  • Nor let us weep that our delight is fled
  • Far from these carrion kites that scream below; _335
  • He wakes or sleeps with the enduring dead;
  • Thou canst not soar where he is sitting now--
  • Dust to the dust! but the pure spirit shall flow
  • Back to the burning fountain whence it came,
  • A portion of the Eternal, which must glow _340
  • Through time and change, unquenchably the same,
  • Whilst thy cold embers choke the sordid hearth of shame.
  • 39.
  • Peace, peace! he is not dead, he doth not sleep--
  • He hath awakened from the dream of life--
  • 'Tis we, who lost in stormy visions, keep _345
  • With phantoms an unprofitable strife,
  • And in mad trance, strike with our spirit's knife
  • Invulnerable nothings.--WE decay
  • Like corpses in a charnel; fear and grief
  • Convulse us and consume us day by day, _350
  • And cold hopes swarm like worms within our living clay.
  • 40.
  • He has outsoared the shadow of our night;
  • Envy and calumny and hate and pain,
  • And that unrest which men miscall delight,
  • Can touch him not and torture not again; _355
  • From the contagion of the world's slow stain
  • He is secure, and now can never mourn
  • A heart grown cold, a head grown gray in vain;
  • Nor, when the spirit's self has ceased to burn,
  • With sparkless ashes load an unlamented urn. _360
  • 41.
  • He lives, he wakes--'tis Death is dead, not he;
  • Mourn not for Adonais.--Thou young Dawn,
  • Turn all thy dew to splendour, for from thee
  • The spirit thou lamentest is not gone;
  • Ye caverns and ye forests, cease to moan! _365
  • Cease, ye faint flowers and fountains, and thou Air,
  • Which like a mourning veil thy scarf hadst thrown
  • O'er the abandoned Earth, now leave it bare
  • Even to the joyous stars which smile on its despair!
  • 42.
  • He is made one with Nature: there is heard _370
  • His voice in all her music, from the moan
  • Of thunder, to the song of night's sweet bird;
  • He is a presence to be felt and known
  • In darkness and in light, from herb and stone,
  • Spreading itself where'er that Power may move _375
  • Which has withdrawn his being to its own;
  • Which wields the world with never-wearied love,
  • Sustains it from beneath, and kindles it above.
  • 43.
  • He is a portion of the loveliness
  • Which once he made more lovely: he doth bear _380
  • His part, while the one Spirit's plastic stress
  • Sweeps through the dull dense world, compelling there
  • All new successions to the forms they wear;
  • Torturing th' unwilling dross that checks its flight
  • To its own likeness, as each mass may bear; _385
  • And bursting in its beauty and its might
  • From trees and beasts and men into the Heaven's light.
  • 44.
  • The splendours of the firmament of time
  • May be eclipsed, but are extinguished not;
  • Like stars to their appointed height they climb, _390
  • And death is a low mist which cannot blot
  • The brightness it may veil. When lofty thought
  • Lifts a young heart above its mortal lair,
  • And love and life contend in it, for what
  • Shall be its earthly doom, the dead live there _395
  • And move like winds of light on dark and stormy air.
  • 45.
  • The inheritors of unfulfilled renown
  • Rose from their thrones, built beyond mortal thought,
  • Far in the Unapparent. Chatterton
  • Rose pale,--his solemn agony had not _400
  • Yet faded from him; Sidney, as he fought
  • And as he fell and as he lived and loved
  • Sublimely mild, a Spirit without spot,
  • Arose; and Lucan, by his death approved:
  • Oblivion as they rose shrank like a thing reproved. _405
  • 46.
  • And many more, whose names on Earth are dark,
  • But whose transmitted effluence cannot die
  • So long as fire outlives the parent spark,
  • Rose, robed in dazzling immortality.
  • 'Thou art become as one of us,' they cry, _410
  • 'It was for thee yon kingless sphere has long
  • Swung blind in unascended majesty,
  • Silent alone amid a Heaven of Song.
  • Assume thy winged throne, thou Vesper of our throng!'
  • 47.
  • Who mourns for Adonais? Oh, come forth, _415
  • Fond wretch! and know thyself and him aright.
  • Clasp with thy panting soul the pendulous Earth;
  • As from a centre, dart thy spirit's light
  • Beyond all worlds, until its spacious might
  • Satiate the void circumference: then shrink _420
  • Even to a point within our day and night;
  • And keep thy heart light lest it make thee sink
  • When hope has kindled hope, and lured thee to the brink.
  • 48.
  • Or go to Rome, which is the sepulchre,
  • Oh, not of him, but of our joy: 'tis nought _425
  • That ages, empires and religions there
  • Lie buried in the ravage they have wrought;
  • For such as he can lend,--they borrow not
  • Glory from those who made the world their prey;
  • And he is gathered to the kings of thought _430
  • Who waged contention with their time's decay,
  • And of the past are all that cannot pass away.
  • 49.
  • Go thou to Rome,--at once the Paradise,
  • The grave, the city, and the wilderness;
  • And where its wrecks like shattered mountains rise, _435
  • And flowering weeds, and fragrant copses dress
  • The bones of Desolation's nakedness
  • Pass, till the spirit of the spot shall lead
  • Thy footsteps to a slope of green access
  • Where, like an infant's smile, over the dead _440
  • A light of laughing flowers along the grass is spread;
  • 50.
  • And gray walls moulder round, on which dull Time
  • Feeds, like slow fire upon a hoary brand;
  • And one keen pyramid with wedge sublime,
  • Pavilioning the dust of him who planned _445
  • This refuge for his memory, doth stand
  • Like flame transformed to marble; and beneath,
  • A field is spread, on which a newer band
  • Have pitched in Heaven's smile their camp of death,
  • Welcoming him we lose with scarce extinguished breath. _450
  • 51.
  • Here pause: these graves are all too young as yet
  • To have outgrown the sorrow which consigned
  • Its charge to each; and if the seal is set,
  • Here, on one fountain of a mourning mind,
  • Break it not thou! too surely shalt thou find
  • Thine own well full, if thou returnest home,
  • Of tears and gall. From the world's bitter wind
  • Seek shelter in the shadow of the tomb.
  • What Adonais is, why fear we to become?
  • 52.
  • The One remains, the many change and pass;
  • Heaven's light forever shines, Earth's shadows fly;
  • Life, like a dome of many-coloured glass,
  • Stains the white radiance of Eternity,
  • Until Death tramples it to fragments.--Die,
  • If thou wouldst be with that which thou dost seek!
  • Follow where all is fled!--Rome's azure sky,
  • Flowers, ruins, statues, music, words, are weak
  • The glory they transfuse with fitting truth to speak.
  • 53.
  • Why linger, why turn back, why shrink, my Heart?
  • Thy hopes are gone before: from all things here
  • They have departed; thou shouldst now depart!
  • A light is passed from the revolving year,
  • And man, and woman; and what still is dear
  • Attracts to crush, repels to make thee wither.
  • The soft sky smiles,--the low wind whispers near:
  • 'Tis Adonais calls! oh, hasten thither,
  • No more let Life divide what Death can join together.
  • 54.
  • That Light whose smile kindles the Universe,
  • That Beauty in which all things work and move,
  • That Benediction which the eclipsing Curse
  • Of birth can quench not, that sustaining Love
  • Which through the web of being blindly wove
  • By man and beast and earth and air and sea,
  • Burns bright or dim, as each are mirrors of
  • The fire for which all thirst; now beams on me,
  • Consuming the last clouds of cold mortality.
  • 55.
  • The breath whose might I have invoked in song
  • Descends on me; my spirit's bark is driven,
  • Far from the shore, far from the trembling throng
  • Whose sails were never to the tempest given;
  • The massy earth and sphered skies are riven!
  • I am borne darkly, fearfully, afar;
  • Whilst, burning through the inmost veil of Heaven,
  • The soul of Adonais, like a star,
  • Beacons from the abode where the Eternal are. _495
  • NOTES:
  • _49 true-love]true love editions 1821, 1839.
  • _72 Of change, etc. so editions 1829 (Galignani), 1839;
  • Of mortal change, shall fill the grave which is her maw edition 1821.
  • _81 or edition 1821; nor edition 1839.
  • _105 his edition 1821; its edition 1839.
  • _126 round edition 1821; around edition 1839.
  • _143 faint companions edition 1839; drooping comrades edition 1821.
  • _204 See Editor's Note.
  • _252 lying low edition 1839; as they go edition 1821.
  • CANCELLED PASSAGES OF ADONAIS.
  • [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
  • PASSAGES OF THE PREFACE.
  • ...the expression of my indignation and sympathy. I will allow myself
  • a first and last word on the subject of calumny as it relates to me.
  • As an author I have dared and invited censure. If I understand myself,
  • I have written neither for profit nor for fame. I have employed my
  • poetical compositions and publications simply as the instruments of
  • that sympathy between myself and others which the ardent and unbounded
  • love I cherished for my kind incited me to acquire. I expected all
  • sorts of stupidity and insolent contempt from those...
  • ...These compositions (excepting the tragedy of "The Cenci", which was
  • written rather to try my powers than to unburthen my full heart) are
  • insufficiently...commendation than perhaps they deserve, even from
  • their bitterest enemies; but they have not attained any corresponding
  • popularity. As a man, I shrink from notice and regard; the ebb and
  • flow of the world vexes me; I desire to be left in peace. Persecution,
  • contumely, and calumny have been heaped upon me in profuse measure;
  • and domestic conspiracy and legal oppression have violated in my
  • person the most sacred rights of nature and humanity. The bigot will
  • say it was the recompense of my errors; the man of the world will call
  • it the result of my imprudence; but never upon one head...
  • ...Reviewers, with some rare exceptions, are a most stupid and
  • malignant race. As a bankrupt thief turns thieftaker in despair, so an
  • unsuccessful author turns critic. But a young spirit panting for fame,
  • doubtful of its powers, and certain only of its aspirations, is ill
  • qualified to assign its true value to the sneer of this world. He
  • knows not that such stuff as this is of the abortive and monstrous
  • births which time consumes as fast as it produces. He sees the truth
  • and falsehood, the merits and demerits, of his case inextricably
  • entangled...No personal offence should have drawn from me this public
  • comment upon such stuff...
  • ...The offence of this poor victim seems to have consisted solely in
  • his intimacy with Leigh Hunt, Mr. Hazlitt, and some other enemies of
  • despotism and superstition. My friend Hunt has a very hard skull to
  • crack, and will take a deal of killing. I do not know much of Mr.
  • Hazlitt, but...
  • ...I knew personally but little of Keats; but on the news of his
  • situation I wrote to him, suggesting the propriety of trying the
  • Italian climate, and inviting him to join me. Unfortunately he did not
  • allow me...
  • PASSAGES OF THE POEM.
  • And ever as he went he swept a lyre
  • Of unaccustomed shape, and ... strings
  • Now like the ... of impetuous fire,
  • Which shakes the forest with its murmurings,
  • Now like the rush of the aereal wings _5
  • Of the enamoured wind among the treen,
  • Whispering unimaginable things,
  • And dying on the streams of dew serene,
  • Which feed the unmown meads with ever-during green.
  • ...
  • And the green Paradise which western waves _10
  • Embosom in their ever-wailing sweep,
  • Talking of freedom to their tongueless caves,
  • Or to the spirits which within them keep
  • A record of the wrongs which, though they sleep,
  • Die not, but dream of retribution, heard _15
  • His hymns, and echoing them from steep to steep,
  • Kept--
  • ...
  • And then came one of sweet and earnest looks,
  • Whose soft smiles to his dark and night-like eyes
  • Were as the clear and ever-living brooks _20
  • Are to the obscure fountains whence they rise,
  • Showing how pure they are: a Paradise
  • Of happy truth upon his forehead low
  • Lay, making wisdom lovely, in the guise
  • Of earth-awakening morn upon the brow _25
  • Of star-deserted heaven, while ocean gleams below.
  • His song, though very sweet, was low and faint,
  • A simple strain--
  • ...
  • A mighty Phantasm, half concealed
  • In darkness of his own exceeding light, _30
  • Which clothed his awful presence unrevealed,
  • Charioted on the ... night
  • Of thunder-smoke, whose skirts were chrysolite.
  • And like a sudden meteor, which outstrips
  • The splendour-winged chariot of the sun, _35
  • ... eclipse
  • The armies of the golden stars, each one
  • Pavilioned in its tent of light--all strewn
  • Over the chasms of blue night--
  • ***
  • HELLAS
  • A LYRICAL DRAMA.
  • MANTIS EIM EZTHLON AGONUN.--OEDIP. COLON.
  • ["Hellas" was composed at Pisa in the autumn of 1821, and dispatched
  • to London, November 11. It was published, with the author's name, by
  • C. & J. Ollier in the spring of 1822. A transcript of the poem by
  • Edward Williams is in the Rowfant Library. Ollier availed himself of
  • Shelley's permission to cancel certain passages in the notes; he also
  • struck out certain lines of the text. These omissions were, some of
  • them, restored in Galignani's one-volume edition of "Coleridge,
  • Shelley and Keats", Paris, 1829, and also by Mrs. Shelley in the
  • "Poetical Works", 1839. A passage in the "Preface", suppressed by
  • Ollier, was restored by Mr. Buxton Forman (1892) from a proof copy of
  • "Hellas" in his possession. The "Prologue to Hellas" was edited by Dr.
  • Garnett in 1862 ("Relics of Shelley") from the manuscripts at Boscombe
  • Manor.
  • Our text is that of the editio princeps, 1822, corrected by a list of
  • "Errata" sent by Shelley to Ollier, April 11, 1822. The Editor's Notes
  • at the end of Volume 3 should be consulted.]
  • TO HIS EXCELLENCY
  • PRINCE ALEXANDER MAVROCORDATO
  • LATE SECRETARY FOR FOREIGN AFFAIRS TO THE HOSPODAR OF WALLACHIA
  • THE DRAMA OF HELLAS IS INSCRIBED AS AN
  • IMPERFECT TOKEN OF THE ADMIRATION,
  • SYMPATHY, AND FRIENDSHIP OF
  • THE AUTHOR.
  • Pisa, November 1, 1821.
  • PREFACE.
  • The poem of "Hellas", written at the suggestion of the events of the
  • moment, is a mere improvise, and derives its interest (should it be
  • found to possess any) solely from the intense sympathy which the
  • Author feels with the cause he would celebrate.
  • The subject, in its present state, is insusceptible of being treated
  • otherwise than lyrically, and if I have called this poem a drama from
  • the circumstance of its being composed in dialogue, the licence is not
  • greater than that which has been assumed by other poets who have
  • called their productions epics, only because they have been divided
  • into twelve or twenty-four books.
  • The "Persae" of Aeschylus afforded me the first model of my
  • conception, although the decision of the glorious contest now waging
  • in Greece being yet suspended forbids a catastrophe parallel to the
  • return of Xerxes and the desolation of the Persians. I have,
  • therefore, contented myself with exhibiting a series of lyric
  • pictures, and with having wrought upon the curtain of futurity, which
  • falls upon the unfinished scene, such figures of indistinct and
  • visionary delineation as suggest the final triumph of the Greek cause
  • as a portion of the cause of civilisation and social improvement.
  • The drama (if drama it must be called) is, however, so inartificial
  • that I doubt whether, if recited on the Thespian waggon to an Athenian
  • village at the Dionysiaca, it would have obtained the prize of the
  • goat. I shall bear with equanimity any punishment, greater than the
  • loss of such a reward, which the Aristarchi of the hour may think fit
  • to inflict.
  • The only "goat-song" which I have yet attempted has, I confess, in
  • spite of the unfavourable nature of the subject, received a greater
  • and a more valuable portion of applause than I expected or than it
  • deserved.
  • Common fame is the only authority which I can allege for the details
  • which form the basis of the poem, and I must trespass upon the
  • forgiveness of my readers for the display of newspaper erudition to
  • which I have been reduced. Undoubtedly, until the conclusion of the
  • war, it will be impossible to obtain an account of it sufficiently
  • authentic for historical materials; but poets have their privilege,
  • and it is unquestionable that actions of the most exalted courage have
  • been performed by the Greeks--that they have gained more than one
  • naval victory, and that their defeat in Wallachia was signalized by
  • circumstances of heroism more glorious even than victory.
  • The apathy of the rulers of the civilised world to the astonishing
  • circumstance of the descendants of that nation to which they owe their
  • civilisation, rising as it were from the ashes of their ruin, is
  • something perfectly inexplicable to a mere spectator of the shows of
  • this mortal scene. We are all Greeks. Our laws, our literature, our
  • religion, our arts have their root in Greece. But for Greece--Rome,
  • the instructor, the conqueror, or the metropolis of our ancestors,
  • would have spread no illumination with her arms, and we might still
  • have been savages and idolaters; or, what is worse, might have arrived
  • at such a stagnant and miserable state of social institution as China
  • and Japan possess.
  • The human form and the human mind attained to a perfection in Greece
  • which has impressed its image on those faultless productions, whose
  • very fragments are the despair of modern art, and has propagated
  • impulses which cannot cease, through a thousand channels of manifest
  • or imperceptible operation, to ennoble and delight mankind until the
  • extinction of the race.
  • The modern Greek is the descendant of those glorious beings whom the
  • imagination almost refuses to figure to itself as belonging to our
  • kind, and he inherits much of their sensibility, their rapidity of
  • conception, their enthusiasm, and their courage. If in many instances
  • he is degraded by moral and political slavery to the practice of the
  • basest vices it engenders--and that below the level of ordinary
  • degradation--let us reflect that the corruption of the best produces
  • the worst, and that habits which subsist only in relation to a
  • peculiar state of social institution may be expected to cease as soon
  • as that relation is dissolved. In fact, the Greeks, since the
  • admirable novel of Anastasius could have been a faithful picture of
  • their manners, have undergone most important changes; the flower of
  • their youth, returning to their country from the universities of
  • Italy, Germany, and France, have communicated to their fellow-citizens
  • the latest results of that social perfection of which their ancestors
  • were the original source. The University of Chios contained before the
  • breaking out of the revolution eight hundred students, and among them
  • several Germans and Americans. The munificence and energy of many of
  • the Greek princes and merchants, directed to the renovation of their
  • country with a spirit and a wisdom which has few examples, is above
  • all praise.
  • The English permit their own oppressors to act according to their
  • natural sympathy with the Turkish tyrant, and to brand upon their name
  • the indelible blot of an alliance with the enemies of domestic
  • happiness, of Christianity and civilisation.
  • Russia desires to possess, not to liberate Greece; and is contented to
  • see the Turks, its natural enemies, and the Greeks, its intended
  • slaves, enfeeble each other until one or both fall into its net. The
  • wise and generous policy of England would have consisted in
  • establishing the independence of Greece, and in maintaining it both
  • against Russia and the Turk;--but when was the oppressor generous or
  • just?
  • [Should the English people ever become free, they will reflect upon
  • the part which those who presume to represent their will have played
  • in the great drama of the revival of liberty, with feelings which it
  • would become them to anticipate. This is the age of the war of the
  • oppressed against the oppressors, and every one of those ringleaders
  • of the privileged gangs of murderers and swindlers, called Sovereigns,
  • look to each other for aid against the common enemy, and suspend their
  • mutual jealousies in the presence of a mightier fear. Of this holy
  • alliance all the despots of the earth are virtual members. But a new
  • race has arisen throughout Europe, nursed in the abhorrence of the
  • opinions which are its chains, and she will continue to produce fresh
  • generations to accomplish that destiny which tyrants foresee and
  • dread. (This paragraph, suppressed in 1822 by Charles Ollier, was
  • first restored in 1892 by Mr. Buxton Forman ["Poetical Works of P. B.
  • S.", volume 4 pages 40-41] from a proof copy of Hellas in his
  • possession.]
  • The Spanish Peninsula is already free. France is tranquil in the
  • enjoyment of a partial exemption from the abuses which its unnatural
  • and feeble government are vainly attempting to revive. The seed of
  • blood and misery has been sown in Italy, and a more vigorous race is
  • arising to go forth to the harvest. The world waits only the news of a
  • revolution of Germany to see the tyrants who have pinnacled themselves
  • on its supineness precipitated into the ruin from which they shall
  • never arise. Well do these destroyers of mankind know their enemy,
  • when they impute the insurrection in Greece to the same spirit before
  • which they tremble throughout the rest of Europe, and that enemy well
  • knows the power and the cunning of its opponents, and watches the
  • moment of their approaching weakness and inevitable division to wrest
  • the bloody sceptres from their grasp.
  • PROLOGUE TO HELLAS.
  • HERALD OF ETERNITY:
  • It is the day when all the sons of God
  • Wait in the roofless senate-house, whose floor
  • Is Chaos, and the immovable abyss
  • Frozen by His steadfast word to hyaline
  • ...
  • The shadow of God, and delegate _5
  • Of that before whose breath the universe
  • Is as a print of dew.
  • Hierarchs and kings
  • Who from your thrones pinnacled on the past
  • Sway the reluctant present, ye who sit
  • Pavilioned on the radiance or the gloom _10
  • Of mortal thought, which like an exhalation
  • Steaming from earth, conceals the ... of heaven
  • Which gave it birth. ... assemble here
  • Before your Father's throne; the swift decree
  • Yet hovers, and the fiery incarnation _15
  • Is yet withheld, clothed in which it shall
  • annul
  • The fairest of those wandering isles that gem
  • The sapphire space of interstellar air,
  • That green and azure sphere, that earth enwrapped _20
  • Less in the beauty of its tender light
  • Than in an atmosphere of living spirit
  • Which interpenetrating all the ...
  • it rolls from realm to realm
  • And age to age, and in its ebb and flow _25
  • Impels the generations
  • To their appointed place,
  • Whilst the high Arbiter
  • Beholds the strife, and at the appointed time
  • Sends His decrees veiled in eternal... _30
  • Within the circuit of this pendent orb
  • There lies an antique region, on which fell
  • The dews of thought in the world's golden dawn
  • Earliest and most benign, and from it sprung
  • Temples and cities and immortal forms _35
  • And harmonies of wisdom and of song,
  • And thoughts, and deeds worthy of thoughts so fair.
  • And when the sun of its dominion failed,
  • And when the winter of its glory came,
  • The winds that stripped it bare blew on and swept _40
  • That dew into the utmost wildernesses
  • In wandering clouds of sunny rain that thawed
  • The unmaternal bosom of the North.
  • Haste, sons of God, ... for ye beheld,
  • Reluctant, or consenting, or astonished, _45
  • The stern decrees go forth, which heaped on Greece
  • Ruin and degradation and despair.
  • A fourth now waits: assemble, sons of God,
  • To speed or to prevent or to suspend,
  • If, as ye dream, such power be not withheld, _50
  • The unaccomplished destiny.
  • NOTE:
  • _8 your Garnett; yon Forman, Dowden.
  • ...
  • CHORUS:
  • The curtain of the Universe
  • Is rent and shattered,
  • The splendour-winged worlds disperse
  • Like wild doves scattered. _55
  • Space is roofless and bare,
  • And in the midst a cloudy shrine,
  • Dark amid thrones of light.
  • In the blue glow of hyaline
  • Golden worlds revolve and shine. _60
  • In ... flight
  • From every point of the Infinite,
  • Like a thousand dawns on a single night
  • The splendours rise and spread;
  • And through thunder and darkness dread _65
  • Light and music are radiated,
  • And in their pavilioned chariots led
  • By living wings high overhead
  • The giant Powers move,
  • Gloomy or bright as the thrones they fill. _70
  • ...
  • A chaos of light and motion
  • Upon that glassy ocean.
  • ...
  • The senate of the Gods is met,
  • Each in his rank and station set;
  • There is silence in the spaces-- _75
  • Lo! Satan, Christ, and Mahomet
  • Start from their places!
  • CHRIST:
  • Almighty Father!
  • Low-kneeling at the feet of Destiny
  • ...
  • There are two fountains in which spirits weep _80
  • When mortals err, Discord and Slavery named,
  • And with their bitter dew two Destinies
  • Filled each their irrevocable urns; the third
  • Fiercest and mightiest, mingled both, and added
  • Chaos and Death, and slow Oblivion's lymph, _85
  • And hate and terror, and the poisoned rain
  • ...
  • The Aurora of the nations. By this brow
  • Whose pores wept tears of blood, by these wide wounds,
  • By this imperial crown of agony,
  • By infamy and solitude and death, _90
  • For this I underwent, and by the pain
  • Of pity for those who would ... for me
  • The unremembered joy of a revenge,
  • For this I felt--by Plato's sacred light,
  • Of which my spirit was a burning morrow-- _95
  • By Greece and all she cannot cease to be.
  • Her quenchless words, sparks of immortal truth,
  • Stars of all night--her harmonies and forms,
  • Echoes and shadows of what Love adores
  • In thee, I do compel thee, send forth Fate, _100
  • Thy irrevocable child: let her descend,
  • A seraph-winged Victory [arrayed]
  • In tempest of the omnipotence of God
  • Which sweeps through all things.
  • From hollow leagues, from Tyranny which arms _105
  • Adverse miscreeds and emulous anarchies
  • To stamp, as on a winged serpent's seed,
  • Upon the name of Freedom; from the storm
  • Of faction, which like earthquake shakes and sickens
  • The solid heart of enterprise; from all _110
  • By which the holiest dreams of highest spirits
  • Are stars beneath the dawn...
  • She shall arise
  • Victorious as the world arose from Chaos!
  • And as the Heavens and the Earth arrayed
  • Their presence in the beauty and the light _115
  • Of Thy first smile, O Father,--as they gather
  • The spirit of Thy love which paves for them
  • Their path o'er the abyss, till every sphere
  • Shall be one living Spirit,--so shall Greece--
  • SATAN:
  • Be as all things beneath the empyrean, _120
  • Mine! Art thou eyeless like old Destiny,
  • Thou mockery-king, crowned with a wreath of thorns?
  • Whose sceptre is a reed, the broken reed
  • Which pierces thee! whose throne a chair of scorn;
  • For seest thou not beneath this crystal floor _125
  • The innumerable worlds of golden light
  • Which are my empire, and the least of them
  • which thou wouldst redeem from me?
  • Know'st thou not them my portion?
  • Or wouldst rekindle the ... strife _130
  • Which our great Father then did arbitrate
  • Which he assigned to his competing sons
  • Each his apportioned realm?
  • Thou Destiny,
  • Thou who art mailed in the omnipotence
  • Of Him who tends thee forth, whate'er thy task, _135
  • Speed, spare not to accomplish, and be mine
  • Thy trophies, whether Greece again become
  • The fountain in the desert whence the earth
  • Shall drink of freedom, which shall give it strength
  • To suffer, or a gulf of hollow death _140
  • To swallow all delight, all life, all hope.
  • Go, thou Vicegerent of my will, no less
  • Than of the Father's; but lest thou shouldst faint,
  • The winged hounds, Famine and Pestilence,
  • Shall wait on thee, the hundred-forked snake _145
  • Insatiate Superstition still shall...
  • The earth behind thy steps, and War shall hover
  • Above, and Fraud shall gape below, and Change
  • Shall flit before thee on her dragon wings,
  • Convulsing and consuming, and I add _150
  • Three vials of the tears which daemons weep
  • When virtuous spirits through the gate of Death
  • Pass triumphing over the thorns of life,
  • Sceptres and crowns, mitres and swords and snares,
  • Trampling in scorn, like Him and Socrates. _155
  • The first is Anarchy; when Power and Pleasure,
  • Glory and science and security,
  • On Freedom hang like fruit on the green tree,
  • Then pour it forth, and men shall gather ashes.
  • The second Tyranny--
  • CHRIST:
  • Obdurate spirit! _160
  • Thou seest but the Past in the To-come.
  • Pride is thy error and thy punishment.
  • Boast not thine empire, dream not that thy worlds
  • Are more than furnace-sparks or rainbow-drops
  • Before the Power that wields and kindles them. _165
  • True greatness asks not space, true excellence
  • Lives in the Spirit of all things that live,
  • Which lends it to the worlds thou callest thine.
  • ...
  • MAHOMET:
  • ...Haste thou and fill the waning crescent
  • With beams as keen as those which pierced the shadow _170
  • Of Christian night rolled back upon the West,
  • When the orient moon of Islam rode in triumph
  • From Tmolus to the Acroceraunian snow.
  • ...
  • Wake, thou Word
  • Of God, and from the throne of Destiny _175
  • Even to the utmost limit of thy way
  • May Triumph
  • ...
  • Be thou a curse on them whose creed
  • Divides and multiplies the most high God.
  • HELLAS.
  • DRAMATIS PERSONAE:
  • MAHMUD.
  • HASSAN.
  • DAOOD.
  • AHASUERUS, A JEW.
  • CHORUS OF GREEK CAPTIVE WOMEN.
  • [THE PHANTOM OF MAHOMET II. (OMITTED, EDITION 1822.)]
  • MESSENGERS, SLAVES, AND ATTENDANTS.
  • SCENE:
  • CONSTANTINOPLE.
  • TIME: SUNSET.
  • SCENE:
  • A TERRACE ON THE SERAGLIO.
  • MAHMUD SLEEPING,
  • AN INDIAN SLAVE SITTING BESIDE HIS COUCH.
  • CHORUS OF GREEK CAPTIVE WOMEN:
  • We strew these opiate flowers
  • On thy restless pillow,--
  • They were stripped from Orient bowers,
  • By the Indian billow.
  • Be thy sleep _5
  • Calm and deep,
  • Like theirs who fell--not ours who weep!
  • INDIAN:
  • Away, unlovely dreams!
  • Away, false shapes of sleep
  • Be his, as Heaven seems, _10
  • Clear, and bright, and deep!
  • Soft as love, and calm as death,
  • Sweet as a summer night without a breath.
  • CHORUS:
  • Sleep, sleep! our song is laden
  • With the soul of slumber; _15
  • It was sung by a Samian maiden,
  • Whose lover was of the number
  • Who now keep
  • That calm sleep
  • Whence none may wake, where none shall weep. _20
  • INDIAN:
  • I touch thy temples pale!
  • I breathe my soul on thee!
  • And could my prayers avail,
  • All my joy should be
  • Dead, and I would live to weep, _25
  • So thou mightst win one hour of quiet sleep.
  • CHORUS:
  • Breathe low, low
  • The spell of the mighty mistress now!
  • When Conscience lulls her sated snake,
  • And Tyrants sleep, let Freedom wake. _30
  • Breathe low--low
  • The words which, like secret fire, shall flow
  • Through the veins of the frozen earth--low, low!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Life may change, but it may fly not;
  • Hope may vanish, but can die not; _35
  • Truth be veiled, but still it burneth;
  • Love repulsed,--but it returneth!
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Yet were life a charnel where
  • Hope lay coffined with Despair;
  • Yet were truth a sacred lie, _40
  • Love were lust--
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • If Liberty
  • Lent not life its soul of light,
  • Hope its iris of delight,
  • Truth its prophet's robe to wear,
  • Love its power to give and bear. _45
  • CHORUS:
  • In the great morning of the world,
  • The Spirit of God with might unfurled
  • The flag of Freedom over Chaos,
  • And all its banded anarchs fled,
  • Like vultures frighted from Imaus, _50
  • Before an earthquake's tread.--
  • So from Time's tempestuous dawn
  • Freedom's splendour burst and shone:--
  • Thermopylae and Marathon
  • Caught like mountains beacon-lighted, _55
  • The springing Fire.--The winged glory
  • On Philippi half-alighted,
  • Like an eagle on a promontory.
  • Its unwearied wings could fan
  • The quenchless ashes of Milan. _60
  • From age to age, from man to man,
  • It lived; and lit from land to land
  • Florence, Albion, Switzerland.
  • Then night fell; and, as from night,
  • Reassuming fiery flight, _65
  • From the West swift Freedom came,
  • Against the course of Heaven and doom.
  • A second sun arrayed in flame,
  • To burn, to kindle, to illume.
  • From far Atlantis its young beams _70
  • Chased the shadows and the dreams.
  • France, with all her sanguine steams,
  • Hid, but quenched it not; again
  • Through clouds its shafts of glory rain
  • From utmost Germany to Spain. _75
  • As an eagle fed with morning
  • Scorns the embattled tempest's warning,
  • When she seeks her aerie hanging
  • In the mountain-cedar's hair,
  • And her brood expect the clanging _80
  • Of her wings through the wild air,
  • Sick with famine:--Freedom, so
  • To what of Greece remaineth now
  • Returns; her hoary ruins glow
  • Like Orient mountains lost in day; _85
  • Beneath the safety of her wings
  • Her renovated nurslings prey,
  • And in the naked lightenings
  • Of truth they purge their dazzled eyes.
  • Let Freedom leave--where'er she flies, _90
  • A Desert, or a Paradise:
  • Let the beautiful and the brave
  • Share her glory, or a grave.
  • NOTES:
  • _77 tempest's]tempests edition 1822.
  • _87 prey edition 1822; play editions 1839.
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • With the gifts of gladness
  • Greece did thy cradle strew; _95
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • With the tears of sadness
  • Greece did thy shroud bedew!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • With an orphan's affection
  • She followed thy bier through Time;
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • And at thy resurrection _100
  • Reappeareth, like thou, sublime!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • If Heaven should resume thee,
  • To Heaven shall her spirit ascend;
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • If Hell should entomb thee,
  • To Hell shall her high hearts bend. _105
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • If Annihilation--
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Dust let her glories be!
  • And a name and a nation
  • Be forgotten, Freedom, with thee!
  • INDIAN:
  • His brow grows darker--breathe not--move not! _110
  • He starts--he shudders--ye that love not,
  • With your panting loud and fast,
  • Have awakened him at last.
  • MAHMUD [STARTING FROM HIS SLEEP]:
  • Man the Seraglio-guard! make fast the gate!
  • What! from a cannonade of three short hours? _115
  • 'Tis false! that breach towards the Bosphorus
  • Cannot be practicable yet--who stirs?
  • Stand to the match; that when the foe prevails
  • One spark may mix in reconciling ruin
  • The conqueror and the conquered! Heave the tower _120
  • Into the gap--wrench off the roof!
  • [ENTER HASSAN.]
  • Ha! what!
  • The truth of day lightens upon my dream
  • And I am Mahmud still.
  • HASSAN:
  • Your Sublime Highness
  • Is strangely moved.
  • MAHMUD:
  • The times do cast strange shadows
  • On those who watch and who must rule their course, _125
  • Lest they, being first in peril as in glory,
  • Be whelmed in the fierce ebb:--and these are of them.
  • Thrice has a gloomy vision hunted me
  • As thus from sleep into the troubled day;
  • It shakes me as the tempest shakes the sea, _130
  • Leaving no figure upon memory's glass.
  • Would that--no matter. Thou didst say thou knewest
  • A Jew, whose spirit is a chronicle
  • Of strange and secret and forgotten things.
  • I bade thee summon him:--'tis said his tribe _135
  • Dream, and are wise interpreters of dreams.
  • HASSAN:
  • The Jew of whom I spake is old,--so old
  • He seems to have outlived a world's decay;
  • The hoary mountains and the wrinkled ocean
  • Seem younger still than he;--his hair and beard _140
  • Are whiter than the tempest-sifted snow;
  • His cold pale limbs and pulseless arteries
  • Are like the fibres of a cloud instinct
  • With light, and to the soul that quickens them
  • Are as the atoms of the mountain-drift _145
  • To the winter wind:--but from his eye looks forth
  • A life of unconsumed thought which pierces
  • The Present, and the Past, and the To-come.
  • Some say that this is he whom the great prophet
  • Jesus, the son of Joseph, for his mockery, _150
  • Mocked with the curse of immortality.
  • Some feign that he is Enoch: others dream
  • He was pre-adamite and has survived
  • Cycles of generation and of ruin.
  • The sage, in truth, by dreadful abstinence _155
  • And conquering penance of the mutinous flesh,
  • Deep contemplation, and unwearied study,
  • In years outstretched beyond the date of man,
  • May have attained to sovereignty and science
  • Over those strong and secret things and thoughts _160
  • Which others fear and know not.
  • MAHMUD:
  • I would talk
  • With this old Jew.
  • HASSAN:
  • Thy will is even now
  • Made known to him, where he dwells in a sea-cavern
  • 'Mid the Demonesi, less accessible
  • Than thou or God! He who would question him _165
  • Must sail alone at sunset, where the stream
  • Of Ocean sleeps around those foamless isles,
  • When the young moon is westering as now,
  • And evening airs wander upon the wave;
  • And when the pines of that bee-pasturing isle, _170
  • Green Erebinthus, quench the fiery shadow
  • Of his gilt prow within the sapphire water,
  • Then must the lonely helmsman cry aloud
  • 'Ahasuerus!' and the caverns round
  • Will answer 'Ahasuerus!' If his prayer _175
  • Be granted, a faint meteor will arise
  • Lighting him over Marmora, and a wind
  • Will rush out of the sighing pine-forest,
  • And with the wind a storm of harmony
  • Unutterably sweet, and pilot him _180
  • Through the soft twilight to the Bosphorus:
  • Thence at the hour and place and circumstance
  • Fit for the matter of their conference
  • The Jew appears. Few dare, and few who dare
  • Win the desired communion--but that shout _185
  • Bodes--
  • [A SHOUT WITHIN.]
  • MAHMUD:
  • Evil, doubtless; Like all human sounds.
  • Let me converse with spirits.
  • HASSAN:
  • That shout again.
  • MAHMUD:
  • This Jew whom thou hast summoned--
  • HASSAN:
  • Will be here--
  • MAHMUD:
  • When the omnipotent hour to which are yoked
  • He, I, and all things shall compel--enough! _190
  • Silence those mutineers--that drunken crew,
  • That crowd about the pilot in the storm.
  • Ay! strike the foremost shorter by a head!
  • They weary me, and I have need of rest.
  • Kinks are like stars--they rise and set, they have _195
  • The worship of the world, but no repose.
  • [EXEUNT SEVERALLY.]
  • CHORUS:
  • Worlds on worlds are rolling ever
  • From creation to decay,
  • Like the bubbles on a river
  • Sparkling, bursting, borne away. _200
  • But they are still immortal
  • Who, through birth's orient portal
  • And death's dark chasm hurrying to and fro,
  • Clothe their unceasing flight
  • In the brief dust and light _205
  • Gathered around their chariots as they go;
  • New shapes they still may weave,
  • New gods, new laws receive,
  • Bright or dim are they as the robes they last
  • On Death's bare ribs had cast. _210
  • A power from the unknown God,
  • A Promethean conqueror, came;
  • Like a triumphal path he trod
  • The thorns of death and shame.
  • A mortal shape to him _215
  • Was like the vapour dim
  • Which the orient planet animates with light;
  • Hell, Sin, and Slavery came,
  • Like bloodhounds mild and tame,
  • Nor preyed, until their Lord had taken flight; _220
  • The moon of Mahomet
  • Arose, and it shall set:
  • While blazoned as on Heaven's immortal noon
  • The cross leads generations on.
  • Swift as the radiant shapes of sleep _225
  • From one whose dreams are Paradise
  • Fly, when the fond wretch wakes to weep,
  • And Day peers forth with her blank eyes;
  • So fleet, so faint, so fair,
  • The Powers of earth and air _230
  • Fled from the folding-star of Bethlehem:
  • Apollo, Pan, and Love,
  • And even Olympian Jove
  • Grew weak, for killing Truth had glared on them;
  • Our hills and seas and streams, _235
  • Dispeopled of their dreams,
  • Their waters turned to blood, their dew to tears,
  • Wailed for the golden years.
  • [ENTER MAHMUD, HASSAN, DAOOD, AND OTHERS.]
  • MAHMUD:
  • More gold? our ancestors bought gold with victory,
  • And shall I sell it for defeat?
  • DAOOD:
  • The Janizars _240
  • Clamour for pay.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Go! bid them pay themselves
  • With Christian blood! Are there no Grecian virgins
  • Whose shrieks and spasms and tears they may enjoy?
  • No infidel children to impale on spears?
  • No hoary priests after that Patriarch _245
  • Who bent the curse against his country's heart,
  • Which clove his own at last? Go! bid them kill,
  • Blood is the seed of gold.
  • DAOOD:
  • It has been sown,
  • And yet the harvest to the sicklemen
  • Is as a grain to each.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Then, take this signet, _250
  • Unlock the seventh chamber in which lie
  • The treasures of victorious Solyman,--
  • An empire's spoil stored for a day of ruin.
  • O spirit of my sires! is it not come?
  • The prey-birds and the wolves are gorged and sleep; _255
  • But these, who spread their feast on the red earth,
  • Hunger for gold, which fills not.--See them fed;
  • Then, lead them to the rivers of fresh death.
  • [EXIT DAOOD.]
  • O miserable dawn, after a night
  • More glorious than the day which it usurped! _260
  • O faith in God! O power on earth! O word
  • Of the great prophet, whose o'ershadowing wings
  • Darkened the thrones and idols of the West,
  • Now bright!--For thy sake cursed be the hour,
  • Even as a father by an evil child, _265
  • When the orient moon of Islam rolled in triumph
  • From Caucasus to White Ceraunia!
  • Ruin above, and anarchy below;
  • Terror without, and treachery within;
  • The Chalice of destruction full, and all _270
  • Thirsting to drink; and who among us dares
  • To dash it from his lips? and where is Hope?
  • HASSAN:
  • The lamp of our dominion still rides high;
  • One God is God--Mahomet is His prophet.
  • Four hundred thousand Moslems, from the limits _275
  • Of utmost Asia, irresistibly
  • Throng, like full clouds at the Sirocco's cry;
  • But not like them to weep their strength in tears:
  • They bear destroying lightning, and their step
  • Wakes earthquake to consume and overwhelm, _280
  • And reign in ruin. Phrygian Olympus,
  • Tmolus, and Latmos, and Mycale, roughen
  • With horrent arms; and lofty ships even now,
  • Like vapours anchored to a mountain's edge,
  • Freighted with fire and whirlwind, wait at Scala _285
  • The convoy of the ever-veering wind.
  • Samos is drunk with blood;--the Greek has paid
  • Brief victory with swift loss and long despair.
  • The false Moldavian serfs fled fast and far
  • When the fierce shout of 'Allah-illa-Allah!' _290
  • Rose like the war-cry of the northern wind
  • Which kills the sluggish clouds, and leaves a flock
  • Of wild swans struggling with the naked storm.
  • So were the lost Greeks on the Danube's day!
  • If night is mute, yet the returning sun _295
  • Kindles the voices of the morning birds;
  • Nor at thy bidding less exultingly
  • Than birds rejoicing in the golden day,
  • The Anarchies of Africa unleash
  • Their tempest-winged cities of the sea, _300
  • To speak in thunder to the rebel world.
  • Like sulphurous clouds, half-shattered by the storm,
  • They sweep the pale Aegean, while the Queen
  • Of Ocean, bound upon her island-throne,
  • Far in the West, sits mourning that her sons _305
  • Who frown on Freedom spare a smile for thee:
  • Russia still hovers, as an eagle might
  • Within a cloud, near which a kite and crane
  • Hang tangled in inextricable fight,
  • To stoop upon the victor;--for she fears _310
  • The name of Freedom, even as she hates thine.
  • But recreant Austria loves thee as the Grave
  • Loves Pestilence, and her slow dogs of war
  • Fleshed with the chase, come up from Italy,
  • And howl upon their limits; for they see _315
  • The panther, Freedom, fled to her old cover,
  • Amid seas and mountains, and a mightier brood
  • Crouch round. What Anarch wears a crown or mitre,
  • Or bears the sword, or grasps the key of gold,
  • Whose friends are not thy friends, whose foes thy foes? _320
  • Our arsenals and our armouries are full;
  • Our forts defy assault; ten thousand cannon
  • Lie ranged upon the beach, and hour by hour
  • Their earth-convulsing wheels affright the city;
  • The galloping of fiery steeds makes pale _325
  • The Christian merchant; and the yellow Jew
  • Hides his hoard deeper in the faithless earth.
  • Like clouds, and like the shadows of the clouds,
  • Over the hills of Anatolia,
  • Swift in wide troops the Tartar chivalry _330
  • Sweep;--the far flashing of their starry lances
  • Reverberates the dying light of day.
  • We have one God, one King, one Hope, one Law;
  • But many-headed Insurrection stands
  • Divided in itself, and soon must fall. _335
  • NOTES:
  • _253 spoil edition 1822; spoils editions 1839.
  • _279 bear edition 1822; have editions 1839.
  • _322 assault edition 1822; assaults editions 1839.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Proud words, when deeds come short, are seasonable:
  • Look, Hassan, on yon crescent moon, emblazoned
  • Upon that shattered flag of fiery cloud
  • Which leads the rear of the departing day;
  • Wan emblem of an empire fading now! _340
  • See how it trembles in the blood-red air,
  • And like a mighty lamp whose oil is spent
  • Shrinks on the horizon's edge, while, from above,
  • One star with insolent and victorious light
  • Hovers above its fall, and with keen beams, _345
  • Like arrows through a fainting antelope,
  • Strikes its weak form to death.
  • HASSAN:
  • Even as that moon
  • Renews itself--
  • MAHMUD:
  • Shall we be not renewed!
  • Far other bark than ours were needed now
  • To stem the torrent of descending time: _350
  • The Spirit that lifts the slave before his lord
  • Stalks through the capitals of armed kings,
  • And spreads his ensign in the wilderness:
  • Exults in chains; and, when the rebel falls,
  • Cries like the blood of Abel from the dust; _355
  • And the inheritors of the earth, like beasts
  • When earthquake is unleashed, with idiot fear
  • Cower in their kingly dens--as I do now.
  • What were Defeat when Victory must appal?
  • Or Danger, when Security looks pale?-- _360
  • How said the messenger--who, from the fort
  • Islanded in the Danube, saw the battle
  • Of Bucharest?--that--
  • NOTES:
  • _351 his edition 1822; its editions 1839.
  • _356 of the earth edition 1822; of earth editions 1839.
  • HASSAN:
  • Ibrahim's scimitar
  • Drew with its gleam swift victory from Heaven,
  • To burn before him in the night of battle-- _365
  • A light and a destruction.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Ay! the day
  • Was ours: but how?--
  • HASSAN:
  • The light Wallachians,
  • The Arnaut, Servian, and Albanian allies
  • Fled from the glance of our artillery
  • Almost before the thunderstone alit. _370
  • One half the Grecian army made a bridge
  • Of safe and slow retreat, with Moslem dead;
  • The other--
  • MAHMUD:
  • Speak--tremble not.--
  • HASSAN:
  • Islanded
  • By victor myriads, formed in hollow square
  • With rough and steadfast front, and thrice flung back _375
  • The deluge of our foaming cavalry;
  • Thrice their keen wedge of battle pierced our lines.
  • Our baffled army trembled like one man
  • Before a host, and gave them space; but soon,
  • From the surrounding hills, the batteries blazed, _380
  • Kneading them down with fire and iron rain:
  • Yet none approached; till, like a field of corn
  • Under the hook of the swart sickleman,
  • The band, intrenched in mounds of Turkish dead,
  • Grew weak and few.--Then said the Pacha, 'Slaves, _385
  • Render yourselves--they have abandoned you--
  • What hope of refuge, or retreat, or aid?
  • We grant your lives.' 'Grant that which is thine own!'
  • Cried one, and fell upon his sword and died!
  • Another--'God, and man, and hope abandon me; _390
  • But I to them, and to myself, remain
  • Constant:'--he bowed his head, and his heart burst.
  • A third exclaimed, 'There is a refuge, tyrant,
  • Where thou darest not pursue, and canst not harm
  • Shouldst thou pursue; there we shall meet again.' _395
  • Then held his breath, and, after a brief spasm,
  • The indignant spirit cast its mortal garment
  • Among the slain--dead earth upon the earth!
  • So these survivors, each by different ways,
  • Some strange, all sudden, none dishonourable, _400
  • Met in triumphant death; and when our army
  • Closed in, while yet wonder, and awe, and shame
  • Held back the base hyaenas of the battle
  • That feed upon the dead and fly the living,
  • One rose out of the chaos of the slain: _405
  • And if it were a corpse which some dread spirit
  • Of the old saviours of the land we rule
  • Had lifted in its anger, wandering by;--
  • Or if there burned within the dying man
  • Unquenchable disdain of death, and faith _410
  • Creating what it feigned;--I cannot tell--
  • But he cried, 'Phantoms of the free, we come!
  • Armies of the Eternal, ye who strike
  • To dust the citadels of sanguine kings,
  • And shake the souls throned on their stony hearts, _415
  • And thaw their frostwork diadems like dew;--
  • O ye who float around this clime, and weave
  • The garment of the glory which it wears,
  • Whose fame, though earth betray the dust it clasped,
  • Lies sepulchred in monumental thought;-- _420
  • Progenitors of all that yet is great,
  • Ascribe to your bright senate, O accept
  • In your high ministrations, us, your sons--
  • Us first, and the more glorious yet to come!
  • And ye, weak conquerors! giants who look pale _425
  • When the crushed worm rebels beneath your tread,
  • The vultures and the dogs, your pensioners tame,
  • Are overgorged; but, like oppressors, still
  • They crave the relic of Destruction's feast.
  • The exhalations and the thirsty winds _430
  • Are sick with blood; the dew is foul with death;
  • Heaven's light is quenched in slaughter: thus, where'er
  • Upon your camps, cities, or towers, or fleets,
  • The obscene birds the reeking remnants cast
  • Of these dead limbs,--upon your streams and mountains, _435
  • Upon your fields, your gardens, and your housetops,
  • Where'er the winds shall creep, or the clouds fly,
  • Or the dews fall, or the angry sun look down
  • With poisoned light--Famine, and Pestilence,
  • And Panic, shall wage war upon our side! _440
  • Nature from all her boundaries is moved
  • Against ye: Time has found ye light as foam.
  • The Earth rebels; and Good and Evil stake
  • Their empire o'er the unborn world of men
  • On this one cast;--but ere the die be thrown, _445
  • The renovated genius of our race,
  • Proud umpire of the impious game, descends,
  • A seraph-winged Victory, bestriding
  • The tempest of the Omnipotence of God,
  • Which sweeps all things to their appointed doom, _450
  • And you to oblivion!'--More he would have said,
  • But--
  • NOTE:
  • _384 band edition 1822; bands editions 1839.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Died--as thou shouldst ore thy lips had painted
  • Their ruin in the hues of our success.
  • A rebel's crime, gilt with a rebel's tongue!
  • Your heart is Greek, Hassan.
  • HASSAN:
  • It may be so: _455
  • A spirit not my own wrenched me within,
  • And I have spoken words I fear and hate;
  • Yet would I die for--
  • MAHMUD:
  • Live! oh live! outlive
  • Me and this sinking empire. But the fleet--
  • HASSAN:
  • Alas!--
  • MAHMUD:
  • The fleet which, like a flock of clouds _460
  • Chased by the wind, flies the insurgent banner!
  • Our winged castles from their merchant ships!
  • Our myriads before their weak pirate bands!
  • Our arms before their chains! our years of empire
  • Before their centuries of servile fear! _465
  • Death is awake! Repulse is on the waters!
  • They own no more the thunder-bearing banner
  • Of Mahmud; but, like hounds of a base breed,
  • Gorge from a stranger's hand, and rend their master.
  • NOTE:
  • _466 Repulse is "Shelley, Errata", edition 1822; Repulsed edition 1822.
  • HASSAN:
  • Latmos, and Ampelos, and Phanae saw _470
  • The wreck--
  • MAHMUD:
  • The caves of the Icarian isles
  • Told each to the other in loud mockery,
  • And with the tongue as of a thousand echoes,
  • First of the sea-convulsing fight--and, then,--
  • Thou darest to speak--senseless are the mountains: _475
  • Interpret thou their voice!
  • NOTE:
  • _472 Told Errata, Wms. transcript; Hold edition 1822.
  • HASSAN:
  • My presence bore
  • A part in that day's shame. The Grecian fleet
  • Bore down at daybreak from the North, and hung
  • As multitudinous on the ocean line,
  • As cranes upon the cloudless Thracian wind. _480
  • Our squadron, convoying ten thousand men,
  • Was stretching towards Nauplia when the battle
  • Was kindled.--
  • First through the hail of our artillery
  • The agile Hydriote barks with press of sail _485
  • Dashed:--ship to ship, cannon to cannon, man
  • To man were grappled in the embrace of war,
  • Inextricable but by death or victory.
  • The tempest of the raging fight convulsed
  • To its crystalline depths that stainless sea, _490
  • And shook Heaven's roof of golden morning clouds,
  • Poised on an hundred azure mountain-isles.
  • In the brief trances of the artillery
  • One cry from the destroyed and the destroyer
  • Rose, and a cloud of desolation wrapped _495
  • The unforeseen event, till the north wind
  • Sprung from the sea, lifting the heavy veil
  • Of battle-smoke--then victory--victory!
  • For, as we thought, three frigates from Algiers
  • Bore down from Naxos to our aid, but soon _500
  • The abhorred cross glimmered behind, before,
  • Among, around us; and that fatal sign
  • Dried with its beams the strength in Moslem hearts,
  • As the sun drinks the dew.--What more? We fled!--
  • Our noonday path over the sanguine foam _505
  • Was beaconed,--and the glare struck the sun pale,--
  • By our consuming transports: the fierce light
  • Made all the shadows of our sails blood-red,
  • And every countenance blank. Some ships lay feeding
  • The ravening fire, even to the water's level; _510
  • Some were blown up; some, settling heavily,
  • Sunk; and the shrieks of our companions died
  • Upon the wind, that bore us fast and far,
  • Even after they were dead. Nine thousand perished!
  • We met the vultures legioned in the air _515
  • Stemming the torrent of the tainted wind;
  • They, screaming from their cloudy mountain-peaks,
  • Stooped through the sulphurous battle-smoke and perched
  • Each on the weltering carcase that we loved,
  • Like its ill angel or its damned soul, _520
  • Riding upon the bosom of the sea.
  • We saw the dog-fish hastening to their feast.
  • Joy waked the voiceless people of the sea,
  • And ravening Famine left his ocean cave
  • To dwell with War, with us, and with Despair. _525
  • We met night three hours to the west of Patmos,
  • And with night, tempest--
  • NOTES:
  • _503 in edition 1822; of editions 1839.
  • _527 And edition 1822; As editions 1839.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Cease!
  • [ENTER A MESSENGER.]
  • MESSENGER:
  • Your Sublime Highness,
  • That Christian hound, the Muscovite Ambassador,
  • Has left the city.--If the rebel fleet
  • Had anchored in the port, had victory _530
  • Crowned the Greek legions in the Hippodrome,
  • Panic were tamer.--Obedience and Mutiny,
  • Like giants in contention planet-struck,
  • Stand gazing on each other.--There is peace
  • In Stamboul.--
  • MAHMUD:
  • Is the grave not calmer still? _535
  • Its ruins shall be mine.
  • HASSAN:
  • Fear not the Russian:
  • The tiger leagues not with the stag at bay
  • Against the hunter.--Cunning, base, and cruel,
  • He crouches, watching till the spoil be won,
  • And must be paid for his reserve in blood. _540
  • After the war is fought, yield the sleek Russian
  • That which thou canst not keep, his deserved portion
  • Of blood, which shall not flow through streets and fields,
  • Rivers and seas, like that which we may win,
  • But stagnate in the veins of Christian slaves! _545
  • [ENTER SECOND MESSENGER.]
  • SECOND MESSENGER:
  • Nauplia, Tripolizza, Mothon, Athens,
  • Navarin, Artas, Monembasia,
  • Corinth, and Thebes are carried by assault,
  • And every Islamite who made his dogs
  • Fat with the flesh of Galilean slaves _550
  • Passed at the edge of the sword: the lust of blood,
  • Which made our warriors drunk, is quenched in death;
  • But like a fiery plague breaks out anew
  • In deeds which make the Christian cause look pale
  • In its own light. The garrison of Patras _555
  • Has store but for ten days, nor is there hope
  • But from the Briton: at once slave and tyrant,
  • His wishes still are weaker than his fears,
  • Or he would sell what faith may yet remain
  • From the oaths broke in Genoa and in Norway; _560
  • And if you buy him not, your treasury
  • Is empty even of promises--his own coin.
  • The freedman of a western poet-chief
  • Holds Attica with seven thousand rebels,
  • And has beat back the Pacha of Negropont: _565
  • The aged Ali sits in Yanina
  • A crownless metaphor of empire:
  • His name, that shadow of his withered might,
  • Holds our besieging army like a spell
  • In prey to famine, pest, and mutiny; _570
  • He, bastioned in his citadel, looks forth
  • Joyless upon the sapphire lake that mirrors
  • The ruins of the city where he reigned
  • Childless and sceptreless. The Greek has reaped
  • The costly harvest his own blood matured, _575
  • Not the sower, Ali--who has bought a truce
  • From Ypsilanti with ten camel-loads
  • Of Indian gold.
  • NOTE:
  • _563 freedman edition 1822; freeman editions 1839.
  • [ENTER A THIRD MESSENGER.]
  • MAHMUD:
  • What more?
  • THIRD MESSENGER:
  • The Christian tribes
  • Of Lebanon and the Syrian wilderness
  • Are in revolt;--Damascus, Hems, Aleppo _580
  • Tremble;--the Arab menaces Medina,
  • The Aethiop has intrenched himself in Sennaar,
  • And keeps the Egyptian rebel well employed,
  • Who denies homage, claims investiture
  • As price of tardy aid. Persia demands _585
  • The cities on the Tigris, and the Georgians
  • Refuse their living tribute. Crete and Cyprus,
  • Like mountain-twins that from each other's veins
  • Catch the volcano-fire and earthquake-spasm,
  • Shake in the general fever. Through the city, _590
  • Like birds before a storm, the Santons shriek,
  • And prophesyings horrible and new
  • Are heard among the crowd: that sea of men
  • Sleeps on the wrecks it made, breathless and still.
  • A Dervise, learned in the Koran, preaches _595
  • That it is written how the sins of Islam
  • Must raise up a destroyer even now.
  • The Greeks expect a Saviour from the West,
  • Who shall not come, men say, in clouds and glory,
  • But in the omnipresence of that Spirit _600
  • In which all live and are. Ominous signs
  • Are blazoned broadly on the noonday sky:
  • One saw a red cross stamped upon the sun;
  • It has rained blood; and monstrous births declare
  • The secret wrath of Nature and her Lord. _605
  • The army encamped upon the Cydaris
  • Was roused last night by the alarm of battle,
  • And saw two hosts conflicting in the air,
  • The shadows doubtless of the unborn time
  • Cast on the mirror of the night. While yet _610
  • The fight hung balanced, there arose a storm
  • Which swept the phantoms from among the stars.
  • At the third watch the Spirit of the Plague
  • Was heard abroad flapping among the tents;
  • Those who relieved watch found the sentinels dead. _615
  • The last news from the camp is, that a thousand
  • Have sickened, and--
  • [ENTER A FOURTH MESSENGER.]
  • MAHMUD:
  • And thou, pale ghost, dim shadow
  • Of some untimely rumour, speak!
  • FOURTH MESSENGER:
  • One comes
  • Fainting with toil, covered with foam and blood:
  • He stood, he says, on Chelonites' _620
  • Promontory, which o'erlooks the isles that groan
  • Under the Briton's frown, and all their waters
  • Then trembling in the splendour of the moon,
  • When as the wandering clouds unveiled or hid
  • Her boundless light, he saw two adverse fleets _625
  • Stalk through the night in the horizon's glimmer,
  • Mingling fierce thunders and sulphureous gleams,
  • And smoke which strangled every infant wind
  • That soothed the silver clouds through the deep air.
  • At length the battle slept, but the Sirocco _630
  • Awoke, and drove his flock of thunder-clouds
  • Over the sea-horizon, blotting out
  • All objects--save that in the faint moon-glimpse
  • He saw, or dreamed he saw, the Turkish admiral
  • And two the loftiest of our ships of war, _635
  • With the bright image of that Queen of Heaven,
  • Who hid, perhaps, her face for grief, reversed;
  • And the abhorred cross--
  • NOTE:
  • _620 on Chelonites']on Chelonites "Errata";
  • upon Clelonite's edition 1822;
  • upon Clelonit's editions 1839.
  • [ENTER AN ATTENDANT.]
  • ATTENDANT:
  • Your Sublime Highness,
  • The Jew, who--
  • MAHMUD:
  • Could not come more seasonably:
  • Bid him attend. I'll hear no more! too long _640
  • We gaze on danger through the mist of fear,
  • And multiply upon our shattered hopes
  • The images of ruin. Come what will!
  • To-morrow and to-morrow are as lamps
  • Set in our path to light us to the edge _645
  • Through rough and smooth, nor can we suffer aught
  • Which He inflicts not in whose hand we are.
  • [EXEUNT.]
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Would I were the winged cloud
  • Of a tempest swift and loud!
  • I would scorn _650
  • The smile of morn
  • And the wave where the moonrise is born!
  • I would leave
  • The spirits of eve
  • A shroud for the corpse of the day to weave _655
  • From other threads than mine!
  • Bask in the deep blue noon divine.
  • Who would? Not I.
  • NOTE:
  • _657 the deep blue "Errata", Wms. transcript; the blue edition 1822.
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Whither to fly?
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Where the rocks that gird th' Aegean _660
  • Echo to the battle paean
  • Of the free--
  • I would flee
  • A tempestuous herald of victory!
  • My golden rain
  • For the Grecian slain _665
  • Should mingle in tears with the bloody main,
  • And my solemn thunder-knell
  • Should ring to the world the passing-bell
  • Of Tyranny! _670
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Ah king! wilt thou chain
  • The rack and the rain?
  • Wilt thou fetter the lightning and hurricane?
  • The storms are free,
  • But we-- _675
  • CHORUS:
  • O Slavery! thou frost of the world's prime,
  • Killing its flowers and leaving its thorns bare!
  • Thy touch has stamped these limbs with crime,
  • These brows thy branding garland bear,
  • But the free heart, the impassive soul _680
  • Scorn thy control!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Let there be light! said Liberty,
  • And like sunrise from the sea,
  • Athens arose!--Around her born,
  • Shone like mountains in the morn _685
  • Glorious states;--and are they now
  • Ashes, wrecks, oblivion?
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Go,
  • Where Thermae and Asopus swallowed
  • Persia, as the sand does foam:
  • Deluge upon deluge followed, _690
  • Discord, Macedon, and Rome:
  • And lastly thou!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Temples and towers,
  • Citadels and marts, and they
  • Who live and die there, have been ours,
  • And may be thine, and must decay; _695
  • But Greece and her foundations are
  • Built below the tide of war,
  • Based on the crystalline sea
  • Of thought and its eternity;
  • Her citizens, imperial spirits, _700
  • Rule the present from the past,
  • On all this world of men inherits
  • Their seal is set.
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Hear ye the blast,
  • Whose Orphic thunder thrilling calls
  • From ruin her Titanian walls? _705
  • Whose spirit shakes the sapless bones
  • Of Slavery? Argos, Corinth, Crete
  • Hear, and from their mountain thrones
  • The daemons and the nymphs repeat
  • The harmony.
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • I hear! I hear! _710
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • The world's eyeless charioteer,
  • Destiny, is hurrying by!
  • What faith is crushed, what empire bleeds
  • Beneath her earthquake-footed steeds?
  • What eagle-winged victory sits _715
  • At her right hand? what shadow flits
  • Before? what splendour rolls behind?
  • Ruin and renovation cry
  • 'Who but We?'
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • I hear! I hear!
  • The hiss as of a rushing wind, _720
  • The roar as of an ocean foaming,
  • The thunder as of earthquake coming.
  • I hear! I hear!
  • The crash as of an empire falling,
  • The shrieks as of a people calling _725
  • 'Mercy! mercy!'--How they thrill!
  • Then a shout of 'kill! kill! kill!'
  • And then a small still voice, thus--
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • For
  • Revenge and Wrong bring forth their kind,
  • The foul cubs like their parents are, _730
  • Their den is in the guilty mind,
  • And Conscience feeds them with despair.
  • NOTE:
  • _728 For edition 1822, Wms. transcript;
  • Fear cj. Fleay, Forman, Dowden. See Editor's Note.
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • In sacred Athens, near the fane
  • Of Wisdom, Pity's altar stood:
  • Serve not the unknown God in vain. _735
  • But pay that broken shrine again,
  • Love for hate and tears for blood.
  • [ENTER MAHMUD AND AHASUERUS.]
  • MAHMUD:
  • Thou art a man, thou sayest, even as we.
  • AHASUERUS:
  • No more!
  • MAHMUD:
  • But raised above thy fellow-men
  • By thought, as I by power.
  • AHASUERUS:
  • Thou sayest so. _740
  • MAHMUD:
  • Thou art an adept in the difficult lore
  • Of Greek and Frank philosophy; thou numberest
  • The flowers, and thou measurest the stars;
  • Thou severest element from element;
  • Thy spirit is present in the Past, and sees _745
  • The birth of this old world through all its cycles
  • Of desolation and of loveliness,
  • And when man was not, and how man became
  • The monarch and the slave of this low sphere,
  • And all its narrow circles--it is much-- _750
  • I honour thee, and would be what thou art
  • Were I not what I am; but the unborn hour,
  • Cradled in fear and hope, conflicting storms,
  • Who shall unveil? Nor thou, nor I, nor any
  • Mighty or wise. I apprehended not _755
  • What thou hast taught me, but I now perceive
  • That thou art no interpreter of dreams;
  • Thou dost not own that art, device, or God,
  • Can make the Future present--let it come!
  • Moreover thou disdainest us and ours; _760
  • Thou art as God, whom thou contemplatest.
  • AHASUERUS:
  • Disdain thee?--not the worm beneath thy feet!
  • The Fathomless has care for meaner things
  • Than thou canst dream, and has made pride for those
  • Who would be what they may not, or would seem _765
  • That which they are not. Sultan! talk no more
  • Of thee and me, the Future and the Past;
  • But look on that which cannot change--the One,
  • The unborn and the undying. Earth and ocean,
  • Space, and the isles of life or light that gem _770
  • The sapphire floods of interstellar air,
  • This firmament pavilioned upon chaos,
  • With all its cressets of immortal fire,
  • Whose outwall, bastioned impregnably
  • Against the escape of boldest thoughts, repels them _775
  • As Calpe the Atlantic clouds--this Whole
  • Of suns, and worlds, and men, and beasts, and flowers,
  • With all the silent or tempestuous workings
  • By which they have been, are, or cease to be,
  • Is but a vision;--all that it inherits _780
  • Are motes of a sick eye, bubbles and dreams;
  • Thought is its cradle and its grave, nor less
  • The Future and the Past are idle shadows
  • Of thought's eternal flight--they have no being:
  • Nought is but that which feels itself to be. _785
  • NOTE:
  • _762 thy edition 1822; my editions 1839.
  • MAHMUD:
  • What meanest thou? Thy words stream like a tempest
  • Of dazzling mist within my brain--they shake
  • The earth on which I stand, and hang like night
  • On Heaven above me. What can they avail?
  • They cast on all things surest, brightest, best, _790
  • Doubt, insecurity, astonishment.
  • AHASUERUS:
  • Mistake me not! All is contained in each.
  • Dodona's forest to an acorn's cup
  • Is that which has been, or will be, to that
  • Which is--the absent to the present. Thought _795
  • Alone, and its quick elements, Will, Passion,
  • Reason, Imagination, cannot die;
  • They are, what that which they regard appears,
  • The stuff whence mutability can weave
  • All that it hath dominion o'er, worlds, worms, _800
  • Empires, and superstitions. What has thought
  • To do with time, or place, or circumstance?
  • Wouldst thou behold the Future?--ask and have!
  • Knock and it shall be opened--look, and lo!
  • The coming age is shadowed on the Past _805
  • As on a glass.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Wild, wilder thoughts convulse
  • My spirit--Did not Mahomet the Second
  • Win Stamboul?
  • AHASUERUS:
  • Thou wouldst ask that giant spirit
  • The written fortunes of thy house and faith.
  • Thou wouldst cite one out of the grave to tell _810
  • How what was born in blood must die.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Thy words
  • Have power on me! I see--
  • AHASUERUS:
  • What hearest thou?
  • MAHMUD:
  • A far whisper--
  • Terrible silence.
  • AHASUERUS:
  • What succeeds?
  • MAHMUD:
  • The sound
  • As of the assault of an imperial city, _815
  • The hiss of inextinguishable fire,
  • The roar of giant cannon; the earthquaking
  • Fall of vast bastions and precipitous towers,
  • The shock of crags shot from strange enginery,
  • The clash of wheels, and clang of armed hoofs, _820
  • And crash of brazen mail as of the wreck
  • Of adamantine mountains--the mad blast
  • Of trumpets, and the neigh of raging steeds,
  • The shrieks of women whose thrill jars the blood,
  • And one sweet laugh, most horrible to hear, _825
  • As of a joyous infant waked and playing
  • With its dead mother's breast, and now more loud
  • The mingled battle-cry,--ha! hear I not
  • 'En touto nike!' 'Allah-illa-Allah!'?
  • AHASUERUS:
  • The sulphurous mist is raised--thou seest--
  • MAHMUD:
  • A chasm, _830
  • As of two mountains in the wall of Stamboul;
  • And in that ghastly breach the Islamites,
  • Like giants on the ruins of a world,
  • Stand in the light of sunrise. In the dust
  • Glimmers a kingless diadem, and one _835
  • Of regal port has cast himself beneath
  • The stream of war. Another proudly clad
  • In golden arms spurs a Tartarian barb
  • Into the gap, and with his iron mace
  • Directs the torrent of that tide of men, _840
  • And seems--he is--Mahomet!
  • AHASUERUS:
  • What thou seest
  • Is but the ghost of thy forgotten dream.
  • A dream itself, yet less, perhaps, than that
  • Thou call'st reality. Thou mayst behold
  • How cities, on which Empire sleeps enthroned, _845
  • Bow their towered crests to mutability.
  • Poised by the flood, e'en on the height thou holdest,
  • Thou mayst now learn how the full tide of power
  • Ebbs to its depths.--Inheritor of glory,
  • Conceived in darkness, born in blood, and nourished _850
  • With tears and toil, thou seest the mortal throes
  • Of that whose birth was but the same. The Past
  • Now stands before thee like an Incarnation
  • Of the To-come; yet wouldst thou commune with
  • That portion of thyself which was ere thou _855
  • Didst start for this brief race whose crown is death,
  • Dissolve with that strong faith and fervent passion
  • Which called it from the uncreated deep,
  • Yon cloud of war, with its tempestuous phantoms
  • Of raging death; and draw with mighty will _860
  • The imperial shade hither.
  • [EXIT AHASUERUS.]
  • [THE PHANTOM OF MAHOMET THE SECOND APPEARS.]
  • MAHMUD:
  • Approach!
  • PHANTOM:
  • I come
  • Thence whither thou must go! The grave is fitter
  • To take the living than give up the dead;
  • Yet has thy faith prevailed, and I am here.
  • The heavy fragments of the power which fell _865
  • When I arose, like shapeless crags and clouds,
  • Hang round my throne on the abyss, and voices
  • Of strange lament soothe my supreme repose,
  • Wailing for glory never to return.--
  • A later Empire nods in its decay: _870
  • The autumn of a greener faith is come,
  • And wolfish change, like winter, howls to strip
  • The foliage in which Fame, the eagle, built
  • Her aerie, while Dominion whelped below.
  • The storm is in its branches, and the frost _875
  • Is on its leaves, and the blank deep expects
  • Oblivion on oblivion, spoil on spoil,
  • Ruin on ruin:--Thou art slow, my son;
  • The Anarchs of the world of darkness keep
  • A throne for thee, round which thine empire lies _880
  • Boundless and mute; and for thy subjects thou,
  • Like us, shalt rule the ghosts of murdered life,
  • The phantoms of the powers who rule thee now--
  • Mutinous passions, and conflicting fears,
  • And hopes that sate themselves on dust, and die!-- _885
  • Stripped of their mortal strength, as thou of thine.
  • Islam must fall, but we will reign together
  • Over its ruins in the world of death:--
  • And if the trunk be dry, yet shall the seed
  • Unfold itself even in the shape of that _890
  • Which gathers birth in its decay. Woe! woe!
  • To the weak people tangled in the grasp
  • Of its last spasms.
  • MAHMUD:
  • Spirit, woe to all!
  • Woe to the wronged and the avenger! Woe
  • To the destroyer, woe to the destroyed! _895
  • Woe to the dupe, and woe to the deceiver!
  • Woe to the oppressed, and woe to the oppressor!
  • Woe both to those that suffer and inflict;
  • Those who are born and those who die! but say,
  • Imperial shadow of the thing I am, _900
  • When, how, by whom, Destruction must accomplish
  • Her consummation!
  • PHANTOM:
  • Ask the cold pale Hour,
  • Rich in reversion of impending death,
  • When HE shall fall upon whose ripe gray hairs
  • Sit Care, and Sorrow, and Infirmity-- _905
  • The weight which Crime, whose wings are plumed with years,
  • Leaves in his flight from ravaged heart to heart
  • Over the heads of men, under which burthen
  • They bow themselves unto the grave: fond wretch!
  • He leans upon his crutch, and talks of years _910
  • To come, and how in hours of youth renewed
  • He will renew lost joys, and--
  • VOICE WITHOUT:
  • Victory! Victory!
  • [THE PHANTOM VANISHES.]
  • MAHMUD:
  • What sound of the importunate earth has broken
  • My mighty trance?
  • VOICE WITHOUT:
  • Victory! Victory!
  • MAHMUD:
  • Weak lightning before darkness! poor faint smile _915
  • Of dying Islam! Voice which art the response
  • Of hollow weakness! Do I wake and live?
  • Were there such things, or may the unquiet brain,
  • Vexed by the wise mad talk of the old Jew,
  • Have shaped itself these shadows of its fear? _920
  • It matters not!--for nought we see or dream,
  • Possess, or lose, or grasp at, can be worth
  • More than it gives or teaches. Come what may,
  • The Future must become the Past, and I
  • As they were to whom once this present hour, _925
  • This gloomy crag of time to which I cling,
  • Seemed an Elysian isle of peace and joy
  • Never to be attained.--I must rebuke
  • This drunkenness of triumph ere it die,
  • And dying, bring despair. Victory! poor slaves! _930
  • [EXIT MAHMUD.]
  • VOICE WITHOUT:
  • Shout in the jubilee of death! The Greeks
  • Are as a brood of lions in the net
  • Round which the kingly hunters of the earth
  • Stand smiling. Anarchs, ye whose daily food
  • Are curses, groans, and gold, the fruit of death, _935
  • From Thule to the girdle of the world,
  • Come, feast! the board groans with the flesh of men;
  • The cup is foaming with a nation's blood,
  • Famine and Thirst await! eat, drink, and die!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Victorious Wrong, with vulture scream, _940
  • Salutes the rising sun, pursues the flying day!
  • I saw her, ghastly as a tyrant's dream,
  • Perch on the trembling pyramid of night,
  • Beneath which earth and all her realms pavilioned lay
  • In visions of the dawning undelight. _945
  • Who shall impede her flight?
  • Who rob her of her prey?
  • VOICE WITHOUT:
  • Victory! Victory! Russia's famished eagles
  • Dare not to prey beneath the crescent's light.
  • Impale the remnant of the Greeks! despoil! _950
  • Violate! make their flesh cheaper than dust!
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Thou voice which art
  • The herald of the ill in splendour hid!
  • Thou echo of the hollow heart
  • Of monarchy, bear me to thine abode _955
  • When desolation flashes o'er a world destroyed:
  • Oh, bear me to those isles of jagged cloud
  • Which float like mountains on the earthquake, mid
  • The momentary oceans of the lightning,
  • Or to some toppling promontory proud _960
  • Of solid tempest whose black pyramid,
  • Riven, overhangs the founts intensely bright'ning
  • Of those dawn-tinted deluges of fire
  • Before their waves expire,
  • When heaven and earth are light, and only light _965
  • In the thunder-night!
  • NOTE:
  • _958 earthquake edition 1822; earthquakes editions 1839.
  • VOICE WITHOUT:
  • Victory! Victory! Austria, Russia, England,
  • And that tame serpent, that poor shadow, France,
  • Cry peace, and that means death when monarchs speak.
  • Ho, there! bring torches, sharpen those red stakes, _970
  • These chains are light, fitter for slaves and poisoners
  • Than Greeks. Kill! plunder! burn! let none remain.
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Alas! for Liberty!
  • If numbers, wealth, or unfulfilling years,
  • Or fate, can quell the free! _975
  • Alas! for Virtue, when
  • Torments, or contumely, or the sneers
  • Of erring judging men
  • Can break the heart where it abides.
  • Alas! if Love, whose smile makes this obscure world splendid, _980
  • Can change with its false times and tides,
  • Like hope and terror,--
  • Alas for Love!
  • And Truth, who wanderest lone and unbefriended,
  • If thou canst veil thy lie-consuming mirror _985
  • Before the dazzled eyes of Error,
  • Alas for thee! Image of the Above.
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Repulse, with plumes from conquest torn,
  • Led the ten thousand from the limits of the morn
  • Through many an hostile Anarchy! _990
  • At length they wept aloud, and cried, 'The Sea! the Sea!'
  • Through exile, persecution, and despair,
  • Rome was, and young Atlantis shall become
  • The wonder, or the terror, or the tomb
  • Of all whose step wakes Power lulled in her savage lair: _995
  • But Greece was as a hermit-child,
  • Whose fairest thoughts and limbs were built
  • To woman's growth, by dreams so mild,
  • She knew not pain or guilt;
  • And now, O Victory, blush! and Empire, tremble _1000
  • When ye desert the free--
  • If Greece must be
  • A wreck, yet shall its fragments reassemble,
  • And build themselves again impregnably
  • In a diviner clime, _1005
  • To Amphionic music on some Cape sublime,
  • Which frowns above the idle foam of Time.
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Let the tyrants rule the desert they have made;
  • Let the free possess the Paradise they claim;
  • Be the fortune of our fierce oppressors weighed _1010
  • With our ruin, our resistance, and our name!
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • Our dead shall be the seed of their decay,
  • Our survivors be the shadow of their pride,
  • Our adversity a dream to pass away--
  • Their dishonour a remembrance to abide! _1015
  • VOICE WITHOUT:
  • Victory! Victory! The bought Briton sends
  • The keys of ocean to the Islamite.--
  • Now shall the blazon of the cross be veiled,
  • And British skill directing Othman might,
  • Thunder-strike rebel victory. Oh, keep holy _1020
  • This jubilee of unrevenged blood!
  • Kill! crush! despoil! Let not a Greek escape!
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Darkness has dawned in the East
  • On the noon of time:
  • The death-birds descend to their feast _1025
  • From the hungry clime.
  • Let Freedom and Peace flee far
  • To a sunnier strand,
  • And follow Love's folding-star
  • To the Evening land! _1030
  • SEMICHORUS 2:
  • The young moon has fed
  • Her exhausted horn
  • With the sunset's fire:
  • The weak day is dead,
  • But the night is not born; _1035
  • And, like loveliness panting with wild desire
  • While it trembles with fear and delight,
  • Hesperus flies from awakening night,
  • And pants in its beauty and speed with light
  • Fast-flashing, soft, and bright. _1040
  • Thou beacon of love! thou lamp of the free!
  • Guide us far, far away,
  • To climes where now veiled by the ardour of day
  • Thou art hidden
  • From waves on which weary Noon _1045
  • Faints in her summer swoon,
  • Between kingless continents sinless as Eden,
  • Around mountains and islands inviolably
  • Pranked on the sapphire sea.
  • SEMICHORUS 1:
  • Through the sunset of hope, _1050
  • Like the shapes of a dream.
  • What Paradise islands of glory gleam!
  • Beneath Heaven's cope,
  • Their shadows more clear float by--
  • The sound of their oceans, the light of their sky, _1055
  • The music and fragrance their solitudes breathe
  • Burst, like morning on dream, or like Heaven on death,
  • Through the walls of our prison;
  • And Greece, which was dead, is arisen!
  • NOTE:
  • _1057 dream edition 1822; dreams editions 1839.
  • CHORUS:
  • The world's great age begins anew, _1060
  • The golden years return,
  • The earth doth like a snake renew
  • Her winter weeds outworn:
  • Heaven smiles, and faiths and empires gleam,
  • Like wrecks of a dissolving dream. _1065
  • A brighter Hellas rears its mountains
  • From waves serener far;
  • A new Peneus rolls his fountains
  • Against the morning star.
  • Where fairer Tempes bloom, there sleep _1070
  • Young Cyclads on a sunnier deep.
  • A loftier Argo cleaves the main,
  • Fraught with a later prize;
  • Another Orpheus sings again,
  • And loves, and weeps, and dies. _1075
  • A new Ulysses leaves once more
  • Calypso for his native shore.
  • Oh, write no more the tale of Troy,
  • If earth Death's scroll must be!
  • Nor mix with Laian rage the joy _1080
  • Which dawns upon the free:
  • Although a subtler Sphinx renew
  • Riddles of death Thebes never knew.
  • Another Athens shall arise,
  • And to remoter time _1085
  • Bequeath, like sunset to the skies,
  • The splendour of its prime;
  • And leave, if nought so bright may live,
  • All earth can take or Heaven can give.
  • Saturn and Love their long repose _1090
  • Shall burst, more bright and good
  • Than all who fell, than One who rose,
  • Than many unsubdued:
  • Not gold, not blood, their altar dowers,
  • But votive tears and symbol flowers. _1095
  • Oh, cease! must hate and death return?
  • Cease! must men kill and die?
  • Cease! drain not to its dregs the urn
  • Of bitter prophecy.
  • The world is weary of the past, _1100
  • Oh, might it die or rest at last!
  • NOTES:
  • _1068 his edition 1822; its editions 1839.
  • _1072 Argo]Argos edition 1822.
  • _1091-_1093 See Editor's note.
  • _1091 bright editions 1839; wise edition 1829 (ed. Galignani).
  • _1093 unsubdued editions 1839; unwithstood edition 1829 (ed. Galignani).
  • NOTES.
  • (1) THE QUENCHLESS ASHES OF MILAN [L. 60].
  • Milan was the centre of the resistance of the Lombard league against
  • the Austrian tyrant. Frederic Barbarossa burnt the city to the ground,
  • but liberty lived in its ashes, and it rose like an exhalation from
  • its ruin. See Sismondi's "Histoire des Republiques Italiennes", a book
  • which has done much towards awakening the Italians to an imitation of
  • their great ancestors.
  • (2) THE CHORUS [L. 197].
  • The popular notions of Christianity are represented in this chorus as
  • true in their relation to the worship they superseded, and that which
  • in all probability they will supersede, without considering their
  • merits in a relation more universal. The first stanza contrasts the
  • immortality of the living and thinking beings which inhabit the
  • planets, and to use a common and inadequate phrase, "clothe themselves
  • in matter", with the transience of the noblest manifestations of the
  • external world.
  • The concluding verses indicate a progressive state of more or loss
  • exalted existence, according to the degree of perfection which every
  • distinct intelligence may have attained. Let it not be supposed that I
  • mean to dogmatise upon a subject, concerning which all men are equally
  • ignorant, or that I think the Gordian knot of the origin of evil can
  • be disentangled by that or any similar assertions. The received
  • hypothesis of a Being resembling men in the moral attributes of His
  • nature, having called us out of non-existence, and after inflicting on
  • us the misery of the commission of error, should superadd that of the
  • punishment and the privations consequent upon it, still would remain
  • inexplicable and incredible. That there is a true solution of the
  • riddle, and that in our present state that solution is unattainable by
  • us, are propositions which may be regarded as equally certain:
  • meanwhile, as it is the province of the poet to attach himself to
  • those ideas which exalt and ennoble humanity, let him be permitted to
  • have conjectured the condition of that futurity towards which we are
  • all impelled by an inextinguishable thirst for immortality. Until
  • better arguments can be produced than sophisms which disgrace the
  • cause, this desire itself must remain the strongest and the only
  • presumption that eternity is the inheritance of every thinking being.
  • (3) NO HOARY PRIESTS AFTER THAT PATRIARCH [L. 245].
  • The Greek Patriarch, after haying been compelled to fulminate an
  • anathema against the insurgents, was put to death by the Turks.
  • Fortunately the Greeks have been taught that they cannot buy security
  • by degradation, and the Turks, though equally cruel, are less cunning
  • than the smooth-faced tyrants of Europe. As to the anathema, his
  • Holiness might as well have thrown his mitre at Mount Athos for any
  • effect that it produced. The chiefs of the Greeks are almost all men
  • of comprehension and enlightened views on religion and politics.
  • (4) THE FREEDMAN OF A WESTERN POET-CHIEF [L. 563].
  • A Greek who had been Lord Byron's servant commands the insurgents in
  • Attica. This Greek, Lord Byron informs me, though a poet and an
  • enthusiastic patriot, gave him rather the idea of a timid and
  • unenterprising person. It appears that circumstances make men what
  • they are, and that we all contain the germ of a degree of degradation
  • or of greatness whose connection with our character is determined by
  • events.
  • (5) THE GREEKS EXPECT A SAVIOUR FROM THE WEST [L. 598].
  • It is reported that this Messiah had arrived at a seaport near
  • Lacedaemon in an American brig. The association of names and ideas is
  • irresistibly ludicrous, but the prevalence of such a rumour strongly
  • marks the state of popular enthusiasm in Greece.
  • (6) THE SOUND AS OF THE ASSAULT OF AN IMPERIAL CITY [LL. 814-15].
  • For the vision of Mahmud of the taking of Constantinople in 1453, see
  • Gibbon's "Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire", volume 12 page 223.
  • The manner of the invocation of the spirit of Mahomet the Second will
  • be censured as over subtle. I could easily have made the Jew a regular
  • conjuror, and the Phantom an ordinary ghost. I have preferred to
  • represent the Jew as disclaiming all pretension, or even belief, in
  • supernatural agency, and as tempting Mahmud to that state of mind in
  • which ideas may be supposed to assume the force of sensations through
  • the confusion of thought with the objects of thought, and the excess
  • of passion animating the creations of imagination.
  • It is a sort of natural magic, susceptible of being exercised in a
  • degree by any one who should have made himself master of the secret
  • associations of another's thoughts.
  • (7) THE CHORUS [L. 1060].
  • The final chorus is indistinct and obscure, as the event of the living
  • drama whose arrival it foretells. Prophecies of wars, and rumours of
  • wars, etc., may safely be made by poet or prophet in any age, but to
  • anticipate however darkly a period of regeneration and happiness is a
  • more hazardous exercise of the faculty which bards possess or feign.
  • It will remind the reader 'magno NEC proximus intervallo' of Isaiah
  • and Virgil, whose ardent spirits overleaping the actual reign of evil
  • which we endure and bewail, already saw the possible and perhaps
  • approaching state of society in which the 'lion shall lie down with
  • the lamb,' and 'omnis feret omnia tellus.' Let these great names be my
  • authority and my excuse.
  • (8) SATURN AND LOVE THEIR LONG REPOSE SHALL BURST [L. 1090].
  • Saturn and Love were among the deities of a real or imaginary state of
  • innocence and happiness. ALL those WHO FELL, or the Gods of Greece,
  • Asia, and Egypt; the ONE WHO ROSE, or Jesus Christ, at whose
  • appearance the idols of the Pagan World wore amerced of their worship;
  • and the MANY UNSUBDUED, or the monstrous objects of the idolatry of
  • China, India, the Antarctic islands, and the native tribes of America,
  • certainly have reigned over the understandings of men in conjunction
  • or in succession, during periods in which all we know of evil has been
  • in a state of portentous, and, until the revival of learning and the
  • arts, perpetually increasing, activity. The Grecian gods seem indeed
  • to have been personally more innocent, although it cannot be said,
  • that as far as temperance and chastity are concerned, they gave so
  • edifying an example as their successor. The sublime human character of
  • Jesus Christ was deformed by an imputed identification with a Power,
  • who tempted, betrayed, and punished the innocent beings who were
  • called into existence by His sole will; and for the period of a
  • thousand years, the spirit of this most just, wise, and benevolent of
  • men has been propitiated with myriads of hecatombs of those who
  • approached the nearest to His innocence and wisdom, sacrificed under
  • every aggravation of atrocity and variety of torture. The horrors of
  • the Mexican, the Peruvian, and the Indian superstitions are well
  • known.
  • NOTE ON HELLAS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
  • The South of Europe was in a state of great political excitement at
  • the beginning of the year 1821. The Spanish Revolution had been a
  • signal to Italy; secrete societies were formed; and, when Naples rose
  • to declare the Constitution, the call was responded to from Brundusium
  • to the foot of the Alps. To crush these attempts to obtain liberty,
  • early in 1821 the Austrians poured their armies into the Peninsula: at
  • first their coming rather seemed to add energy and resolution to a
  • people long enslaved. The Piedmontese asserted their freedom; Genoa
  • threw off the yoke of the King of Sardinia; and, as if in playful
  • imitation, the people of the little state of Massa and Carrara gave
  • the conge to their sovereign, and set up a republic.
  • Tuscany alone was perfectly tranquil. It was said that the Austrian
  • minister presented a list of sixty Carbonari to the Grand Duke, urging
  • their imprisonment; and the Grand Duke replied, 'I do not know whether
  • these sixty men are Carbonari, but I know, if I imprison them, I shall
  • directly have sixty thousand start up.' But, though the Tuscans had no
  • desire to disturb the paternal government beneath whose shelter they
  • slumbered, they regarded the progress of the various Italian
  • revolutions with intense interest, and hatred for the Austrian was
  • warm in every bosom. But they had slender hopes; they knew that the
  • Neapolitans would offer no fit resistance to the regular German
  • troops, and that the overthrow of the constitution in Naples would act
  • as a decisive blow against all struggles for liberty in Italy.
  • We have seen the rise and progress of reform. But the Holy Alliance
  • was alive and active in those days, and few could dream of the
  • peaceful triumph of liberty. It seemed then that the armed assertion
  • of freedom in the South of Europe was the only hope of the liberals,
  • as, if it prevailed, the nations of the north would imitate the
  • example. Happily the reverse has proved the fact. The countries
  • accustomed to the exercise of the privileges of freemen, to a limited
  • extent, have extended, and are extending, these limits. Freedom and
  • knowledge have now a chance of proceeding hand in hand; and, if it
  • continue thus, we may hope for the durability of both. Then, as I have
  • said--in 1821--Shelley, as well as every other lover of liberty,
  • looked upon the struggles in Spain and Italy as decisive of the
  • destinies of the world, probably for centuries to come. The interest
  • he took in the progress of affairs was intense. When Genoa declared
  • itself free, his hopes were at their highest. Day after day he read
  • the bulletins of the Austrian army, and sought eagerly to gather
  • tokens of its defeat. He heard of the revolt of Genoa with emotions of
  • transport. His whole heart and soul were in the triumph of the cause.
  • We were living at Pisa at that time; and several well-informed
  • Italians, at the head of whom we may place the celebrated Vacca, were
  • accustomed to seek for sympathy in their hopes from Shelley: they did
  • not find such for the despair they too generally experienced, founded
  • on contempt for their southern countrymen.
  • While the fate of the progress of the Austrian armies then invading
  • Naples was yet in suspense, the news of another revolution filled him
  • with exultation. We had formed the acquaintance at Pisa of several
  • Constantinopolitan Greeks, of the family of Prince Caradja, formerly
  • Hospodar of Wallachia; who, hearing that the bowstring, the accustomed
  • finale of his viceroyalty, was on the road to him, escaped with his
  • treasures, and took up his abode in Tuscany. Among these was the
  • gentleman to whom the drama of "Hellas" is dedicated. Prince
  • Mavrocordato was warmed by those aspirations for the independence of
  • his country which filled the hearts of many of his countrymen. He
  • often intimated the possibility of an insurrection in Greece; but we
  • had no idea of its being so near at hand, when, on the 1st of April
  • 1821, he called on Shelley, bringing the proclamation of his cousin,
  • Prince Ypsilanti, and, radiant with exultation and delight, declared
  • that henceforth Greece would be free.
  • Shelley had hymned the dawn of liberty in Spain and Naples, in two
  • odes dictated by the warmest enthusiasm; he felt himself naturally
  • impelled to decorate with poetry the uprise of the descendants of that
  • people whose works he regarded with deep admiration, and to adopt the
  • vaticinatory character in prophesying their success. "Hellas" was
  • written in a moment of enthusiasm. It is curious to remark how well he
  • overcomes the difficulty of forming a drama out of such scant
  • materials. His prophecies, indeed, came true in their general, not
  • their particular, purport. He did not foresee the death of Lord
  • Londonderry, which was to be the epoch of a change in English
  • politics, particularly as regarded foreign affairs; nor that the navy
  • of his country would fight for instead of against the Greeks, and by
  • the battle of Navarino secure their enfranchisement from the Turks.
  • Almost against reason, as it appeared to him, he resolved to believe
  • that Greece would prove triumphant; and in this spirit, auguring
  • ultimate good, yet grieving over the vicissitudes to be endured in the
  • interval, he composed his drama.
  • "Hellas" was among the last of his compositions, and is among the most
  • beautiful. The choruses are singularly imaginative, and melodious in
  • their versification. There are some stanzas that beautifully exemplify
  • Shelley's peculiar style; as, for instance, the assertion of the
  • intellectual empire which must be for ever the inheritance of the
  • country of Homer, Sophocles, and Plato:--
  • 'But Greece and her foundations are
  • Built below the tide of war,
  • Based on the crystalline sea
  • Of thought and its eternity.'
  • And again, that philosophical truth felicitously imaged forth--
  • 'Revenge and Wrong bring forth their kind,
  • The foul cubs like their parents are,
  • Their den is in the guilty mind,
  • And Conscience feeds them with despair.'
  • The conclusion of the last chorus is among the most beautiful of his
  • lyrics. The imagery is distinct and majestic; the prophecy, such as
  • poets love to dwell upon, the Regeneration of Mankind--and that
  • regeneration reflecting back splendour on the foregone time, from
  • which it inherits so much of intellectual wealth, and memory of past
  • virtuous deeds, as must render the possession of happiness and peace
  • of tenfold value.
  • ***
  • FRAGMENTS OF AN UNFINISHED DRAMA.
  • [Published in part (lines 1-69, 100-120) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous
  • Poems", 1824; and again, with the notes, in "Poetical Works", 1839.
  • Lines 127-238 were printed by Dr. Garnett under the title of "The
  • Magic Plant" in his "Relics of Shelley", 1862. The whole was edited in
  • its present form from the Boscombe manuscript by Mr. W.M. Rossetti in
  • 1870 ("Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", Moxon, 2 volumes.).
  • 'Written at Pisa during the late winter or early spring of 1822'
  • (Garnett).]
  • The following fragments are part of a Drama undertaken for the
  • amusement of the individuals who composed our intimate society, but
  • left unfinished. I have preserved a sketch of the story as far as it
  • had been shadowed in the poet's mind.
  • An Enchantress, living in one of the islands of the Indian
  • Archipelago, saves the life of a Pirate, a man of savage but noble
  • nature. She becomes enamoured of him; and he, inconstant to his mortal
  • love, for a while returns her passion; but at length, recalling the
  • memory of her whom he left, and who laments his loss, he escapes from
  • the Enchanted Island, and returns to his lady. His mode of life makes
  • him again go to sea, and the Enchantress seizes the opportunity to
  • bring him, by a spirit-brewed tempest, back to her Island. --[MRS.
  • SHELLEY'S NOTE, 1839.]
  • SCENE.--BEFORE THE CAVERN OF THE INDIAN ENCHANTRESS.
  • THE ENCHANTRESS COMES FORTH.
  • ENCHANTRESS:
  • He came like a dream in the dawn of life,
  • He fled like a shadow before its noon;
  • He is gone, and my peace is turned to strife,
  • And I wander and wane like the weary moon.
  • O, sweet Echo, wake, _5
  • And for my sake
  • Make answer the while my heart shall break!
  • But my heart has a music which Echo's lips,
  • Though tender and true, yet can answer not,
  • And the shadow that moves in the soul's eclipse _10
  • Can return not the kiss by his now forgot;
  • Sweet lips! he who hath
  • On my desolate path
  • Cast the darkness of absence, worse than death!
  • NOTE:
  • _8 my omitted 1824.
  • [THE ENCHANTRESS MAKES HER SPELL: SHE IS ANSWERED BY A SPIRIT.]
  • SPIRIT:
  • Within the silent centre of the earth _15
  • My mansion is; where I have lived insphered
  • From the beginning, and around my sleep
  • Have woven all the wondrous imagery
  • Of this dim spot, which mortals call the world;
  • Infinite depths of unknown elements _20
  • Massed into one impenetrable mask;
  • Sheets of immeasurable fire, and veins
  • Of gold and stone, and adamantine iron.
  • And as a veil in which I walk through Heaven
  • I have wrought mountains, seas, and waves, and clouds, _25
  • And lastly light, whose interfusion dawns
  • In the dark space of interstellar air.
  • NOTES:
  • _15-_27 Within...air. 1839; omitted 1824.
  • See these lines in "Posthumous Poems", 1824, page 209: "Song of a Spirit".
  • _16 have 1839; omitted 1824, page 209.
  • _25 seas, and waves 1824, page 209; seas, waves 1839.
  • [A good Spirit, who watches over the Pirate's fate, leads, in a
  • mysterious manner, the lady of his love to the Enchanted Isle. She is
  • accompanied by a Youth, who loves the lady, but whose passion she
  • returns only with a sisterly affection. The ensuing scene takes place
  • between them on their arrival at the Isle. [MRS. SHELLEY'S NOTE,
  • 1839.]]
  • ANOTHER SCENE.
  • INDIAN YOUTH AND LADY.
  • INDIAN:
  • And, if my grief should still be dearer to me
  • Than all the pleasures in the world beside,
  • Why would you lighten it?--
  • NOTE:
  • _29 pleasures]pleasure 1824.
  • LADY:
  • I offer only _30
  • That which I seek, some human sympathy
  • In this mysterious island.
  • INDIAN:
  • Oh! my friend,
  • My sister, my beloved!--What do I say?
  • My brain is dizzy, and I scarce know whether
  • I speak to thee or her.
  • LADY:
  • Peace, perturbed heart! _35
  • I am to thee only as thou to mine,
  • The passing wind which heals the brow at noon,
  • And may strike cold into the breast at night,
  • Yet cannot linger where it soothes the most,
  • Or long soothe could it linger.
  • INDIAN:
  • But you said _40
  • You also loved?
  • NOTE:
  • _32-_41 Assigned to INDIAN, 1824.
  • LADY:
  • Loved! Oh, I love. Methinks
  • This word of love is fit for all the world,
  • And that for gentle hearts another name
  • Would speak of gentler thoughts than the world owns.
  • I have loved.
  • INDIAN:
  • And thou lovest not? if so, _45
  • Young as thou art thou canst afford to weep.
  • LADY:
  • Oh! would that I could claim exemption
  • From all the bitterness of that sweet name.
  • I loved, I love, and when I love no more
  • Let joys and grief perish, and leave despair _50
  • To ring the knell of youth. He stood beside me,
  • The embodied vision of the brightest dream,
  • Which like a dawn heralds the day of life;
  • The shadow of his presence made my world
  • A Paradise. All familiar things he touched, _55
  • All common words he spoke, became to me
  • Like forms and sounds of a diviner world.
  • He was as is the sun in his fierce youth,
  • As terrible and lovely as a tempest;
  • He came, and went, and left me what I am. _60
  • Alas! Why must I think how oft we two
  • Have sate together near the river springs,
  • Under the green pavilion which the willow
  • Spreads on the floor of the unbroken fountain,
  • Strewn, by the nurslings that linger there, _65
  • Over that islet paved with flowers and moss,
  • While the musk-rose leaves, like flakes of crimson snow,
  • Showered on us, and the dove mourned in the pine,
  • Sad prophetess of sorrows not her own?
  • The crane returned to her unfrozen haunt, _70
  • And the false cuckoo bade the spray good morn;
  • And on a wintry bough the widowed bird,
  • Hid in the deepest night of ivy-leaves,
  • Renewed the vigils of a sleepless sorrow.
  • I, left like her, and leaving one like her, _75
  • Alike abandoned and abandoning
  • (Oh! unlike her in this!) the gentlest youth,
  • Whose love had made my sorrows dear to him,
  • Even as my sorrow made his love to me!
  • NOTE:
  • _71 spray Rossetti 1870, Woodberry; Spring Forman, Dowden.
  • INDIAN:
  • One curse of Nature stamps in the same mould _80
  • The features of the wretched; and they are
  • As like as violet to violet,
  • When memory, the ghost, their odours keeps
  • Mid the cold relics of abandoned joy.--
  • Proceed.
  • LADY:
  • He was a simple innocent boy. _85
  • I loved him well, but not as he desired;
  • Yet even thus he was content to be:--
  • A short content, for I was--
  • INDIAN [ASIDE]:
  • God of Heaven!
  • From such an islet, such a river-spring--!
  • I dare not ask her if there stood upon it _90
  • A pleasure-dome surmounted by a crescent,
  • With steps to the blue water.
  • [ALOUD.]
  • It may be
  • That Nature masks in life several copies
  • Of the same lot, so that the sufferers
  • May feel another's sorrow as their own, _95
  • And find in friendship what they lost in love.
  • That cannot be: yet it is strange that we,
  • From the same scene, by the same path to this
  • Realm of abandonment-- But speak! your breath--
  • Your breath is like soft music, your words are _100
  • The echoes of a voice which on my heart
  • Sleeps like a melody of early days.
  • But as you said--
  • LADY:
  • He was so awful, yet
  • So beautiful in mystery and terror,
  • Calming me as the loveliness of heaven _105
  • Soothes the unquiet sea:--and yet not so,
  • For he seemed stormy, and would often seem
  • A quenchless sun masked in portentous clouds;
  • For such his thoughts, and even his actions were;
  • But he was not of them, nor they of him, _110
  • But as they hid his splendour from the earth.
  • Some said he was a man of blood and peril,
  • And steeped in bitter infamy to the lips.
  • More need was there I should be innocent,
  • More need that I should be most true and kind, _115
  • And much more need that there should be found one
  • To share remorse and scorn and solitude,
  • And all the ills that wait on those who do
  • The tasks of ruin in the world of life.
  • He fled, and I have followed him.
  • INDIAN:
  • Such a one _120
  • Is he who was the winter of my peace.
  • But, fairest stranger, when didst thou depart
  • From the far hills where rise the springs of India?
  • How didst thou pass the intervening sea?
  • LADY:
  • If I be sure I am not dreaming now, _125
  • I should not doubt to say it was a dream.
  • Methought a star came down from heaven,
  • And rested mid the plants of India,
  • Which I had given a shelter from the frost
  • Within my chamber. There the meteor lay, _130
  • Panting forth light among the leaves and flowers,
  • As if it lived, and was outworn with speed;
  • Or that it loved, and passion made the pulse
  • Of its bright life throb like an anxious heart,
  • Till it diffused itself; and all the chamber _135
  • And walls seemed melted into emerald fire
  • That burned not; in the midst of which appeared
  • A spirit like a child, and laughed aloud
  • A thrilling peal of such sweet merriment
  • As made the blood tingle in my warm feet: _140
  • Then bent over a vase, and murmuring
  • Low, unintelligible melodies,
  • Placed something in the mould like melon-seeds,
  • And slowly faded, and in place of it
  • A soft hand issued from the veil of fire, _145
  • Holding a cup like a magnolia flower,
  • And poured upon the earth within the vase
  • The element with which it overflowed,
  • Brighter than morning light, and purer than
  • The water of the springs of Himalah. _150
  • NOTE:
  • _120-_126 Such...dream 1839; omitted 1824.
  • INDIAN:
  • You waked not?
  • LADY:
  • Not until my dream became
  • Like a child's legend on the tideless sand.
  • Which the first foam erases half, and half
  • Leaves legible. At length I rose, and went,
  • Visiting my flowers from pot to pot, and thought _155
  • To set new cuttings in the empty urns,
  • And when I came to that beside the lattice,
  • I saw two little dark-green leaves
  • Lifting the light mould at their birth, and then
  • I half-remembered my forgotten dream. _160
  • And day by day, green as a gourd in June,
  • The plant grew fresh and thick, yet no one knew
  • What plant it was; its stem and tendrils seemed
  • Like emerald snakes, mottled and diamonded
  • With azure mail and streaks of woven silver; _165
  • And all the sheaths that folded the dark buds
  • Rose like the crest of cobra-di-capel,
  • Until the golden eye of the bright flower,
  • Through the dark lashes of those veined lids,
  • ...disencumbered of their silent sleep, _170
  • Gazed like a star into the morning light.
  • Its leaves were delicate, you almost saw
  • The pulses
  • With which the purple velvet flower was fed
  • To overflow, and like a poet's heart _175
  • Changing bright fancy to sweet sentiment,
  • Changed half the light to fragrance. It soon fell,
  • And to a green and dewy embryo-fruit
  • Left all its treasured beauty. Day by day
  • I nursed the plant, and on the double flute _180
  • Played to it on the sunny winter days
  • Soft melodies, as sweet as April rain
  • On silent leaves, and sang those words in which
  • Passion makes Echo taunt the sleeping strings;
  • And I would send tales of forgotten love _185
  • Late into the lone night, and sing wild songs
  • Of maids deserted in the olden time,
  • And weep like a soft cloud in April's bosom
  • Upon the sleeping eyelids of the plant,
  • So that perhaps it dreamed that Spring was come, _190
  • And crept abroad into the moonlight air,
  • And loosened all its limbs, as, noon by noon,
  • The sun averted less his oblique beam.
  • INDIAN:
  • And the plant died not in the frost?
  • LADY:
  • It grew;
  • And went out of the lattice which I left _195
  • Half open for it, trailing its quaint spires
  • Along the garden and across the lawn,
  • And down the slope of moss and through the tufts
  • Of wild-flower roots, and stumps of trees o'ergrown
  • With simple lichens, and old hoary stones, _200
  • On to the margin of the glassy pool,
  • Even to a nook of unblown violets
  • And lilies-of-the-valley yet unborn,
  • Under a pine with ivy overgrown.
  • And theme its fruit lay like a sleeping lizard _205
  • Under the shadows; but when Spring indeed
  • Came to unswathe her infants, and the lilies
  • Peeped from their bright green masks to wonder at
  • This shape of autumn couched in their recess,
  • Then it dilated, and it grew until _210
  • One half lay floating on the fountain wave,
  • Whose pulse, elapsed in unlike sympathies,
  • Kept time
  • Among the snowy water-lily buds.
  • Its shape was such as summer melody _215
  • Of the south wind in spicy vales might give
  • To some light cloud bound from the golden dawn
  • To fairy isles of evening, and it seemed
  • In hue and form that it had been a mirror
  • Of all the hues and forms around it and _220
  • Upon it pictured by the sunny beams
  • Which, from the bright vibrations of the pool,
  • Were thrown upon the rafters and the roof
  • Of boughs and leaves, and on the pillared stems
  • Of the dark sylvan temple, and reflections _225
  • Of every infant flower and star of moss
  • And veined leaf in the azure odorous air.
  • And thus it lay in the Elysian calm
  • Of its own beauty, floating on the line
  • Which, like a film in purest space, divided _230
  • The heaven beneath the water from the heaven
  • Above the clouds; and every day I went
  • Watching its growth and wondering;
  • And as the day grew hot, methought I saw
  • A glassy vapour dancing on the pool, _235
  • And on it little quaint and filmy shapes.
  • With dizzy motion, wheel and rise and fall,
  • Like clouds of gnats with perfect lineaments.
  • ...
  • O friend, sleep was a veil uplift from Heaven--
  • As if Heaven dawned upon the world of dream-- _240
  • When darkness rose on the extinguished day
  • Out of the eastern wilderness.
  • INDIAN:
  • I too
  • Have found a moment's paradise in sleep
  • Half compensate a hell of waking sorrow.
  • ***
  • CHARLES THE FIRST.
  • ["Charles the First" was designed in 1818, begun towards the close of
  • 1819 [Medwin, "Life", 2 page 62], resumed in January, and finally laid
  • aside by June, 1822. It was published in part in the "Posthumous
  • Poems", 1824, and printed, in its present form (with the addition of
  • some 530 lines), by Mr. W.M. Rossetti, 1870. Further particulars are
  • given in the Editor's Notes at the end of Volume 3.]
  • DRAMATIS PERSONAE:
  • KING CHARLES I.
  • QUEEN HENRIETTA.
  • LAUD, ARCHBISHOP OF CANTERBURY.
  • WENTWORTH, EARL OF STRAFFORD.
  • LORD COTTINGTON.
  • LORD WESTON.
  • LORD COVENTRY.
  • WILLIAMS, BISHOP OF LINCOLN.
  • SECRETARY LYTTELTON.
  • JUXON.
  • ST. JOHN.
  • ARCHY, THE COURT FOOL.
  • HAMPDEN.
  • PYM.
  • CROMWELL.
  • CROMWELL'S DAUGHTER.
  • SIR HARRY VANE THE YOUNGER.
  • LEIGHTON.
  • BASTWICK.
  • PRYNNE.
  • GENTLEMEN OF THE INNS OF COURT, CITIZENS, PURSUIVANTS,
  • MARSHALSMEN, LAW STUDENTS, JUDGES, CLERK.
  • SCENE 1:
  • THE MASQUE OF THE INNS OF COURT.
  • A PURSUIVANT:
  • Place, for the Marshal of the Masque!
  • FIRST CITIZEN:
  • What thinkest thou of this quaint masque which turns,
  • Like morning from the shadow of the night,
  • The night to day, and London to a place
  • Of peace and joy?
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • And Hell to Heaven. _5
  • Eight years are gone,
  • And they seem hours, since in this populous street
  • I trod on grass made green by summer's rain,
  • For the red plague kept state within that palace
  • Where now that vanity reigns. In nine years more _10
  • The roots will be refreshed with civil blood;
  • And thank the mercy of insulted Heaven
  • That sin and wrongs wound, as an orphan's cry,
  • The patience of the great Avenger's ear.
  • NOTE:
  • _10 now that vanity reigns 1870; now reigns vanity 1824.
  • A YOUTH:
  • Yet, father, 'tis a happy sight to see, _15
  • Beautiful, innocent, and unforbidden
  • By God or man;--'tis like the bright procession
  • Of skiey visions in a solemn dream
  • From which men wake as from a Paradise,
  • And draw new strength to tread the thorns of life. _20
  • If God be good, wherefore should this be evil?
  • And if this be not evil, dost thou not draw
  • Unseasonable poison from the flowers
  • Which bloom so rarely in this barren world?
  • Oh, kill these bitter thoughts which make the present _25
  • Dark as the future!--
  • ...
  • When Avarice and Tyranny, vigilant Fear,
  • And open-eyed Conspiracy lie sleeping
  • As on Hell's threshold; and all gentle thoughts
  • Waken to worship Him who giveth joys _30
  • With His own gift.
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • How young art thou in this old age of time!
  • How green in this gray world? Canst thou discern
  • The signs of seasons, yet perceive no hint
  • Of change in that stage-scene in which thou art _35
  • Not a spectator but an actor? or
  • Art thou a puppet moved by [enginery]?
  • The day that dawns in fire will die in storms,
  • Even though the noon be calm. My travel's done,--
  • Before the whirlwind wakes I shall have found _40
  • My inn of lasting rest; but thou must still
  • Be journeying on in this inclement air.
  • Wrap thy old cloak about thy back;
  • Nor leave the broad and plain and beaten road,
  • Although no flowers smile on the trodden dust, _45
  • For the violet paths of pleasure. This Charles the First
  • Rose like the equinoctial sun,...
  • By vapours, through whose threatening ominous veil
  • Darting his altered influence he has gained
  • This height of noon--from which he must decline _50
  • Amid the darkness of conflicting storms,
  • To dank extinction and to latest night...
  • There goes
  • The apostate Strafford; he whose titles
  • whispered aphorisms _55
  • From Machiavel and Bacon: and, if Judas
  • Had been as brazen and as bold as he--
  • NOTES:
  • _33-_37 Canst...enginery 1870;
  • Canst thou not think
  • Of change in that low scene, in which thou art
  • Not a spectator but an actor?... 1824.
  • _43-_57 Wrap...bold as he 1870; omitted 1824.
  • FIRST CITIZEN:
  • That
  • Is the Archbishop.
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • Rather say the Pope:
  • London will be soon his Rome: he walks
  • As if he trod upon the heads of men: _60
  • He looks elate, drunken with blood and gold;--
  • Beside him moves the Babylonian woman
  • Invisibly, and with her as with his shadow,
  • Mitred adulterer! he is joined in sin,
  • Which turns Heaven's milk of mercy to revenge. _65
  • THIRD CITIZEN [LIFTING UP HIS EYES]:
  • Good Lord! rain it down upon him!...
  • Amid her ladies walks the papist queen,
  • As if her nice feet scorned our English earth.
  • The Canaanitish Jezebel! I would be
  • A dog if I might tear her with my teeth! _70
  • There's old Sir Henry Vane, the Earl of Pembroke,
  • Lord Essex, and Lord Keeper Coventry,
  • And others who make base their English breed
  • By vile participation of their honours
  • With papists, atheists, tyrants, and apostates. _75
  • When lawyers masque 'tis time for honest men
  • To strip the vizor from their purposes.
  • A seasonable time for masquers this!
  • When Englishmen and Protestants should sit
  • dust on their dishonoured heads _80
  • To avert the wrath of Him whose scourge is felt
  • For the great sins which have drawn down from Heaven
  • and foreign overthrow.
  • The remnant of the martyred saints in Rochefort
  • Have been abandoned by their faithless allies _85
  • To that idolatrous and adulterous torturer
  • Lewis of France,--the Palatinate is lost--
  • [ENTER LEIGHTON (WHO HAS BEEN BRANDED IN THE FACE) AND BASTWICK.]
  • Canst thou be--art thou?
  • NOTE:
  • _73 make 1824; made 1839.
  • LEIGHTON:
  • I WAS Leighton: what
  • I AM thou seest. And yet turn thine eyes,
  • And with thy memory look on thy friend's mind, _90
  • Which is unchanged, and where is written deep
  • The sentence of my judge.
  • THIRD CITIZEN:
  • Are these the marks with which
  • Laud thinks to improve the image of his Maker
  • Stamped on the face of man? Curses upon him,
  • The impious tyrant!
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • It is said besides _95
  • That lewd and papist drunkards may profane
  • The Sabbath with their
  • And has permitted that most heathenish custom
  • Of dancing round a pole dressed up with wreaths
  • On May-day. _100
  • A man who thus twice crucifies his God
  • May well ... his brother.--In my mind, friend,
  • The root of all this ill is prelacy.
  • I would cut up the root.
  • THIRD CITIZEN:
  • And by what means?
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • Smiting each Bishop under the fifth rib. _105
  • THIRD CITIZEN:
  • You seem to know the vulnerable place
  • Of these same crocodiles.
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • I learnt it in
  • Egyptian bondage, sir. Your worm of Nile
  • Betrays not with its flattering tears like they;
  • For, when they cannot kill, they whine and weep. _110
  • Nor is it half so greedy of men's bodies
  • As they of soul and all; nor does it wallow
  • In slime as they in simony and lies
  • And close lusts of the flesh.
  • NOTE:
  • _78-_114 A seasonable...of the flesh 1870; omitted 1824.
  • _108 bondage cj. Forman; bondages 1870.
  • A MARSHALSMAN:
  • Give place, give place!
  • You torch-bearers, advance to the great gate, _115
  • And then attend the Marshal of the Masque
  • Into the Royal presence.
  • A LAW STUDENT:
  • What thinkest thou
  • Of this quaint show of ours, my aged friend?
  • Even now we see the redness of the torches
  • Inflame the night to the eastward, and the clarions _120
  • [Gasp?] to us on the wind's wave. It comes!
  • And their sounds, floating hither round the pageant,
  • Rouse up the astonished air.
  • NOTE:
  • _119-_123 Even now...air 1870; omitted 1824.
  • FIRST CITIZEN:
  • I will not think but that our country's wounds
  • May yet be healed. The king is just and gracious, _125
  • Though wicked counsels now pervert his will:
  • These once cast off--
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • As adders cast their skins
  • And keep their venom, so kings often change;
  • Councils and counsellors hang on one another,
  • Hiding the loathsome _130
  • Like the base patchwork of a leper's rags.
  • THE YOUTH:
  • Oh, still those dissonant thoughts!--List how the music
  • Grows on the enchanted air! And see, the torches
  • Restlessly flashing, and the crowd divided
  • Like waves before an admiral's prow!
  • NOTE:
  • _132 how the 1870; loud 1824.
  • A MARSHALSMAN:
  • Give place _135
  • To the Marshal of the Masque!
  • A PURSUIVANT:
  • Room for the King!
  • NOTE:
  • _136 A Pursuivant: Room for the King! 1870; omitted 1824.
  • THE YOUTH:
  • How glorious! See those thronging chariots
  • Rolling, like painted clouds before the wind,
  • Behind their solemn steeds: how some are shaped
  • Like curved sea-shells dyed by the azure depths _140
  • Of Indian seas; some like the new-born moon;
  • And some like cars in which the Romans climbed
  • (Canopied by Victory's eagle-wings outspread)
  • The Capitolian--See how gloriously
  • The mettled horses in the torchlight stir _145
  • Their gallant riders, while they check their pride,
  • Like shapes of some diviner element
  • Than English air, and beings nobler than
  • The envious and admiring multitude.
  • NOTE:
  • _138-40 Rolling...depths 1870;
  • Rolling like painted clouds before the wind
  • Some are
  • Like curved shells, dyed by the azure depths 1824.
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • Ay, there they are-- _150
  • Nobles, and sons of nobles, patentees,
  • Monopolists, and stewards of this poor farm,
  • On whose lean sheep sit the prophetic crows,
  • Here is the pomp that strips the houseless orphan,
  • Here is the pride that breaks the desolate heart. _155
  • These are the lilies glorious as Solomon,
  • Who toil not, neither do they spin,--unless
  • It be the webs they catch poor rogues withal.
  • Here is the surfeit which to them who earn
  • The niggard wages of the earth, scarce leaves _160
  • The tithe that will support them till they crawl
  • Back to her cold hard bosom. Here is health
  • Followed by grim disease, glory by shame,
  • Waste by lame famine, wealth by squalid want,
  • And England's sin by England's punishment. _165
  • And, as the effect pursues the cause foregone,
  • Lo, giving substance to my words, behold
  • At once the sign and the thing signified--
  • A troop of cripples, beggars, and lean outcasts,
  • Horsed upon stumbling jades, carted with dung, _170
  • Dragged for a day from cellars and low cabins
  • And rotten hiding-holes, to point the moral
  • Of this presentment, and bring up the rear
  • Of painted pomp with misery!
  • NOTES:
  • _162 her 1870; its 1824.
  • _170 jades 1870; shapes 1824.
  • _173 presentment 1870; presentiment 1824.
  • THE YOUTH:
  • 'Tis but
  • The anti-masque, and serves as discords do _175
  • In sweetest music. Who would love May flowers
  • If they succeeded not to Winter's flaw;
  • Or day unchanged by night; or joy itself
  • Without the touch of sorrow?
  • SECOND CITIZEN:
  • I and thou-
  • A MARSHALSMAN:
  • Place, give place! _180
  • NOTE:
  • _179, _180 I...place! 1870; omitted 1824.
  • SCENE 2:
  • A CHAMBER IN WHITEHALL.
  • ENTER THE KING, QUEEN, LAUD, LORD STRAFTORD,
  • LORD COTTINGTON, AND OTHER LORDS; ARCHY;
  • ALSO ST. JOHN, WITH SOME GENTLEMEN OF THE INNS OF COURT.
  • KING:
  • Thanks, gentlemen. I heartily accept
  • This token of your service: your gay masque
  • Was performed gallantly. And it shows well
  • When subjects twine such flowers of [observance?]
  • With the sharp thorns that deck the English crown. _5
  • A gentle heart enjoys what it confers,
  • Even as it suffers that which it inflicts,
  • Though Justice guides the stroke.
  • Accept my hearty thanks.
  • NOTE:
  • _3-9 And...thanks 1870; omitted 1824.
  • QUEEN:
  • And gentlemen,
  • Call your poor Queen your debtor. Your quaint pageant _10
  • Rose on me like the figures of past years,
  • Treading their still path back to infancy,
  • More beautiful and mild as they draw nearer
  • The quiet cradle. I could have almost wept
  • To think I was in Paris, where these shows _15
  • Are well devised--such as I was ere yet
  • My young heart shared a portion of the burthen,
  • The careful weight, of this great monarchy.
  • There, gentlemen, between the sovereign's pleasure
  • And that which it regards, no clamour lifts _20
  • Its proud interposition.
  • In Paris ribald censurers dare not move
  • Their poisonous tongues against these sinless sports;
  • And HIS smile
  • Warms those who bask in it, as ours would do _25
  • If ... Take my heart's thanks: add them, gentlemen,
  • To those good words which, were he King of France,
  • My royal lord would turn to golden deeds.
  • ST. JOHN:
  • Madam, the love of Englishmen can make
  • The lightest favour of their lawful king _30
  • Outweigh a despot's.--We humbly take our leaves,
  • Enriched by smiles which France can never buy.
  • [EXEUNT ST. JOHN AND THE GENTLEMEN OF THE INNS OF COURT.]
  • KING:
  • My Lord Archbishop,
  • Mark you what spirit sits in St. John's eyes?
  • Methinks it is too saucy for this presence. _35
  • ARCHY:
  • Yes, pray your Grace look: for, like an unsophisticated [eye] sees
  • everything upside down, you who are wise will discern the shadow of an
  • idiot in lawn sleeves and a rochet setting springes to catch woodcocks
  • in haymaking time. Poor Archy, whose owl-eyes are tempered to the
  • error of his age, and because he is a fool, and by special ordinance
  • of God forbidden ever to see himself as he is, sees now in that deep
  • eye a blindfold devil sitting on the ball, and weighing words out
  • between king and subjects. One scale is full of promises, and the
  • other full of protestations: and then another devil creeps behind the
  • first out of the dark windings [of a] pregnant lawyer's brain, and
  • takes the bandage from the other's eyes, and throws a sword into the
  • left-hand scale, for all the world like my Lord Essex's there. _48
  • STRAFFORD:
  • A rod in pickle for the Fool's back!
  • ARCHY:
  • Ay, and some are now smiling whose tears will make the brine; for the
  • Fool sees--
  • STRAFFORD:
  • Insolent! You shall have your coat turned and be whipped out of the
  • palace for this. _53
  • ARCHY:
  • When all the fools are whipped, and all the Protestant writers, while
  • the knaves are whipping the fools ever since a thief was set to catch
  • a thief. If all turncoats were whipped out of palaces, poor Archy
  • would be disgraced in good company. Let the knaves whip the fools, and
  • all the fools laugh at it. [Let the] wise and godly slit each other's
  • noses and ears (having no need of any sense of discernment in their
  • craft); and the knaves, to marshal them, join in a procession to
  • Bedlam, to entreat the madmen to omit their sublime Platonic
  • contemplations, and manage the state of England. Let all the honest
  • men who lie [pinched?] up at the prisons or the pillories, in custody
  • of the pursuivants of the High-Commission Court, marshal them. _65
  • NOTE:
  • _64 pinched marked as doubtful by Rossetti.
  • 1870; Forman, Dowden; penned Woodberry.
  • [ENTER SECRETARY LYTTELTON, WITH PAPERS.]
  • KING [LOOKING OVER THE PAPERS]:
  • These stiff Scots
  • His Grace of Canterbury must take order
  • To force under the Church's yoke.--You, Wentworth,
  • Shall be myself in Ireland, and shall add
  • Your wisdom, gentleness, and energy, _70
  • To what in me were wanting.--My Lord Weston,
  • Look that those merchants draw not without loss
  • Their bullion from the Tower; and, on the payment
  • Of shipmoney, take fullest compensation
  • For violation of our royal forests, _75
  • Whose limits, from neglect, have been o'ergrown
  • With cottages and cornfields. The uttermost
  • Farthing exact from those who claim exemption
  • From knighthood: that which once was a reward
  • Shall thus be made a punishment, that subjects _80
  • May know how majesty can wear at will
  • The rugged mood.--My Lord of Coventry,
  • Lay my command upon the Courts below
  • That bail be not accepted for the prisoners
  • Under the warrant of the Star Chamber. _85
  • The people shall not find the stubbornness
  • Of Parliament a cheap or easy method
  • Of dealing with their rightful sovereign:
  • And doubt not this, my Lord of Coventry,
  • We will find time and place for fit rebuke.-- _90
  • My Lord of Canterbury.
  • NOTE:
  • _22-90 In Paris...rebuke 1870; omitted 1824.
  • ARCHY:
  • The fool is here.
  • LAUD:
  • I crave permission of your Majesty
  • To order that this insolent fellow be
  • Chastised: he mocks the sacred character,
  • Scoffs at the state, and--
  • NOTE:
  • _95 state 1870; stake 1824.
  • KING:
  • What, my Archy? _95
  • He mocks and mimics all he sees and hears,
  • Yet with a quaint and graceful licence--Prithee
  • For this once do not as Prynne would, were he
  • Primate of England. With your Grace's leave,
  • He lives in his own world; and, like a parrot _100
  • Hung in his gilded prison from the window
  • Of a queen's bower over the public way,
  • Blasphemes with a bird's mind:--his words, like arrows
  • Which know no aim beyond the archer's wit,
  • Strike sometimes what eludes philosophy.-- _105
  • [TO ARCHY.]
  • Go, sirrah, and repent of your offence
  • Ten minutes in the rain; be it your penance
  • To bring news how the world goes there.
  • [EXIT ARCHY.]
  • Poor Archy!
  • He weaves about himself a world of mirth
  • Out of the wreck of ours. _110
  • NOTES:
  • _99 With your Grace's leave 1870; omitted 1824.
  • _106-_110 Go...ours spoken by THE QUEEN, 1824.
  • LAUD:
  • I take with patience, as my Master did,
  • All scoffs permitted from above.
  • KING:
  • My lord,
  • Pray overlook these papers. Archy's words
  • Had wings, but these have talons.
  • QUEEN:
  • And the lion
  • That wears them must be tamed. My dearest lord, _115
  • I see the new-born courage in your eye
  • Armed to strike dead the Spirit of the Time,
  • Which spurs to rage the many-headed beast.
  • Do thou persist: for, faint but in resolve,
  • And it were better thou hadst still remained _120
  • The slave of thine own slaves, who tear like curs
  • The fugitive, and flee from the pursuer;
  • And Opportunity, that empty wolf,
  • Flies at his throat who falls. Subdue thy actions
  • Even to the disposition of thy purpose, _125
  • And be that tempered as the Ebro's steel;
  • And banish weak-eyed Mercy to the weak,
  • Whence she will greet thee with a gift of peace
  • And not betray thee with a traitor's kiss,
  • As when she keeps the company of rebels, _130
  • Who think that she is Fear. This do, lest we
  • Should fall as from a glorious pinnacle
  • In a bright dream, and wake as from a dream
  • Out of our worshipped state.
  • NOTES:
  • _116 your 1824; thine 1870.
  • _118 Which...beast 1870; omitted 1824.
  • KING:
  • Beloved friend,
  • God is my witness that this weight of power, _135
  • Which He sets me my earthly task to wield
  • Under His law, is my delight and pride
  • Only because thou lovest that and me.
  • For a king bears the office of a God
  • To all the under world; and to his God _140
  • Alone he must deliver up his trust,
  • Unshorn of its permitted attributes.
  • [It seems] now as the baser elements
  • Had mutinied against the golden sun
  • That kindles them to harmony, and quells _145
  • Their self-destroying rapine. The wild million
  • Strike at the eye that guides them; like as humours
  • Of the distempered body that conspire
  • Against the spirit of life throned in the heart,--
  • And thus become the prey of one another, _150
  • And last of death--
  • STRAFFORD:
  • That which would be ambition in a subject
  • Is duty in a sovereign; for on him,
  • As on a keystone, hangs the arch of life,
  • Whose safety is its strength. Degree and form, _155
  • And all that makes the age of reasoning man
  • More memorable than a beast's, depend on this--
  • That Right should fence itself inviolably
  • With Power; in which respect the state of England
  • From usurpation by the insolent commons _160
  • Cries for reform.
  • Get treason, and spare treasure. Fee with coin
  • The loudest murmurers; feed with jealousies
  • Opposing factions,--be thyself of none;
  • And borrow gold of many, for those who lend _165
  • Will serve thee till thou payest them; and thus
  • Keep the fierce spirit of the hour at bay,
  • Till time, and its coming generations
  • Of nights and days unborn, bring some one chance,
  • ...
  • Or war or pestilence or Nature's self,-- _170
  • By some distemperature or terrible sign,
  • Be as an arbiter betwixt themselves.
  • Nor let your Majesty
  • Doubt here the peril of the unseen event.
  • How did your brother Kings, coheritors _175
  • In your high interest in the subject earth,
  • Rise past such troubles to that height of power
  • Where now they sit, and awfully serene
  • Smile on the trembling world? Such popular storms
  • Philip the Second of Spain, this Lewis of France, _180
  • And late the German head of many bodies,
  • And every petty lord of Italy,
  • Quelled or by arts or arms. Is England poorer
  • Or feebler? or art thou who wield'st her power
  • Tamer than they? or shall this island be-- _185
  • [Girdled] by its inviolable waters--
  • To the world present and the world to come
  • Sole pattern of extinguished monarchy?
  • Not if thou dost as I would have thee do.
  • KING:
  • Your words shall be my deeds: _190
  • You speak the image of my thought. My friend
  • (If Kings can have a friend, I call thee so),
  • Beyond the large commission which [belongs]
  • Under the great seal of the realm, take this:
  • And, for some obvious reasons, let there be _195
  • No seal on it, except my kingly word
  • And honour as I am a gentleman.
  • Be--as thou art within my heart and mind--
  • Another self, here and in Ireland:
  • Do what thou judgest well, take amplest licence, _200
  • And stick not even at questionable means.
  • Hear me, Wentworth. My word is as a wall
  • Between thee and this world thine enemy--
  • That hates thee, for thou lovest me.
  • STRAFFORD:
  • I own
  • No friend but thee, no enemies but thine: _205
  • Thy lightest thought is my eternal law.
  • How weak, how short, is life to pay--
  • KING:
  • Peace, peace.
  • Thou ow'st me nothing yet.
  • [TO LAUD.]
  • My lord, what say
  • Those papers?
  • LAUD:
  • Your Majesty has ever interposed, _210
  • In lenity towards your native soil,
  • Between the heavy vengeance of the Church
  • And Scotland. Mark the consequence of warming
  • This brood of northern vipers in your bosom.
  • The rabble, instructed no doubt _215
  • By London, Lindsay, Hume, and false Argyll
  • (For the waves never menace heaven until
  • Scourged by the wind's invisible tyranny),
  • Have in the very temple of the Lord
  • Done outrage to His chosen ministers. _220
  • They scorn the liturgy of the Holy Church,
  • Refuse to obey her canons, and deny
  • The apostolic power with which the Spirit
  • Has filled its elect vessels, even from him
  • Who held the keys with power to loose and bind, _225
  • To him who now pleads in this royal presence.--
  • Let ample powers and new instructions be
  • Sent to the High Commissioners in Scotland.
  • To death, imprisonment, and confiscation,
  • Add torture, add the ruin of the kindred _230
  • Of the offender, add the brand of infamy,
  • Add mutilation: and if this suffice not,
  • Unleash the sword and fire, that in their thirst
  • They may lick up that scum of schismatics.
  • I laugh at those weak rebels who, desiring _235
  • What we possess, still prate of Christian peace,
  • As if those dreadful arbitrating messengers
  • Which play the part of God 'twixt right and wrong,
  • Should be let loose against the innocent sleep
  • Of templed cities and the smiling fields, _240
  • For some poor argument of policy
  • Which touches our own profit or our pride
  • (Where it indeed were Christian charity
  • To turn the cheek even to the smiter's hand):
  • And, when our great Redeemer, when our God, _245
  • When He who gave, accepted, and retained
  • Himself in propitiation of our sins,
  • Is scorned in His immediate ministry,
  • With hazard of the inestimable loss
  • Of all the truth and discipline which is _250
  • Salvation to the extremest generation
  • Of men innumerable, they talk of peace!
  • Such peace as Canaan found, let Scotland now:
  • For, by that Christ who came to bring a sword,
  • Not peace, upon the earth, and gave command _255
  • To His disciples at the Passover
  • That each should sell his robe and buy a sword,-
  • Once strip that minister of naked wrath,
  • And it shall never sleep in peace again
  • Till Scotland bend or break.
  • NOTES:
  • _134-_232 Beloved...mutilation 1870; omitted 1824.
  • _237 arbitrating messengers 1870; messengers of wrath 1824.
  • _239 the 1870; omitted 1524.
  • _243-_244 Parentheses inserted 1870.
  • _246, _247 When He...sins 1870; omitted 1824.
  • _248 ministry 1870; ministers 1824.
  • _249-52 With...innumerable 1870; omitted 1824.
  • KING:
  • My Lord Archbishop, _260
  • Do what thou wilt and what thou canst in this.
  • Thy earthly even as thy heavenly King
  • Gives thee large power in his unquiet realm.
  • But we want money, and my mind misgives me
  • That for so great an enterprise, as yet, _265
  • We are unfurnished.
  • STRAFFORD:
  • Yet it may not long
  • Rest on our wills.
  • COTTINGTON:
  • The expenses
  • Of gathering shipmoney, and of distraining
  • For every petty rate (for we encounter
  • A desperate opposition inch by inch _270
  • In every warehouse and on every farm),
  • Have swallowed up the gross sum of the imposts;
  • So that, though felt as a most grievous scourge
  • Upon the land, they stand us in small stead
  • As touches the receipt.
  • STRAFFORD:
  • 'Tis a conclusion _275
  • Most arithmetical: and thence you infer
  • Perhaps the assembling of a parliament.
  • Now, if a man should call his dearest enemies
  • T0 sit in licensed judgement on his life,
  • His Majesty might wisely take that course. _280
  • [ASIDE TO COTTINGTON.]
  • It is enough to expect from these lean imposts
  • That they perform the office of a scourge,
  • Without more profit.
  • [ALOUD.]
  • Fines and confiscations,
  • And a forced loan from the refractory city,
  • Will fill our coffers: and the golden love _285
  • Of loyal gentlemen and noble friends
  • For the worshipped father of our common country,
  • With contributions from the catholics,
  • Will make Rebellion pale in our excess.
  • Be these the expedients until time and wisdom _290
  • Shall frame a settled state of government.
  • LAUD:
  • And weak expedients they! Have we not drained
  • All, till the ... which seemed
  • A mine exhaustless?
  • STRAFFORD:
  • And the love which IS,
  • If loyal hearts could turn their blood to gold. _295
  • LAUD:
  • Both now grow barren: and I speak it not
  • As loving parliaments, which, as they have been
  • In the right hand of bold bad mighty kings
  • The scourges of the bleeding Church, I hate.
  • Methinks they scarcely can deserve our fear. _300
  • STRAFFORD:
  • Oh! my dear liege, take back the wealth thou gavest:
  • With that, take all I held, but as in trust
  • For thee, of mine inheritance: leave me but
  • This unprovided body for thy service,
  • And a mind dedicated to no care _305
  • Except thy safety:--but assemble not
  • A parliament. Hundreds will bring, like me,
  • Their fortunes, as they would their blood, before--
  • KING:
  • No! thou who judgest them art but one. Alas!
  • We should be too much out of love with Heaven, _310
  • Did this vile world show many such as thee,
  • Thou perfect, just, and honourable man!
  • Never shall it be said that Charles of England
  • Stripped those he loved for fear of those he scorns;
  • Nor will he so much misbecome his throne _315
  • As to impoverish those who most adorn
  • And best defend it. That you urge, dear Strafford,
  • Inclines me rather--
  • QUEEN:
  • To a parliament?
  • Is this thy firmness? and thou wilt preside
  • Over a knot of ... censurers, _320
  • To the unswearing of thy best resolves,
  • And choose the worst, when the worst comes too soon?
  • Plight not the worst before the worst must come.
  • Oh, wilt thou smile whilst our ribald foes,
  • Dressed in their own usurped authority, _325
  • Sharpen their tongues on Henrietta's fame?
  • It is enough! Thou lovest me no more!
  • [WEEPS.]
  • KING:
  • Oh, Henrietta!
  • [THEY TALK APART.]
  • COTTINGTON [TO LAUD]:
  • Money we have none:
  • And all the expedients of my Lord of Strafford
  • Will scarcely meet the arrears.
  • LAUD:
  • Without delay _330
  • An army must be sent into the north;
  • Followed by a Commission of the Church,
  • With amplest power to quench in fire and blood,
  • And tears and terror, and the pity of hell,
  • The intenser wrath of Heresy. God will give _335
  • Victory; and victory over Scotland give
  • The lion England tamed into our hands.
  • That will lend power, and power bring gold.
  • COTTINGTON:
  • Meanwhile
  • We must begin first where your Grace leaves off.
  • Gold must give power, or--
  • LAUD:
  • I am not averse _340
  • From the assembling of a parliament.
  • Strong actions and smooth words might teach them soon
  • The lesson to obey. And are they not
  • A bubble fashioned by the monarch's mouth,
  • The birth of one light breath? If they serve no purpose, _345
  • A word dissolves them.
  • STRAFFORD:
  • The engine of parliaments
  • Might be deferred until I can bring over
  • The Irish regiments: they will serve to assure
  • The issue of the war against the Scots.
  • And, this game won--which if lost, all is lost-- _350
  • Gather these chosen leaders of the rebels,
  • And call them, if you will, a parliament.
  • KING:
  • Oh, be our feet still tardy to shed blood.
  • Guilty though it may be! I would still spare
  • The stubborn country of my birth, and ward _355
  • From countenances which I loved in youth
  • The wrathful Church's lacerating hand.
  • [TO LAUD.]
  • Have you o'erlooked the other articles?
  • [ENTER ARCHY.]
  • LAUD:
  • Hazlerig, Hampden, Pym, young Harry Vane,
  • Cromwell, and other rebels of less note, _360
  • Intend to sail with the next favouring wind
  • For the Plantations.
  • ARCHY:
  • Where they think to found
  • A commonwealth like Gonzalo's in the play,
  • Gynaecocoenic and pantisocratic.
  • NOTE:
  • _363 Gonzalo's 1870; Gonzaga Boscombe manuscript.
  • KING:
  • What's that, sirrah?
  • ARCHY:
  • New devil's politics. _365
  • Hell is the pattern of all commonwealths:
  • Lucifer was the first republican.
  • Will you hear Merlin's prophecy, how three [posts?]
  • 'In one brainless skull, when the whitethorn is full,
  • Shall sail round the world, and come back again: _370
  • Shall sail round the world in a brainless skull,
  • And come back again when the moon is at full:'--
  • When, in spite of the Church,
  • They will hear homilies of whatever length
  • Or form they please. _375
  • [COTTINGTON?]:
  • So please your Majesty to sign this order
  • For their detention.
  • ARCHY:
  • If your Majesty were tormented night and day by fever, gout,
  • rheumatism, and stone, and asthma, etc., and you found these diseases
  • had secretly entered into a conspiracy to abandon you, should you
  • think it necessary to lay an embargo on the port by which they meant
  • to dispeople your unquiet kingdom of man? _383
  • KING:
  • If fear were made for kings, the Fool mocks wisely;
  • But in this case--[WRITING]. Here, my lord, take the warrant,
  • And see it duly executed forthwith.--
  • That imp of malice and mockery shall be punished. _387
  • [EXEUNT ALL BUT KING, QUEEN, AND ARCHY.]
  • ARCHY:
  • Ay, I am the physician of whom Plato prophesied, who was to be accused
  • by the confectioner before a jury of children, who found him guilty
  • without waiting for the summing-up, and hanged him without benefit of
  • clergy. Thus Baby Charles, and the Twelfth-night Queen of Hearts, and
  • the overgrown schoolboy Cottington, and that little urchin Laud--who
  • would reduce a verdict of 'guilty, death,' by famine, if it were
  • impregnable by composition--all impannelled against poor Archy for
  • presenting them bitter physic the last day of the holidays. _397
  • QUEEN:
  • Is the rain over, sirrah?
  • KING:
  • When it rains
  • And the sun shines, 'twill rain again to-morrow:
  • And therefore never smile till you've done crying. _400
  • ARCHY:
  • But 'tis all over now: like the April anger of woman, the gentle sky
  • has wept itself serene.
  • QUEEN:
  • What news abroad? how looks the world this morning?
  • ARCHY:
  • Gloriously as a grave covered with virgin flowers. There's a rainbow
  • in the sky. Let your Majesty look at it, for
  • 'A rainbow in the morning _407
  • Is the shepherd's warning;'
  • and the flocks of which you are the pastor are scattered among the
  • mountain-tops, where every drop of water is a flake of snow, and the
  • breath of May pierces like a January blast. _411
  • KING:
  • The sheep have mistaken the wolf for their shepherd, my poor boy; and
  • the shepherd, the wolves for their watchdogs.
  • QUEEN:
  • But the rainbow was a good sign, Archy: it says that the waters of the
  • deluge are gone, and can return no more.
  • ARCHY:
  • Ay, the salt-water one: but that of tears and blood must yet come
  • down, and that of fire follow, if there be any truth in lies.--The
  • rainbow hung over the city with all its shops,...and churches, from
  • north to south, like a bridge of congregated lightning pieced by the
  • masonry of heaven--like a balance in which the angel that distributes
  • the coming hour was weighing that heavy one whose poise is now felt in
  • the lightest hearts, before it bows the proudest heads under the
  • meanest feet. _424
  • QUEEN:
  • Who taught you this trash, sirrah?
  • ARCHY:
  • A torn leaf out of an old book trampled in the dirt.--But for the
  • rainbow. It moved as the sun moved, and...until the top of the
  • Tower...of a cloud through its left-hand tip, and Lambeth Palace look
  • as dark as a rock before the other. Methought I saw a crown figured
  • upon one tip, and a mitre on the other. So, as I had heard treasures
  • were found where the rainbow quenches its points upon the earth, I set
  • off, and at the Tower-- But I shall not tell your Majesty what I found
  • close to the closet-window on which the rainbow had glimmered.
  • KING:
  • Speak: I will make my Fool my conscience. _435
  • ARCHY:
  • Then conscience is a fool.--I saw there a cat caught in a rat-trap. I
  • heard the rats squeak behind the wainscots: it seemed to me that the
  • very mice were consulting on the manner of her death.
  • QUEEN:
  • Archy is shrewd and bitter.
  • ARCHY:
  • Like the season, _440
  • So blow the winds.--But at the other end of the rainbow, where the
  • gray rain was tempered along the grass and leaves by a tender
  • interfusion of violet and gold in the meadows beyond Lambeth, what
  • think you that I found instead of a mitre?
  • KING:
  • Vane's wits perhaps. _445
  • ARCHY:
  • Something as vain. I saw a gross vapour hovering in a stinking ditch
  • over the carcass of a dead ass, some rotten rags, and broken
  • dishes--the wrecks of what once administered to the stuffing-out and
  • the ornament of a worm of worms. His Grace of Canterbury expects to
  • enter the New Jerusalem some Palm Sunday in triumph on the ghost of
  • this ass. _451
  • QUEEN:
  • Enough, enough! Go desire Lady Jane
  • She place my lute, together with the music
  • Mari received last week from Italy,
  • In my boudoir, and--
  • [EXIT ARCHY.]
  • KING:
  • I'll go in.
  • NOTE:
  • _254-_455 For by...I'll go in 1870; omitted 1824.
  • QUEEN:
  • MY beloved lord, _455
  • Have you not noted that the Fool of late
  • Has lost his careless mirth, and that his words
  • Sound like the echoes of our saddest fears?
  • What can it mean? I should be loth to think
  • Some factious slave had tutored him.
  • KING:
  • Oh, no! _460
  • He is but Occasion's pupil. Partly 'tis
  • That our minds piece the vacant intervals
  • Of his wild words with their own fashioning,--
  • As in the imagery of summer clouds,
  • Or coals of the winter fire, idlers find _465
  • The perfect shadows of their teeming thoughts:
  • And partly, that the terrors of the time
  • Are sown by wandering Rumour in all spirits;
  • And in the lightest and the least, may best
  • Be seen the current of the coming wind. _470
  • NOTES:
  • _460, _461 Oh...pupil 1870; omitted 1824.
  • _461 Partly 'tis 1870; It partly is 1824.
  • _465 of 1870; in 1824.
  • QUEEN:
  • Your brain is overwrought with these deep thoughts.
  • Come, I will sing to you; let us go try
  • These airs from Italy; and, as we pass
  • The gallery, we'll decide where that Correggio
  • Shall hang--the Virgin Mother _475
  • With her child, born the King of heaven and earth,
  • Whose reign is men's salvation. And you shall see
  • A cradled miniature of yourself asleep,
  • Stamped on the heart by never-erring love;
  • Liker than any Vandyke ever made, _480
  • A pattern to the unborn age of thee,
  • Over whose sweet beauty I have wept for joy
  • A thousand times, and now should weep for sorrow,
  • Did I not think that after we were dead
  • Our fortunes would spring high in him, and that _485
  • The cares we waste upon our heavy crown
  • Would make it light and glorious as a wreath
  • Of Heaven's beams for his dear innocent brow.
  • NOTE:
  • _473-_477 and, as...salvation 1870; omitted 1824.
  • KING:
  • Dear Henrietta!
  • SCENE 3:
  • THE STAR CHAMBER.
  • LAUD, JUXON, STRAFFORD, AND OTHERS, AS JUDGES.
  • PRYNNE AS A PRISONER, AND THEN BASTWICK.
  • LAUD:
  • Bring forth the prisoner Bastwick: let the clerk
  • Recite his sentence.
  • CLERK:
  • 'That he pay five thousand
  • Pounds to the king, lose both his ears, be branded
  • With red-hot iron on the cheek and forehead,
  • And be imprisoned within Lancaster Castle _5
  • During the pleasure of the Court.'
  • LAUD:
  • Prisoner,
  • If you have aught to say wherefore this sentence
  • Should not be put into effect, now speak.
  • JUXON:
  • If you have aught to plead in mitigation,
  • Speak.
  • BASTWICK:
  • Thus, my lords. If, like the prelates, I _10
  • Were an invader of the royal power
  • A public scorner of the word of God,
  • Profane, idolatrous, popish, superstitious,
  • Impious in heart and in tyrannic act,
  • Void of wit, honesty, and temperance; _15
  • If Satan were my lord, as theirs,--our God
  • Pattern of all I should avoid to do;
  • Were I an enemy of my God and King
  • And of good men, as ye are;--I should merit
  • Your fearful state and gilt prosperity, _20
  • Which, when ye wake from the last sleep, shall turn
  • To cowls and robes of everlasting fire.
  • But, as I am, I bid ye grudge me not
  • The only earthly favour ye can yield,
  • Or I think worth acceptance at your hands,-- _25
  • Scorn, mutilation, and imprisonment.
  • even as my Master did,
  • Until Heaven's kingdom shall descend on earth,
  • Or earth be like a shadow in the light
  • Of Heaven absorbed--some few tumultuous years _30
  • Will pass, and leave no wreck of what opposes
  • His will whose will is power.
  • NOTE:
  • _27-_32 even...power printed as a fragment, Garnett, 1862; inserted
  • here conjecturally, Rossetti, 1870.
  • LAUD:
  • Officer, take the prisoner from the bar,
  • And be his tongue slit for his insolence.
  • BASTWICK:
  • While this hand holds a pen--
  • LAUD:
  • Be his hands--
  • JUXON:
  • Stop! _35
  • Forbear, my lord! The tongue, which now can speak
  • No terror, would interpret, being dumb,
  • Heaven's thunder to our harm;...
  • And hands, which now write only their own shame,
  • With bleeding stumps might sign our blood away. _40
  • LAUD:
  • Much more such 'mercy' among men would be,
  • Did all the ministers of Heaven's revenge
  • Flinch thus from earthly retribution. I
  • Could suffer what I would inflict.
  • [EXIT BASTWICK GUARDED.]
  • Bring up
  • The Lord Bishop of Lincoln.--
  • [TO STRATFORD.]
  • Know you not _45
  • That, in distraining for ten thousand pounds
  • Upon his books and furniture at Lincoln,
  • Were found these scandalous and seditious letters
  • Sent from one Osbaldistone, who is fled?
  • I speak it not as touching this poor person; _50
  • But of the office which should make it holy,
  • Were it as vile as it was ever spotless.
  • Mark too, my lord, that this expression strikes
  • His Majesty, if I misinterpret not.
  • [ENTER BISHOP WILLIAMS GUARDED.]
  • STRAFFORD:
  • 'Twere politic and just that Williams taste _55
  • The bitter fruit of his connection with
  • The schismatics. But you, my Lord Archbishop,
  • Who owed your first promotion to his favour,
  • Who grew beneath his smile--
  • LAUD:
  • Would therefore beg
  • The office of his judge from this High Court,-- _60
  • That it shall seem, even as it is, that I,
  • In my assumption of this sacred robe,
  • Have put aside all worldly preference,
  • All sense of all distinction of all persons,
  • All thoughts but of the service of the Church.-- _65
  • Bishop of Lincoln!
  • WILLIAMS:
  • Peace, proud hierarch!
  • I know my sentence, and I own it just.
  • Thou wilt repay me less than I deserve,
  • In stretching to the utmost
  • ...
  • NOTE:
  • Scene 3. _1-_69 Bring...utmost 1870; omitted 1824.
  • SCENE 4:
  • HAMPDEN, PYM, CROMWELL, HIS DAUGHTER, AND YOUNG SIR HARRY VANE.
  • HAMPDEN:
  • England, farewell! thou, who hast been my cradle,
  • Shalt never be my dungeon or my grave!
  • I held what I inherited in thee
  • As pawn for that inheritance of freedom
  • Which thou hast sold for thy despoiler's smile: _5
  • How can I call thee England, or my country?--
  • Does the wind hold?
  • VANE:
  • The vanes sit steady
  • Upon the Abbey towers. The silver lightnings
  • Of the evening star, spite of the city's smoke,
  • Tell that the north wind reigns in the upper air. _10
  • Mark too that flock of fleecy-winged clouds
  • Sailing athwart St. Margaret's.
  • NOTE:
  • _11 flock 1824; fleet 1870.
  • HAMPDEN:
  • Hail, fleet herald
  • Of tempest! that rude pilot who shall guide
  • Hearts free as his, to realms as pure as thee,
  • Beyond the shot of tyranny, _15
  • Beyond the webs of that swoln spider...
  • Beyond the curses, calumnies, and [lies?]
  • Of atheist priests! ... And thou
  • Fair star, whose beam lies on the wide Atlantic,
  • Athwart its zones of tempest and of calm, _20
  • Bright as the path to a beloved home
  • Oh, light us to the isles of the evening land!
  • Like floating Edens cradled in the glimmer
  • Of sunset, through the distant mist of years
  • Touched by departing hope, they gleam! lone regions, _25
  • Where Power's poor dupes and victims yet have never
  • Propitiated the savage fear of kings
  • With purest blood of noblest hearts; whose dew
  • Is yet unstained with tears of those who wake
  • To weep each day the wrongs on which it dawns; _30
  • Whose sacred silent air owns yet no echo
  • Of formal blasphemies; nor impious rites
  • Wrest man's free worship, from the God who loves,
  • To the poor worm who envies us His love!
  • Receive, thou young ... of Paradise. _35
  • These exiles from the old and sinful world!
  • ...
  • This glorious clime, this firmament, whose lights
  • Dart mitigated influence through their veil
  • Of pale blue atmosphere; whose tears keep green
  • The pavement of this moist all-feeding earth; _40
  • This vaporous horizon, whose dim round
  • Is bastioned by the circumfluous sea,
  • Repelling invasion from the sacred towers,
  • Presses upon me like a dungeon's grate,
  • A low dark roof, a damp and narrow wall. _45
  • The boundless universe
  • Becomes a cell too narrow for the soul
  • That owns no master; while the loathliest ward
  • Of this wide prison, England, is a nest
  • Of cradling peace built on the mountain tops,-- _50
  • To which the eagle spirits of the free,
  • Which range through heaven and earth, and scorn the storm
  • Of time, and gaze upon the light of truth,
  • Return to brood on thoughts that cannot die
  • And cannot be repelled. _55
  • Like eaglets floating in the heaven of time,
  • They soar above their quarry, and shall stoop
  • Through palaces and temples thunderproof.
  • NOTES:
  • _13 rude 1870; wild 1824.
  • _16-_18 Beyond...priests 1870; omitted 1824.
  • _25 Touched 1870; Tinged 1824.
  • _34 To the poor 1870; Towards the 1824.
  • _38 their 1870; the 1824.
  • _46 boundless 1870; mighty 1824.
  • _48 owns no 1824; owns a 1870. ward 1870; spot 1824.
  • _50 cradling 1870; cradled 1824.
  • _54, _55 Return...repelled 1870;
  • Return to brood over the [ ] thoughts
  • That cannot die, and may not he repelled 1824.
  • _56-_58 Like...thunderproof 1870; omitted 1824.
  • SCENE 5:
  • ARCHY:
  • I'll go live under the ivy that overgrows the terrace, and count the
  • tears shed on its old [roots?] as the [wind?] plays the song of
  • 'A widow bird sate mourning
  • Upon a wintry bough.' _5
  • [SINGS]
  • Heigho! the lark and the owl!
  • One flies the morning, and one lulls the night:--
  • Only the nightingale, poor fond soul,
  • Sings like the fool through darkness and light.
  • 'A widow bird sate mourning for her love _10
  • Upon a wintry bough;
  • The frozen wind crept on above,
  • The freezing stream below.
  • There was no leaf upon the forest bare.
  • No flower upon the ground, _15
  • And little motion in the air
  • Except the mill-wheel's sound.'
  • NOTE:
  • Scene 5. _1-_9 I'll...light 1870; omitted 1824.
  • ***
  • THE TRIUMPH OF LIFE.
  • [Composed at Lerici on the Gulf of Spezzia in the spring and early
  • summer of 1822--the poem on which Shelley was engaged at the time of
  • his death. Published by Mrs. Shelley in the "Posthumous Poems" of
  • 1824, pages 73-95. Several emendations, the result of Dr. Garnett's
  • examination of the Boscombe manuscript, were given to the world by
  • Miss Mathilde Blind, "Westminster Review", July, 1870. The poem was,
  • of course, included in the "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions. See
  • Editor's Notes.]
  • Swift as a spirit hastening to his task
  • Of glory and of good, the Sun sprang forth
  • Rejoicing in his splendour, and the mask
  • Of darkness fell from the awakened Earth--
  • The smokeless altars of the mountain snows _5
  • Flamed above crimson clouds, and at the birth
  • Of light, the Ocean's orison arose,
  • To which the birds tempered their matin lay.
  • All flowers in field or forest which unclose
  • Their trembling eyelids to the kiss of day, _10
  • Swinging their censers in the element,
  • With orient incense lit by the new ray
  • Burned slow and inconsumably, and sent
  • Their odorous sighs up to the smiling air;
  • And, in succession due, did continent, _15
  • Isle, ocean, and all things that in them wear
  • The form and character of mortal mould,
  • Rise as the Sun their father rose, to bear
  • Their portion of the toil, which he of old
  • Took as his own, and then imposed on them: _20
  • But I, whom thoughts which must remain untold
  • Had kept as wakeful as the stars that gem
  • The cone of night, now they were laid asleep
  • Stretched my faint limbs beneath the hoary stem
  • Which an old chestnut flung athwart the steep _25
  • Of a green Apennine: before me fled
  • The night; behind me rose the day; the deep
  • Was at my feet, and Heaven above my head,--
  • When a strange trance over my fancy grew
  • Which was not slumber, for the shade it spread _30
  • Was so transparent, that the scene came through
  • As clear as when a veil of light is drawn
  • O'er evening hills they glimmer; and I knew
  • That I had felt the freshness of that dawn
  • Bathe in the same cold dew my brow and hair, _35
  • And sate as thus upon that slope of lawn
  • Under the self-same bough, and heard as there
  • The birds, the fountains and the ocean hold
  • Sweet talk in music through the enamoured air,
  • And then a vision on my train was rolled. _40
  • ...
  • As in that trance of wondrous thought I lay,
  • This was the tenour of my waking dream:--
  • Methought I sate beside a public way
  • Thick strewn with summer dust, and a great stream
  • Of people there was hurrying to and fro, _45
  • Numerous as gnats upon the evening gleam,
  • All hastening onward, yet none seemed to know
  • Whither he went, or whence he came, or why
  • He made one of the multitude, and so
  • Was borne amid the crowd, as through the sky _50
  • One of the million leaves of summer's bier;
  • Old age and youth, manhood and infancy,
  • Mixed in one mighty torrent did appear,
  • Some flying from the thing they feared, and some
  • Seeking the object of another's fear; _55
  • And others, as with steps towards the tomb,
  • Pored on the trodden worms that crawled beneath,
  • And others mournfully within the gloom
  • Of their own shadow walked, and called it death;
  • And some fled from it as it were a ghost, _60
  • Half fainting in the affliction of vain breath:
  • But more, with motions which each other crossed,
  • Pursued or shunned the shadows the clouds threw,
  • Or birds within the noonday aether lost,
  • Upon that path where flowers never grew,--
  • And, weary with vain toil and faint for thirst,
  • Heard not the fountains, whose melodious dew
  • Out of their mossy cells forever burst;
  • Nor felt the breeze which from the forest told
  • Of grassy paths and wood-lawns interspersed _70
  • With overarching elms and caverns cold,
  • And violet banks where sweet dreams brood, but they
  • Pursued their serious folly as of old.
  • And as I gazed, methought that in the way
  • The throng grew wilder, as the woods of June _75
  • When the south wind shakes the extinguished day,
  • And a cold glare, intenser than the noon,
  • But icy cold, obscured with blinding light
  • The sun, as he the stars. Like the young moon--
  • When on the sunlit limits of the night _80
  • Her white shell trembles amid crimson air,
  • And whilst the sleeping tempest gathers might--
  • Doth, as the herald of its coming, bear
  • The ghost of its dead mother, whose dim form
  • Bends in dark aether from her infant's chair,-- _85
  • So came a chariot on the silent storm
  • Of its own rushing splendour, and a Shape
  • So sate within, as one whom years deform,
  • Beneath a dusky hood and double cape,
  • Crouching within the shadow of a tomb; _90
  • And o'er what seemed the head a cloud-like crape
  • Was bent, a dun and faint aethereal gloom
  • Tempering the light. Upon the chariot-beam
  • A Janus-visaged Shadow did assume
  • The guidance of that wonder-winged team; _95
  • The shapes which drew it in thick lightenings
  • Were lost:--I heard alone on the air's soft stream
  • The music of their ever-moving wings.
  • All the four faces of that Charioteer
  • Had their eyes banded; little profit brings _100
  • Speed in the van and blindness in the rear,
  • Nor then avail the beams that quench the sun,--
  • Or that with banded eyes could pierce the sphere
  • Of all that is, has been or will be done;
  • So ill was the car guided--but it passed _105
  • With solemn speed majestically on.
  • The crowd gave way, and I arose aghast,
  • Or seemed to rise, so mighty was the trance,
  • And saw, like clouds upon the thunder-blast,
  • The million with fierce song and maniac dance _110
  • Raging around--such seemed the jubilee
  • As when to greet some conqueror's advance
  • Imperial Rome poured forth her living sea
  • From senate-house, and forum, and theatre,
  • When ... upon the free _115
  • Had bound a yoke, which soon they stooped to bear.
  • Nor wanted here the just similitude
  • Of a triumphal pageant, for where'er
  • The chariot rolled, a captive multitude
  • Was driven;--all those who had grown old in power _120
  • Or misery,--all who had their age subdued
  • By action or by suffering, and whose hour
  • Was drained to its last sand in weal or woe,
  • So that the trunk survived both fruit and flower;--
  • All those whose fame or infamy must grow _125
  • Till the great winter lay the form and name
  • Of this green earth with them for ever low;--
  • All but the sacred few who could not tame
  • Their spirits to the conquerors--but as soon
  • As they had touched the world with living flame, _130
  • Fled back like eagles to their native noon,
  • Or those who put aside the diadem
  • Of earthly thrones or gems...
  • Were there, of Athens or Jerusalem.
  • Were neither mid the mighty captives seen, _135
  • Nor mid the ribald crowd that followed them,
  • Nor those who went before fierce and obscene.
  • The wild dance maddens in the van, and those
  • Who lead it--fleet as shadows on the green,
  • Outspeed the chariot, and without repose _140
  • Mix with each other in tempestuous measure
  • To savage music, wilder as it grows,
  • They, tortured by their agonizing pleasure,
  • Convulsed and on the rapid whirlwinds spun
  • Of that fierce Spirit, whose unholy leisure _145
  • Was soothed by mischief since the world begun,
  • Throw back their heads and loose their streaming hair;
  • And in their dance round her who dims the sun,
  • Maidens and youths fling their wild arms in air
  • As their feet twinkle; they recede, and now _150
  • Bending within each other's atmosphere,
  • Kindle invisibly--and as they glow,
  • Like moths by light attracted and repelled,
  • Oft to their bright destruction come and go,
  • Till like two clouds into one vale impelled, _155
  • That shake the mountains when their lightnings mingle
  • And die in rain--the fiery band which held
  • Their natures, snaps--while the shock still may tingle
  • One falls and then another in the path
  • Senseless--nor is the desolation single, _160
  • Yet ere I can say WHERE--the chariot hath
  • Passed over them--nor other trace I find
  • But as of foam after the ocean's wrath
  • Is spent upon the desert shore;--behind,
  • Old men and women foully disarrayed, _165
  • Shake their gray hairs in the insulting wind,
  • And follow in the dance, with limbs decayed,
  • Seeking to reach the light which leaves them still
  • Farther behind and deeper in the shade.
  • But not the less with impotence of will _170
  • They wheel, though ghastly shadows interpose
  • Round them and round each other, and fulfil
  • Their work, and in the dust from whence they rose
  • Sink, and corruption veils them as they lie,
  • And past in these performs what ... in those. _175
  • Struck to the heart by this sad pageantry,
  • Half to myself I said--'And what is this?
  • Whose shape is that within the car? And why--'
  • I would have added--'is all here amiss?--'
  • But a voice answered--'Life!'--I turned, and knew _180
  • (O Heaven, have mercy on such wretchedness!)
  • That what I thought was an old root which grew
  • To strange distortion out of the hill side,
  • Was indeed one of those deluded crew,
  • And that the grass, which methought hung so wide _185
  • And white, was but his thin discoloured hair,
  • And that the holes he vainly sought to hide,
  • Were or had been eyes:--'If thou canst forbear
  • To join the dance, which I had well forborne,'
  • Said the grim Feature, of my thought aware, _190
  • 'I will unfold that which to this deep scorn
  • Led me and my companions, and relate
  • The progress of the pageant since the morn;
  • 'If thirst of knowledge shall not then abate,
  • Follow it thou even to the night, but I _195
  • Am weary.'--Then like one who with the weight
  • Of his own words is staggered, wearily
  • He paused; and ere he could resume, I cried:
  • 'First, who art thou?'--'Before thy memory,
  • 'I feared, loved, hated, suffered, did and died, _200
  • And if the spark with which Heaven lit my spirit
  • Had been with purer nutriment supplied,
  • 'Corruption would not now thus much inherit
  • Of what was once Rousseau,--nor this disguise
  • Stain that which ought to have disdained to wear it; _205
  • 'If I have been extinguished, yet there rise
  • A thousand beacons from the spark I bore'--
  • 'And who are those chained to the car?'--'The wise,
  • 'The great, the unforgotten,--they who wore
  • Mitres and helms and crowns, or wreaths of light, _210
  • Signs of thought's empire over thought--their lore
  • 'Taught them not this, to know themselves; their might
  • Could not repress the mystery within,
  • And for the morn of truth they feigned, deep night
  • 'Caught them ere evening.'--'Who is he with chin _215
  • Upon his breast, and hands crossed on his chain?'--
  • 'The child of a fierce hour; he sought to win
  • 'The world, and lost all that it did contain
  • Of greatness, in its hope destroyed; and more
  • Of fame and peace than virtue's self can gain _220
  • 'Without the opportunity which bore
  • Him on its eagle pinions to the peak
  • From which a thousand climbers have before
  • 'Fallen, as Napoleon fell.'--I felt my cheek
  • Alter, to see the shadow pass away, _225
  • Whose grasp had left the giant world so weak
  • That every pigmy kicked it as it lay;
  • And much I grieved to think how power and will
  • In opposition rule our mortal day,
  • And why God made irreconcilable _230
  • Good and the means of good; and for despair
  • I half disdained mine eyes' desire to fill
  • With the spent vision of the times that were
  • And scarce have ceased to be.--'Dost thou behold,'
  • Said my guide, 'those spoilers spoiled, Voltaire, _235
  • 'Frederick, and Paul, Catherine, and Leopold,
  • And hoary anarchs, demagogues, and sage--
  • names which the world thinks always old,
  • 'For in the battle Life and they did wage,
  • She remained conqueror. I was overcome _240
  • By my own heart alone, which neither age,
  • 'Nor tears, nor infamy, nor now the tomb
  • Could temper to its object.'--'Let them pass,'
  • I cried, 'the world and its mysterious doom
  • 'Is not so much more glorious than it was, _245
  • That I desire to worship those who drew
  • New figures on its false and fragile glass
  • 'As the old faded.'--'Figures ever new
  • Rise on the bubble, paint them as you may;
  • We have but thrown, as those before us threw, _250
  • 'Our shadows on it as it passed away.
  • But mark how chained to the triumphal chair
  • The mighty phantoms of an elder day;
  • 'All that is mortal of great Plato there
  • Expiates the joy and woe his master knew not; _255
  • The star that ruled his doom was far too fair.
  • 'And life, where long that flower of Heaven grew not,
  • Conquered that heart by love, which gold, or pain,
  • Or age, or sloth, or slavery could subdue not.
  • 'And near him walk the ... twain, _260
  • The tutor and his pupil, whom Dominion
  • Followed as tame as vulture in a chain.
  • 'The world was darkened beneath either pinion
  • Of him whom from the flock of conquerors
  • Fame singled out for her thunder-bearing minion; _265
  • 'The other long outlived both woes and wars,
  • Throned in the thoughts of men, and still had kept
  • The jealous key of Truth's eternal doors,
  • 'If Bacon's eagle spirit had not lept
  • Like lightning out of darkness--he compelled _270
  • The Proteus shape of Nature, as it slept
  • 'To wake, and lead him to the caves that held
  • The treasure of the secrets of its reign.
  • See the great bards of elder time, who quelled
  • 'The passions which they sung, as by their strain _275
  • May well be known: their living melody
  • Tempers its own contagion to the vein
  • 'Of those who are infected with it--I
  • Have suffered what I wrote, or viler pain!
  • And so my words have seeds of misery-- _180
  • 'Even as the deeds of others, not as theirs.'
  • And then he pointed to a company,
  • 'Midst whom I quickly recognized the heirs
  • Of Caesar's crime, from him to Constantine;
  • The anarch chiefs, whose force and murderous snares _285
  • Had founded many a sceptre-bearing line,
  • And spread the plague of gold and blood abroad:
  • And Gregory and John, and men divine,
  • Who rose like shadows between man and God;
  • Till that eclipse, still hanging over heaven, _290
  • Was worshipped by the world o'er which they strode,
  • For the true sun it quenched--'Their power was given
  • But to destroy,' replied the leader:--'I
  • Am one of those who have created, even
  • 'If it be but a world of agony.'-- _295
  • 'Whence camest thou? and whither goest thou?
  • How did thy course begin?' I said, 'and why?
  • 'Mine eyes are sick of this perpetual flow
  • Of people, and my heart sick of one sad thought--
  • Speak!'--'Whence I am, I partly seem to know, _300
  • 'And how and by what paths I have been brought
  • To this dread pass, methinks even thou mayst guess;--
  • Why this should be, my mind can compass not;
  • 'Whither the conqueror hurries me, still less;--
  • But follow thou, and from spectator turn _305
  • Actor or victim in this wretchedness,
  • 'And what thou wouldst be taught I then may learn
  • From thee. Now listen:--In the April prime,
  • When all the forest-tips began to burn
  • 'With kindling green, touched by the azure clime _310
  • Of the young season, I was laid asleep
  • Under a mountain, which from unknown time
  • 'Had yawned into a cavern, high and deep;
  • And from it came a gentle rivulet,
  • Whose water, like clear air, in its calm sweep _315
  • 'Bent the soft grass, and kept for ever wet
  • The stems of the sweet flowers, and filled the grove
  • With sounds, which whoso hears must needs forget
  • 'All pleasure and all pain, all hate and love,
  • Which they had known before that hour of rest; _320
  • A sleeping mother then would dream not of
  • 'Her only child who died upon the breast
  • At eventide--a king would mourn no more
  • The crown of which his brows were dispossessed
  • 'When the sun lingered o'er his ocean floor _325
  • To gild his rival's new prosperity.
  • 'Thou wouldst forget thus vainly to deplore
  • 'Ills, which if ills can find no cure from thee,
  • The thought of which no other sleep will quell,
  • Nor other music blot from memory, _330
  • 'So sweet and deep is the oblivious spell;
  • And whether life had been before that sleep
  • The Heaven which I imagine, or a Hell
  • 'Like this harsh world in which I woke to weep,
  • I know not. I arose, and for a space _335
  • The scene of woods and waters seemed to keep,
  • Though it was now broad day, a gentle trace
  • Of light diviner than the common sun
  • Sheds on the common earth, and all the place
  • 'Was filled with magic sounds woven into one _340
  • Oblivious melody, confusing sense
  • Amid the gliding waves and shadows dun;
  • 'And, as I looked, the bright omnipresence
  • Of morning through the orient cavern flowed,
  • And the sun's image radiantly intense _345
  • 'Burned on the waters of the well that glowed
  • Like gold, and threaded all the forest's maze
  • With winding paths of emerald fire; there stood
  • 'Amid the sun, as he amid the blaze _350
  • Of his own glory, on the vibrating
  • Floor of the fountain, paved with flashing rays,
  • 'A Shape all light, which with one hand did fling
  • Dew on the earth, as if she were the dawn,
  • And the invisible rain did ever sing
  • 'A silver music on the mossy lawn; _355
  • And still before me on the dusky grass,
  • Iris her many-coloured scarf had drawn:
  • 'In her right hand she bore a crystal glass,
  • Mantling with bright Nepenthe; the fierce splendour
  • Fell from her as she moved under the mass _360
  • 'Of the deep cavern, and with palms so tender,
  • Their tread broke not the mirror of its billow,
  • Glided along the river, and did bend her
  • 'Head under the dark boughs, till like a willow
  • Her fair hair swept the bosom of the stream _365
  • That whispered with delight to be its pillow.
  • 'As one enamoured is upborne in dream
  • O'er lily-paven lakes, mid silver mist
  • To wondrous music, so this shape might seem
  • 'Partly to tread the waves with feet which kissed _370
  • The dancing foam; partly to glide along
  • The air which roughened the moist amethyst,
  • 'Or the faint morning beams that fell among
  • The trees, or the soft shadows of the trees;
  • And her feet, ever to the ceaseless song _375
  • 'Of leaves, and winds, and waves, and birds, and bees,
  • And falling drops, moved in a measure new
  • Yet sweet, as on the summer evening breeze,
  • 'Up from the lake a shape of golden dew
  • Between two rocks, athwart the rising moon, _380
  • Dances i' the wind, where never eagle flew;
  • 'And still her feet, no less than the sweet tune
  • To which they moved, seemed as they moved to blot
  • The thoughts of him who gazed on them; and soon
  • 'All that was, seemed as if it had been not; _385
  • And all the gazer's mind was strewn beneath
  • Her feet like embers; and she, thought by thought,
  • 'Trampled its sparks into the dust of death
  • As day upon the threshold of the east
  • Treads out the lamps of night, until the breath _390
  • 'Of darkness re-illumine even the least
  • Of heaven's living eyes--like day she came,
  • Making the night a dream; and ere she ceased
  • 'To move, as one between desire and shame
  • Suspended, I said--If, as it doth seem, _395
  • Thou comest from the realm without a name
  • 'Into this valley of perpetual dream,
  • Show whence I came, and where I am, and why--
  • Pass not away upon the passing stream.
  • 'Arise and quench thy thirst, was her reply. _400
  • And as a shut lily stricken by the wand
  • Of dewy morning's vital alchemy,
  • 'I rose; and, bending at her sweet command,
  • Touched with faint lips the cup she raised,
  • And suddenly my brain became as sand _405
  • 'Where the first wave had more than half erased
  • The track of deer on desert Labrador;
  • Whilst the wolf, from which they fled amazed,
  • 'Leaves his stamp visibly upon the shore,
  • Until the second bursts;--so on my sight _410
  • Burst a new vision, never seen before,
  • 'And the fair shape waned in the coming light,
  • As veil by veil the silent splendour drops
  • From Lucifer, amid the chrysolite
  • 'Of sunrise, ere it tinge the mountain-tops; _415
  • And as the presence of that fairest planet,
  • Although unseen, is felt by one who hopes
  • 'That his day's path may end as he began it,
  • In that star's smile, whose light is like the scent
  • Of a jonquil when evening breezes fan it, _420
  • 'Or the soft note in which his dear lament
  • The Brescian shepherd breathes, or the caress
  • That turned his weary slumber to content;
  • 'So knew I in that light's severe excess
  • The presence of that Shape which on the stream _425
  • Moved, as I moved along the wilderness,
  • 'More dimly than a day-appearing dream,
  • The host of a forgotten form of sleep;
  • A light of heaven, whose half-extinguished beam
  • 'Through the sick day in which we wake to weep _430
  • Glimmers, for ever sought, for ever lost;
  • So did that shape its obscure tenour keep
  • 'Beside my path, as silent as a ghost;
  • But the new Vision, and the cold bright car,
  • With solemn speed and stunning music, crossed _435
  • 'The forest, and as if from some dread war
  • Triumphantly returning, the loud million
  • Fiercely extolled the fortune of her star.
  • 'A moving arch of victory, the vermilion
  • And green and azure plumes of Iris had _440
  • Built high over her wind-winged pavilion,
  • 'And underneath aethereal glory clad
  • The wilderness, and far before her flew
  • The tempest of the splendour, which forbade
  • 'Shadow to fall from leaf and stone; the crew _445
  • Seemed in that light, like atomies to dance
  • Within a sunbeam;--some upon the new
  • 'Embroidery of flowers, that did enhance
  • The grassy vesture of the desert, played,
  • Forgetful of the chariot's swift advance; _450
  • 'Others stood gazing, till within the shade
  • Of the great mountain its light left them dim;
  • Others outspeeded it; and others made
  • 'Circles around it, like the clouds that swim
  • Round the high moon in a bright sea of air; _455
  • And more did follow, with exulting hymn,
  • 'The chariot and the captives fettered there:--
  • But all like bubbles on an eddying flood
  • Fell into the same track at last, and were
  • 'Borne onward.--I among the multitude _460
  • Was swept--me, sweetest flowers delayed not long;
  • Me, not the shadow nor the solitude;
  • 'Me, not that falling stream's Lethean song;
  • Me, not the phantom of that early Form
  • Which moved upon its motion--but among _465
  • 'The thickest billows of that living storm
  • I plunged, and bared my bosom to the clime
  • Of that cold light, whose airs too soon deform.
  • 'Before the chariot had begun to climb
  • The opposing steep of that mysterious dell, _470
  • Behold a wonder worthy of the rhyme
  • 'Of him who from the lowest depths of hell,
  • Through every paradise and through all glory,
  • Love led serene, and who returned to tell
  • 'The words of hate and awe; the wondrous story _475
  • How all things are transfigured except Love;
  • For deaf as is a sea, which wrath makes hoary,
  • 'The world can hear not the sweet notes that move
  • The sphere whose light is melody to lovers--
  • A wonder worthy of his rhyme.--The grove _480
  • 'Grew dense with shadows to its inmost covers,
  • The earth was gray with phantoms, and the air
  • Was peopled with dim forms, as when there hovers
  • 'A flock of vampire-bats before the glare
  • Of the tropic sun, bringing, ere evening, _485
  • Strange night upon some Indian isle;--thus were
  • 'Phantoms diffused around; and some did fling
  • Shadows of shadows, yet unlike themselves,
  • Behind them; some like eaglets on the wing
  • 'Were lost in the white day; others like elves _490
  • Danced in a thousand unimagined shapes
  • Upon the sunny streams and grassy shelves;
  • 'And others sate chattering like restless apes
  • On vulgar hands,...
  • Some made a cradle of the ermined capes _495
  • 'Of kingly mantles; some across the tiar
  • Of pontiffs sate like vultures; others played
  • Under the crown which girt with empire
  • 'A baby's or an idiot's brow, and made
  • Their nests in it. The old anatomies _500
  • Sate hatching their bare broods under the shade
  • 'Of daemon wings, and laughed from their dead eyes
  • To reassume the delegated power,
  • Arrayed in which those worms did monarchize,
  • 'Who made this earth their charnel. Others more _505
  • Humble, like falcons, sate upon the fist
  • Of common men, and round their heads did soar;
  • Or like small gnats and flies, as thick as mist
  • On evening marshes, thronged about the brow
  • Of lawyers, statesmen, priest and theorist;-- _510
  • 'And others, like discoloured flakes of snow
  • On fairest bosoms and the sunniest hair,
  • Fell, and were melted by the youthful glow
  • 'Which they extinguished; and, like tears, they were
  • A veil to those from whose faint lids they rained _515
  • In drops of sorrow. I became aware
  • 'Of whence those forms proceeded which thus stained
  • The track in which we moved. After brief space,
  • From every form the beauty slowly waned;
  • 'From every firmest limb and fairest face _520
  • The strength and freshness fell like dust, and left
  • The action and the shape without the grace
  • 'Of life. The marble brow of youth was cleft
  • With care; and in those eyes where once hope shone,
  • Desire, like a lioness bereft _525
  • 'Of her last cub, glared ere it died; each one
  • Of that great crowd sent forth incessantly
  • These shadows, numerous as the dead leaves blown
  • 'In autumn evening from a poplar tree. _530
  • Each like himself and like each other were
  • At first; but some distorted seemed to be
  • 'Obscure clouds, moulded by the casual air;
  • And of this stuff the car's creative ray
  • Wrought all the busy phantoms that were there,
  • 'As the sun shapes the clouds; thus on the way _535
  • Mask after mask fell from the countenance
  • And form of all; and long before the day
  • 'Was old, the joy which waked like heaven's glance
  • The sleepers in the oblivious valley, died;
  • And some grew weary of the ghastly dance, _540
  • 'And fell, as I have fallen, by the wayside;--
  • Those soonest from whose forms most shadows passed,
  • And least of strength and beauty did abide.
  • 'Then, what is life? I cried.'--
  • CANCELLED OPENING OF THE TRIUMPH OF LIFE.
  • [Published by Miss M. Blind, "Westminster Review", July, 1870.]
  • Out of the eastern shadow of the Earth,
  • Amid the clouds upon its margin gray
  • Scattered by Night to swathe in its bright birth
  • In gold and fleecy snow the infant Day,
  • The glorious Sun arose: beneath his light, _5
  • The earth and all...
  • _10-_17 A widow...sound 1870; omitted here 1824;
  • printed as 'A Song,' 1824, page 217.
  • _34, _35 dawn Bathe Mrs. Shelley (later editions); dawn, Bathed 1824, 1839.
  • _63 shunned Boscombe manuscript; spurned 1824, 1839.
  • _70 Of...interspersed Boscombe manuscript;
  • Of grassy paths and wood, lawn-interspersed 1824;
  • wood-lawn-interspersed 1839.
  • _84 form]frown 1824.
  • _93 light...beam]light upon the chariot beam; 1824.
  • _96 it omitted 1824.
  • _109 thunder Boscombe manuscript; thunders 1824; thunder's 1839.
  • _112 greet Boscombe manuscript; meet 1824, 1839.
  • _129 conqueror or conqueror's cj. A.C. Bradley.
  • _131-_134 See Editor's Note.
  • _158 while Boscombe manuscript; omitted 1824, 1839.
  • _167 And...dance 1839 To seek, to [ ], to strain 1824.
  • _168 Seeking 1839; Limping 1824.
  • _188 canst, Mrs. Shelley 1824, 1839, 1847.
  • _189 forborne!' 1824, 1839, 1847.
  • _190 Feature, (of my thought aware); Mrs. Shelley 1847.
  • _188-_190 The punctuation is A.C. Bradley's.
  • _202 nutriment Boscombe manuscript; sentiment 1824, 1839.
  • _205 Stain]Stained 1824, 1839.
  • _235 Said my 1824, 1839; Said then my cj. Forman.
  • _238 names which the 1839: name the 1824.
  • _252 how]now cj. Forman.
  • _260 him 1839; omitted 1824.
  • _265 singled for cj. Forman.
  • _280 See Editor's Note.
  • _281, _282 Even...then Boscombe manuscript; omitted 1824, 1839.
  • _296 camest Boscombe manuscript; comest 1824, 1839.
  • _311 season Boscombe manuscript; year's dawn 1824, 1839.
  • _322 the Boscombe manuscript; her 1824, 1839.
  • _334 woke cj. A.C. Bradley; wake 1824, 1839. Cf. _296, footnote.
  • _361 Of...and Boscombe manuscript; Out of the deep cavern with 1824, 1839.
  • _363 Glided Boscombe manuscript; She glided 1824, 1839.
  • _377 in Boscombe manuscript; to 1824.
  • _422 The favourite song, Stanco di pascolar le pecorelle,
  • is a Brescian national air.--[MRS. SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
  • _464 early]aery cj. Forman.
  • _475 awe Boscombe manuscript; care 1824.
  • _486 isle Boscombe manuscript; vale 1824.
  • _497 sate like vultures Boscombe manuscript; rode like demons 1824.
  • _515 those]eyes cj. Rossetti.
  • _534 Wrought Boscombe manuscript; Wrapt 1824.
  • End of the Project Gutenberg Etext of The Complete Poetical Works of Percy
  • Bysshe Shelley Volume I, by Percy Bysshe Shelley
  • *** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG ETEXT THE COMPLETE POETICAL WORKS ***
  • This file should be named 4797.txt or 4797.zip
  • VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, shly110a.txt
  • Produced by Sue Asscher
  • Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance
  • of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
  • Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
  • even years after the official publication date.
  • Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
  • midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
  • The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at
  • Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
  • preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
  • and editing by those who wish to do so.
  • Most people start at our Web sites at:
  • http://gutenberg.net or
  • http://promo.net/pg
  • These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
  • Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
  • eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).
  • Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement
  • can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is
  • also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
  • indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
  • announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.
  • http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or
  • ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03
  • Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90
  • Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
  • as it appears in our Newsletters.
  • Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
  • We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
  • time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
  • to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
  • searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our
  • projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value
  • per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
  • million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text
  • files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+
  • We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002
  • If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
  • will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end.
  • The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks!
  • This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
  • which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.
  • Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated):
  • eBooks Year Month
  • 1 1971 July
  • 10 1991 January
  • 100 1994 January
  • 1000 1997 August
  • 1500 1998 October
  • 2000 1999 December
  • 2500 2000 December
  • 3000 2001 November
  • 4000 2001 October/November
  • 6000 2002 December*
  • 9000 2003 November*
  • 10000 2004 January*
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
  • to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.
  • We need your donations more than ever!
  • As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people
  • and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut,
  • Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois,
  • Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts,
  • Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
  • Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio,
  • Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South
  • Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West
  • Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming.
  • We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones
  • that have responded.
  • As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
  • will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
  • Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.
  • In answer to various questions we have received on this:
  • We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
  • request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and
  • you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
  • just ask.
  • While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
  • not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
  • donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
  • donate.
  • International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
  • how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
  • deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
  • ways.
  • Donations by check or money order may be sent to:
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • PMB 113
  • 1739 University Ave.
  • Oxford, MS 38655-4109
  • Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
  • method other than by check or money order.
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
  • the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
  • [Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are
  • tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising
  • requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
  • made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states.
  • We need your donations more than ever!
  • You can get up to date donation information online at:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html
  • ***
  • If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
  • you can always email directly to:
  • Michael S. Hart
  • Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.
  • We would prefer to send you information by email.
  • **The Legal Small Print**
  • (Three Pages)
  • ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START***
  • Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
  • They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
  • your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from
  • someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
  • fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
  • disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
  • you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to.
  • *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK
  • By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
  • eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
  • this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
  • a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by
  • sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
  • you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical
  • medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
  • ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS
  • This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks,
  • is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
  • through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
  • Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
  • on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
  • distribute it in the United States without permission and
  • without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
  • below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook
  • under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
  • Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
  • any commercial products without permission.
  • To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable
  • efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
  • works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any
  • medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
  • things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
  • intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
  • disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer
  • codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
  • LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
  • But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
  • [1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
  • receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims
  • all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
  • legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
  • UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
  • INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
  • OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
  • POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
  • If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of
  • receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
  • you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
  • time to the person you received it from. If you received it
  • on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
  • such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
  • copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
  • choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
  • receive it electronically.
  • THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
  • TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
  • LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
  • PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
  • Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
  • the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
  • above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
  • may have other legal rights.
  • INDEMNITY
  • You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
  • and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
  • with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
  • legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
  • following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook,
  • [2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook,
  • or [3] any Defect.
  • DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
  • You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by
  • disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
  • "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
  • or:
  • [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
  • requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
  • eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
  • if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable
  • binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
  • including any form resulting from conversion by word
  • processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
  • *EITHER*:
  • [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
  • does *not* contain characters other than those
  • intended by the author of the work, although tilde
  • (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
  • be used to convey punctuation intended by the
  • author, and additional characters may be used to
  • indicate hypertext links; OR
  • [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at
  • no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
  • form by the program that displays the eBook (as is
  • the case, for instance, with most word processors);
  • OR
  • [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
  • no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
  • eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
  • or other equivalent proprietary form).
  • [2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this
  • "Small Print!" statement.
  • [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
  • gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
  • already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
  • don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
  • payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
  • the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
  • legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
  • periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to
  • let us know your plans and to work out the details.
  • WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
  • Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
  • public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
  • in machine readable form.
  • The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
  • public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
  • Money should be paid to the:
  • "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
  • software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
  • hart@pobox.com
  • [Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only
  • when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by
  • Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be
  • used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be
  • they hardware or software or any other related product without
  • express permission.]
  • *END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*